242 102 85MB
English Pages 300 [272] Year 2013
Crime and Behavior First
Edited
by Sylvia and
San
Diego
Edition
Valenzuela, Stuart
State
Paul
Henry
Universit
Kaplan,
Bassim
Hamadeh,
CEO
Simpson,
Vice
Michael Jamie
Giganti,
Jess
Busch,
Seidy
Copyright reproduced, known
or
First
Printed
ISBN:
in
only
in
for
the
identification
United
978-1-62131-539-1
the
United
Product
in
(pbk)/
No part
or by any
photocopying,
of
permission
America
or corporate
of
reserved.
any form
written
States
and
States
All rights
including
without
the
Notice:
Inc.
or utilized
invented,
system
published
Editor Associate
Cognella,
transmitted,
Trademark used
Project
by
hereafter
retrieval
Supervisor
Licensing
2014
Acquisitions
Editor
Senior
Sandler,
of
Editor
Design
Acquisitions
Wheeler,
Stephanie
Publisher
President
Managing Graphic
Cruz,
Sarah
and
in
names
explanation
without
electronic,
microfilming, of
2014
Cognella,
by
intent
(br
publication mechanical,
and
recording,
may be reprinted, or other or in
means,
now
any informa-tion
Inc.
Cognella,
may be trademarks
America
978-1-62131-540-7
of this
to infringe.
Inc.
or registered
trademarks,
and
are
CONTENTS Preface
vii
Introduction
1
PART
MICRO-LEVEL
I:
INDIVIDUAL
THEORIES
Introduction
CHAPTER
1:
7
CLASSICAL
1.The
Rational Derek
2.
Routine
B.
AND
1.
2:
Cornish
Biological
Cesare
3:
Ronald
Tillyer
Clarke
and John
E. Eck
& BIOSOCIAL
Theory
THEORIES
37
D. Crews Lombrosos
The
Born
Criminal
59
Lombroso-Ferrero
PSYCHOLOGICAL
1. Psychological Theories John
V.
23
BIOLOGICAL
Gina
CHAPTER
and
THEORIES
15
Activities
Angela 2.
CHOICE
Choice Perspective
Marie Skubak
CHAPTER
RATIONAL
W. Clark
THEORIES
of Crime
6
IV
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
PART II: MICRO-LEVEL
SOCIAL
PROCESS
THEORIES
Introduction
CHAPTER
1.
4:
79
SOCIAL
ATheory Edwin
of
LEARNING
THEORIES
Diff erential
H. Sutherland
Association and
Donald
85
R. Cressey
2. Social Learning Theory
89
Ronald L. Akers and WesleyG.Jennings
CHAPTER
5:
SOCIAL
CONTROL
THEORIES
1. Self-Control Theory Travis
Hirschi and
103
Michael R. Gottfredson
PART MACRO-LEVEL
III:
STRUCTURAL
Introduction
CHAPTER
6:
THEORIES
121
SOCIAL
1. Social
ECOLOGY
Disorganization
AND
SUBCULTURAL
Theory
THEORIES
129
Jeffery T. Walker
CHAPTER
1.
7:
Strain
ANOMIE
AND
Theories
Robert S. Agnew
STRAIN
THEORIES
14
CONTENTS
V
PART IV: MACRO-LEVEL
CRITICAL
THEORIES
Introduction
157
CHAPTER 8: 1.
CONFLICT,
Critical
RADICAL,
AND LEFT REALIST
Criminology
Stuart
165
Henry
2. Radical
Criminology
171
MichaelJ. Lynch and Paul B.Stretesky
CHAPTER
9:
FEMINIST
1. Feminist Susan
CHAPTER
1.
10:
GENDER
193
F. Sharp
POSTMODERN
Postmodernism
AND
and
Henry and
Cultural Jeff
THEORIES
Criminology
Stuart 2.
AND
CRITICAL
Constitutive
Dragan
CULTURE
Theories
of
Criminal
Behavior
207
Milovanovic 213
Criminology
Ferrell
3. Advancing Critical Criminology Through Avi
CHAPTER11:
THEORIES
Anthropology
225
Brisman
ANARCHIST, PEACEMAKING,
1. Peacemaking
AND RESTORATIVE JUSTICE THEORIES
Criminology
253
Michael Braswell, John Fuller, and Bo Lozoff 2.
Responsibility
John
CONCLUSION: Stuart
and
Braithwaite
THE Henry
Restorative
and
Declan
CHALLENGE
26
Justice
Roche
OF INTEGRATIVE
THEORIES
279
PREFACE
T
he focus
students
etiology
of this text is on crime with
an
of crime.
introduction
and behavior. to
the
causes
Our purpose is to provide of
crime,
also
known
as the
We have assembled a set of easily accessible articles that
give
the reader a clear overview of competing explanations for crime, criminals and criminality,
each written by leading criminologists
range from individual-level
in the field. These
explanations through group and institutional
articles expla-nations
to explanations highlighting the role of wider social and cultural forces on human behavior. Project
We would like to thank the Thinking
at San Diego State
Reader possible, and
Universitys
particularly
to
School of Public Cognella
Academic
Outside the Book
Affairs for
making this
Publishing
for
under-writing
the project.
VI
INTRODUCTION
T
his book provides Put another
an overview
study
way,it tries to answer the question: Why
It does so through
a collecting
of criminal
the field of criminology. These
crime?
essays, and
major paradigms (theoretical frameworks)
in
articles address various levels of analysis, from
explanation, to group-level theories, to broader approaches that
include the influence of culture, social structure and institutions criminal
behavior.
do peopledo
works of original research, theoretical
literature reviews addressing the individual-level
of the scholarly
in explaining
behavior.
From the outset it is important a legal category. This the political imposing
to recognize that the behavior called crime
meansthat crimes are definitions
acts of government
through
penalties on off enders.
law forbidding
of behavior
is
decided on by
its process of making criminal
laws and
A crime is defined as an act that violates a public
it, or the omission
of an act violating
Crimes are defined by local, state or federal
a public law commanding
governments,
it.
but where no clear law
exists, decisions by courts can also define crime. Crimes typically
contains
three
elements:
(1) they
harm others, institutions
or society in general; (2) there is a degree of consensus among societys
members
about the immorality
behavior
through
of the
behavior;
a series of government
sanctions
on the
perpetrator(s).
varies in relation
and (3) society
authorized The
reacts to the
processes and imposes
severity
and enforces
of the penalty imposed
to the perceived seriousness
of the crime,
on perpe-trators with persons
committing serious off enses, described asfelonies, typically receiving a sanction of at least one year of imprisonment. Those committing less serious offenses,called misdemeanors,receive penalties of less than a yearimprisonment;
both felonies
and misdemeanors can also receive fines or alternative sanctions, including
com-munity
service, probation, and beforced to payrestitution to the victim(s). For a person to befound established include
by criminal
guilty
law and determined
(1) actus reus (guilty
committed
of a crime they
the act, and (2)
be proven to have criminal
act),
by a criminal
meet certain standards
court. Importantly,
these
meaning the person has to be proven to have
mensrea (guilty intent
have to
mind) which
meansthe person has to
or that they acted recklessly.
2
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
It is also important between
crime
social
which
deviance,
to recognize the diff erence
is
a violation
which
is
a violation
while crime is punishable
ostracism
In seeking to important
criminal
law
of social
by formal
is subject to social reaction control, shaming,
of
and explain
also to distinguish
social
which is a characteristic
common,
that
behaviors
rather than on specific criminal
believe that
what is important
and personality off
criminal
is the
have
acts.
in
motivational
in-tent
of the
biological
or
look
predisposi-tions,
at the
role
of so-cial
and social processes between individu-als people that
may also lead to crime. For
behavior,
and
as shown
are also considered
focus
model, the
behavior
they can also model
by social learning
theory.
micro-level theories,
on the interactive
but they
social
processes that lead to
crime, rather than the qualities
of the kinds of people
who
ender.
theories
whether real or fictional;
criminal These
to individual
excitement
of crime.
people learn from,
of others,
need for
choice or inherent
micro-level
and other example,
Others
profile i.e. the criminality
points
explanations
interaction
of
crime it is necessary to focus
all
seeking,
other
which is
acts. Some criminologists
elements
an enhanced
Rather than rational
people committing
the
produce
psychological
crime it is
between crime,
criminal
that
law, devi-ance and thrill
criminal
such asinformal
a behavior, and criminality
on
a crime because of certain genetic or personality traits
norms;
and public humiliation.
understand
argue that to understand
opposite of rational choice, being predisposed to com-mit
and
commit
In
However,insofar as crime is a legal category it is
crime.
contrast to
micro-level theory is
macro-level
important to notethat as behavior defined bylaw, there
theory
are a variety of diff erent motivations and causesthat
the kind of society welive in, whether this is hierarchi-cal or communal,
can result in a single type of crime. Takefemale rape as an example. Is it caused by to
dominate
others,
gender socialization, penalties
result of a patriarchal
of apprehension? society that treats
objects, which is reinforced What
about
caused by simple in a trusted
the
by their
crime
of
women as sex
embezzlement?
that
provides
problem
Is
it
or by being
access to
money
(e.g. debt) that
by employees resentment
needs a
employer?
groups or broad social classes, reflects class, gender
Or is
monetarysuccessat the expense of other values
Constitution,
Amendment),
can have diff erent explanations. In
this
explanations parts,
book
we
for crime. The
each containing
a free prone
of criminal
behavior that
explanation.
Micro-level
of explanations
diff erent theories
point to a certain level theories
refers to the range
that focus on the individual
For example, choosing simple cost-benefit
to commit
or groups.
a crime based on a
analysis suggests individual
choice as an explanation.
of
rational
And even though it is the polar
For example,
the right to bear arms
as the
United
States (Second
a gun culture that increases the particularly
market economy
founding
gun crime, compared
and the pursuit
crime
and fraud
of profit
than
one
ethos is social responsibility?
games, contribute
culture, to
Does the
particularly
mass
violent
excessive violence
for such behavior,
more
where the
video
by providing
by sensationalizing
it, and
by desensitizing potential off enders to the harmful how
several competing on
whether its structure divisions.
ban guns? Is a society that encourages
to corporate
of such
macro-level
result
in
behavior. forces
can
example, how
are
explanations
families,
schools,
individual
does the type
to
of
behavior
be
between at
social
the
the
mi-cro-and
meso-level.
institutions
like
or neighborhoods.
of school
takes
For
make a diff erence to
place there?
whether it is large or small,
or
lie
on
workplaces,
much violence
principal,
are all examples
that said
focus
share in governance, the
aff ect
explanations
macro-levels
These
These
crime.
Theoretical
text is divided into four
articles
facilitate
with societies that
and
delineate
such
level of violent crime,
such as carefor others, collaboration and mutual sup-port? outcomes Clearly, behavior resulting in particular crimes
or racial
does a society that incorporates in its
scripts of a societal system that cel-ebrates
the result
whether it is madeup of conflicting
media and popular
over bad treatment
boss, or disrespect for their
embezzlement
Or is it the
by mass media and popular
greed and opportunity,
position
and having a financial solution,
desire, a need
women based on
acting out of masculinity, a lack of
or uncertainty
culture?
male sexual
disrespect for
which refers to large social structures such as
Does it
matter
whether it allows students
or whether it is run top-down
whether
it
has zero-tolerance
policie
a by
INTRODUCTION
toward
threats
of
violence,
or
whether
it
uses
restor-ative
justice and peer-problem solving? Is academic tracking,
in
lower-expectation
to
crime
students
or deviance? react
the school is
this
and
deviant
and society
a cause
subsequent
of
criminal
or
hostile
crime
and
violence,
career? These
or
and a
would be examples
book contains
the following
4 parts.
Part 1
focusses on micro-level individual
explanation
of crime
such
or biological
theory
as rational
mentioned
above.
choice Part
by leading
or reviewing discussion.
theory
2 focusses
on
micro-level
social
theories
related
as we find
by anyone knowledge.
their
justice
own theory
to the category
that
these are
and accessible style that without
under
specialized written in
is easily
the ideas and assumptions
overview contained
process explanations, such as social learning theory.
in that part of the book, including the implications
Part 3 focuses on macro-level explanations such as
particular theories for criminal justice policy
social ecology theory that looks at space and place as
a
un-derstandable
prior criminological
Wealso provide an introductory
that summarizes
system
one or more articles
explaining
Several articles are drawn from
comprehensive
have
want to change it.
criminologists
encyclopedias
of meso-level explanations. This
of the existing
not least its criminal
Each part of the book contains
to
even
of society,
system, and they
marginalized
subcultures
that they are critical
or structure
system, a precursor
out of a sense of injustice,
school
critical theories that explain crime as a result of social in common
classes, and as a result
Do alienated
form
shaping crime. Finally, Part 4 focusses on macro-level
forces such as class, or gender or culture and that are put in lower-competency,
which some students
are alienated from the educational
3
of
PART I
Micro-Level
Individual
Theorie
PART I INTRODUCTION
Micro-Level
I
n
Part
in
the
1
we
discuss
individual.
biological
micro-level
These
theories
theories
and biosocial theories,
discussion with classical theory
of
include
Individual
crime
that
classical
and psychological
and
Theories
locate
the
cause
rational
of
choice
theories.
crime
theories,
We will begin our
which is not precisely a theory
of crime, but
rather a philosophical perspective about crime and punishment (Garland 1985). The basicidea underlying classicaltheory is that human beingschoose to act, or not act, based ontheir calculation of the costs and benefits, wheretheir perception of the potential benefit/pleasure of the act outweighs the potential that accompany the consequences Consequently, the underlying free-thinking,
rational,
of committing
assumption
self-interested
the act (Lanier
& Henry 2010).
of classical theory is that
beings
who calculate
cost/pain humans are
the costs of commit-ting
crime and act accordingly. These by
ideas
were first introduced
philosophers,
(17481832),
who were influenced
contract, This
which
of free
by
was a hypothetical
was also tied to notions
individual
during the
European
such as Cesare Beccaria (17381794)
market economics, in
Enlightenment
contract
of rationality, which society
classical
and Jeremy notions
of the social
between individuals logical
deduction,
period1 Bentham
and society.
and the emergence
wasseen as the outcome
of a myriad of
decisions.
From the classical
perspective, the general role of law (as well as specific laws)
is assumed to be based on a consensus among the general population. The
contractthat
assumed weall give up some liberties in exchangefor an ordered
and secure societyis assumed
that
social
those
an integral component who
break
the
law
of this perspective. It
do so for
hedonistic,
selfish
was also
reasons
and
thereby violate the interests and well-being of the wider group, i.e. society as a whole.
If rational policies This
cost-benefit
deriving from
calculation
the classical perspective
assumes that individuals
all individuals
These
are responsible
involve
the idea
criminal
betreated
standards
equally in law and be judged
include
what
are
now
considered
justice
of due process.
for the decisions they
make, that
are equally able to calculate the costs and benefits of their
and that each should standards.
is the cause of crime, then
actions
by the same universal basic
individual
8
CRIME
AND
rights
BEHAVIOR
such as: the presumption
by jury, restraint
of the power of government, and
fairness in the administration McShane 1988; century
radical
of justice
Einstadter argument,
punishment
swift, certain, and proportional lasting contribution These
(Williams
be
to the crime, is another
of classical theory (Beccaria
in response to
(Smith
18th
should
brutal,
1764).
unfair, and cruel systems
in the pre-classical
period in
philosophers,
the
writings of European
are important
laid the foundation
for
world, including
for several reasons. They
many justice
the
in the
also indirectly
led to the development
of crime
(known
United
aspositivists)
about the origins
ideas,
early
scientific
ideas
of crime led to several criticisms.
became clear that
diff erent capacities
humans
and consequently
For
are born there
with
needs to
call classical
theory,
philosophies
about
classical thought today;
justice system (Vold
of the scientific theorists
criticized
theorizing
classi-cal
and for ignoring
the earlier versions that
were not theories crime
and
we
at all but simply
punishment.
Finally,
about crime and justice is still relevant
many correctional
and behavioral strategies
em-ployed
byjustice systems around the world are based
be recognition of the special needs of the mentallyill, juveniles, and other populations whoenter the criminal
set of ideas
grounded
subsequently
scholars for armchair
around
and largest
States. This
when scientifically
the facts of crime. Ironically, classical
systems
most expensive
system found
Europe
1967).
Following
example, it
tice, originating in 18th
were devel-oped study
rights became crucial since the ideas
of justice found
&
& Henry 2006). The that
The so-called classical ideas about crime and jus-century
of innocence, trial
on the set of principles that these ideas embodied. The
& Bernard 1986).This led to a
mirror image of classical theory is biological
decreasedfocus on the idea that all people exercisefull
theory.
rationality, to the argument that off enders sometimes
identical (rational, cost benefit calculators driven by
have imperfect
self-interest)
Indeed,
rationality
and/or
that
not everyone
to reason,
wasrecognized
and this
modification
was labeled
neo-classicism.
Contemporary or choice
reduced
in the early implementation
had the same ability to pure
theories,
more recently, recognize
rational
that
there
to
act fully
of individuals
are limits
rationally
(Lanier
have gone beyond the framework penalties to
provide
a disincentive
for crime and have provided
crime-reduction
concrete
to
or perfectly
& Henry 2010). Importantly,
practice initiatives
do not; criminals
these
of general explana-tion
nature
work
policies are based on analyzing and
manipulating the costs, risks, opportunities, incentives
daughter
fathers
hardening.
theorists, surveillance
(Clarke
Rational choice and routine activi-ties
therefore, measures
that
focus reduce
& Cornish 1983). Their
on design, security the
of classical theorists
systems, rights
and government. The
places some responsibility maintaining
of
and crime
on the law, legal new focus
on the potential
also
victim, for
crime free environments.
those
waysfrom
first
appeared
Ferri
and
of biological
characteristics
was continued
criminology
(Schafer
between humans
to commit
1976).
were seen
and as born
founding
were heavily influ-enced theory
Lombroso
measureand identify
criminals
School,
by his students
Garofalo. These
Darwins evolutionary
students sought to
Cesares
who led the Italian
Raff aele
the
Cesare Lombroso
such, they saw the roots of crime in inherited
some
who non-criminals
in
see Reading by Gina Lombroso, and colleague)
by Charles
physical and
his
physical dif-ferences
non-criminals. criminals,
and as
and
Thus, destined2
crime, if certain physical characteristics
were
present, such as bumps on certain parts of the head, pro-truding eyebrows, sunken cheekbones, and other physical
approach goes beyond
the early focus
creating and
rewards
assume that
diff erence is biological
anthropologist
whose research
Enrico
of this
theory
of criminal
and provocations to crime, whichis known generally as target
diff er in significant
biological
(18351909;
and
of crime
are diff erent from
(Cohen,1966).
Early
policy and
designed to reduce crime. These
theories
and the origin
neo-classicalist
or situational
biological
who break laws
classicism
called
theorists laws and
people
in
classical
theories,
the freedom
capacity.
of these ideas it
Whereasclassicaltheory assumed everyone was
traits. These
born
throwbacks
(or atavistic)
or throwbacks (Gibson
criminals
werecharacterizedas genetic meaning they
werereversions
to an earlier stage of human
& Rafter
2006)
evolution
PART
Initially, characteristics such as facial features and
argue that humans inherit
prone,
were identified, goal
but later
including
of biological
compare variety these
a wider variety environmental
theories
of crime,
of factors
across
factors. The
result,
therefore,
off enders and non-off enders by of features
in
order to identify
diff erences and to
how these
develop
diff erent kinds
is to
measuring a
of people
could
lead to
crime.
By the 1950s the
work of
had been replaced and
criminal
propensity
anthropologist
Lombrosian
with ideas
Ernest
found
in
criminol-ogy
research
research
turned
than
of
William
certain
out
to
be
more
body
of criminal
McDermott beliefs
is
1949).
that
can
Hastl,
theory,
based
on
the
prediction,
and
crime.
go on to
flawed,
nature
contribution
of
introduced
distinguish
and treatment
Further, the
kinds of criminals,
of
these
the use of
this
in studying
approach
diff erences between
the
from each other, eventually led to variations in how them.
This
included
indeterminate
much greater discretion and
correctional
The
on the
biosocial factors
approach
focus and
and rigorous
1998).
that
were more
sentenced
sentences
and
part of police, judges
Contemporary
received
wasreplaced
studies
biological
contexts
biosocial
inherently
defective in crimes. Such
and actions and
will commit
crimes.
most contemporary
do not give priority
over environmental
theories
will prevent or reduce
note that
criminologists
to genetic
causes of crime; rather they
components,
such that
certain
maytrigger inherited tendencies leading
Studies of twins separated at birth have provided some confirmation of the role that heredity playsin hu-man behavior, as havestudies of adoptees. Asscientific techniques found
advanced
much criti-cism
deep (Fishbein
and biosocial theories
so did the range
between criminals
development,
other
diff
The
of diff erences
and non-criminals,
genes, chromosomes,
brain
hormones,
brain
including chemistry,
and diet among
many
erences.
scientific
the study
(positivistic)
of criminals
approach
and their
aid to policing, is increasingly
relevant today.
how police agencies rely
(particularly
DNA),
criminals.
Modern
can now examine
a persons
Unlike the
analysis of the founding
Popular
SceneInvestigation)
on physical evidence
to identify
crime analysis techniques
to crime via
off enses, as well as an
series such as CSI (Crime
previous
deterministic
biological criminologists
most
theorists today argue that a genetic pattern interacting with the appropriate triggering
environment
may be
responsible for an increased proclivity to anti-social and consequently analysis patterns
(PET)
criminal
of off enders are explored (MRI)
and
scans (though
Henry and by more so-phisticated
and greater attention
than skin
to
see these as interactive
imaging
early biological
to factors
courts
officials.
for its limited
that they
It is important
Such individ-ualized genetic structure.
are diff erent from the general population, and different the
theories,
As a
break the law
who is prone to committing
the probability
show
the crime, on the assumption that criminal offenders
how
to
can be taken that
diff er-ent
attention to the specific criminal, rather than
and in
classical
2002).
environmental
propensity
people can be identified,
television
crimes of diff erent severity, and how these
were treated
certain
crime-prone
would
mentally ill, and off enders
may persist, or desist, over time.
off enders
Unlike
diff erences in
and
methods such as measurement, compari-son,
diagnosis,
others.
&
in these
determined
is immense. They
criminals
patterns
be
simplistic,
biological
criminologists
committing
(Sheldon,
physical features.
Despite the
positivistic3
or genetic
Again, the idea reflected
criminals
their inherited
early
tendencies
in
Raine
interventions
of the stereotyping of offenders, and whothe criminal transmission
situated
&
the human brain to makecriminogenic behavior choic-es.
a reflection
justice system arrests, than the inheritability
(Ishikawa
will have a greater
of a propensity to com-mit environments
types wereseen asindicative which
the
when
some
body type
Hooton and physician
Sheldon. In this somatotyping
crime,
about
a continuum
the individual
about
9
a set of biological and ge-netically
suggest that there is something
and catalogue
explanations
INTRODUCTION
determined attributes that differentiate people
the shape of onesskull wereusedto identify those who are crime
I
theorists
Plemmons
in
attributes
limit
can
and
potential
through
some
have criticized
2012).
tomography
Contemporary
that the role
channel
brain
magnetic resonance emission
combination and
off enders
positron
acknowledge
environment
behavior. Sophisticated
see
bioso-cial
of a persons
with their the
this;
behavioral
biological choice
10
CRIME
that
AND
BEHAVIOR
individuals
make.
However,
environment
here
is
narrowly conceived, and rarely includes cultural and structural of
crime
dimensions. The is
to
seeming to
examine
individual
makecrime
and
environment
crimes from
in
that
Freuds
ideas.
Psychological
crime
by studying
criminology
(18561939) theories
the
information),
search for the
(visual,
and
cause of
theme in
&
psychological
crime has been the
emotional
how the
processes (Lanier
particularly
way that
brain
thinking
about
human development,
during childhood,
results
in
diff
is subject to abuse or trauma,
psychopathic types are
personality
to engage in
and violence
A significant
disorders. These
antisocial
to crime is the examination socialized into
conformity
the developmental are personalities
are learned in a variety or punished,
personality
(or
of ways, from
to social learning
from
during
of behavior
being rewarded others, including
modeling the behavior of others, and
mediaimages.
Such personalities are formed through socialization and developmental processes, particularly during the early years of childhood, involving a series of mental, moral, and sexual stages. process is
abnormal
personality
disorders
When this developmental
or subject and
to traumatic
psychological
may become part of the individuals or
may be constructed
events,
disturbances
personality
go beyond
set of emerging
personality
to behavioral the
psychological
between
perspective,
people form
although
(Healy
development behavioral
and
and &
explanations
modeling,
situational
for
to look
at
rewards
and
which also takes
environmental
context
including images, television and other media. Cognitive result from destructive thinking to frustration Indeed, an
the variety
of psychological
under-acknowledged
criminological
theory
Psychologists
wealth
alone,
or
interactive social
of
context
anti-social
such
view that
anti-social
of the personality
and their
an
the
environmen-tal
(Rappaport is
and
between
1977).
Here
outcome
of
an
develops over time,
such that
factors
erratic
may trigger
behavior in those psychologically
who may have developed
thinking
to
& Samenow 1976).
behavior
process that
provides
explanation
an interaction
learning,
or environmental
criminal
theories of
(Yochelson
but
and situational criminal
with aggression.
have also taken the
behavior is not the result
or
predisposed,
particular learned
scripts
and
patterns that respond to certain situations,
as frustration,
antisocial,
and
or
barriers
destructive
to
to
achievement,
others
and
that
are
themselves.
The science of psychology is a wayto examine how psychological processes mayproduce criminal behavior (Lanier
&
Henry
2010).
on scales, inventories,
suff er from who
what dif-ferences
the basis of explaining
patterns that respond
and perceived threats
do
not.
is
normal
pathological.
Psychologists
rely
and questionnaires
heavily
to identify
diff erences between individuals
psychological
disturbances
and
In this regard, it is a positivist
Measurement is thus
circumstances.
From the
gratification
psychological
processes, from
punishments of
seeking, impulsivity
of immediate
and classify the char-acteristics,
as an appropriate
behavioral response, under a particular
For example, the
with balanced personalities
sensation
ap-proachpersons propensities,
Not only
but also patterns
of
sensation
social learning
of how people are
nonconformity)
the development
of parents
1936). Thus,
learning
psychological
with
particularly
pursuit
environmental
process (Aichhorn,1935). formed
or
1944).
of the
do
of the failure
the
behavior, including
(Abrahamsen
component
which can
cases sociopathic
more prone, under triggering
contexts, crime
or in extreme
more to
within families.
to develop children
account
and
psychology contributes the idea that behavior mayalso
erent
These areespeciallylikely to occur whenearlychildhood development
theory)
became an analysis
could control
crime
A
seen
processes and how these emerge
control
that
and aff ects
are
behavior,
to
Bronner
Henry,2010).
diff erences
particularly
socialization
how
personalities, some of which are abnormal or antisocial.
result in antisocial
from
ability
are found
mind; how people think,
we process and react to inputs
cognitive
development,
failure
psychoanalytical
by biological
mind and thought
seeking,
of psychological
recurrent
and
can be made to prevent future
The roots
our
the
occurring.
Sigmund
cognitive
of the individual
these
conduct,
to haveless to do with inherited genetic patterns (as human
factors
morelikely led to interventions
at the level of both the physiology their
social
antisocial
professed
object of biosocial theories
the
their
must
a very critical be
diff
Since criminal
component,
erentiated
behaviors
from
who those theory since what
is
are seen to
PART
stem from abnormal developmental processesaffecting
sentences.
the mindand areinfluenced by environmental triggers,
theories incorporate the interaction
some form
psychological
of psychological
necessary to correct predispositions: personalities which
or counteract
intervention
those
are formed
to
whereby these
manipulate the conditions
antisocial
behavior and to correct
patterns that lead to antisocial
Astechnology
behavior.
information
from
none
culture
and psychiatrists
how
chemicals,
diet,
aff ect our thought
and social
play in our
hormones
and
and subsequent
1. The
other
classical
because
it
behav-ioral
2.
be
psychological
off enders and terrorists; profiles such
screening; the
The
as in the
case
of school
has long
state of the
being incarcerated, as anger
violence.
extended
defendant
manyinmates
And
that
training
and
cognitive
of early classi-cal
about crime and behavior
of
criminals
and
crime
until
the
treatment
off ender
is cured.
brings the injustice for the same crime, for the 1970s turn theories
which can lead to troubling
would essentially
indeterminate
and toward
advocate endless or at in
This
secure
institutions
indeterminate
next
central
idea
inherent
does not
allow
was
occurred
estab-lished.
later
and
section.
are destined,
is the The
method
of positivism
the
people
is
defined
characteristics
1986,
p. 45).
Abrahamsen,
or determined, behind
problem for
the
to be-come
the concept
with
of
determinism
possibility
as the application of the
for
human
of the scientific
biological,
of the
D. (1944).
which
of sen-tence
was a major reason
biological
Aichhorn,
psychological,
criminal
(Vold
and
& Bernard
fixed
Crime
Columbia (1935).
and
the
Human
University
Press.
Wayward
Youth.
Mind.
New
York:
Viking. Beccaria,
(1764).
C.
Translated
On
by
Crimes
Henry
and
Punishment.
Indianapolis,
Paolucci.
IN:
Bobbs-Merrill.
Clarke,
in
R. V. & Cornish,
Britain:
State Cohen,
Einstadter, Theory: New
and psycho-logical Fishbein,
the neo-classical-type
A.
D. B. eds (1983).
A Review
University
of
A. K. (1966).
Cliff s, treat-ment
of diff erent lengths
away from
in
pre-criminological
REFERENCES
high-light
Moreover,it is important to note the views
scientific
social
New York:
mayhave on punishment. Psychological and biological
policies that
and shape
are off ered therapies
the general discrediting
deterministic
considered
the
and, even while
theories have, at their core, deterministic assumptions
least
wider
due to the
the importance of taking into account mitigating ects
is
Positivism
the
(CBT).
and other factors.
is
method to the study
by the
theory, policies related to neoclassical revisions
eff
frame
the
treatment.
but treated
management
behavior therapy Considering
with
change. 3.
police agencies are developing
Some crimes are not punished
such
that
before
emergence
idea that
is that
FBI has profiles of
but these are often defeated
approach
psychological
holistic
and punishment.
deal
period
criminals
unit and develops psychological
psychological
theories
structures
discussed
determinism.
some aspect of psychology. For example, all police undergo
is
The will
Moreover, criminal justice agencies often employ
evidence,
prevention,
more
acts.
of those weclassify as criminal.
criminal
a
NOTES
patterns. Each of these factors has been applied to
a behavioral
such
have shown
the study of crime, or morespecifically, to the behavior
recruits
of
of biological and
advocate
of these
individual
variations
how it inte-grates
how humans learn, the role that emotions
substances
theories
to treatment,
However,
recent
11
and processes with environmental
These
approach
these
traits
various senses and constructs
meaning. Psychologists
and,
influences.
more
INTRODUCTION
has advanced, so too has the study of
human behavior and the brain, particularly
behavior
is
with criminal
To change the process
might trigger
thinking
treatment
However,
I
of Policy New York
and
Crime
Research.
Control
Albany:
Press.
Deviance and
Control.
Englewood
NJ: Prentice-Hall.
W.J., & Henry, S. (1995. An Analysis Boulder,
D.
Criminology.
CO:
of Its Rowman
H. (1998). Criminology,
2006).
Criminological
Underlying and
Assumptions.
Littlefield.
Biological 28: 2772
Perspectives
in
12
CRIME
AND
Garland,
BEHAVIOR
D. (1985).
Penal Strategies. Gibson,
M.
&
Criminal
Healy,
and VT:
Rafter,
Man
Duke
Punishment Brookfield,
by
University
H. (2006).
Cesare
A History of
Introduction
Lombroso.
to
Durham,
NC:
New
New Light on Delinquency Haven,
CT:
Yale
S.
&
Case of
Plemmons,
Ishikawa,
Deception
S. S. & Raine, In J.
Behavior
Academic
D. (2012). Neuroethics: and
A. (2002).
Glickson
fMRI.
New
Psychology:
York:
Holt,
Values,
Rinehart,
and
Introduction
to
Criminology.
Reston,
Reston.
Sheldon,
Complex
W. H., Hastl,
Science and
Behavioral
4: 81110.
Genetics
Neurobiology
Norwell,
MA:
Kluwer
CO:
Vold,
E.
Delinquent
M., & McDermott, Youth.
E. (1949).
New York:
Westview
Essential Press.
Criminology.
B. (1967).
Harper
and
Elizabethan
World.
T.J.(1986). Theoretical
ed.
Oxford
Williams III, Theory.
New
York:
Heritage.
G. B. & Bernard, New York:
University
F. P. & McShane, Englewood
New York: Jason
Criminology.
Press.
M. D.(1988).
Cliff s,
Criminological
NJ: Prentice-Hall.
Yochelson, S. & Samenow, S.(1976). The Vol. 1.
Publishing.
Boulder,
of
L.
American
3rd
(Ed.), The
M. M. & Henry, S. (2010). ed.
S. (1976).
Smith,
Neuroscience, The
Ethics 18: 573591.
Crime.
Criminal
3rd
and
Crime,
Engineering
Lanier,
Community
Action.
Brothers.
Neuropolitics,
and
Schafer,
Varieties of
University
Press.
Henry,
and
Winston.
VA:
A. (1936).
Treatment.
J. (1977).
Rappaport, Research,
Press.
W. & Bronner,
and Its
N.
Welfare: Gower.
Aronson
Criminal
Personality.
CHAPTER I
Classical Choice
and Theorie
Rational
THE RATIONAL
CHOICE PERSPECTIVE1
Derek and
B. Ronald
INTRODUCTION
V.
A
pressing or
individuals.
can
their
as these
are (Clarke
two
and
summarized that treats
off
and
then
draws the serve
of the
in
essay. The
pursue
few
to
occur,
distinctions of crime
We will then and
Cornish
self-interest. not just
It the
also
explains people
six
basic
Table 1.1 and
of diff erence
theories.
of its value in
Last,
guiding
greater
is as
2001)
with the
brings
much
it lies
needed
and it
as-sumption
them;
self-interest
involved
enders, it
perspective
conditions
detail
of the rational
for
in crime.
It
emphasizes designed
between
choice
choice
to
perspective.
the rational
we will discuss its
situational
OF THE
of the rational in
it
their
the
decision-making
Cornish
begins
such The
understanding.
main points
propositions
such choice
become
non-off Finally,
the six basic propositions
the
explained
and
causation.
commit.
benefits where
reasons
FUNDAMENTALS
The
of the
calculate
off enders in
decisions
and
perspective
because
overcome
they
Clarke
some
For criminals
and
rational
1986;
for
how to
eff ort.
crimes
of the
who
and
and
criminal
option
of investigating
choice
crime
alternatives,
choices
the
Clarke
rational
choose
criminological
and give brief examples
lives,
benefits
and
as criminological
outline other
victims risk
the
everyday
between
we will describe
cash-rich worth
determining
opportunities
policymaking First,
an attractive
in
decision-makers
that
practical
robbery
main contributions
1985;
as
of other
their
practical
Cornish
enders
well
role
off enders
crimes
role
by in
and
this
a lack
rewards
a significant
importance
and
make armed where to find
make the
best to get play
theoretical
specific
cash, can
And knowing
opposition doing
need for
noncriminal,
crime
policy
prevention
choice
per-spective
relevance eff orts.
PERSPECTIVE
perspective
are summarized
in
below.
1
Clarke
Cornish
16
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
TABLE 1.1 Six Basic Propositions of the Rational Choice Perspective 1.
Crimes
2.
Offenders
3.
Offender
4.
are purposive try to
about
5. Involvement they 6.
decisions
Event
decisions
involve
of the
with the
particular
risks
nature
kinds
act (event
three
of benefiting
can, given the
of the
of crime
the
and
off ender.
uncertainty
involved.
crime.
(involvement
decisions)
are quite
diff erent from
Adapted
Bachman
eds., Explaining
the
stagesinitiation,
a sequence
of choices
from
Ronald
habituation,
made at each stage
V. Clarke
Criminals
and
Purposive
Nature
choice
perspective,
never
rational senseless,
intended
to
benefits can
but
are
bring some
of theft also
are
include
gratification,
relating
and
desistance. These
must be separately
studied
because
diff erent sets of variables. of the
criminal
actfor
example:
preparation,
and
Crime.
of
Derek.
CA:
B. Cornish.
Roxbury,
target
selection,
(2001).
Rational
choice.
In
Raymond
viewed
criminal
obvious,
but
the
A man might brutally
acts
prestige,
rather
than
the
best
decision-making reflects occurs.
of crime
and the defiance or domination
he is a violent thug
are
offender. The
rewards
fun,
excitement,
acts
purposive
benefit to the
and
R.
To usethe technical term, their decision-making is satisfic-ing
Crime
as
Paternoster
p. 24.
rather than optimizingit In
those
decisions).
act, escape, and aftermath.
SOURCE:
The
in
criminal
comprise
by quite
they
considerably
involved
of a specific
are influenced
commission
varies
becoming
commission
with the intention
best decisions
decision-making
Decisions to the
acts, committed
make the
could
be
achieved.
is always less than
the imperfect These
gives acceptable outcomes
that
conditions
conditions
can
Criminal
perfect because it
under
which it
be summarized
naturally
as follows
sexual
of others.
beat his wife, not just
Off enders
because
are rarely
facts
but also becausethis is the easiest
of
about
in
possession
the risks,
of all the
nec-essary
eff orts, and rewards
crime.
wayof making her do what he wants.Senseless acts of
Criminal
vandalism or gang violence might confer considerable
quicklyand
prestige on the perpetrators among their peers.The
Instead of planning their crimes down to the last
term joyriding
accurately conveys the
why cars are stolenjuveniles powerful
It
tempting crimes
pathological
that
exclude
are driven
compulsions.
completely
absent.
hear
voices
take
pains to avoid
so for
to
telling
along
But even
to
kill
arrestand
rational
by clinical
For instance,
them
time.
a tiny
from
that
exclusion
from
its claims
to generality.
rational
serial
killers
prostitutes
might
might succeed in
of all criminal choice
theory
or
here, rationality
In any case, pathological
proportion
choice
delusions
crimes
or
embarked on
rational
choice
perspective
(1990) that an individuals is
characterized
by limited
takes
the view
con-stitute
weakens
or bounded
of
the
criminals crime
possibilities
Much support
Simon
behavior rationality.
for
the
is found in ethnographic have
stated
of
rewards
a crime,
than on the punishments
Rationality
decision-making
when they
circumstances.
on
still
been
interviewed
choices,
Gibbons, that
considerable The
unforeseen
the
made
tend
rather
to
than
its
risks, they focus
on
of being caught, rather they
might receive.
doing
criminal
Bounded
with
Once
the immediate
Don Limited
be
mightrely on a general approach
risks; and, when considering
is
to
has worked before, improvising
meet
focus
have
hastily.
who
acts and their hardly
usually
revised
detail, criminals
enjoy driving around in
machines.
is
analysis
not
main reason
choices
and
1994,
p. 124).
about their
a frequent
studies
of
support
for
offender decision
rational
choice
research in their
motives
critic predatory alimited
perspective
which off enders lifestyles,
and
of the
their
methods.
Even
perspective,
off enders rationality
making by lawbreakers
has
provide view
of
(Gibbons
THE
Like the rest of us, offenders often act rashly and fail to consider the long-term consequencesof their actions. They
maybe encouraged to take risks by their peers, and
their decisions
maysometimes
that result in capture and severe punishment. and failures that
such
made by off enders contribute
behavior
is
irrational.
To
and to those taking a rational
choices Mistakes
to the view
off enders,
choice perspective on their
crimes, they are generally doing the best they can within the
limits
of time,
them. This
resources,
and information
is why wecharacterize their
as rational,
available
PERSPECTIVE1
17
such mattersasthe choice of a particular target and ways to reduce the risks of apprehension. are
decide (1) crime to
or criminal career.
deci-sions
Offenders
must
whether they are ready to begin committing obtain
what they
want; (2)
used by criminologists are initiation,
whether, having
offending; and (3) whether,
at some point, they ought-to
to
Involvement
more complex and are made at three separate
stagesin a delinquent
started, they should continue
however,
CHOICE
to the commission of a particular offense.They concern
be madein afog ofalcohol
and drugs. Asa result, offenders can makefoolish
RATIONAL
stop. The
technical
terms
for these three stages of involve-ment
habituation,
and
desistance.
It is easy to see why event decisions need to be un-derstood
decision-making
and
albeit imperfect.
modeled separately for diff erent kinds of
crime. For example, the task of escaping apprehension The
Importance
of
Crime
is very diff erent for
Specificity
a bank robber
than for someone
vandalizing a parked car. But crime specificity is just as Specific off enses bring and are committed is the
particular
benefits to
with specific
motive for
motives in
bank robbery;
usually sexual gratification women.
Similarly,
the factors
variables
influencing
will diff er greatly
mind. Cash
whereas for rape it is
or the
and the
offenders
desire to
dominate
weighed by off enders, their
is
especially true of event decisions because these are more heavily influenced
by immediate
example, the circumstances
situational
factors.
surrounding
of a mugging,and the setting in
the issuesfaced by people deciding whether to become involved in particular crimes, and the background of relevant experience brought to bear, can vary greatly. The
factors
customers,
developed for specific categories
decision categories
such as auto theft
general to
being
made by
about joining
drug dealers, and those relevant to
are likely
when planning
to de-fraud
to be so diff erent that they
must be separately studied.
The
Separate
Stages
of Involvement
choice cannot prop-erly
criminal choice in the form of simplified depicting
decisions
when thinking
whichit occurs,
be studied in the abstract. Instead, descriptions of as flowcharts
to the
the decisions of bank employees
For
the commis-sion
relevant
from the ghetto
the neighborhood
differ considerably from those of a computer fraud. For these reasons, criminal
at the various stages of involvement. Thus,
juveniles
decision-making,
with the nature of the off ense.This
important
models,such
processes,
must be
of crime.
Broad legal
or burglary
are far too
must involvement
modeled for specific of
criminal
decisions
kinds of crime, so
involvementinitiation,
desistancebecause
be separately must each stage
habituation,
decisions
and
at each stage are influ-enced
by diff erent sets of variables. These
variables fall
many diff er-ently into three groups: motivated off enses, a wide range of off enders, and
a variety
model because they include
Not only
of
methods and skills.
of a car for joyriding theft for temporary from the theft to
overseas
so
For example, the theft
1.
is an off ense very diff erent from transport.
And both are diff erent
of cars for selling to local
customers
or
Background
Distinction
Between
Involvement
and
Current life circumstances,
routines,
Situational
include
variables
motives, together
that
Criminal
choices and
can
be divided
event
decisions.
into
two Event
broad decisions
and
and lifestyles current
with immediate
needs
opportuni-ties
inducement
Events
These are of differing importance
involvement
personality
3.
and The
including
2.
and
customers.
factors,
upbringing
groups: relate
stages of involvement, asfollows:
at the various
18
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Atinitiation, background factors havetheir great-est
their
criminal
as
well
as
accumulated learning his
or
At habituation,
her
current
now increasingly crime,
current
life
life
unfold in a purposeful
and experience
actions.
circumstances.
circumstances,
accumulating
costs of crime,
must
situational
variables,
the actual
to commit
eff
as
needs,
and inducements,
that
decision about
a particular
such
be taken
into
Sequence
of
account
scripts,
the
procedures
can
assist
1994).
which used
the
The
are
whether or not
WHAT
MAKES THEORY
scripts
TABLE
of
build
1.2
the
event on
to
accounts commit
decisions
off enders
A Simple
off ender
must
variables
that
rewards
of
Crime
just
of
of
Both
points for
RATIONAL
CHOICE
Crime
and
Criminality
crime,
accounts
Script:
the answer
of
Residential
Burglary
in the
What makes certain
more likely
crime and delinquency?
(Cornish
are geared to
to
In current
Get van,
tools,
co-off
ender
(if
Select general Assume Drive into
setting
Drive
Precondition
Target selection
makes them theories
around
Scan for
loiter
cues relating
Approach Break into
Completion
Steal goods
Finish
Load
in
Suburbs
needed)
setting
dwelling
up goods
and
development
to rewards,
surveillability dwelling
Continuation
up
and
and
probe for
Further
crime
applicable)
scripts
(if
applicable)
Store, conceal Market
and
and dispose
and eff ort (e.g.,
occupancy
and enter
drive
away from
disguise
goods
Leave development
Exit setting
risks
potential
and accessibility)
of stolen
good
house
and accessibility
in lan-guage,
of criminality.
crime role for
people or
criminological
development
occupancy, Initiation
area for
appropriate
answer-ing
become involved
Take drugs/alcohol
stages (if
preventive
DIFFERENT?
ACTIONS
Preparation
Further
are
and eff ort involved. The
theories
one question:
groups of people
STAGES
Enter
crime
Decisions
step-by-step
by off enders
analysis
if
for resi-dential
orts.
crime.
Event
in-volving
Accounts like these
decisions that the
Most criminological Crime
one such script
for the risks
A Theory The
as stories
of stages, scenes, and
stages also suggest intervention
motives, opportunities, trigger
the
to compensate
weigh
During all stages, however, it is the immediate of
sequence
make at each step and the situational together
heavily in decisions.
influence
crimes
in the suburbs.
help to identify
of
may be of principal importance.
At desistance, current life circumstances, with the
treat
Table 1.2 provides burglary
which
reflect the ongoing rewards
and
a cast of characters, props, and locations that
influence becausethey shape the nature of the individuals
activities
take,
THE
When
it
focuses
on
involvement,
the
rational
RATIONAL
CHOICE
PERSPECTIVE1
19
factors in determining crime. But even though routine
choice
perspective is also a theory of criminality, though one
activity theory and the rational choice perspective are
that
both
gives a fuller
needs,
and
choice
role to current
opportunities.
perspective
understand
when
particular
of
diverges from
Gottfredson
crime,
off
enders
ostensibly theory
but,
and
unlike
to
a macro theory
com-mit
of low
varying
dealing
important
diff er-ences
Routine activity is
with changes at a societal level
them,
that
choice perspective, on the other hand, is a micro theory dealing
approaches
off enders.
that
self-control.
and
of-fending
an otherwise law-abiding
rational
opportunities
are sought and created.
person into
And the existence
society of-fenders
of diff erent ages,experience, and skills exhibit
which these
Often, opportunities
Diff erent
degrees of planning,
ways in
The
But they also play a more active role: They
general theory think
with the
crime opportunities.
are perceived, evaluated, and acted upon by individual
1990). It shares
not
expand or-limit
Clarke and
way in
similar
do
have enumerated
between the two approaches.
with crime and criminality
we
(1993)
theories,
is one
(Akers
them,
as opportunity
undertake
Hirschis (1990)
is the result off enses require
described
Felson
rational
choose
of crime. This
these dual preoccupations with
when the
off enses, or how they
such as social learning
circumstances,
on the event and seeks to
where
it also becomes a theory which it
But
focuses and
life
might attract
maytempt
occasional trans-gressions.
of easy opportunities
some people into
a life
in
of crime.
These facts presentimportant implications for preven-tion, and the rational choice perspective has proved
varying degrees of understanding and concern about
invaluable in thinking about practical ways of blocking
the consequences of their actions.
opportunities for crime The
Dynamic
Nature
of
Criminality The
Preoccupied with explaining deep-rooted and relatively
off ending in terms
unchanging
criminological
theories
ever-changing
contingent
reality.
particular
crimes
to commit their
current
needs and
reassess their
Offenders
desires, and they
involvement
in
criminal
assessment is deeply aff ected by their committing
particular
the consequences;
acts and
constantly
experience
the commission
bring in its
wake the need or the opportunity
in
of a particular
the crime script
a drunken
of
of crime.
to com-mit
was specially developed to explore
extended sequences of criminal links
between
decision-making and
crimes.
Importance
of
Situation
and
Opportunity
With afew exceptions, such as routine activity theory (Cohen and Felson 1979), most criminological theo-ries ignore or downplay the importance
of situational
rational
choice
streets;
as
with
organized
with
violent
by
women
much
crime;
crime;
Many
as
and
as with crime
as
to
fraud
in
On occasion, we think
a general crime
in
incivilities
much
with
much
with
committed
the
and
property crime
by
of get
among
will cheat
property.
the
all
we can
jobs,
is with
with
have gener-ally
most respectable
perspective
their
do so in
employers
concerned
might
cease to
well-paid
pilfer
they
meeting
or temptation.
when the
people. present
backgrounds.
who
might
need.
steady,
much
other
means for people
chosen
of their
their
have resorted
Even
and
of
need
clerks
holding
is
choices
off enses
claims
for
circumstances,
financial
them.
crimeas
the
of course,
result
legal
per-spective
It recognizes, more consistently
Likewise,
criminal
commit with
us, those
in
their
choice
between
than
as it
choose
bank
rational distinction
much the
in
to
pressing
will
away
is
of overwhelming
respectable
expense
of
as
desires.
avoided
the The
and
face
us
is
a change
begin
needs
the
abiding. crime
circumstances
Given
the
of circumstances this
material
face
of
theories,
people
a variety
crime can
notion
Crime
hard-and-fast
and the law some
of-fending easily
might decide to rape
client. The
for
However,
a woman hefinds sleeping in the house, or a prostitute might decide to rob
that
what they learn from
on some new form
a burglar
to
other
makes no
activity. This
In addition,
other crimes. Thus,
many
readi-ness off enders
it can result in desistance from
or concentrating
Unlike
capture its
varies according
of
of
motivations,
have failed to
Normality
on
Indeed, theory
of
suites
as
disorder
as
crime
as
committed
men. In
short,
20
CRIME
there
is
AND
no
BEHAVIOR
kind
of
crime
in
which
purpose play an unimportant
reason,
choice,
and
the introduction
of exact fare systems; and the virtual
elimination in the 1990s of graffiti on New York City
part.
subway cars by systematic Compatibility
with
Criminal
Situational
Justice
that If crime
is a result
of social
which is the irrelevant This
or
criminal
justice
in
policy
studies.
in for
and
both The
rational
subtle
view
that
for
off enders
have fewer than extent,
from
to
current
crime
every
crime
a
way is
by seeking
to
more risky,
It
less
do
rarely
To this
of
a choice
opened
to influence
background
or or
behavior
off ender.
such
noncriminal of
following
the
and
additional
the implementa-tion can
ways. In fact,
displacement
make do
with
one review found
in twenty-two
out
of
thirty-three
projects, but in every one there
If
was
still a net gain in preventive benefits. Accumulating evidence has also shown that, far from simply displac-ing crime
with little
real
often reduce crime a diff
usion
of
benefit, situational
measures
more widely than expected.
benefits
occurs
because
off
Such
enders
often
measures are morefar-reaching
than they really are.
decisions
less rewarding, CONCLUSION
more difficult.
Policy
to incur
drugs, or they can try to obtain
believe that situational
On the contrary, by the
of easy opportunities,
measures.They
money and fewer
has helped
1994). Some displacement wasreported in the remain-ing
people
disadvantaged
of crime.
involves
read-ily
are
perspective
does not necessarily occur.
eff ort involved
no evidence
needs
more
choice
or
fifty-five crime prevention projects studied (Hesseling
usually
society.
all
more
recognizes
therefore,
by virtue Nor
a
everyday
of
only
make criminal
and
provides
meeting
are,
to alife
and
of situational
and,
backgrounds
However,
act of crime
risks
unfortunate
rational
may be unwilling
these in
members
people turn
hostility
This is
for
circumstances.
so, then
this
dilemma.
choices
commit
deprived
criminal
deprived
understandable. forced
and
apparent
privileged
their
enforcement
perspective
opportunities
more
involved
example, to some other target
why displacement
off enders
become
detect
The
merely results in crimes
Much crime is the result
hostile
society.
choice
of this
are
opportunities
being displacedfor location.
graffiti removal.
prevention is vulnerable to the criticism
reducing
to show
to
criminology.
sidesand
it seems
punishment.
criminologists
often
disparage
with
reluctant
Law
depriva-tion,
most theories,
respond
many
professionals
turn,
of
to
why
to
justice
position
unfair
explains
or psychological
and prompt
As
Relevance
Herrnstein
(1990,
p. 356)
points
out,
rational
choice theory comes close to serving as the funda-mental The
rational
choice perspective
to assist policy, and its to
date
has
preventiona
been
reduce opportunities classified increasing
most important in
broad
was explicitly
the
set
field
of
under the four rational the eff ort required
well-articulated theory of behavior commands solarge
policy applica-tion situational
of techniques
for crime (Clarke
principle of the behavioral sciences. No other
developed
crime
designed to
1997). These
the
the components
the rational
for crime. Morerecently, afurther objective(5)
enough
provocationhas 2003).
1997), including
using these techniques (Clarke
the virtual elimination
of airline hijack-ings
in the 1970s by baggage screening; the elimination of robberies
of bus drivers in
U.S. cities in the 1970s by
of this fully.
powerful
perspective,
or to utility,
needs only to
we were called
must be flexible
the theory incorporate Otherwise,
upon to
some years from new or we
begood
or policy purpose in hand.
new needs. It is continually if
detail all
But to be of practical
choice perspective
for the explanatory
At the same time, it
been added (Cornish and Clarke
Many notable crime prevention successes have
been achieved through
we have yet to set out in
explore its potential
risks, (3) reducing the rewards, and (4) removing excuses remov-ing
of rational choice theory to criminol-ogy
is concerned,
are
choice objectives: (1)
by crime, (2) increasing
a following in so widea range of disciplines. Asfar as the application
enough to accom-modate being refined,
and
make a fresh statement now, we believe this
more fully
will have failed
developed in
our
of
would
concepts.
objective
o
THE
providing a usefultool, one capable of being honed and improved, to assist criminologists in thinking the practical
business of controlling
about
crime.
Advances in
paper is an abridged
of
Clarke
and
Cornish
and
Approach.
Social
L.
Learning
Not Taken. 81:
Clarke,
Offending
and Its
vol. 3 of Crime
Choice,
Derek
Theory-in
Journal
Criminology:
of
Criminal
V., ed.
The
Law and
1997.
Situational
Case Studies.
2d ed.
V., & Derek Decisions:
and
Chicago
A
Norval
Crime
Albany,
_____,
Prevention:
N.Y.:
Harrow
B. Cornish. Framework
1985. Modeling for
Research
B.,
Morris.
Michael
University
of
Crime (pp.
Ronald
2342),
Los V.,
Criminology: 5 of
Choice.
&
edited
Angeles: Marcus
In
Explaining by
Criminals
R. Paternoster
and
Roxbury. Felson.
1993.
A
Routine
Review
Situational
Critique
by
vol. 16 of
Crime
by Ronald
Press. Clarke.
Criminal
of
Practice in
2003.
Decisions:
Situational
Crime
Situational
Martha J. Smith
Justice
eds. 1986. The
V.
and
Prevention
of
Prevention.
Justice
Ronald
for
Analysis
and
Crime Derek
Studies.
B.
Monsey,
Press. Reasoning
Criminal.
New
York:
Springer-Verlag. Don. 1994. and
A
Talking Issues
in
Englewood
Gottfredson,
General Theory
About
R.,
of
Crime and
Theory Cliff s,
Michael.
&
Criminals:
Development N.J.:
Prentice-Hall.
Travis
Crime.
in
Hirschi.
Stanford:
1990.
Stanford
Press.
Herrnstein,
Richard
Necessary 45:
But
J. 1990. Rational Not
Sufficient.
Choice Theory: American
Psychologist
356367.
Hesseling,
Introduction:
&
Wortleys
edited
University
2001. Rational
vol.
Chicago:
by
N.J.:
Social
Sociological
Studies, edited
Precipitators
Criminology.
and
Trends:
N.Y.: Criminal
In Theory
Problems
Press.
R. Bachman.
In
Cornish,
Gibbons,
Ronald
Tonry
Clarke,
Prevention,
Criminology
Policy. In vol. 6 of Crime and Justice, edited
and
Path
Heston.
Off enders
_____.
and
Prevention.
Deterrence
1979.
Procedural
Prevention
Monsey,
N.Y.: Criminal
Successful
Clarke,
Rational
Rate
American
Relevance for
Opportunities,
653676.
Ronald
&
1990.
Felson.
B. 1994. The
A Reply to Ronald
21
New Brunswick,
Marcus
Crime
Derek
Cornish,
Akers,
PERSPECTIVE1
588608.
V. Clarke.
REFERENCES
&
Activity
In
(2001).
E.,
Change
44:
version
Criminological Theory.
Laurence
Cornish, 1. This
CHOICE
Transaction.
Cohen,
NOTE
RATIONAL
Routine
Activity
and
Rational
Choice.
Empirical
Routine
Activity
and
Rational
Choices:
Studies, Criminal
R.B.P. 1994. Displacement: Literature. edited Justice
by
In Ronald
Press
vol.
3 of
A Review Crime
V. Clarke.
of the
Prevention
Monsey,
N.Y.:
ROUTINE ACTIVITIES
Marie
Tillyer and
R
outine
activities
majority
how criminal
theory is a theory
of criminological
people commit
crimesthat
of crime
theories, is, the
motivation
events are produced.
events. This
which focus
diff ers from
on explaining
to commit
Although at first
mayappear inconsequential, it hasimportant
why some
crimerather
glance this
implications
a
than
distinction
for the research and
prevention of crime. Routine activities theory suggeststhat the organization of routine activities in society create opportunities for crime. In other words, the daily routine activities of peopleincluding travel to and from frequent,
school, the groups
and so forthstrongly
occurs. These
routines
can
Because opportunities the
likelihood
theory
of
generally
prevention
crime.
strategies
that
structures
derived from
where, and to
stems
routine
theory
does
activities
that facilitate
activities
crime;
attempt
to
events.
used to explain changes in crime trends
used much more broadly to
Researchers have used various
the theory.
and risky.
people, so too
from
structures
by routine
whom crime
risk, or difficult
to prevent criminal
wasinitially
It has been increasingly
prevent crime problems.
that
opportunity
are informed
Routine activities theory over time.
when,
space, and among
research
various
work, the routes they
whom the socialize, the shops they
make crime easy and low
Therefore,
examines
with
where they
influence
vary over time,
alter these opportunity
aligned
Since its inception,
with aset of theories and perspectives
understand
and
methods to test hypoth-eses
the theory
has become closely
known as environmental
criminology,
which focuses on the importance of opportunity in determining the distribution of crime across time and space. Environmental criminology, and routine activi-ties theory in particular, hasvery practical implications for prevention; therefore, practitioners have applied routine activities theory to inform prevention strategies.This activities
Skubak
theory;
perspectives
a summary
and current
police practices and
chapter contains a review of the evolution of routine of research informed
applications;
and future
by the theory; directions
complementary
for theory, research,
and prevention.
2
John
E. Eck
24
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
number
THEORY
of available targets
viewed as attractive/
suitable by the offender. Cohen and Felson (1979) In
1979,
crime
Cohen
rates
should
a specific
three
minimal an
assaulted
of a guardian
lack
would
of any
and
capable
of these
be sufficient Drawing
to
human
Felson suggested
that
routine
activity
aff ecting
the likelihood
activities
of
converging without
function
in turn,
of the routine
Cohen
and
activities
(1979)
World
of society
had
thus increasing
in the absence
activities
that
take
be associated individual of
are
routine
absence
of
in their
home
of
the
theory
are
not
are they
crime
to take
greatest is
spread infinite.
the
idea
evenly Instead,
the
potential
unguarded,
throughout there
limit
prevent
social
Examples
or
include
sort
of
personal
off enders.Their
ac-tivities
neither on the
off ender
off end-ers
who chap-erone
a probation
and a school
of-ficer
resource
bullies.
connection
Handlers
with
the
po-tential
principal interest is in keeping
suitable targets from off enders(Cohen
more
potential
are
crimes (Felson, parents
who keeps an eye on school
have some
been
are now
over potential
probationers,
to
Handlers are people
their teenagers social gatherings,
officer
have
what they
committing
of handlers
potential
or placeand
control
prevent them from
the crime
whom
risk
opportunities
some
have
the
in the
routine
who
to
ender, target,
who supervises
out of trouble.
Guardians
protect
& Felson, 1979).
Examples of guardians include the owner of a car who locks watch
his vehicle, over
the
a child children
walks another principal their
of
people
that
the
belongings
society; is
to
to
place.
criminal
trends
of crime. Asthe supply
collectively referred to ascontrollers.
of-fenders
they
creating
those
according
supervisingoff
the
people
home,
their thus
targets. These
specify the necessary elements for
and
it. The
1986).
tend
off enders
contributions that
prevent
Routine
a lower
event
subdivided
with suitable
both
away from
aff ecting the crime by
of suitable
developed to further
rates
When
societal trendsthe
opportunities.
who exert informal
motivated
home
and
goods and the design of
productswere
criminal
a criminal
routine
guardianship.
Furthermore,
are left for
that
and space
off enders.
to encounter
and
away from
propertyand
activities
guardians.
opportunities
to shift
Cohen
Sinceits inception, routine activities theory hasbeen
by
a
crime
more guardianshipfor her
of available
oppor-tunities
the
or near the
potential
more likely
One
place at
his or
encountering
perform
in time of capable
with
and
begun
that
because
the likelihood
would converge targets
II
visible to potential
off enders.
suitable targets also rose, thus increasing the number
in society.
argued
War
to
occur-ring.
patternsare
patterns
possible; physically accessible
makes the
Cohen
off enders
words,
weight that
and, in turn, the likelihood
of targets
other
crime
activity
Felson
after
In
size and
means of the supply
As the routine
motivated
will have the fol-lowing
perceived value by the off ender, either
and
durable
and
of small durable goods continued to rise, the level of
rates
likelihood
with
changes.
crimeand,
increased
the
small
Visibility,
in society increased the supply of suitable targets avail-able
crime.
in time
elements.
be
in societal
crime
convergence
change,
also
changes
targeted
Felson argued that two additional
argued,
theories,
can influence
off enders;
to
the they
are repeatedly
material or symbolic;
and (3) the
event from
and space
guardians
elements,
products that
of at least four
All else being equal, those persons or
of-fense; increase in sales of consumer
the
a crime
of the
people
be stolen;
Value, Inertia,
of the target:
Access, or VIVA.
illegal treatment
and space:
victim
qualities
at
people
commit
is a function
qualities:
required
ecological
necessary
in time
for
home,
three
to
structural
patterns
space of these
in time
of preventing
three
prevent
from
events
such as a human to
occurs
specific
crime
was prepared
target,
or a piece of property
absence The
that
that
suggested that suitability
as
suggested
event
to converge
who
a suitable
that
such
dur-ing
and involves
argued
elements
off ender (2)
crime, improved
(1979)
of as an
and time
objects. They
violent
Felson
urban
when the fac-tors
had generally
and
why
1960s,
to cause
be thought
location
and/or
(1)
Cohen
questioned the
conditions,
time.
a crime
during
thought
economic this
Felson
increased
commonly poor
and
to
cameras,
the locks
public,
of guardians
potential targets.
might include
in
and
his car in the
interest
monitor specific
care provider
Finally,
places (Eck,
apartment
a coworker
parking is the
close who
garage.The protection
managers supervise 1994).
the owner of a shop an
who keeps
Place
who installs
landlord
on the doors, and park rangers
who
of and
managers surveil-lance updates
who enforc
ROUTINE
As responsibility
ACTIVITIES
25
movesfrom personal to general, the
likelihood that crime will be prevented diminishes. For example, ashop owner control
and prevent shoplifting
with a stranger Manager Handler
will be much morelikely to take in
her store compared
who infrequently
comes to the store.
Residents will be morelikely to prevent crime on their
Place
own street
Offende
to
and
block, rather than on the blocks they travel
from
The
work.
characteristics
expanded
targeted for theft.
Target/Victim
of a suitable
target
and applied to products that
Felsons (1979)
have been
are frequently
Clarke (1999)
extended
Cohen and
work on target
suitability
to
explain
Guardian
the phenomenon Figure
2.1 The
SOURCE: 2003.
Crime
Courtesy
All rights
Triangle
of John
reserved.
that
E. Eck.
Copyright
Reproduced
with
John
E. Eck
relatively
proportion
permission.
codes. The
functioning
principal
comprehensive
version
as a crime triangle The for
a
inner crime
target
triangle to
A
same
have
crime
with varying
that
was
can
to
occur;
prevent
the
is,
who is
in
handler, to
of responsibility.
event. detail.
all criminological
manager.
discourage or placesvaries four
Personal,
2.
Assigned,
3.
Diff use,such as employees
as owners,
family,
as employees
theories
theory
a specific
activities
intersect
in
standard how
had focused
to commit
others),
happen
at some
to
times
(but
conditions
of factors
produce
criminal
events.
Although
do
not
explain
places (but
others),
and to
do
with a general assigned
why some people commit
not some
not.
It is important
to
note
of
more closely
associated
controllers,
or
take control
and prevent
crime.
will converge in time off
ender
has
routine
might be an increase in the availability
a shift
in
the
society that increase the likelihood
with potential offenders, targets, or places, are more
that
without any change in the number of criminals.
Instead, there
General,such asstrangers and other citizens
crimes and
theory suggests that crime can increase and
suitable targets, a decline in the availability
to successfully
that
Conversely,
at some not
such as
crimes.
theories occur
nearly
on a range
criminal
criminological
way.
theory,
solely on factors
and space to
and, in turn,
crimes
decline
who are
diff ers from
a fundamental
activities
theory focuses
in time
opportunities
as-signed activities
responsibility
likely
theory is a theory theory
and economic
might drive individuals routine
others
and friends with
responsibility
Controllers
Valuable,
targets (but not others), routine activities theory does
1.
4.
Available,
activities
of routine
sociological,
not explain such
Specifically,
motivate off enders to behave criminally,
to success-fully that
He described
routine
criminological
biological,
of
of responsibility:
such
a large
are six key
by thieves.
Removable,
Before the advent
presence
or
off enders,
for
Enjoyable, and Disposable(Clarke, 1999).
that
greater
mostlikely
tendency
targets,
Concealable,
must be ab-sent
criminal
described
account
crime is concentrated on products that are CRAVED, that
other
suitable
controllersguardians,
the
Clarke suggested
He argues there
of crime events. Routine activities
elements
and
potential
individuals
degree
degrees
the
as a guardian,
supervising
ender
managerswho
been
Felson (1995) indicated
He asserted
theory
necessary
products
will be targeted
To summarize,
the off
a crime
controller
control
more
place at the same time. The
and
or ineff ective for
Controllers
activities
motivated
represents
handlers,
one eff ective
managers is the
depicted this
of routine
represents
occur:
triangle
crimeby
of
hot
of all thefts.
they
(see Figure 2.1).
must be at the
outer
interest
of places. Eck (2003)
few
products.
attributes of hot products that increase the likelihood that
littering
of hot
both
is
but
one
theoretical
routine
and
practical
activities
of
that these elements
and space.This contributor
of
or eff ective-ness
to
notion that the the
crime
implications.
event
First,
26
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
it insinuates that theories that focus only on offender
indicates support for the theory. In their initial presen-tation of the theory, Cohen and Felson (1979) pointed
factors are not sufficient to explain crime patterns and trends,
only the supply of
motivated off enders. Second,
to explain possi-bilities.
it suggests a much broader range of prevention Whereas other criminological changes to the social, economic,
theories
crimes,
that
in the availability
shifts
characteristics
routine
activities
motivate people theory
of suitable
targets;
the
guardians,
place
reductions
in the routine
managers, or handlers
activity
that
in crime. patterns
changes
of society that aff ect the
these elements
without
directly
motivated off enders.
Given
activities
conditions,
during this time
argued that
away from the family
In
households
frequently,
other
the disper-sion
and household
caused an increase in target suitability in guardianship.
and a decrease
words, people
unoccupied
and
were leaving
unguarded
as well as exposing themselves
potential
during the
to cause violent crime, had generally improved
period. They
in activities
their
of society
why urban crime rates increased
such as economic
more
as targets to
motivated off enders. To test this hypothesis,
Cohen and Felson developed a household activity ratio
will converge in space
and time can also prevent crime events
affecting the supply of
can produce
Furthermore,
routine
1960s, when the factors thought
indicates
of places; and the presence of capable
immediate
likelihood
suggest
and political institu-tions
of society to alter the factors that to commit
to a shift in the structural
to
measure
the
extent
to
They
unattended.1
which
households
predicted that
were
left
changes in the
these policy implications, researchers have derived vari-ous dispersion of activities away from the family testable hypotheses from routine activities theory
household explained crime rates over time, arguing that
to explore its validity.
nonhousehold activities increase the probabil-ity
that
motivated offenders will converge in time and
space in the absence of capable guardians. METHODS
series analysis, they found ratio
Routine activities theory to understand trends
a range of phenomena,
over time,
and individual
crime
of the home
in
Researchers meet
these
diff
used
erent
needs.
diff
erent
methods
1947
to
with
1974
Cohen
& Felson,
have
structural
& Cohen,
in
1980).
their crime
Consistent
subsequent
In
variations
of routine
in crime trends other
generally shown that routine
selection
1979).
that
organization
rape,
rates from
study,
demonstrated
are related to variations Felson
and homicide
Felsons initial
studies
in societys
activity
related to burglary, forcible
(Cohen
and
Using a time
that the household
assault, robbery,
away from
research
The
of research reviewed in the following the
for
of burglary
various
wassignificantly
aggravated
macro-level
and the features
the likelihood have
addition,
For example, the
of ones neighborhood
victimization. to
In
opportunities
multiple levels.
might influence
crime
across space,
victimization.
how
designed
including
of crime
have considered
might exist at
characteristics
methods
distributions
diff erences
researchers
has guided research
and
activities
over time (e.g.,
words, research
has
activities that take people
home tend to
be associated
with in-creases
rates.
paragraphs il-lustrates
researchers
have
used
Using
to test hypotheses developed from routine activities
Routine
Activities
Distribution
to
of
Crime
theory
has
Predict
Across
the
Space
theory. Routine Using
Routine
Activity
to
Predict
Crime
distributions
Trends
research Routine changes
activities in crime
examine
changes determine
theory trends
how
in
was first over time.
crime
rates
macro-level whether
with changes
in
over
activity
in routine
crime
trends.
rates
understand
To do this,
fluctuate
routine
changes
used to
research-ers time
with
trends
activities If they
activities
to
changed
United examines the
States
activities
of crime
reviewed, in
the
from
how crime
same time
during are as-sociated are, this
just
a given theory
(i.e.,
year to rates
to
used to
space.
Unlike
examined
place year),
how
over time this
type
cities
Researchers testable
in the have
ex-plain the
crime
(i.e.,
the
of research
diff er across various
diff erent
develop
been
across
which same
year).
also
places at
United
States
used routine
hypotheses
abou
ROUTINE
ACTIVITIES
27
why some areas have higher crime rates than others.
Victimization survey data have become increasingly
To do this, they examine whether the routine activities
available in recent decades, making such methodology
of people living diff er from
in
places
the routine
with higher levels
activities
places with lower levels of crime. and
Blau (1987)
of crime
of people living For example,
hypothesized
that
in
more
common.
how
the
Messner
likelihood
leisure
property
routine
Therefore,
routine
researchers
activities
of
of various forms crime
(e.g.,
have
individuals
examined aff ect
of victimization,
Mustaine
including
& Tewksbury,
1998),
will result in
violent
crime (e.g., Sampson, 1987), and stalking
lower crime rates, whereas those that take people away
Fisher,
Cullen,
activities that take place in the
from their
households
household
largest
Standard
United
the routine
Statistical
some people and/or
Metropolitan
States during
Specifically,
used data from the 124
they
the time
hypothesized
aggregate television
viewing
Areas in the
period that
around
1980.
higher levels
would be associated
lower city crime rates, because routine
of with
leisure activities
that take place in the household provide potential
motivated
entertainment
establishments
will
be
associated
their
National
that individuals
hypotheses.
Higher levels
associated
with lower
aggravated
assault,
of television
murder and
non-negligent
rape, robbery, aggravated
Using
and auto theft.
of sports
was associated
were
rape, robbery,
burglary, larceny,
establishments of
viewing
rates of forcible
Conversely, a greater supply
these
Routine
to
activities
theory
to
has also
been
used to
across individuals. initially
explain
A
national-level
crime
by the theory
are actually
victim
comes
absence
to
understand routine
compare
of nonvictims routine
the
with
violent
activities
on the
of
violent
location
of
was not significantly
victimization.
In
activities,
Miethe et al.
with a high frequency
were at an increased
terms
of night-time
risk for
property
victimization.
Routine
Activities
activities
likelihood
have
been
the
to
the
of victims
the eff ect of lifestyle
Land, activities resides
to
the
activities
example, to
at
leaving
ones risk;
both
1987;
In
other
In
his own him
door living
Rountree,
an individual
his victimization characteristics
unlocked
and (e.g.,
do the routine
which
vulnerable
in
risk
Wilcox
more
whether
individual
words,
in
influence
leave
risk.
victimization
neighborhood
eff ect of
separately.
of individuals
victimization
Wooldredge,
that
victimization
activities
to impact
independently
activities
have begun to explore
Miethe, 1994). of the
micro-level
have been used to explain
routine
operate
levels &
&
beyond
Specifically,
the
factors
Sampson
of victimization.
activities
and
Opportunity
macro-and
routine
used to explain
in
given
routine
years, researchers
neighborhood
many
examined
from
rates,
recent
Multilevel
derived
de-scribed opportunity
data
risk
crime
and
researchers
nature:
has led
victim.
understand
in
off ender
victimization potential
the routine to
an
victimization
in
to
mechanisms
This
use individual-level
of the
Although
micro-level
controllers.
diff erences
explain
used the theory
trends,
contact
capable
activities
researchers
and
into
of any
researchers
those
(1979)
major daily ac-tivities
home. The
of night-time
activities and
at
however,
found that individuals
hypotheses
Cohen
Felson
risk
of the frequency
At first,
Predict
Victimization
diff erences in victimization and
of prop-erty
compared with those whose
kept them
the
Macro-level Routine
of
manslaughter, forcible
Activities in
activities
related
assault, burglary, and larceny.
Differences
whether
and frequency
who performed their
major daily activities,
and entertain-ment with higher rates
1975
outside of the home had relatively higher risks daily
analyses support
to
and violent victimization. Their analysesindicated
with
homes leave suitable targets
general, their
data from the
activities
of
vulnerable
night-time activities affected their likelihood
remove
In
them
Miethe et al. explored
major daily
of property victimization
people from their
that place
property in the proximity
Crime Survey,
individuals
argued
diff erentially
Using victimization
higher city crime rates, becauseleisure activities that unguarded.
Long (1987)
of individuals
off enders, thus leaving
victimization.
targets with a greater level of guardianship. Conversely, they hypothesized that a greater supply of sports and
activities
(e.g.,
2002)
Miethe, Staff ord, and
will result in higher crime rates.
To test these hypotheses, they
& Turner,
their
to
risk
and rou-tine crime?
For
might contribute
a neighborhood
wher
28
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
it is common to leave ones door unlocked might also contribute
to
victimization
risk.
In
the
first
case,
house can be easily entered if a burglar should enter. In the second case, a burglar the home given the doors unlocked. These to
the
risk
In the
of
addition,
eff ects
for
vary
activities
by neighborhood.
to
a
level,
whether one lives in the suburbs
of
on
whether
neighborhood individual
activities
does
condition on
of
the eff ect
victimization
(Wilcox,
opportunities and
other
of the neighborhood
characteristics
of
the
victim
victimization.
modeling techniques
that
eff ects of individual-and
heavily from
understand that
might condition
activities
on
all point to theories
assumptions
AND
off ender adaptations for
crime, the research structures
has focused
environmental
primary
The
perspectives
events.
diff erences in focus
of this
produce temporal
help
structures
reviewed
blocking for
here
prevention.
and other criminological Displacement
to blocked criminal
Rational
Whereas routine
Choice
activities
elements
opportunities
Perspective
theory
of a criminal that the
event
describes
the
and
controllers
the
event, the rational
processes
Clarke
to
to
by
choice
which
neces-sary
perspec-tive
off enders
potential
criminology, on
factors
crime
that
under
decision
area of theory
and
the opportunity
and spatial
patterns
for
certain
is influenced
make
The
Situations,
however,
the lens
people;
meeting
instead,
of previous
are the
not
or
This
prior
to
her
of-fender other
needs this
and
type
of
involvement
and
Cornish,
learning
pointthe
perceived
to
The and
the
views them
and event
by situational
person
experience
1985).
Clarke
decision
influenced
and (2)
her readiness
commit
to
the
refers
of crime
his
would
individuals
second
highly
by all
his or
circumstances.
by the
that
important
decision
& Cornish
according
decisionis
two
decision
this form
he or she
process,
While not dis-counting experiences.
motivation to commit
of
(Clarke
options
argued
involvement
recognition
a crime
(1985)
comprises
an involvement
The
has contemplated
as envi-ronmental concluded
primarily
Cornish
actually
(1)
decision.
an individuals
and
and
off end
points:
event
to and shares
and situational
has been on understanding that
opportunity
to
crime.
an
other theories referred
Unlike traditional
or prevent criminal
individual
and
opportunity
which neigh-borhoodwho can disrupt the eff ects of addresses
APPLICATIONS
with several
criminology
proximate
that facilitate
the
policing
theory
and diffusionof benefits,described later, aretwo possible
at
THEORIES,
are collectively
criminology.
the
activities
make different predictions about how off end-ers
commit
environmental
of crime. In addi-tion,
risk.
Routine activities theory is closely linked
that
make them complementary,
routine
theories
decision
PERSPECTIVES,
event.
produce specific crime problems.
decision
perspectives
provides a unique
that
factors
victimization
COMPLEMENTARY
Each
of the criminal
explanations
and interrupt
decisions.
similar
1995).
multilevel
neighborhood-level
characteristics
1981,
a policing approach called problem-oriented draws
allow them to determine the
as well as the extent to
routine
shared assumptions
To analyze
such data, researchers rely on sophisticated
individual
that
for crime, as well as the routine
might put him at risk for
the same time,
& Brantingham
will respond to blocked opportunities.
on both the characteristics
activities
& Brantingham
to the understanding
rather than competing,
2003).
To answer these questions, researchers use data indicate
& Clarke 2003), and crime
develop-mentsEnvironmental criminology
in the area of multilevel opportunity
1985), situational
theories/perspectives
contribution
The
Routine activities theory and these types of research
& Hunt
(Cornish
risk?
questions have inspired further theoretical Land,
& Cornish
pattern theory (P. J. Brantingham
burglary
regardless
or in the city, or do
characteristics
routine
crime prevention
Their
victimiza-tion
For example,
particular
Clarke
of these four
have questioned
routine
criminology encompassesthe rational choice perspective (e.g.,
1993; P. L. Brantingham
individual.
ones door unlocked increase risk for
victimization
the
norm of leaving
may both contribute
this
researchers
of individual
risk leaving
two factors
victimization
try to
knows to try to en-ter
neighborhood
of crime. In addition to routine activities theory, envi-ronmental
ones
factors. same
way
through
and assesses them
usin
ROUTINE
his or her information-processing Cornish,
1985).
At times,
make decisions clouded
information
is inaccurate,
by situational
Although
abilities (Clarke
the
this
&
used
with judgment
range of offenders (Clarke
alcohol. and event
decisions as two discrete choices, in reality the two
may
structures
time,
be shaped criminal
the
reducing
& Clarke 2003).
by experience.
decision
The individuals
to increased
his or readiness
to commit
Clarke and Cornish (1985)
professionalism
in
off ending,
lifestyle, and changes in network
pointed
changes in
his
or
continual
direction
be noted that event
involvement
event but
by altering
of a specific criminal
a criminal
Blocked opportunities criminal
crime preven-tion
change the event decision
during
her
the rewards,
excuses (Cornish
Onits face, situational
However, it should
from
might
and removing
the off enders perceptions
experience of of-fending.
frequency
personal circumstances
reflect
crime. For example,
to
Positive reinforcement
events can lead to increased
change to further
continues
crime by increasing
the risks, reducing
provocations,
techniques
involvement
1997). Situational crime
of a particular
the eff orts, increasing
happen almost simultaneously. Over
29
prevention techniques focus on effectively altering op-portunity
being
changes, drugs, and/or
model describes involvement
to
ACTIVITIES
oppor-tunity.
an off enders
directly
decision
aff ects
over
time.
not only prevent an impending
might also nudge the off ender in the
of abandoning
crime.
of peers and associates
as personal conditions that change overtime to solidify
Crime
Pattern
Theory
ones continual involvement decision. Conversely,an of-fender maychoose to desistin response to reevaluating alternatives
to
crime.
This
decision
could
by an aversive experience during a criminal change
to
ones
in the larger 1985).
opportunity
Both
the
be viewed eff ort,
personal
risks,
event, a
off ender
movements
It is compatible
with routine
activities
it
process
which
search
for
event
excuses
elements turn
to change
change In
crime which
the
terms
decisions
can
are shaped associated
by the with
the
Brantingham premise
(i.e.,
used the
discourage
the
that
or as permanent
of
prevention
forms managing
crime
those
crime
by
to
as perceived
purpose
and
therefore
address
environment
with the
target
the
the
routes
the patterning ma-nipulating in
Brantingham
of
school,
by a wide
traveled
and
referred places
between
the
across
the
nodes
their
their
as will
targets
home,
as nodes. The referred
and well
as
determine
Brantingham
off enders
are
tar-gets
spaces;
activities,
activities,
locations,
across space.
argued
activity
routine
these
of recreation these
(1993)
encounter
come own
these
to
templates
to interpret
or shared
of
of crime
or unfavorable
selection.
of their
to
backcloth
Brantingham
off enders
locations
traveled
the
he or she inter-prets
will form
way off enders
course
cues
political, of
and
will rely
overlapping
words,
the
emits
favorable
they
during
other
in their
economic,
off enders
which
one common
motivated
environmental
either
P. J.
with the
engage
environment
off ender,
of-fenders
targets.
began
who are
legal,
the
P. J. Brantingham
during
interventions.
of
on
is through in
prevention
the
by the
Over time, cues
suitable
characteristics/features
area as being
crime.
that
have
interventions,
spatial
by
(1981)
individuals
cultural,
elements
environment
and
decades, alike
by systematically
the immediate
for
past few
was designed
of crime
a way as possible,
opportunities
managers,
across
are individuals
perceived
the for
or come
process,
and
of these
mechanisms
develop of
off end-ers.
the
As these
the
These
and in
situational
practitioners
situational
are then
potential
place
problems,
area.
more
there
selection
or
describes
Brantingham
crime.
indicate
rational
crime
theory,
Over the
justice
eff ectiveness
crime
specific
of
as the
guardians,
crime.
crime
evaluate
reducing
be viewed
techniques
Situational
making
the
one
for
activities
and criminal
understand
highly
decision
can
in
manipulates
opportunities
of routine
controllers
handlers)
and
the
grounded
it
and
commit
that
Prevention
is
that
prevention
researchers
to
prevention
in
patterned
because
temporal, crime
spatially
of crime.
Crime
perspective
the
and
nature
target
Situational
to explain
of envi-ronmental
perceptions,
theory
to
choice
a framework
off ender
& Cornish,
behavior.
Situational
provides
context (Clarke and
and
theory
characteristics,
or changes
in that they
rewards,
pattern
circumstances,
involvement
as rational
Crime
be influenced
to
and work, routes as th
30
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
paths of the offender. Finally, edgesare those physical
produced by a problem. A problem should be narrowly
and mentalbarriers along the locations of wherepeople
defined; that is, instead of broadly identifying
live, work, or play.The
problem,
for and/or
encounter
off ender is
mostlikely to search
targets at the nodes, along paths,
and at the edges, with the exception around
each
node
that
the
of being recognized. argued that crime
off ender
avoids
Brantingham
events
of a buff er zone
and
will thus
out
of
fear
along
major nodes and paths of activity, as well as constrained by edges of landscapes. The will
reflect
these
two
features:
and the heavily
spatial the
and edges. In addition,
patterns
activity
Brantingham
back-cloth
paths, nodes,
and Brantingham
noted that some places have particularly crime because of the characteristics
as theft rink
then
high levels of
of the activity
of shoes from during
hours. The
and causes.The
crime triangle
depicted in Figure
information
on all sides of the triangle,
responses to prevent future beyond traditional to include
less traditional
the causes of the involve
and
crimes. These
police tools
tools that
problem. These one or
less traditional
more of the three
accordingly, depending on the results.
other
than
crime,
opportunities. in
that
Conversely, other places are crime their
characteristics
draw
there for the purpose of committing
off
enders
crimes.
Policing
and
Problem
of the response and alter the process
theory can be applied for prevention. Problem-oriented policing
complements
research
crime is
not randomly
distributed
2007); instead,
victimized,
Analysis
that
problem-oriented city
prevent crime
problems.
Problem-oriented
1979) is a proactive on systematically
numerous crime incidents
addressing
crime
of reacting
for the police. Within
incident,
Problems
define, understand, numerous
crime
problem,
becomes
policing,
and prevent incidents
the
each
SARA
function
that
problems
Using the terms
of repeat victimization,
off ending can be seen as a
of both the routine victims, and/or
also
activities
of potential
of-fenders,
places as well as the absence or
ineff ectiveness of potential handlers, guardians, and/ or managers. This in turn sheds light
on what steps
from
of
work
pattern.
police
work to
citizen
policing is implemented
Response,and Assessment. The
places, and repeat
but
and disorder
to these elements.
wolf, duck, and den, problems repeat
event
theory
rather than
of crime
processScanning,
of repeat crime
can be connected
calls
to
the
through Analysis,
police scan crime data
and calls for service to identify crime patterns that are
the
same
problem.
A wolf
problem
reflects
the
repeated actions of an off ender or group of offenders, with
absent
one in
both
victims den
or ineff
ective
handlers.
this the
repeat
routine
activities
and
problem
is
or group is repeatedly
victimization
can
be attributed
characteristics
of
the
as well as the absence of capable guardians. problem
is
one in
which
to targets and off enders absent
Aduck
which the same individual
victimized; to
Problem-oriented use of the
specific types
a crime
activities
unit
police.
the
elements
of
the sites of
should be taken to prevent future crimes stemming
problems that gener-ate
and
describe
six
Clarke,
off end. Eck (2001)
not only does routine
the
that
Eck,
some people are repeat-edly
suggested that
that
to and treating
are a form
problem-oriented
problems
and calls for service
call for service in isolation. The individual
policing
policing approach that
produce
to the police, instead
analysis process
policing to understand and
focuses
the
as part of
organizations, and private
the same problem
usedin problem-oriented (Goldstein
theory
policing. In addition, researchers,
planners, nonprofit
citizens follow
activities
indicates
(e.g.,
some places are repeatedly
crime, and some people repeatedly Police agencies use routine
of
discussed earlier. Finally, police assessthe
& Guerette Problem-Oriented
ap-proaches
types
It is during the SARA processthat routine activities
but the routine activities at these places provide crimi-nal attractors
responses go
may help disrupt
travel
reasons
on of-fenders.
of arrest and citation
overall impact
for
not just
On the basis of this analysis, the police develop
controllers
locations
at
police
2.1 is often used to organize the analysis; police collect
people associated with it. Specifically, they suggested these
the
unsecured lockers
after-school
that some places are crime generators,in that people to
atheft
to be specific and identify
analyze the problem to understand its character-istics
of crime
environmental
patterned
problem the roller
Brantingham
be clustered
it is important
place
managers.The
a place is
both
while also having repeat-place
A
attrac-tive
weak or
problem i
ROUTINE
which an apartment building is consistently the site of
ACTIVITIES
31
weredirectly targeted bythe strategy. Oneexplanation
police calls for service mightindicate that place manag-ers, for this diffusion of benefitsis that off enders, uncertain such as the landlord encouraged In
other
or building
manager, need to be
or coerced to take control
words, using routine
theory
during
from
actual
who needs to be empowered Furthermore,
it
or held responsible.
might also reveal the activity
systematically
produce
the
patterns
opportunity
for
the
crime and suggest points of intervention.
that to
scope
(Clarke such
there
&
and
Diffusion
of
Onecommon
simply
concern
when implementing
crime prevention
be displaced. In other
crime
opportunity
structures
Conversely, dispositional
words, a particular
event that appears to be prevented is inevitably to another time, of crime
place, and/or
make diff erent
victim.
predictions
crime
displaced
of displacement in response to blocked criminal opportunities
(Clarke
theories
1997).
criminologi-cal
is consistent
only off enders are infinite
for crime is blocked. This
with the assumptions
that (a)
and evenly spread across time, space, and
people.These theories suggest that will adapt and simply opportunity.
motivated offend-ers theories
such
as routine activities theory suggest that displacement
have
to the issue
displacement
when it
a diffusion
dedicated
of displacement,
on displacement is
that
not inevitable,
nor
does occur. Furthermore,
it
does
55 studies of
does
not
occur,
it
Hesseling
displacement.
appear
tends
of
displacement,
the
a shift
in time,
studies
no sign reported
beyond
33 studies
that
found
complete
that
did occur
The displacement reflected
Of the
22 found
to crimes
Of the
no study
be inevitable.
be limited.
these
of benefits
targeted.
reviewed
suggesting that to
to
reviewed,
Six
diffusion
directly
Hesseling (1994)
articles and reports
displacement When
of benefits in response to crime
strategies.
55 published
moveon to another available
Conversely, opportunity
that
prevention
some
matter because (b) crime opportunities
by
of crime
there is evidence to suggest that there is some-times
of off enders suggest that displacement is in-evitable
when an opportunity prediction
Traditional
theories
criminologists
is it complete
Diff erent theories about the likeli-hood
predict
account for diff usion of benefits.
a body of research
suggests
theory,
with those crimes targeted
attention
producing
will
Opportunity
other crimes share similar
the strategy.
Environmental
opportunity
strategies is that
1994).
activities
blocking if
considerable
blocking
refrain
may be a diff usion of benefits in response
opportunity
Benefits
strategy,
beyond the scope of the
Weisburd
as routine
generally cannot Displacement
of a particular
off ending in situations
strategy
analysis reveals the absent or ineff ective con-troller theories,
problem
that
of the problem.
activities
of the
place, target,
those
reported displace-ment. generally
or tactic
for
offender.
is possible, but only to the extent that other available criminal
opportunities
an increase
in
prediction focus
costs
have similar
to the
is consistent
to
be infinite likelihood
relative
and equally
gratifying
of displacement,
an
opportunities (i.e., they
off ender
is
FUTURE
This
unaware
Although routine
to the
wealth of research to date, there are still
off ender.
of
crime
alternative
their
crime
are very unattractive
or less rewarding),
then
crime
is another
prevention
possible
strategies.
Not only
adaptation
to
might displace-ment
not occur, but also it is possible that the gains from a strategy might extend beyond those crimes that
has informed
a
many av-enues
by routine activities theory are in
early stages.
concepts
within
relatively little guardianship,
off ender
activities theory
of research yet to be exhausted. Several areas of
oppor-tunities.research informed
displacement is unlikely. There
DIRECTIONS
are not assumed
of alternative
risky,
1997).
therefore, is tied to the
or these alternatives
are difficult,
without
activities theorys
Opportunities
costs and benefits If
(Clarke
with routine
on opportunity.
The
off ender
rewards
and the
routine
is one of the earliest
activities
understanding
theory,
when and where these forms
level,
by increasing
yet there is
of the various forms
means by which guardianship
On a superficial off ending
Guardianship
guardianship
are eff ective,
reduces crime. appears to
the likelihood
will be detected and sanctioned.
of
the
deter
off ender
As many guardian
32
CRIME
AND
havelimited sanction
BEHAVIOR
authority, skills, or meansto detect and
offenders, one
guardianship
may wonder whether (a)
can be based on some other
other than
deterrence
guardianship
or (b)
mechanism
Either routine activities theory is limited to place-based crimes or it needs revision. that substituting
many of the examples of
are preventing
crime.
More
research needs to examine this topic. Another
area for research is the concepts
manager and
management.
by managers.The to
Recently, the
of place Madensen
contact
place
(1) the Regulation
of conduct,
(4) the Acquisition and
management consists
Organization
its
(3) the
Control
of resources. The
influence
on
crime
will
of access, and
study of have
to
manage-ment
address
all
sug-gested
mail bomber
victim,
and
the
are governed
uses the
Internet
computers.
postal system
fraudster
uses
a
Research on routine
activities in systems is in its infancy. Although
ac-tivities:of elements
of four
of physical space, (2) the
people, and they
system of networked
model of management unpacks these concepts.
It states that
his
Eck and Clarke (2003)
system for place solves the prob-lem.
Systems connect
we assume are eff ective are really guard-ing;
perhaps other things
ORCA
able to steal from victims from anywhere in the world.
it is possible to study the contribution of routine
activities
of crime, it is impossible elements interacting because
even
our
theory
to create crime best
to the study
to empirically
sources
study
all the
patterns. That
of information
is
contain
data on only one or two of the actors involved:
off end-ers,
targets, handlers, guardians, and managers. Also,
four activities and mergecrime science with business
the best data available are often highly aggregated and
and managementscience. Handlers have received very little
attention
by
rife
with
errors.
Computer
simulations
of crime
pat-terns,
guardians
however, provide a method for exploring how
and managers,yet recent evidence suggests that they
these parts interact in a dynamical system.This is a
routine
activity
researchers, relative to
may have powerful patterns.
Tillyer
of handling crime,
influences
(2008)
on crime
showed
can be used to reduce
from
minor juvenile
and crime
how the
a wide variety
delinquency
very
to
of
new area of research of a wide variety
concept
burglary,
robbery,
that
has spawned
of crime types:
welfare fraud,
and
simula-tions
drug dealing, others (Liu
&
group-related Eck, 2008).
homicide.
Crime concentrations controllers targets,
is present
when none of the
or effective and off enders
but why are these controllers One answer
Rana
appear
Sampson
absent or ineff ec-tive?
might be that the controllers (1987),
a consultant
on
whom
Super
or the
right
controllers
are
influence people
on the
To summarize,
routine
problem-orientedof crime events,
policing, calls super controllers are not exerting sufficient
CONCLUSION
meet
controllers.
and institutions
that
control controllers. For example, a bartender and bar
why some people theory
theory
which distinguishes
of criminological
activities
activities
theories commit
was initially
it from
that focus crimes.
is a theory a
major-ity
on explaining
Although
used to explain
routine changes
in crime trends over time, it has beenincreasingly used
owner are managers,and the state liquor regulatory
much more broadly to understand and prevent crime
agencyis one of their super controllers. Foster parents
problems. Routine activities theory hasguided research
are handlers of children put in their care. Child welfare
designed to understand a range of phenomena, includ-ing
agenciesact astheir super controllers. is a guardian,
and the company that
a super controller. There
is almost
Asecurity guard hired the guard is
no research in this
crime trends overtime, distributions of crime across space, and individual
diff erences in
also has been used in conjunction
area, although it holds great promise for understanding
control strategies, including
crime and developing
and problem
prevention.
Routine activities theory focuses on off enders contact involve crime
malt-ing
with targets at places. Some crimes, however, at a distance.
Mail bombers, for example,
do not come close to their targets. Internet fraudsters
are
analysis.
victimization. with
research.
the controllers
many crime
problem-oriented
policing
Despite the broad applicability
of the theory to date, there are numerous future
It
Examples include
further
directions for research
on
of crime as well as the super controllers
ROUTINE
& D. B. Cornish (Eds.),
NOTE
Theory 1.
Cohen
and
activity
ratio
Felson
by summing
female number
(1979)
of
labor
calculated
the
force
number
of
participant
non-husband-wife
by the total
their
married,
number
of
husband-present
households
households
and
households
in the
(pp.
household
Eck,
J.
Baltimore:
States.
In
AND
FURTHER
Criminal
Drug
markets
and
P. J.,
on the P. J.
& Brantingham,
geometry
of crime.
Brantingham
(pp.
2754).
Brantingham, paths,
P. J., and
Environmental
Criminality
of
attractors. 3,
place:
Webb
Crime
Journal
Clarke,
of
and
crime
Policy
and
&
for
(pp.
Research
Crime
crime
policy.
(pp.
and justice:
Felson,
6, pp. 147185).
Chicago:
Press. D. (1994).
Diff usion of crime on
R. V. Clarke (Ed.),
2, pp. 165183).
the
reverse
Crime
Monsey,
of
prevention
NY: Criminal
American Cornish,
trends: Sociological
D. B.,
& Clarke,
and criminal critique
of situation
A routine Review,
change
activities 44,
R. V. (2003).
decisions: crime
Social
and
approach.
Opportunities,
A reply to
prevention.
In
pre-cipitators
Wortleys M.J. Smith
complexity
for
of
In J. Knutsson
(pp.
79113).
Press. Classifying activity (Eds.),
common
approach.
In
Crime prevention
practice in situational
Monsey,
&
NY:
&
crime
Criminal
Justice
R.
V.
Clarke
for
prevention
& D.
The
New York:
Weisburd
Crime
and
Justice
Justice
Press.
social In
controls, D. Cornish
reasoning
criminal
Springer-Verlag.
who discourage (Eds.),
crime.
Crime prevention
place (pp.
5366).
In J. E. studies:
Monsey,
NY:
Press.
M., & Cohen, A routine
crime
outcomes.
(Eds.),
K. Bowers,
Crime preven-tion
activities,
and criminal
M. (1995). Those
crime:
G. Farrell,
sets of
(Eds.),
NY: Criminal
Routine
Risky
homogeneous
In
M. Townsley
Monsey,
119128).
Criminal
R. T. (2007).
in
Vol. 21. Imagination
decisions,
Felson,
Guerette,
and facilities.
M. (1986).
L. E. (1980).
activity
Human
approach.
ecology
Human
and
Ecology, 8,
389405.
B. S.,
pursued:
the
F. T.,
& Turner,
Criminology
Crime
study ofstalking
policing:
& Delinquency,
R. B. P. (1994).
empirical
M. G. (2002).
Being
among college
and Public Policy, 1, 257308.
H.(1979). Improving
approach. Hesseling,
Cullen,
A national-level
women. Goldstein,
88100.
Justice
R. V.,
225264).
Eck
Fisher,
M. (1979).
The
mainstream
Crime concentration
Vol. 4.
Observations
& Felson,
rate
&
off end-ers
and
to
739).
Clarke,
studies:
Felson,
Press.
L. E.,
E.,
rational
research
analy-sis,
249276).
Vol. 15. Problem-oriented
A routine
(pp.
establishments
112,
Modeling
(pp.
Press.
antici-pating
Directorate.
process
events and crime
R. V., (2003).
Vol 16. Theory
prevention
Press.
and evaluation.
& D. B. Cornish
K. D. Johnson,
Heston.
Office,
research
problems:
facilities:
studies
Understanding,
Home
(Vol.
Weisburd,
In
case
Harrow
D. B. (1985).
Chicago
benefits:
displacement.
police
A case-control
drug dealing.
event concentration.
problems:
From innovation
studies:
R. V. Clarke (Ed.),
Morris (Eds.),
of research
studies (Vol.
Cohen,
& N.
R. V., &
Justice
of
(1995).
demand for stolen goods (Paper
A framework
M. Tonry
control
P. J.
Criminal
In
London:
theory,
M.J. Smith
Successful
and Statistics
decisions:
University
on
NY:
R. V., & Cornish,
A review
Journal
generators
Hot products:
Ed.).
Development
In
complex-ity
places:
NJ: Transaction. Police
Eck, J. E., & Clarke,
13, 328.
Guilderland,
and reducing
Clarke,
on the
Press.
& V. Sacco (Eds.), The
Criminal
Monsey, NY: Criminal
Nodes,
Maryland
Crime prevention studies:
policing:
Brantingham,
prevention:
R. V. (1999).
B.
criminology
environment.
Introduction.
crime
336).
problem
drug
advances in criminology
E. (2003).
(Ed.),
Eck, J.
R. V (1997).
Clarke,
&
526.
Situational (pp.
&
European
Research,
Clarke,
physical
L.,
Brantingham
P. L. (1993).
Consideration
Psychology, P.
Notes
CA: Sage.
& Brantingham,
and the
Brantingham,
P. L.
Environmental
Hills,
edges:
of crime
In
(Eds.),
Beverly
P. L. (1981).
Eck, J.
prevention
Justice
of illicit
and crime
of crime:
theoretical New Brunswick,
Brantingham,
of
Policing
R. Meier, L. Kennedy,
READINGS
crime
NY:
University
and structure REFERENCES
situational
of the spatial structure
Eck, J. E. (2001).
33
Crime prevention studies: Vol. 16.
in
Monsey,
E. (1994).
study
divid-ing
United
practice
4196).
and the
then
for
ACTIVITIES
literature.
A problem-oriented
25, 236258.
Displacement: In
R.
Clarke
A review (Ed.),
of
Crim
34
CRIME
AND
prevention
studies (Vol.
Criminal Liu,
L.,
BEHAVIOR
Justice
3, pp. 197230).
Using
computer
Artificial
simulations
and
Hershey, PA: IGI
Forces,
65,
Miethe,
T.
Social
of routine
risks
E. E.,
R. J.,
victimizations.
information
and
J. (1987).
dimensions
opportunity
Journal
of
activi-ties
analysis.
& Long, J.
criminal
activities/lifestyle
Social
Tillyer,
M. S. (2008).
models
Quantitative
Getting
Using environmental
dissertation,
S. (1987).
victimization:
theories.
& Tewksbury, theft
A
American
circumstance:
R. (1998).
Predicting
A routine measures.
activity
Criminology,
and test
of the
Law and
violence
opportunity
Criminology,
by stranger:
An
model. Journal
78, 327356.
of
predatory
Criminology,
3,
A dynamic,
Wilcox Rountree,
New York:
P., Land,
Macro-micro
integration
A hierarchical
logistic
to
understand
Unpublished
and
doctoral
Cincinnati.
K. C., & Hunt,
theory.
neighborhoods. Personal
of
the
lifestyle-routine
a handle on street violence:
criminology
University
Wilcox, P., Land,
opportunity
victimization: lifestyles
Linking of
371393.
Routine leisure
M. C, in
R.J. (1987).
of Criminal
Wooldredge,
prevent repeat off ender problems.
using refined
extension
&
macro-level
activity
829858.
Sampson,
Sampson,
systems:
Review, 52, 184194.
of larceny
analysis
geographic
A macro-level
D., Staff ord,
Sociological Mustaine,
analysis
10351052.
diff erentiation
test
36,
of crime:
crime
Global.
Messner, S. F., & Blau, J. R. (1987). and rates
NY:
micro-and
& Eck, J. E. (2008).
systems.
Monsey,
Press.
S. A. (2003).
Criminal
multi-contextual
criminal
Aldine
de Gruyter.
K. C., & Miethe, T. D. (1994). in the study
of victimization:
model analysis
Criminology,
32, 387414
across
Seattle
CHAPTER II
Biological
& Biosocial
Theorie
BIOLOGICAL THEORY
Angela
B
iological
theories
within the field of criminology
contrary to societal expectations These
theories
through
are categorized
known as determinism),
attempt to explain
examination
of individual
charac-teristics.
within a paradigm called positivism (also
which asserts that behaviors, including
behaviors, are determined by factors largely beyond individual theories contrast
behaviors
law-violating
control. Positivist
with classicaltheories, which argue that people generally choose
their behaviors in rational
processesof logical decision making, and with critical
theories, which critique lawmaking, social stratification, and the unequal distri-bution of power and wealth. Positivist theories
are further
classified
influences
they identify
as potentially
example,
psychological
and
development structure
opportunity,
strain)
sociological
of individual
look
born) outward
For
mental
theories
evaluate the impact
of social
anomie, subcultural
theories,
and the impact
of social function
social learning,
and processes on individu-als
social bonds, labeling).
on the basis of certain innate
physical traits or characteristics;
source of diff erences to genetic to distinguish
behavior.
at an individuals
can be classified into three types: (1) those that
among individuals
attempt
theories
of external
(e.g., social disorganization,
(e.g., diff erential association, theories
determinative
psychiatric
and functioning;
on individuals
on the basis of the types
or hereditary
among individuals
attempt
(i.e., those
with
Biological
to diff erentiate which you are
(2) those that attempt to trace the characteristics;
and (3) those that
on the basis of structural,
functional,
or
chemical diff erencesin the brain or body. This
chapter is organized in rough chronological order and by historical fig-ures
associated with an important
development. It is difficult to provide an exact
chronology, becauseseveral important
developments and movements happened
simultaneously in various parts of the world. For example, although biological theories
are considered
after the evolution theories
the concept
of some early biological
of behavior that involve
are discussed in terms theories
positivist,
still continued
of positivism
perspectives. In addition,
some aspect of evolution,
of those scientific
did not evolve until
developments,
biological
genetics, or heredity although
physical trait
to be popular.
3
D. Crews
38
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
The following important
sections discuss some of the
that impacted
A brief history the
theories
the scientific methodto test theories against observations of the world; and (3) the rejection of punishment asare-sponse
and relevant considerations in scientific
developments
tracing
more
biological
of positivism
development
from
most current
and
early (largely theories
behavior. This
also is provided,
use of the
on the relationship
of biology to
discusses the role of biological
treatment
a conclusion
based
determinism.
theories in the future
replaces it
VIEWS
OF
BEHAVIOR
scientific
behaviors during the latter part of the 19th perceived
philosophies.
emerged during the
harshness
Classical thought,
Age of Enlightenment
to late 1700s), asserted that of free will and rational
the
or haphazard guesswork.The
committing
theorists, for the of punishment
1.
Punishment
amounts)
crime
to
an act if that
outweighed
because it
as
of
of
choice
behavior. rather
factors largely The
significant
as
were
the
result
seen
of human
action
toward
curing them,
not punishing
Positivist criminology elements:
biological,
who
psychological,
as the
and patterns. A verbal description
or issue, noting
how it impacts
of and
An explanation
of
hypotheses:
explanations statements
Development
or solutions,
educated
of and
about the expected nature of
explanation can betested. 4.
result or
thought
violated
law
controlled to determine
and
central
should
5.
Analyses involves
6.
by three
(2) the
main
whether
use of
experimental
examination
of
account
7.
Publication
of the variables
results;
this
usually
statistics.
of data obtained from the testing and
analyses and the formulation
conclusion
the causes of crime,
manipulation
whether the hypotheses are supported.
of
Interpretation
into
be
them.
or sociological;
Testing of the hypotheses using controlled experi-mentation:
ex-ternal
of science in
behavior. The
is distinguished
(1) the search for
or
components of the problem, specification of vari-ables
wasthat the aim of any social
individuals
of a problem
the problem and relationships among the various
by the individual.
of scientific
and social
focus of these new ideas
seven steps:
of the problem:
problem
informed
than
inherent
method, however, led to the application the study
scientist
involved in the problem sothat the potential
of
uncontrollable
progression
an Iraqi-born
Visual examination
Formulation
a deterrent.
Behaviors than
Statement
potential
Classical views were not very concerned about the causes
(9651039),
of why and how the issue or problem is a problem. 3.
as atype
was more punishment
ective
problem or
development of
relates to other events or factors.
punishment
the pleasure. Classical
most part, denounced torture
be eff
and
Book of Optics between 1011 and 1021.
Observation:
the
(of
would deter an
they believed that punishment should be proportionate the
positivism
methodis credited primarily to
issue, noticing characteristics 2.
wasnecessaryto prevent afuture occurrence of the act; to
modemscientific
who wroteThe
which courses
were pleasurable
were painful.
the right type and in the right from
to
way to examine a particular
It consists of the following
(mid-1600s
choosing
would engage in behaviors that
resulted in pain that
method is important
Ibn al-Haytham
of
which
of action to take. According to classical theorists, indi-viduals
individual
METHOD
man operated on the basis
thought,
and avoid behaviors that
SCIENTIFIC
issue, rather than relying on spiritual or mysticalexpla-nations
Positivism evolved as instrumental in explaining law-violating as a response to the
model.
with scientific
to biological theories of crime becauseit provides a
Biological theories are a subtype of positivist theory.
classical school
(rehabilitation)
of
systematic
century
medical
will and replaces it
with a study of the individual.
THE
POSITIVIST
the
that
The AND
on
with
Finally, it rejects focus on criminal law and
thought.
CLASSICAL
or deviant behavior, replaced
Positivism rejects free
biological
beliefs, to the
also provides
to law-violating
of be-havior.
discredited)
section
criminological
theories
all the
factors,
of a conclusion: the
researcher
Taking makes
a
about the nature of the problem or issue. or dissemination
interested
populations
providing information
of findings and future
to the scientific
to in-form
research:
communit
BIOLOGICAL
about your findings to help future researchers or to inform
policy and practice.
Greeks.
of the scientific
method has
Della
Porta,
and concluded
been used since ancient times to evaluate and solve many
related.
problems, its useto explain social problems, such as crime
from
and criminality,
instead
developed
biological theories Given
the
use
natural
more recently.
of crime
of
the
scientific
method
in
the
eff orts.
hard
or
sciences, early researchers of the causes of crime
attempted to explain criminal scientific diff
Early types of
were among the first
method. The
erences
between
behaviors by applying the
most obvious place to look
criminals
and
on the outside, by studying
other
individuals
often
that
of a scientific
basis of their
men who look like
behave like
TRAIT
was
THEORIES
Johann
period
one of the first
around
to
by observing
is ancient.
mathematician,
the
and scientist 500
BCE,
advocate this
Lavater,
may have been
practice,
judge a
or to
persons
interpret.
through
outward
appearance.
persons
who lived
practice taught
known
as
banned
384 to as were
flourished
in
Henry
322
a
VIII
in
or
of her
persons
concentrated which
Phrenology, mind,
della
Porta
on
ancient
Greeks. The world
England
publication
scholar
of
Giambattista
his
fragments
determine
in
criminal
of a persons eyes,
and
seated
in
in the
and
lack
of
relocating organs
was
in the
until it
was
and criminality.
development
(2)
associated
emotions
choleric
(yel-low
with
and
excitability.
with
(black
phlegmatic
lungs
bile),
depression, (phlegm),
associated
with
Theoretically
for
brain represented
of the scientific
that
and associated
responsibility
to the
development
brain.
beliefs of
on
seated in the liver
melancholic
and (4) and
based
in the
source
and love;
(3)
brain
and
the
gall bladder
spleen
the
and
as
meaning
is
earlier
(blood),
with courage
and irritability; in
various the
humors
bad temper;
phren,
originated from
(1) sanguine
the
sadness,
behavior
departure
four
bile), seated anger
words
knowledge,
from
a major step in
study
of biological
and
behavior
of behavior
explanations
and
of crime
1531.
Joseph
Gall (17581828)
(15351615)
On Physiognomy della
the
and associated
Around The
could
Greek
meaning
major
behaviors:
practically of
the
human
was a
calmness
philosopher
from
belief that
Franz Giambattista
of facial
one
an examination
and logos,
seated
to judge
was a proponent
many areas of the throughout
his
that
Greek
BCE,
many other
universities by
(i.e., of
study
that
who published
Phrenology
to
evaluation
physiognomy
Aristotle,
words
meaning
the
character
Early
Greek
of the face through
from
in
to
examination
nature.
physiognomy,
the
gnomon,
refers
or
an
on characteristics the
It
personality
nature)
from
and
detailed
through
focused
comes
nature,
a Swiss pastor
to Johann
who lived
and physiognomy
pigs
(17411801)
were extremely influential
a
the
meaning
men who resemble
his or
Pythagoras,
Physiognomy
term
to donkeys in
Lavater
He concluded
This
physis,
donkeys are similar
ears, nose, chin, and facial shape.
physiognomy.
The
on the
For example,
pigs.
Kaspar
1783.
a persons character,
or behavior
her physical characteristics
during
humans
for
behavior
philosopher,
perspective
physical traits.
one can determine
moral disposition,
were
animals.
and stupidity;
painstakingly
belief that
one, classifying to
crimi-nologist,
of this relationship
metaphysical
resemblance
their laziness
first
and character
the study
a magico-spiritualistic
the
his medical practice
appearance
He approached
Kaspar
The
considered
patients during
Delia Portas ideas
PHYSICAL
39
renewed focus to this belief and practice ofthe ancient examined
Although some variation
THEORY
Porta
in once
1586 again
by Italian brought
1800, and
the
human
brain
Franz
Joseph
physiologist as
the
Gall, who
source
a
German
pioneered of
mental
neuro-anatomist study faculties
of
40
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
developed the practice of cranioscopy, a technique by which
to infer
behaviors
examination
and
characteristics
of the skull
Gall, a persons strengths,
(cranium).
could
human
particular or
skull.
area of the skull
weakness in
that
several areas of to correspond
to
Galls
the tendency
Since the their
to
source.
a strength
map of the skull
were believed
murder; to steal.
Europe, the
until
area
Although
the
Newton
and somewhat
were
attempted
behavior. tried
to
from
to identity
Although make
inferences
outward
to correlate internal
about
those outward
character
behavior
attempted
physical characteristics (i.e.,
brain
church
to
were vital
shape),
societal
Spurzheim
Spurzheim, actually
and student
of
Galls,
also expanded
the
map of the brain
system
model phrenology
German scientists
on the brain as animportant
addition
bust
among
reasoning
Kepler and Isaac contribu-tions
to the forefront
spiritual
explanations. of
the
church
then-revolutionary
and
human and
had just was
not
ideas
behaviors
may be
application
of cer-tain
that
eff ect.
very
religion.
Needless
popular
However,
understanding
Human
to
Traits
that
generation
depicted
atten-tion
with
these
of
and
about the nature of social and political organizations; and about the place of man,as an individual,
within
those organizations. The
would
synthesis
of these ideas
advance the progress of research related to perspectives of behavior.
mental
to
the
changes
human
and
Characteristic
the
as
Hume,
Mill,
and
Given that
was practiced
how
explain one
used the
current
mental
from
beliefs
broadened
to
hands
were
from
Aristotle
explain
in the
prior include
of philosophers
such
Locke.
and
and traits
generations,
reproduction
to
generate
memories
characteristics
attempt
and
of
also
memories)
processes. These processes
source
characteristics
Plato
to
potential
philosophers and
and
next.
(especially
mental
the
recognize
of association
all
through
been Greek
of traits
to
processes
determinant of indi-vidual
first
persistence
concept
were focusing
having ancient
the
of the organs,
about the development of manas a biological organism;
biological
Johannes
philosophies
advancing
by the
made significant
development
of
the
behavior, various other scholars weretheorizing
significantly
In
of the brain organs.
While-the
promulgated
(15961650),
to
the
provided
behavior.
phrenology to replace cranios-copy. physiognomy,
organs, developed a hierarchical
the location
practice
advance.
a German physician
and created a
re-ligious
(17761832)
coined the term
Spurzheim
all
organized
in
For example,
and
those
Descartes
science
Persistence
Johann
to
principles)
and
is
mid-16th
events
secular
shaping
systems
began in the
in theory
scientific
by the
in
Revolution
main goals,
scientific say,
religions
Galilei (15641642),
their
a divine
and legal
influence.
as a competitor
natural
from
thought
usurping
explained
to
originated
on cre-ationism,
philosophical
Ren
not
(that
of
in that it
and
cranioscopy
characteristics
was a significant
Galls
research
brain as the origin
to physiognomy
characteristics,
physical
which
the
similar
standards,
mystical/
dominated
alternative
brought
on
centered
organized
(16431727)
Although
focused
economic,
immense
Galileo
of thought
that
THE
have questioned
often
life
of the
political,
(15711630),
in America between 1820 and 1850. Although crude, on subsequent
that
Scientific
church.
English elite (and
by todays
forces,
when advances
the wrong areas.The practice also was widely accepted
impact
explanations
theory
explanations
not
humans
spiritual
power
century,
that
ridiculous
AND
OF INHERITANCE
Earliest
to their
whoseskulls had bumps or depressions in
eff orts had significant
HUMANITY
of time,
perspectives
to engage
another
The
testament
others) used Galls ideas to justify the oppression of individuals
and
mans social,
One area corresponded
commit
origins.
the
a
For example,
to the tendency
widely accepted in
in
area.
acts.
beginning
organs
depression
persons tendencies
or deviant
corresponded
by
magical
would indicate
particular
to that
in criminal
be determined
or
OF
According to
of 27 brain
A bump
ORIGINS MECHANISMS
of his or her skull.
Gall mapped out the location on the
THE
exter-nal
weaknesses, morals, proclivi-ties,
character, and personality physical characteristics
from
by the
as a form
Plato state
other,
possibly
undesir-able,
could
potentially
advocated
the
(government).
of population
persist
control Infanticide
control
in ancient
of
BIOLOGICAL
Rome, Athens, and Sparta. Manyof the ancient societ-ies
workObservations
on
exposing
or
otherwise
young children
ones had the strength, Scientists
ideals
to
took
relatively
humans.
little
positively
time
in general, through
doctrine
of association. This
was significant,
processes of the brain.
established,
of
however,
and relatively
little
with these principles.
biologically
memory and thought,
nature of persistent
prior to the application
thoughts
the processes of the He explained
are influenced
the brain because of
As read-ers
by the current circumstances,
research
causing
(Carl)
was among the first to characteristics hierarchical
plants
taxonomies
and
patterns, and
animals,
brain activities that
Hartley called
and become as-sociated
Hartleys
work wasimportant
of classification).
in that it brought
similar
characteristics
across species, hinting at an evolutionary
voluntary action.This is a positivist philosophy in that action is not viewed as being the direct result of strict free
will.
progression.
George-Louis
Leclerc,
Comte
de Buff on
(17071788)
From 1749 to 1778, Leclerc published his mostfamous and
influential
work
in
36
volumes,
with
8 volumes published postmortem. It Pierre-Louis
In
Moreau
1745,
French
Maupertuis Venus), in in to
de
philosopher Venus
naturally
heredity
Physique a theory
examined
statistics.
credited
with
elucidate
a theory
of evolutionary
thought, (see
Burnett
[17141799]
the first
along
James
his
variations
to
can
attempt debated.
be to He
the basic principles
with his contemporary,
Burnett,
Lord
Monboddo
history, from
humans,
change
Following
additional
was a study of
general to the specific.
proposed
(i.e.,
evolve)
throughout
in the footsteps
the radical
idea
genera-tions.
of Linnaeus,
of a relationship
he also between
another
Nature (1778), and sacred
controversial
belief that
divine power, instead was created the on animals
publication,
Leclerc questioned the universe suggesting that
that
seemingly
were spontaneously
Eras of
was created
by celestial collisions. notion
The
the long-standing
our solar system
useless body generated
Associationist
(17051757)
and the
werevestigial, remnants of evolutionary progress. was widespread and impacted
as well as about changes that
of traits hered-ity)
occur over time
School
with each passing generation Hartley
parts
but instead
from one generation to the next (inheritance, Hartley
by a
Finally, he contra-dicted
subsequent beliefs about the transmission David
In
humans and apes.
Leclercs influence
section).
the
an
work, he proposed the idea that species, including
In
contributions
is actively
with outlining
James
discussed
the
Maupertuis
of evolution
is generally credited
mechanisms
examining
Whether
being among
(Physical
this
of reproduc-tion
He subsequently
and
of both sexes to reproduction, through
mathematician
materials contained
organize.
on
natural
(16981759)
and
which he proposed
which organic
views
Maupertuis
published
the origin of
In
with other primates, becom-ing
to recognize
new
creating
of Nature), published in 1735,
humans
one of the first
and physician,
traits,
(systems
Systema Naturae (System Linnaeus grouped
zoologist,
document
among
mediated
emotions, and the impact of feelings on the creation of
(17071778)
Linnaeus, a Swedish botanist,
of
with other ideas and sensations, forming ideas.
Linnaeus
activity
manto act in one
scientific focus to the process of thought, Carolus
and
from an exter-nal
mans past experiences,
sensations are often associated together
in
sciences.
because
actions
by the constant
eff ort to
the
body to the
that
that do not result immediately
stimulus
it
to link
wascharac-terized way or another. These
oriented
1749. In it, he attempted to
explain
he attempted
progress in the natural sciences, which
impacted
social
as
and wit to survive.
mid-to late 18th century
by rapid
the
the
Once
human patterns
will note, the
such
to the elements to see which
began studying
these
members,
intelligence,
traits in plants and animals
explain
unfit
41
Man, His Frame, His Duty,
and His Expectationsin also engaged in practices to weed out weak, dis-eased, malformed,
THEORY
(borrowing
John
somewhat
Locke) published
his
from
philoso-pher
most influential
significantly Charles
impacted
(evolution).
biological
Darwin, in fact, credited
theories
These
ideas
of behavior.
Leclerc with being th
42
CRIME
first
AND
modem
BEHAVIOR
author
of the
time
to
treat
evolution
Contrary to
as a
many economists of the time
believed that increasing fertility rates and populations
scientific principle.
would provide James
Burnett,
Lord
Monboddo
productivity
(17141799)
provision Burnett, a Scottish judge, is credited of the first to promote evolutionary
with being another ideas, in particular,
the idea of natural selection. InThe of Language (1773), of language familiar
Origin and Progress
Burnett analyzed the development
as an evolutionary
process; he clearly
was
with the ideas of natural selection, although
diff ered with Leclerc in his support humans
he
of the notion that
were related to apes.
Erasmus
Darwin
who
Leclercs
ideas
Galton (see subsequent
Darwin from
and
Galton).
Linnaeus,
Latin to
Darwin
translating
to
heart
was
1794 and 1796, discussed and
on
Charles
also integrated
sections
ideas
Linnaeuss
English and publishing
about plants, The
the
used
Darwin
Hartleys
Linneauss
Jean-Baptiste
published
theory
[17441829]
among the lower for existence
Darwin
In
1798,
economist,
(and
of
Population,
struggle His
for main
result
in
believe
later
argued
by
Lamarck
at
the natural
existence
increased food. the
As a society
most (and
often
events
that
die).
late
of the fittest
to
about
to
Charles natural
(a phrase coined
increases for
in scarce
becomes
naturalist,
section
on the
1802. Lemarck
mentored
on Leclerc),
Recherches sur lOrganisation (Research
by
who pub-lished
des Corps Vivans
Organization
of Living Things)
was among the first to attempt
in
to clas-sify
invertebrates and was among the first to use the
during the lifetime stronger
of an organism (e.g., larger or
muscles) are
generations,
passed along to
making them
subsequent
better suited for survival (or
better adapted). Lemarck
is
considered
theory
organisms
through
resources. population
the
first
of evolution, came into
instead
to
articulate
although
being through
of sharing
generations
adaptations of the
a
he believed spontaneous
a common
and (2) that
because of their
source.
organisms
environments
necessity (or lack thereof) (the use-it-or-lose-it
resources,
strata
He explained
marriage)
French
His
develop
or because
of particular
charac-teristics
aspect).
overpopulated,
socioeconomic
serve to
(17441829)
theory was characterized by two main arguments: (1) and po-litical that organisms progress from simpler to more complex Principle
populations
over
war, disease, famine)
(e.g., abstinence,
function.
the
and conditions
(e.g.,
on the
competition
competition
of
Essay
proposed
was that
bottom
growth restraint
in
arguments
Lamarck
was a
generation
demographer An
he
scientists
was instrumental in
Leclerc (see preceding
Lamarck
(17661834)
English
which
premise
primarily those
same
in
of a struggle
acquiredcharacters, in which characteristics developed
pos-sibly
of a more
(see Jean-Baptiste
published
depiction
by subsequent
and
and survival
more poverty
by Herbert Spencer; see Herbert Spencer [18201903]
coherent
an
classes.This
others)
the
advocating a theory of soft inheritance, or inheritance of
Many scholars
of inheritance
Malthus
Malthus,
(and
selection
would result in
was applied
plants and animals
that Robert
and
that
which
section).
Thomas
growth
argued
often not keep pace with
term biology. He primarily is known for promoting and
(reproduction)
were the forerunners
Lamarck
Malthus
Between
Zonomia,
of association
taxonomies).
theory
population
his own book of po-etry
of generation
Darwins propositions well-defined
works from
Botanic Garden (1791).
concept
of a society, of resources could
Jean-Baptiste
took
Erasmus Darwin, grandfather of Charles Darwin and Francis
more workers and would increase the
section).
(17311802)
One individual
who
that
control
could
Impact
of
Positivism
some popula-tion
and that
The
suf-fer
moral
serve the
In the
early
1800s, following
proposals, sciences, revolutionary
and
the
and theories during
struggle
the for
advancement related
to the
discussions
existence,
of
of argu-ments, biologi-cal Malthuss
groundbreakin
BIOLOGICAL
ideas also
were being propagated about the place
and function
of
developments
and
the
perspectives
to
to the application
human
behavior
Adolphe
within
and
social groups.
Quetelet
Andre-Michel
Despite the
Comte
Known
Guerry
scholar
(18021866)
overwhelming
complexity
of
Sociology,
who published
Comte
Plan de Travaux
Scientifiques NecessariesPour Rorganizer la Socit
of social behavior.
was interested
of Society) in 1822. In this
Both
such as crime
was controversial
of Scientific Studies Necessaryfor the Reorganization
techniques
at
the
phe-nomena,
that it
to the in-vestigation
men were primarily
in unraveling the statistical
social problems
(Plan
of social
Guerry were convinced
was possible to apply statistical
(17981857)
as the Father
a French
Sciences
(17961894)
Quetelet and Auguste
Social
43
man within social groups. These
were instrumental
of biological
Statistics
THEORY
laws underlying
and suicide. This
time,
because
it
idea
contradicted
prevailing belief in free will. Quetelets mostinfluential
work, he argued for a
publication wasSur L Homme et le Developpementde meta-physical, ses Facults, ou Essai de Physique Sociale (Treatise on which all societies
universal law of three phases:(1) theological, (2) and (3) scientific, through
Man; 1835), in
have, or will, progress. The theological stage,
stage is
characterized
animistic
explanations
behaviors causes.
for
and a lack The
metaphysical
origin
stage. the
origin
which
stage, is
Positive
can
situations,
in the
forces
The what
(fate,
Comte
but a focus
and
three
experimentation,
and logic
among components.
the
behavior
to understand
of societies
in
connectedness
behavior.
Positivism
social evolution, progress.
is
all
one
attempting
the of
elements the
first
to explain
theories
This
preliminary
development
of
gained through
that
stage also is exemplified
use of
quantitative,
procedures (e.g.,
statistical
procedures
on
work emphasized the possibility
of social laws, similar
social
Guerry
of sociology
relationships,
by the to
expanded
mapsto evaluate
of human actions, forming
Quetelet and
development
in
logical, rational
publication,
measurements could provide insight into
the possibility
Comtes scientific
A subsequent
a basis for the
to the physical laws
govern the behavior of other objects and events in
nature.
actual sense experience
observation).
against persons, and a proxy for edu-cation
and developed shaded
the regularity
how societies
containing
remarkably stable across the other factors.
and to
involved
document
found that these rates varied by region but remained
Comte claimed that the only real knowledge
is knowledge (i.e.,
of
one-page
moral
crime and suicides by age,sex, region, and season. He
that social the behavior of groups within societies and empha-sized the
physics prompted
Moral Statistics of France (1833),
this technique
attempted to apply scientific principles (i.e., the to
phrase social
(school instruction).
outcomes,
Comtes positiv-ism
an 1829
property, crimes
for
by observation,
and attempt
of the
maps of France, shaded in terms of crimes against
Essay on
stages are characterized
method)
Comte had earlier used. Quetelets
statistics in
control.
the relationships
scientific
physics, a term that
accident)
concern
on the
Quetelet called this process social
Comte to adopt the term sociology instead. more ad-vanced Guerry is known for developing the idea of stage,
man,
of meanvalues to form a
distribution.
appropriation
of
called the posi-tive
is little
normal
or
origins
most advanced
point, there
of actions,
man
events,
abstract
At this
primitive
religious,
stage is slightly
of causes.
the scientific
most
of interest
and identifies
as the
the
by supernatural,
which he described the average
developed from the calculation
wereinstrumental
and criminology,
of measuring, determining and identifying
in the
illustrating the nature of
patterns and regularities
situations.
make
decisions based on evidence. Statistical
had been used for some time in the hard sci-ences math, physics), but a positivist
required that the use of such
and
Evolution
perspective
measurement techniques
be applied to the social sciences, as well.
Heredity
As the search for explanations behavior improved
through
of individual
the application
and social of statistica
44
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
methods and the positivist insistence that the only real knowledge wasthat obtained through systematic observation
(i-e.,
the
scientific
the nature and potential more sophisticated had earlier
theorists
the
propositions increasingly
about
passage of certain
acquired
progress
source of biological
earlier
hinted
that
natural
Spencer
An early
from
man, others (Thomas
Huxley in 1863,
in 1864) had actually applied animal
and from
Lombroso
Spencer articulated Its
Law and
behavior
predispositions.
criminologist
of
Charles
theorist
Cause (1857),
Darwins
On the
and
philosopher,
of evolution
in
prior to the
publication
Progress:
Origin of Speciesin
Spencer
proposed
that
everything
developed
from
a single
source
complexity
Wallace
his theories to the human
(18351909)
and
criminals,
Lombroso
and founder
Classical
a theory
Alfred
Among the first to apply Darwins findings to criminal
into the nature and
(18201903)
social
evolution
first.
Cesare
Malthuss
of society
inquiries
and behavioral
English
and
could and should be applied to the development of
positivist criminology. Herbert
selection
(soft inheritance),
benefited
the
became Lemarck
mid-1800s
sophisticated
about
Although
generation to generation
in
beliefs
of man within society
and grounded.
discussed the
traits from
method),
had
in
the
and
with the passing of time
1859.
universe
progressed
in
and generations,
concepts
also coined the phrase survival of the fittest, in 1864, after reading Darwins Onthe Origin of Species,and he applied the idea of natural selection to society.
of the Italian
which
held
of human
School of
that
nature.
crime
was
Instead,
a
using
was inherited
argued, in essence, that criminality
and that
phrase was coined be identified criminal
someone
born
by his student,
by physical
criminal
(this
Enrico Ferri) could
defects,
which confirmed
a
as savage, or atavistic.
Lombroso
published
Criminal
Manin 1876, help-ing
to establish the newly forming
criminology. theory,
Inspired
who did not commit of biological
Positive
School of
by Charles Darwins evolutionary
he believed that criminals
people result
Italian
drawn from earlier perspectives, such as phys-iognomy, Lombroso
becoming differentiated yet being characterized byin-creasing integration of the differentiated parts. Spencer
trait
an
Lombroso rejected the estab-lished
School,
characteristic
was
were not as evolved as
crime and that
crime is a
diff erences between criminals
and
noncriminals.
Charles
Darwin
Although
the
(18091882)
A central focus of Lombrosos work is the concept
preceding
development of scientific thought heredity and evolution, the impact
of Charles
theories in two
the
of atavism. Atavism describes the reappearance in an
on the concepts of
organism of characteristics of some remote ancestor
paragraphs illustrate
most scholars primarily Darwin.
main publications:
Darwin described (1)
Onthe
note
one
Origin of
also
Species by Meansof Natural Selection, or the Preservation of Favored Racesin the Struggle for Life (1859) The
Descent of
Man and Selection in
and (2)
Relation to
Sex
In
On the that
of natural
conclusions
selection.
and supported
evidence that boat, the
Origin of Species, Darwin
detailed the
organisms evolve over generations through
a process
The
that
exhibits
mean
atavism,
a reversion
approach.
he collected
Darwin
reached
his observations during
his
through
a sea voyage on a
HMS Beagle, during the 1830s. Descent of
Sex applied
Man and Selection in
Relation to
Darwins theory to human evolution and
described the theory of sexual selection. Although he
to
Lombroso
that criminals
his later
that an earlier
developing
Although
methods
traits
outlook,
or
believ-ing
shared physi-cal
with primitive thought
for
a typological
types)
can
on the evolutionary
to categorize were flawed,
that
humans. In social and
to criminality.
his conclusions
main criminal
It
this concept
factors can contribute
Lombroso reached
his
behavior,
modern criminals
(stigmata)
cadavers of executed criminals of atavism,
a throwback.
were throwbacks
years, he eventually
environmental
is,
approached
scale. He believed that characteristics
(1871).
theory
after several generations of absence.It often refers to
his
by studying
the
physical indicators system (with
four
these individuals. and
most of the
he listed failed to distinguish criminals from
matchedsamples of noncriminals, he was among th
BIOLOGICAL
first to apply scientific principles to the collection of
The
Criminal
THEORY
45
Physique
data and to usestatistical techniques in his data analy-sis. In addition of the
to examining
criminal,
he also
the physical characteristics
evaluated
which crime is committed. to study female
atavistic They
determined
that
criminal
traits
throwbacks
had strong
and long
under
that females
jaws,
about
one third
thirds
werecriminaloids
and
off enders
were born
big teeth, types
in-herited
criminals,
ancestors.
bulging
(minor
off enders)
two
who only
crime.
behaviors
were inherited,
Lombroso
also
ar-gued
that environmental factors can play animportant role in crime.
He speculated that alcoholism, climate
changes, and lack of education
may contribute
to
Lombrosos
path to
work
started
determine
behavior.
His
disagreed
other
a hereditary
student,
instead
focus
individual
and to blame criminality Italian
(18511934),
Ferri
the
criminal
(18561929),
on the physiological,
to examine the interactive
physical factors,
Another
on
source for
Enrico
with Lombrosos
preferring
researchers
factors, on alack
eff ects of
of moral sensibility. Raffaele
by punishment. of individuals
the quality of the society and ensure its survival. Like he believed
crime
was
more the
result
of
a lack
in
moralsensibilities rather than a physiological problem. Lombrosos
conclusions
were challenged
refuted by Charles Goring (18701919), The
English
statistical
Convict in 1913. In a carefully
comparison
and noncriminals,
of
diff erences between the two and
weight (criminals essentially
criminal,
types continued.
controlled
3,000 criminals
no significant
populations
were slightly
discredited
although
more than
Goring found
and
who wrote
physical
except height
smaller).
Hisfind-ings
Lombrosos idea of the born
research into the search for criminal
Kretschmer
psychiatrist,
published
of
body type
with three categories of behaviors (cyclothe-mic,
schizothemic,
shape, to
the
serious
nature.
off enses,
and
Cyclothemes
off enses
were either
(thin
states
Although
and
unable
that
associated
put
much consideration
behavior
and
its
of
their
with
with sexual off enses.
physique,
he did
the
not
nature
of
environment.
this search
wasa con-temporary
Dissatisfied
Ernest
with
Gorings
12 years conducting
research
nature of manto disprove Hisfirst influential
Man (1939),
prisoners
or
to develop a typology
Harvard anthropologist
Hooten spent
Lombroso.
tall)
emotions.
the complex
who continued
(18871954).
to support
14,000
with into
interaction
Goring,
and
by highly charged
control
attempted
behaviors
Among those
findings,
to
associated displastics Kretschmer
antisocial
Displasticscould be any
body type but werecharacterized emotional
more
more serious violent
asthenic
athletic (wide and strong).
tended
were
were
the
were
a round
and
that
Schizothemes
and apathetic, committing
pyknik)
by soft skin,
muscle development,
less
in
athletic,
displastic).
and typified
and little
commit
which he described three (asthenic,
and
manic-depressive
Crime and the
Garofalo also suggested the elimination who posed athreat to society, to improve
German
Ernst
associated
of natural crime, fo-cusinginto the criminal
developed a theory
1925,
outwardly
categories
Hooten
Garofalo
on those acts that could be prevented or reduced
Ferri,
a
In
as research-ers
with some
Character, in
and social factors
contemporary,
crime
body
Physique and
Kretschmer
criminality.
of a persons
also became popular
to link
diff erences.
intellectual
Although primarily remembered for his claim that criminal
observable
foreheads,
remaining
categorizations
or physique attempted
of off enders constituted
of all criminals. The
commit
build
and
(18881964),
passion.
serious
to earlier evolutionary
arms. These
occasionally
speculating
to be criminals by
Lombroso
their
conditions
He also was among the first
criminality,
were morelikely
the
Evaluations
and 3,000
Goring and publication,
documented
his study
of
non-prisoner
controls
in
10 states. Hooten was morerigorous than his methods, differentiating
Goring in
his subjects on the basis
of types of crime and by geographic, ethnic, and racial backgrounds. Hooten agreed with Lombrosos idea of a born criminal
and argued that
by individuals inadaptable, warped, the only
most crime
who were biologically mentally
inferior,
and physically debased.
way to solve crime
was by eliminating
who were morally,
organi-cally
stunted
and sociologically
and
He argued that
mentally, or physically unfit,
segregating them in an environment of society
was committed
people or by
apart from the rest
46
CRIME
AND
As
BEHAVIOR
Hooten was conducting
his research and
developing his conclusions, the sociological world was developing factors
an interest
and social
of criminal the
in the contribution
environments
behavior.
University
of
development
research
Chicago (i.e., the
out
of
Chicago
School)
stressed the impact
of the social environment
rather
than
biology
an individuals of crime.
of his failure
Hooten
His work also led to focus
was widely criticized
cellular level (genotypes)
The
While
Mendel
because Francis
(18221884)
scholars
debated
throwbacks
to earlier
Darwins
claims
work provided
father
Austrian
of genetics
work
was largely
because of the
quantitative
was in
2000).
ignored
until
popularity
of
to the next
most critical
state.
variations
the
is
known
Although after
as
that
the persistence of traits from
gem-mules
arguing
He published
theories),
those traits
of
Charles
suggested by Darwin predates that
cells
determine
bodies shed
that carried specific traits from the parent generation.
Darwin insight-fully
generation
may not have been present in the parent and
doing so,
and
analytic
in
whether
prominent
abilities
men of the time
over several generations. a book called
he concluded
that
this
(1883) in their
human
biographical in-formation
Hereditary human
abil-ity
work with a survey
which he attempted
interest
and
abilities
in
to
science
Galton stimulated interest in the question of
(and coined the phrase) nature versus nurture. Although and
Galtons work at that point was useful
had resulted
in the
development
of numerous
measurement tools (e.g., the questionnaire; analysis)
and statistical
correlation, that
to
determine
exhibited and
diff whether if
published
raised
his
erences
if
twins
who
in
Powers
1883,
for future
debate.
similar
were
work
deviation, with twins
inquiries
into the
Galton surveyed sets of
twins
raised
fingerprint
(standard
was his
whether
asThe
Relative
In
for the theory of inheritance through his experi-ments
it
provided the impetus
twins
the
concepts
regression),
nature-versus-nurture
Mendel, however, wasthe one who developed sup-port
with the cultivation and breeding of pea plants,
Galton
werethe result of heredity (nature) or encouragement
even though
that those traits could develop at any later point.
techniques
Hefollowed
whether
about
set
in humans. In
and he collected
which
wasinherited.
of
pangenesis explained
within
in
theories
animals
was interested
of English scientists ap-plication
and
and development in his laws
traits to the following
Darwins
his results in
Genius (1869),
part
proposed that a parent organisms gemmules could transmit
a cousin
makesense of what he was ob-serving.
about numerous
the
one generation to the next.
that
organism to the subsequent
Evolution:
Eugenics
domestic
measurement
was hereditary,
(nurture).
Mendels research theorized
of
to help him He first
ability
Mendels
1900 (in
Darwins
support to some of the propositions
He discussed transmission
and
Galton,
Reading
traits
he developed
and with annuals (in particular, bees) provided scientific
of inheritance,
observable
Darwinism
and
of
to chart the families
Mendelsexperiments with plants(in particular, peas)
Darwin
in
pieces
of crime.
biological theories of behavior.
1868, although
work
a harmonic
social development resulted in significant advancesin
Darwin.
Heredity Social
(18221911)
the
evidence that
theories
scientist,
(Henig,
overlooked
of his laws of inheritance to individual
in
Gallon
techniques was being redis-covered.
one generation
making it one of the
an
investi-gated
were atavistic
waslargely
of research related to biological Mendel,
of and
periods, a piece of re-searchon a path to study variations
historical
were passed on from
(or inherited),
and
were born and
was published in 1866
This traits
of at the
Darwin, that statistics, biology, and sociology reached
on heredity in plants that at the time it
instead
at the
and his myopic
determinism.
whether criminals
Implications Eugenics
It
Gregor
on the study of traits
level (phenotypes).
as crucial to the develop-ment
to consider social factors
focus on biological
characteristics, passedfrom one generation to the next.
of social
to the
Sociological
and the scientific support for dominant and recessive
in
who diff
fraternal
environments.
were
erent
identical
environments exhibited
simi-larities
This
work
History of Twins as a Criterion of
Nature
and
Nurture
Galton developed the concept
most controversial
in
was
of
1875.
of eugen-ics,
and abused philosophy.
Eugenics advocated the encouragement, through th
BIOLOGICAL
THEORY
47
couplesto reproduce
to the study of mans behavior, its potential biological
in an eff ort to improve human hereditary traits. Part
roots, and to the study of mansrole and obligation in
of his proposals included
society.
distribution of incentives, ofable
to
manipulating
encourage the reproduction
discourage reproduction
those that, of
manipulating
without
reproduction
encouragement,
it
was the natural state mediocrity, a
asregression
toward
of social and
Prevailing thought
at the time
ideals, in the belief that these
was receptive to such policies
would reduce
natural
(most
human
selection,
survival
resulted in perfect condi-tions
which scientific
behavior.
principles
A compilation
and statistical
of social
applied to the structure
and function
competition
Mendels
Darwinism,
originally
of social processes
(e.g., government),
only the strongest
and to
of these philosophies
resulted in the theory
belief that
moral notably
analysis could be applied to the human condition
or eliminate poverty, disease, genetic deformities, ill-nesses, and crime. Eugenics was originally conceived as
of scientists
and evolution,
under
and organizations
progress.
work
on transmutation,
of the fittest,
Comtes soci-ology,
Guerrys social physics and
and the
Darwin)
He believed
of society) to revert to
mean, which he viewed as repressive
individual
Quetelet and
and
or eliminat-ing
less fit.
phrase that came to be clarified the
fit
Malthuss struggle for existence,
Galtons pro-posalsstatistics,
mores and values rather
who were considered
man (and thus
morals
of the more
of the less fit.
were to change social than forcibly
social
with the primary
drives all social
progress and
survive.
contribution
was
critical
to
the
ideas
of
social Darwinism, explaining how observable charac-teristics (phenotypes)
a concept of social responsibility to improve the lives
wereinheritable and how atrait
to
mayappearin one generation that had not appeared in
selectively breed good traits in and bad traits out, but
manyprior generations.These atavisms, or throwbacks
of everyone in society by encouraging individuals many who followed toward
less
than
would use Galtons
desirable
to
philosophies
After Galtons eff orts, others attempted to document that crime
was afamily trait. In 1877, Richard
(18411883)
published The
Pauperism,
Diseaseand
descendants
of
most of the Jukes family not all biologically
1,000
descendants
comparing wedlock who
to
came
a
were criminals,
a
man
woman
with another
of
noble
bloodline
they
named
Martin
birth
to
his
conceived
he later retracted
that the legitimate whereas the illegitimate
evolutionary
evolution)
the
traced
within
of
wed-lock
Goddard
could
were interested
by
of traits,
or controlled
through
Other scientists studying of
whether social this type
of
political
(18401910),
man (e.g., crime) problems
could
manipulation.
be
Many,
economist
William
advocated
a laissez-faire
philosophy
with respect to the survival and prog-ress noting that
problems like
poverty are
process of natural selection and survival of the fittest would
mean a natural reduction in the problems
social
Darwinism,
merging
Galtons propositions and replication
in
(progress,
of societies,
social engineering or interference;
of
were crucial
the lens of social 1800s
Hooten, and
Malthuss ideas
leads
early
social
others
on competition
evolution,
1900s,
were debating
behavior,
Spencers insistence to
led to viewing
Darwinism. and
others
criminal
among societies, evolution
however, inevitably
the late
of biology in
Mendels work on the heritability
in
Sumner
Goring,
Darwinism
that ensued after
became interested
behaviors
however, such as noted
During
Developments
be engineered
through
man through
of eugenics, and after the rediscovery
be physical or behavioral
Hodgson, 2004). Viewing society through the lens of
feeblemindedness.
Social
Darwinists
of these traits.
his conclu-sions)over time (without
wascharacterized
could
the natural result of inherent inequalities and that the
descendants out
Social
more undesirable
Graham
period,
useless appendages)
of whether social development
manipulation
controlled
bloodline waswholesome,
bloodline
(e.g., violence). the question
Kallikak,
woman, one of ill repute.
concluded (although
were
study, published
who were conceived
he
that
prostitutes,
H. Goddard (18661957), of
the
Crime,
and found
members (although
his descendants
from
A Study in
Another family
Henry
Dugdale
which he traced the
Ada Jukes
related)
or welfare recipients. in 1912 by
Jukes:
Heredity, in
matriarch
an earlier
(e.g., vestigial tails,
ends.
while
the role
were quietly and survival
that individual Mendels
ideas
o
48
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
the heritability
of traits,
Darwins ideas on natural
would
result
in
the
reduction
of
elimination
of these
selection and evolution, and Galtonsideas on eugenics
undesirable conditions. Eugenicists, on the other hand,
into
encouraged
warped interpretations and
social
and applications
of eugen-ics
active intervention.
It is this
Darwinism.
active intervention
although The
Legacy
of
Eugenics
and
Darwinism
Activists
in the late 19th and
regulating
Social
promoted
unwanted With unprecedented
immigration
early 20th centuries, increasing
crime,
problems.
American society
poverty,
suicide,
struggled
and
Some, such as the theorists
School, saw the solution
of the
in sociological
a complete
description
Chicago
in eugenics.
of the
misapplica-tion
of eugenics is beyond the scope of this chapter, it
is important
for the student of biological theories to
understand the impact that eugenics had on the study
of human genetic qualities. Positive eugenics aims to of desirable
qualities,
and
negative eugenics aims to discourage the reproduction of undesirable The
qualities, to improve
underlying
negative traits
are inherited
generations. as intelligence presumed These
focused
and on hereditary
to
both positive and
and passed down through
Early eugenicists
on traits
& Kurzman,
traits
and to
fo-cused
of incentives)
among those
discourage
2004).
Galtons philosophies,
on societal changes (the provision to encourage reproduction
such
diseases or defects
be genetic (Barrett
eugenicists, following
popularity
United
were
written
who had ailments
were prohibited
sterilized. This
from
included
marry-ing
individuals
or mentally ill.
of eugenics spread throughout
the
States during the late 1800s and early 1900s.
Charles
Davenport
American
biologist,
(18661944), directed the
an
influential
Cold Spring
Harbor
Laboratory in 1910 and founded the Eugenics Record Office, hiring
Harry
H. Laughlin (18801943)
as
Between 1907 and 1914, several states had passed
reproduction
sterilization laws. Laughlin, however, perceived these as ineff ective and full to draft amodel
with positive among those
defined
the
those
that
including the
were upheld Court
in
until
1981.
With
in
More
were forcibly
the
the
case
than
increased about the
of
by the Buck
v.
by
the very poor,
deaf, the insane,
deformity. These
64,000
sterilized
Laughlin
be targeted
criminals,
as constitutional
1927
model law would
blind,
who had a physical
concerns
with negative traits.
n.d.). In this
alcoholics,
him in 1922
was passed by 18 additional
populations
forced sterilization, epileptics,
of holes, prompting
law that
and so-ciety. states (Lombardo
humanity
premise is that
be genetic
to prevent
state laws
deemed to befeeble-minded
In theory, eugenics argued for the improvement reproduction
and
prob-lematic,
superintendent (Kevles, 1985).
of biological explanations of behavior.
increase the
to
became
viewed as such.
the use of contraception
marriages. Individuals
and forcibly
The
that
was not initially
pregnancies,
thought
social
explanations,
whereas others turned to solutions implied Although
with
other
it
and
practices
U.S. Supreme
Bell
and
individuals
continued
in
33 states
under these laws. immigration quality
increased came
and
purity
of the
races.
In practice, however,and following alogical progres-sion Responding to these concerns, Madison Grant(18651937), of thought, some believed eugenics to
alike in their through
survival
more likely take
to
place in
out.
of the fittest, assert that
a natural
undesirable, weeded
and It
is
unfit for
opposed government as poverty
Darwinists and eugenicists are
goal to improve
this
humanity social
Darwinists
with
individuals reason
that
intervention
and crime,
and society
this improvement
process,
believing
were would
weak, diseased, being eventually
social
mostinfluential
books about racial integrity, The Passing
of the Great Race(1916).
from reproducing, or even be eliminated. Although social
an American lawyer, wrote one of the first and
meanthat
persons with undesirable traits should be prevented
(i.e., white) racial line He warned against supported hygiene
other, and any
problems such
that
natural
forces
miscegenation (race against it.
advocated
the
greater
He also
of
to any
Nordic bloodlines,
warned that undesir-ables
numbers
Nordic population eradication
mixing) and
He argued for racial
mixing would taint
breed in the superior
Nordic
Nordic race was superior
making them impure.
Darwinists
into
legislation because the
Grant wrote that the
wasthe pinnacle of civilization.
and if
would
overrun
not controlled.
undesirables
from
He th
BIOLOGICAL
human gene pool coupled with the promulgation Grants
work
was immensely
avoided,
instrumental
in
Immigration
Act of 1924,
the
of immigrants
was translated translated
German, in
word
shortly
after its translation work
1928,
restrictions founded
eradicating
regions,
His book also In 1925, it
was
Nordic was replaced
into
German,
defects.
in full swing,
eff ort to understand of human
or
humanitys gene
Genome Project is one no-table the genetic
beings
preventing
makeup
with an eye toward
inheritable
diseases and
Advances in science and the development
understand
provide
of
hope that struggles to better
the transmission
traits
and development
and characteristics
is especially important
theories laws
Human
ethical guidelines
This
would later
bible.
of hu-man
are not yet abandoned. to the future
of biological
of criminality.
and immigration
E. S. Gosney (18551942)
Human
Betterment
whose primary
scientific
the
Hitler, who read the book
with sterilization
the
entity
his
modern eff orts to improve
pool persist. The
the num-bers and properties
desirable
Europe.
which
Aryan. Adolph
Grants
In
the less
was
passage of
several languages.
by the
call
and
and
which restricted
and eastern
into
into
drafting
from
such as southern
popular
49
Despite the fact that the word eugenicsis usually
of
more desirable and worthy racial types.
THEORY
Foundation,
purpose
POST-WORLD
an
WAR
BIOLOGY
wasto compile and
II
AND
RESEARCH
ON
BEHAVIOR
distribute propaganda about compulsory sterilization. Gosney hired Paul E. Popenoe (18881979)
Body
to assist
Physique
and
Crime
him in the study of the impact of these sterilization laws
in
California.
Their
collaboration
publication
of Sterilization
Summary
of Results of 6,000
19091929
(Gosney
Germany to support of
Hereditarily
for
Human
Operations in
Offspring.
were used to justify
Nuremburg Law
for
Protection
Honor, and the the
of
or unfit
of the
Laws,
German
really
meantanyone not deemedto be German) and stripped so-called undesirables of their citizenship. population
control
justify
World WarII,
the eradication
policies based on
and an additional
Nazi use of its philosophies to of approximately
1925,
marriage restrictions
6 million Jews
However, sterilizations,
based on fitness, and prohibitions
of racial intermarriage
continued
counseling, ironically
developed by Paul Popenoe as a
eugenic tactic to ensure
for decades.
Running contrary on the
to prevailing sociological
environmental
correlates
chose to instead employ of
the
fittest,
perfectly
of
beliefs about
Lombrosos
formed
temperament
in
1939,
docu-ment
crime,
man,
from
and this
disposition. ideal
his classification
was
Galtons
type, in
which
formed
Any combination
1940s, Sheldon known
with
that
disorders
Heclaimed a physical
in personality
system,
Sheldon
and
perfectly
associated
and behavior.
basis for all variations During the
joined
empha-ses
Darwins survival
criminal
physique
of both personality
and body build.
developed and tested as somatotyping.
(1) ectomorphs,
He
who were
thin, delicate,flat, andlinear; (2) endomorphs, who were heavy or obese, with a round, soft shape; and (3)
me-somorphs,
who wererectangular, muscular,and sturdy.
Marriage
marriage between fit individu-als,
also became a viable area of practice.
Hooten
attempted to
corresponding physical builds (Sheldon 1940).
created three classifications: 3 to 5 million others brought an im-mediate
halt to its proliferation.
and
of aclassification system of personality patterns and
deviated
eugenics enjoyed widespreadsupport in manycountries prior to
in
which pro-hibitedeugenics. Sheldon argued for an ideal
mixing of Germans with Jews (which
Although
Kretschmer
H. Sheldon (18981977)
of Lombroso
and personality (specifically, crime) through the develop-ment
persons
and
WarII, research into the biological roots of
a directlink between biology (specifically, physique)
Aryan ideal. The
Blood
Reich Citizenship
1876,
William
Nazi
Furthermore,
1935 consisted
German
in
Prevention
Nazi Germany enacted
model of the
Laws enacted in
the
A
World
crime persisted. Following in the footsteps
policies of racial
against Jews and other undesirable meet the
After
the
California,
& Popenoe 1929), used by
hygiene and racial cleaning that
who did not
in
Betterment:
its 1934 Law for the
Diseased
these arguments
resulted
In
subsequent studies
Sheldon argued that
of juvenile
delinquency,
mesomorphic types were more
likely to engage in crime, ectomorphs
were morelikel
50
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
to commit suicide, and endomorphs to be mentally ill.
Although Sheldon linked
and psychological both
characteristics
were the result
that
conclusion
Also
during
the
Glueck
longitudinal
valid
late
control
groups
somatotypes. They
1940s
into and
and
early
Glueck
juvenile added
1950s,
are
for
delinquency
to
Sheldons
suggested the addition
Sheldons
proposition
morelikely to commit
they
studied,
the
disproportionately
that
crime.
us-ing
list
of
of a fourth
somatotype
among
genetic research
of inheritance,
influence
our
genetic
greater
behaviors is still
that
another.
traits
with
mid-1950s
of the
Mendels
of how genes
evolving.
Discovery
took
genes were involved
understanding
hereditary
began
our understanding
code in the
recognizing
mesomorphs
Among the juveniles
mesomorphic represented
Although
the
conducted
type they called balanced. In their research, they found support
poor and minority populations overpowered the quest for knowledge.
laws
methods.
Eleanor
research
that
he failed to support
statistical
and
believed that any such research would be usedto op-press
physical
and concluded
of heredity,
with
Sheldon
were morelikely
us beyond
in
heredity to a
process through
are passed from
of
which
one generation
to
Part of this discovery process wasthe clarifica-tion
of
the
structure
and
function
which carry human genetic
of
chromosomes,
material
was
delinquents
by
Chromosomes
a ratio of nearly two to one as compared with nonde-linquent Human cells normally have 22 pairs of chromosomes, controls. In addition, whereasonly about 14% plus a pair of chromosomes that determines sex, for of delinquents could beclassified as ectomorphs, nearly 40% of the nondelinquent controls could be placed in this category. Instead of concluding that body type led to
delinquency,
participation
the
Gluecks (1956)
in delinquency
(for
morelikely to get arrested) a mesomorphic
which individuals
may be facilitated
explanations
popularity
their inherent
for
by having
implication prejudice
much of
often
and discrimination.
sciences.
sciences
and
in
the
social
Once again, criminologists
turned to evaluating
the internal
and
was mis-used In addi-tion,
the 1950s and 1960s brought significant natural
Sex
chromosomes
advances
sperm
of
XY.
carries genetic
chromosome,
Modern
Biological
fetus
aggression
a genetic explanation
have been
met with strong
men
and other scien-tists components
and
are
with
an
termed
and
carries an extra tested
for
some
production
Theories
for violence resistance,
and
In 1992, a conference related to the
Human
withdrawn for attempting to discuss between genes and violence
& Lapp 1994).
embryo
extra
egg, if a Y
will develop into
in
in the
a
Objections by groups who
pattern
other
the
testosterone, research
literature
Given male
sex
the
and
that
Y with
many claims that
more violent. This with scientifically
progress
car-rying
has a normal he
unless he is genetically
reason.
with
usually
never know
Ychromosome,
of behavior
(XYY).
XYY syndrome, asupermale
more aggressive and
Scientific
Y chromosome
will probably
pri-marily not been supported
Genome Project at the University of Maryland hadits
(Murphy
males
a female egg is carrying
the resulting
left
appearance
memories of how research
any particular linkage
material to the females
this chromosomal
were used in the past (eu-genics).
federal funding
the
(XX).
Erroneously
biology
and crime
males carry
abnormally. For example, during the process, some
because of painful linking
XX, and
Y.
During this process, however, things can develop
made
Eff orts to find
X and
malefetus (XY). If the sperm is carrying an Xchromo-some,
association
in
of
termed
During conception,
the sperm that fertilizes
behavioral
processesof the human body.
Genetics
are
Females carry a combination
with the belief that
of inferiority
46.
the resulting embryo will develop into a female
behavior lost
during the 1960s
to justify
the
are
of
a combination
or balanced body type.
Biological
in
that
body type rather than an ectomorphic,
endomorphic,
their
concluded
a total
made inquiry
XYY
chromo-somes
increased
have been males
supposition
are
has
valid research. into
genetic cor-relates
more precise and less speculative.
Although scholars are reluctant to associate criminal behavior with any specific gene,researchers continue to investigate the inheritability
of behavioral traits. Some
of the mostpromising workinvolves the study of twins and adoptees.
BIOLOGICAL
Twin
Galtons
work
become
more
respond
to
between
with
sophisticated
fraternal
of this type
material,
whereas
and share
of the
social
consistent
(and
similarity
between
twins
provide
One of the conducted
pairs
Seventeen
of
pairs
pair
these
was known
Lange found pairs
to
that
2 of the
More followed,
1881
one twin
engaging
but
20%
violent These on the and
twins
by
found
to both
MZ twins twins
and for
(Rowe
supported provided
a genetic
same and
of
sex. 13
each
that
of
conclusions,
who study the link
and genetics are cautious
arguing
that
these types
on behavior.
of
between twins
Whether these similari-ties
are genetic, social, or some combination
of the two
is still open for debate. Studies of adopted individuals constitute
one attempt to resolve this issue.
Adoption
Studies
In
adoption
studies,
the
behavior
of
with the outcomes of their
parents. The
asks
whether
a child
will
adopted
parents or of the biological
is
out the impact
from the influence
research
adoptees
adopted and bio-logical
aim is to separate
of the environment
of heredity. This
exhibit
traits
of
the
parents.
Research indicates that an adoptee
twin
with a biological
MZ twin
crime than other adoptees and that this effect is
both twins
stronger for boys.The findings, from a study of 14,427
among
Rowe
studies
have
evaluated
the
the
chance
other
MZ twin
pairs
correla-tion
of the true
biological for
criminal
serious
and were
in
work
the
1980s
his colleagues. more likely
delinquent
activity.
more delinquent
peers than
This
than
DZ
Moreover, did
DZ
work of Rowe and his colleagues to
delinquency
of a social component.
predisposition
and
in
& the
but also
to
Hutchins
United
Walters and of adoption impact
but
Knowing,
for
has a criminal
also
home. The
in
these
history
both
Sweden
studies, conducted
reinforced
by
the importance determine the
and genetics on criminal
emphasized
difficulties
(Mednick,
conclusions.
as the best way to
example,
social environment
Studies
of adoption
of both environment
behavior
behavior
confirm
White (1989), studies
maybe a genetic factor in
antisocial 1984).
States
A meta-analysis
methodological
careers.
by additional of twins
of
when the
pairs. The
provide evidence that there the
Gabrielli,
Denmark
the
behavior
component
and the same
However,
pairs born in
closeness
in
with their
behavior
problems
in the same
parent whois criminal is morelikely to engagein prop-erty
13
extensive
delinquency
1983). The
evidence
He
with
was especially
C.
Even scholars
criminal
compared was
Christiansen
MZ twins
raised
Danish children adopted between 1924 and 1947,
were supported
be involved
reported
frater-nal link.
a crime.
more lengthy
David that
twins
and
studies
10 of the
DZ twin
genetic
findings
1990s
of
Lange (1929).
one
He found
the
crime
self-reported
research
twin
At least
in criminal
the
crime
O.
was 50%
and
between
compared
1910.
among
between relationship
are
any greater
twins,
of 3,586 twin
and
was criminal only
generally
be equal
DZ
and
Karl
between
these
DZ pairs.
1974,
behavior
that
were of the
in
criminals,
between
twin
twins.
also are theoretical that
social environment.
have some impact
impact
a genetic
have committed
17
criminal
for
were
sophisticated In
than
who
both twins
were known
in only
the
to
simpler
pairs MZ
egg
so the impact
by Johannes
of twins
were
for
Therefore,
twins
and
1920s
genetic
a single
Twins
evidence
earlier
in the 30
these
identical
would
control
controlled).
the influence
studies reveal only that the similarities
is considered
thus
develop
of their
environment,
environment
with the assumption
identical
hypothesizing
social
of genetics from
home are subject to the same treatment
from
for twins.
separate the influence of social factors. There
material. to
are similar
social
studied
genetic
attempt
raised in the same
half
for a genetic component to behavior, it is difficult to
to the so-phistication
DZ twins
develop
environment,
environments
the
about
to
Distinctions and
of research.
have
attempted
[DZ])
MZ twins
studies
have
have contributed
share
all of their
Twin
studies
criticisms.
twins
eggs and
twin
and
(dizygotic
[MZ])
two
twins,
methodological
(monozygotic
from
51
Although twin studies have provided some support
Studies
Since
THEORY
the theoretical
inherent whether
to this approach. an adoptive
parent
no information
on the
provided in the adoptive
parents
definitions
provides
and
of crime
and criminality
also
widely varyin these studies and can be challenged. For example, one study
mayconsider as criminal behaviors
perhaps best classified as antisocial (e.g., using bad language, adultery). Furthermore, these studies do not account for the quantity or quality of social interaction
52
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
experienced within the various settings (adoptive vs. biological).
Finally, the determination that someone
is a criminal
simply
incarceration
is
undetected
Human
and
to
in
researchers
human
consistently
who
Recent
within
that
have
genetic variation
to behavioral
variation
Nearly all of the
behaviors, characteristics, abilities,
samples,
normal
Testosterone levels
these levels
to explain
is produced
(e.g.,
among
to increase
and
extremely
be-havior
throughout
that
prior to
testosterone
aggression instead
of as a re-sponse
makes correlating for
the
stimuli.
athletes increase
controlling
levels to
environmental
stimuli
difficult.
Recent research
behavior)
criminal
environmental
perhaps indicating
to aggression. This behavior
mostfrequently
were still
levels, however, are problematic.
naturally fluctuate
For example, levels
competitions, sub-stantially
across all
aggressive
with attempting
by testosterone
are derived
and conditions
personality,
although
limits.
day and in response to various
individual
studies
Two primary conclusions
from these studies: (1)
cognitive
noncriminal
on the
and adoption
evaluating
behavior.
contributes
worked
however, twin
demonstrated
types of behavior.
studied
does not consider
to have higher testosterone levels when compared with
Problems
are the best source for
erences
or
behaviors.
Genome Project,
studies
basis of a conviction
problematic
criminal
According
diff
on the
malesand females. Criminal samples have beenfound
conducted
by
Ellis in
2003,
are moderatelyto highly heritable, and (2) nonshared
however, has added an evolutionary
environments play a moreimportant
his evolutionary neuroandrogenic theory, Ellis argued
environments and tend to instead
of similar
to,
role than shared
makepeople diff erent from,
their
there
criminal
may be a genetic behavior
but
predispositions
of
levels
of
act
out,
with
reduced
testosterone
also speculated
abilities
reduce
Scholars
not) in a genetic other
potential
testosterone
of crime.
to
brains
control
emotions.
He
of testosterones
eff ects is the result of natural by Darwin.
who study levels
between
the
making a person
that the development
competitive-victimizing
these
and environ-mental selection, as described
on social
does not preclude
explanations
toward
manifestation
However, belief (or
to criminality
biological
predisposition
the
is dependent
factors. link
that
increased
sensitivity to environmental stimuli,
relatives.
Most biological scholars now cautiously conclude that
that
component. In
the
relationship
between
and crime cite as support males
and
females
in
terms
the dif-ferences of
levels
of crime in general and levels of violence in particular. Biochemical
Explanations:
This
Hormones,
Neurotransmitters,
work
biological
involves bodys or
the
bodys
cells
hormones,
or organs
organs.
masculine
explanation
traits,
are
hormones
and estrogens
with female
pregnancy
and
in
cells
associated
are associated
reproductive
of the
other
to
the
treatment
of
derivatives from
urges through
hormones (e.g.,
control for
sex
the introduction
Depo-Provera,
women). This
male
of-fenders
progesterone to of
a brand of birth
has been eff ective in reducing
some types of sex off enses (e.g., pedophilia,
exhibition-ism),
but it has hadlittle or no impact on other crimes
with
with femi-nine
hormone
male sexual
female
behavior
by some
activity
Progesterone is another
primarily
criminal
released
to regulate
Androgens
traits.
for
led
with chemical
Diet
reduce Another
has
or
violence.
associated
processes,
such
as
menstruation.
Premenstrual Dysphoric
Syndrome
and
Premenstrual
Disorder
Researchersalso haveinvestigated the impact of female Testosterone
hormones on behavior in
Testosterone
Although
is
persons
males secrete that
higher
increased
considered
it in levels
levels
of
the
both
sexes
higher levels. of this of
male
secrete
and
two
hormone.
have found
are associated aggression,
both
English cases in 1980 in
premenstrual syndrome (PMS)
testosterone,
Researchers
hormone
violence
sex
with in
violent
in the
off enses.
These
eff orts
women, beginning which two
with
women used
as a mitigating factor in led
to
female
defendants
United States being able to argue reduced culpa-bility due to
PMS
BIOLOGICAL
High levels
Morerecently, a moresevereform of PMS has been identified.
Premenstrual dysphoric disorder (PMDD)
a severe and debilitating by the level
form
of interference
on the ability
of the
the
menstrual process has
woman to engage in the functions
a genetic link
to the
development
Women with a certain genetic structure
resulting
sensitivity
to their
in increased
with aggression.
of
PMDD.
have increased
own normal
symptoms
has examined are
mixed.
and
behaviors
hormones is postpartum
associated
depression syndrome.
mothers experience
in the
with
weeks or
symptoms
months following
and
which
approximately 1% to 2% of these mothers severe symptoms,
such
suicidal or homicidal thoughts,
as
syndrome
has successfully
and
while suff ering from
PMDD, to
its eff ects. Both
however, are controversial
be social constructions
problems instead
of
PMS
concepts,
diagnose as medical conditions,
by some to
there is little
and argued
conditions
(e.g., threats)
Diet, Food
messages between
of the brain, including
emotions, learning, researchers
crime has focused
research
and
on the
with the
response; (2) dopamine,
biological
af-fect
Although
more than
bodys
50 of
bases of
fight-or-flight
which plays a role in thinking
motivation, sleep, attention,
and feelings
manyfunctions, such as sleep, sex drive, anger,
ones body chemistry.
foods, such asfish, eggs, meat, and contain
both
produces serotonin amino
foods),
dopamine
High-protein
many dairy
high levels of the amino acid trypto-phan.
Another
and
may be controlled
(see preceding
acid, tyrosine
is related
to the
norepinephrine.
have suggested that
(also found
in
production
of
These
relation-ships
many aggressive behaviors
with a diet higher in protein and
lower in refined carbohydrates. Carbohydratesspecifically, such
as
white
refined
flour,
refined carbohydrates, white
sugar, and any processed foods sugaralso
are examined
Complex carbohydrates
in the pancreas,
rice,
which in turn
white
refined
with high levels of
as related to
into glucose, which stimulates
problem
of insulin
produces energy for the arc not processed
slowly and result in the rapid release of insulin causing a sharp
decrease in
This
sharp
decline in
blood
into the
blood sugar,
depriving the brain of the glucose necessary for functioning.
be-havior.
are slowly transformed the production
body. Simple or refined carbohydrates
of pleasure and reward; and (3) serotonin, which im-pacts bloodstream, aggression, appetite, and metabolism.
and
Minerals
What one eats impacts
on the
on three of these: (1) norepinephrine,
associated
and learning,
studied
brain
those that
mood, and behavior.
have extensively
these chemicals,
which is
Neurotransmitters
neurons, and have a direct impact
many functions
processes
conditions
Allergies,Sensitivities,
Vitamins,
behavior, they also may directly impact
transmit
and to internal
and environmental
arethe result of our responses and reactions.
products,
In addition to the possibility that human hormones may
that
com-plex
Chemical
changesin our chemistry or changesin our chemistry
high-protein
brain activity.
is extremely
disaggregate.
creates a chicken-and-egg question about
section).
directly impact
to
neurotransmit-ters
processes produce chemical changes in the
body.This
and psychiatric
Neurotransmitters
cells, called
of various
dif-ficult
medical conditions.
chemicals that regulate
in their levels
doubt that there is a direct
nearly impossible
Tryptophan
are chemicals
behaviors, and certain
been used as a
mitigating factor in the legal defense of women accused of crimes
in
whether our responses and reactions are the result of
hallucinations,
mentalconfusion, and
panic attacks. As with PMS and PMDD, postpartum depression
fluctuations
eff ect).
between levels
(e.g., fear, anxiety),
internal is primarily thought to be due to a decreasein pro-gesterone, exhibit
chemicals,
changes are part of the bodys response to environmen-tal
of depres-sion birth,
of
research that
to fluctuations
interaction
Although
female Although
levels
of these neurotransmitters
these
and behavior, this relationship phenomenon
most new
of
may contribute
relationship
physical stress. Another
all
may result in certain
(in a reciprocal
hormones,
of emotional
low
Results from
the impact
With
have estab-lished their levels
researchers
norepinephrine,
53
dopamine, and low levels of serotonin have been as-sociated
of PMS, distinguished
of everyday life. Interestingly,
(abnormal)
is
of
THEORY
proper
sugar
als
54
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
behavior, is particularly sensitive to environmental tox-ins,
triggers the release of hormones such as adrenalin and
such aslead and manganese.Behavioral difficulties,
increasesin dopamine.This combination has beenasso-ciated with increased aggression, irritability, The
state of having chronically
reduced
caused by the excessive production hypoglycemia. Individuals increased difficulty
levels
Hypoglycemia criminal
of irritability, their
Francisco
Supervisor but junk
been used to
1970s
when
George
consuming
food such as Twinkies
days. At trial,
Whitesuff ered from diminished the Twinkie
Defense (Lilly,
populations refined
have indicated
behavioral difficult,
problems
increasing
Other potential
and
disciplinary
of various
vitamins
carbohydrates contain two
and
minerals.
high levels
Facilities
that
produce,
to blame
toxins.
Research
to these types of facilities in-creases
producing
abilities,
behaviors,
store, treat,
wastes are largely
lower
frustration
violence,
and
IQs;
reduc-tions
tolerance,
self-control; andincreases in impulsivity, antisocial
because
and crimino-logical
of the brain and of the general
nervous system, in learning
environmental
promising
of environmental
the impairment central
increased
and
hyperactivity,
crime.
toxins to crime argue that our environment is producing crime by producing neurological damage. and lower-income live
near these facilities
than
not)
may help explain lower
the criminal
classes
to
morelikely
groups to be negatively
by these toxins. This,
the
populations most likely
and as a result are
white and higher-income
from
minority
groups are the ones
according
to the re-searchers,
why minorities
seem
to
catch
and people
the
attention
of
justice system in higher rates than others.
of foods and lead,
Brain
Structure
and
Function
minerals known to cause damage to brain tissue
and impact
the production
Several food
of neurotransmitters.
components
with reactions that
Whereas earlier
have been associated
mayinclude aggressive,violent, or
criminal behavior. Some people may be allergic to or exhibit increased sensitivity to chemicals contained in chocolate (phenylethylamine), (tyramine),
Others
such as monosodium populations
aged cheeses and wine
may react to food
additives,
associated vision),
and B6in comparison
to lack vitamins
to noncriminal
B3
populations.
frontal
the focus
Toxins
lobe
of the
an
area
that
has
of biological investigations into
become
criminal
that
the
the
brain
Some areas of the brain are functions brain
(e.g., speech
and
work together,
and
or event in one area inevitably our understanding
and function
aff ects other
of the brains struc-ture
has significantly
about the relationship
advanced,
we still
between the brain
and many behaviors, such asthose related to crime. In aff ects
brain,
organism. with specific
areas. Although
know little
considered
recognize
but all areas of the
addition, Environmental
theories
with various areas of specialized
modern theories
is a complex
glutamate and food dyes. Criminal
also have been found
biological
brain to be an organ function,
artificial sweeteners (aspartame), and caf-feinea problem
(xanthines).
The
of
with sociological
has shown that proximity
impacted
Once again, refined
of cadmium
impact
Scholars emphasize the fact that
of diet from
types
biological
for the production
related to food intake
may be a culprit. These
particularly
of
write-ups. It is
(or
with
Researchers whostudy the relationship of environ-mental
decreased
and the consumption
associated
and lack
metals.
of the
theories.
criminal
may aff ect behavior.
contributors
allergies
of
consumption
however, to separate the impact
food
due to his
have significantly
other potential factors that
involve
diets
been
aggression,
on human behavior is very
it integrates
nothing
that reducing intake
and
and vegetables
toxins
Cullen, & Ball 2007).
with the
carbohydrates
of fruits
City
Hisargument has come to be known as
Experimentation
Examination
argued that
capacity
have
oc-curredand dispose of hazardous
and soda for several
Whites attorney successfully
hypoglycemia.
and
White killed
Moscone and
Milk after
self-control,
mitigate
example
Dan
of
impulsivity,
levels of these heavy
expe-rience
expressions.
most infamous
Mayor
Harvey
is called
aggression,
emotional
has successfully
behavior. The during the late
San
blood sugar
of insulin
who are hypoglycemic
in controlling
such as hyperactivity,
and anxiety.
we know the
brains
little
about
structure
and
how
the
environment
function.
The frontal lobe and the temporal lobe aretwo parts of the brain examined by researchers interested i
BIOLOGICAL
criminal
behavior.The frontal lobe is responsible for
regulating lobe
and inhibiting
is
responsible
behaviors,
for
and responses Tools
and
to
evaluate
behavior
and
rely
structure,
such
emission
magnetic
tomography,
resonance
and single
computed tomography. These
HPA
An ineff ective
in the inability
childhood caused
imaging,
photon
hormones. Fishbein claimed
the
that
shrink
HPA
HPA
impedes
by damage
to
become
Cortisol
emotions
and
may be caused
its
later
and
depletes
to regulate
A dysfunctional
equipment
as electroencephalography,
tomography,
positron
results
function,
medical
cause
ineff ective.
stimuli. brain
on sophisticated
measurements,
computed
to stressors, con-sciousness,
subjective
to environmental
brain
of important
55
that increased levels of Cortisol, produced in response
and the temporal
emotionality,
production
THEORY
and
behav-ior.
by stress
development,
or it
in
may be
in life.
emis-sion
devices have been
Biosocial
Perspectives
used by researchers to compare the brain structures and
brain
functions
populations.
In addition
many changes after
between
of these
in the
to
Preliminary
physical
and
the
in both structure
providing
neural
studies
off enders
have relied
to
and
technologies
brains
exposure
criminal
indicate
small
the generalizability
before,
the
other
during,
of vio-lent diff
er
many of the studies
of these findings.
which
reduces
Moreover,these
studies also are plagued by questions of whether the brain
causes
changes
the
to
violence
the
brain.
abnormalities
in the
of
early
of
and
neglect,
to
stress.
that
in
of structural
or func-tional
the
has,
resulted
however,
off enses, such
first
the
brains
stress
shown (e.g.,
physiological
normal
exposure to its
after to
and
stress
brain
this
abuse,
responds
produce
found
(inner
enhanced
However,
in
decreased
contribute
to
acceptance
research
development
environments
event.
may result either
to a persons
addition,
the
Cortisol
eff ects
contribute In
a stressful
the
1976
of being
urban,
fight-or-flight
Selfish
disillusion
that
raised high-crime
impulses
in
not
by
Ellis in
purely
1977
(The
illustrated sociological
improved
operate
Dawkins
ex-planations
biological
under
the
faulty
from
resurgence biological scholars
of interest
1950s
to the
in explanations
mid-1970s
factor
in
the
criminal
Modern
brain
biosocial
(i.e., social learning, development
on
the
heritability there
high-stress
mid-1980s led
more closely
theories
as a poten-tial
attempt
conditioning)
to earlier
to
development
of the individual
In contrast
with
behavior.
beliefs about the sociological
victimized.
of behavior
bases. Other advances in the to examine
or
areas) that
the
(e.g.,in the study of genetics) also contributed to the
to
sensitivity
among
by
operating
19752000)
with
would
by emphasizing organism
hope for
the
with current
Publications
Gene) and
writ-ten
was among
theories
of Sociology,
and renewed
publications
disillusion
was a biological
to
biological
New Synthesis, Wilson
express
behavioral
Fall
criminological
in
repeated
by studies
The
environments.
(The and
with
most influential
1975.
to
and
social
Decline
hor-mone
criminality
is supported
of children city,
Wilson in
an individual
Cortisol, which helps to return body functions to
O.
began
assumptions of earlier biological research. Majorscien-tific
that
changes
way a person
under
E.
behavior
perspectives
was Sociobiology:
sociological
within
criminal
One of the
area
criminologists
that
in
study
sociological
perspectives
as reducing
have
to
may cause
who
developments
development
impact
Human
results
Evidence
exposure
violence)
violence
brain
in this
manslaughter.
brain
chronic
brain
whether
of criminal
murder
Studies
the
in
mitigation
charges
or
synthesize
by
brains
sizes,
scholars
perspectives.
and
individuals
but
sample
real-time
stimuli.
that of
Some
of struc-ture,
can track
or emotional
and function,
on very
images
activity
brains
noncriminal
with the biological who engages in behav-ior.
biological
of behaviors,
integrate
of behavior
theories that imply
biosocial
theories
may be a genetic predisposition
sug-gest
for certain
behaviors.
These
these
predispositions
are
expressed
in
terms
of
biological risk factors associated with increased prob-abilities
children.
A recent study by Diana Fishbein in 2003 con-cluded that behavioral problems mayoriginate in the hypothalamicpituitary-adrenal the
brain
to the
adrenal
certain
axis (HPA) that con-nectsfactors glands,
which regulate
the
of delinquency and crime when paired with environmental that
(social)
have been
performance, attention
evaluated
conditions. include
Various
risk
levels
and
IQ
deficit hyperactivity
disorder
56
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
and conduct disorder. Although low IQ is not directly associated with crime or delinquency, individuals lower
IQs
may experience
traditional
learning
environments,
delinquent, of attention
or criminal
deficit
been associated and criminal
with increased
out that this is true
be traced
to
difficult
In
levels
disorder. in
disentangle
undesirable
disorder
the
also
has
point
who also are
Both disorders
the
frontal
lobe,
can
so it
is
of each to
contrast
antisocial,
deviant, or criminal Increasing
genes pass along (or characteristics,
still
have
not
of
acts have biological
awareness of how our
do not pass along) our behavioral
how
our
brain
structures
of
how
our
are interrelated,
and
environmental
stimuli,
and
in a social environment processes
will bring
and reacts to
of how our development
impacts
all of these biological
us closer to being able to
behavior and therefore
func-tions
body chemistry
aff ects and is aff ected by our behavior
predict
being able to better control it.
Care must be taken to separate the act from the ac-tor
behaviors.
probabilities
however,
reached the level where wecan definitively determine that
of delinquent
relationship
advancements,
anti-social, roots or correlations.
in
A diagnosis
only for individuals
abnormalities
to
resulting
However, some scholars
with conduct
with
and stress in
behaviors.
hyperactivity
behavior.
diagnosed
frustration
Our scientific
to risk factors
of an individual
that
and to avoid the atrocities
may enhance the
engaging in
delinquency
to determine
biological
of the past. As our ability
correlates
of behavior expands,
so too does the danger of using such information and crime, biological protective factors, such as em-pathy, mayinhibit
this development. Empathy is the
ability of one person to identify
with another person
unethical and inhumane
ways that
or punish people on the basis of what prohibited
and to appreciate another personsfeelings and perspec-tives.behaviors their biological profiles suggest they Research has indicated that empathy is largely (68%) inherited.
This
biological
tendency
the impact
of biological risk factors.
inhibiting
protective
may help explain predispositions from
those
may counter
Research on these
will parallel corresponding to
prevent initial
behaviors
and to treat
undesirably
because
is still
quite sparse but
individuals
who do behave
people
who have genetic
biological
or biosocial influences.
and crime refrain
CONCLUSION
Adler,
F.,
theories
advances in
our
behavior
have evolved theoretical
and in
significantly
understanding
our technological
with of
hu-man
capabilities
measuring human biological characteristics
and
processes. Whereasearliest attempts to understand the relationships between biology and behavior focused on the outwardly observable, modern eff orts are looking to
the
of our bodies.
chemical
and
structural
Contemporary
biological
recognize the interactive
relationship
biological
external
events
Moreover, increasing
and
theories
Barrett,
events.
our behavior is contributing
to the development
epistemology
of criminal
of a
behavior.
O.
W.,
READINGS
&
Laufer,
justice
W. (2004).
system (5th
ed.).
McGraw-Hill.
D.,
&
movement
Kurzman, theory:
C. (2004).
The
case
Globalizing
of eugenics.
social
Theory
and
Society, 33, 505. Burnett,
J. (1773).
Edinburgh, Christiansen,
The
York:
Comte,
and
progress
of language.
A Kincaid.
K. O.(1974)
Free
among
Seriousness
of criminality
Danish twins.
In
and
R. Hood (Ed.),
and public policy (pp. 6377).
New
Press.
A. (1822).
studies
origin
Scotland:
Crime, criminology,
awareness of the complex inter-relationships our biology, and
G.
FURTHER
and the criminal
York:
concordance
also
between internal
sociological
among our environment,
rich and promising
foundations
New
AND
Mueller,
Criminology
Biological
inward,
of
behaviors.
REFERENCES
of
advances in our capabilities
undesirable
factors
delinquency
might
do. It is hoped that progress in these areas of inquiry
why some
toward
in
would stigmatize
pour
Plan
des travaux
rorganiser
la
scientifiques
socit
[Plan
necessary for the reorganization
Suite destravaux Du
Contrat
nces-saires
of scientific of society].
ayant pour objet de fonder le systme Social.
Paris:
Par
Saint-Simon
In in-dustriel,
BIOLOGICAL
Curran,
D.J.,
& Renzetti,
(2nd
ed.).
Needham
Darwin,
C.(1859).
selection,
Onthe
or the
for life.
C. (1871).
relation Darwin,
M.(2001).
origin
Harvard
John
of crime
betterment: in
means ofnatural
races in
Press. in
T &J
life.
E. (17941796). London:
Dawkins,
Zonomia
or the laws
of organic
The
selfish gene.
New York:
Oxford
G. (1586).
physiognomy].
De humana
Vico
physiognomonia
Equense, Italy:
[On
M. (1745).
Venus
Jukes:
disease and heredity. L. (1977).
The
Ellis,
L. (2003).
New York:
decline
American
and
Sociologist, Genes,
neuroandrogenic
A study in crime,
fall
12,
criminality,
theory.
In
Kevles,
Challenging Hauppauge,
E. (1896).
(5th
Sociologia
laws
Wadsworth.
and consequences.
relative
12,
development.
into
its
London:
as a criterion
and
nurture.
of
Frasers
human
faculty
and its
[Criminology].
Naples,
& Glueck,
New York: Goddard,
Samuel
garden: The
Darwinism
and
in
Anglophone of the
17, 428463.
man.
Cambridge,
MA:
Press.
New York: Physique
New
(1802).
Paris:
lost
of Genetics.
to the history
Sociology,
and the
heredity.
Trans.). J.-B.
Genetics and the
Knopf.
and
York:
Harcourt
Research
on the
character
(W.
J.
Brace. organization
of liv-ing
Maillard.
The
importance
Allgemeine
of twin
Zeitschrift
pathology
fur
for
Psychiatric
und
90, 122142.
Essays on physiognomy;
of the knowledge
Leclerc,
G.(1778). The
theory:
for the promo-tion
and love of
mankind.
eras of nature.
Paris:
London:
T.
Context
R. A. (2007).
NP. Criminological
and consequences (4th
ed.).Thousand
Oaks, CA: Sage. C. (1735).
Holmiae:
from
E. (1956).
Physique
and
delinquency.
Systema
Laurentii
P. (n.d.).
naturae [System
of nature].
Salvii.
Eugenic sterilization
laws.
Retrieved
http://www.eugenicsarchive.org/html/eugenics/
C. (1876).
Milan, Italy:
Harper.
H. H. (1912).
Lombroso,
The
Kallikak
family.
New York:
Malthus,
C.(1913). His
The
English convict:
Majestys
Stationery
A statistical Office.
study.
Mednick,
T. R. (1798).
S.,
May 25).
Luomo
delinquent
[Criminal
man].
Hoepli.
London:
Macmillan.
London:
his
essay8text.html.
NP. S.,
London:
In the name of eugenics:
E. (1925).
things.
Lombardo,
Macmillan.
Criminologia
University
D.(1985).
Linnaeus, into
Historical
Lilly, J. R., Cullen, F., & Ball,
Macmillan.
of twins
nature
Inquiries
R. (1885).
Italy:
An inquiry
566576.
F. (1883).
Garafalo,
London:
of
of France.
Holcroft.
genius:
history
powers
Magazine,
Glueck,
The
York:
Mifflin.
Crime
Lavater, J. C.(1783).
perspectives in criminol-ogy.
Hereditary
New
Mendel, the Father
Social
Psychisch-Gerichtliche,
sociology]
UTET.
CA:
of
psychiatry.
Turin, Italy:
F. (1875).
Galton,
[Criminal
race.
man, his frame,
A contribution
E. (1939).
Lange, J. (1929). su-premacy
NY: NovaScienee.
on
Monk in the
Houghton
Journal
Lamarck,
evolutionary
environmentalisms
criminate
great
(2 vols.).
Gregor
journals:
Kretschmer,
& L. Ellis (Eds.),
Biobehavioral
F. (1869).
Galton,
the
D. (2003). Belmont,
Galton,
19752000.
ed., 2 vols.).
Fishbein,
Goring,
M. (2000).
G. M.(2004).
Sprott,
and
(pp. 1336).
the
his expectations
uses of human
Putnam.
A. Walsh
Macmillan.
moral statistics
Observations
genius of
Hodgson,
pauper-ism,
5666.
Biosocial criminology:
Ferri,
R.
found
Hooten,
of sociology,
Essay on
D. (1749).
Harvard R. L. (1877). The
of the
for hu-man
operations
Richardson.
Paris:
physique.
NP.
Dugdale,
Ellis,
Hartley,
term. P.
New York:
passing
M. (1833).
academic
Apud losephum
Cacchium.
Maupertuis,
of6,000
Crochard.
New York:
Press.
Porta,
de
A.
Henig,
J.Johnson.
R. (1976).
University
della
Guerry,
duty, and
Swords.
Darwin,
The
Sterilization
ofresults
19091929.
M. (1916).
Paris:
New York:
Asummary
57
Scribners.
man and selection
garden.
California,
Grant,
the struggle
Murray.
botanic
Gosney, E. S., & Popenoe, P. E. (1929).
& Bacon.
University
descent of
to sex. London: E. (1791). The
by
of favored
MA:
The
Theories
MA: Allyn
ofspecies
preservation
Cambridge.
Darwin,
C.
Heights,
THEORY
An essay on the principle
of popula-tion.
J. Johnson.
Gabrielli,
W. F.,
Genetic influences
& in
Hutchins, criminal
B. (1984, convictions
58
CRIME
AND
Evidence
BEHAVIOR
from
an
adoption
cohort.
Science,
224,
Murphy,
T.,
Genome
& Lapp, Project.
M. (1994). Berkeley:
Justice
and the
University
of
Human California
Quetelet,
A. (1835).
D. C. (1983).
delinquent 13,
Sabra,
W. H. (1940).
Harper Spencer, The
Press.
Rowe,
Sheldon,
An introduction
891894.
Treatise on man. Paris: Biometrical
behavior:
A twin
Bachelier.
models of self-reported study.
Behavior
Genetics,
Warburg Institute.
varieties
of human
psychology.
physique: New York:
Brothers.
H. (1857,
April).
Progress:
Review,
67,
445447,
White,
T.
W.(1989).
Westminster
Its
law
and
451,
causes.
454456,
46465.
Walters, crime:
G. D., & Bad genes
or bad research?
Heredity
and
Criminology,
27,
455485.
473489.
A. (1989). The
and
The
to constitutional
optics of Ibn al-Haytham.
London:
Wilson,
E.
Cambridge,
O.(1975).
Sociobiology:
MA: Belknap
Press
The
new
synthesis.
CESARE LOMBROSOS THE BORN CRIMINAL
Gina
A
criminal
is a
the relations
man who violates the laws between its citizens,
times set forth these laws treat
multitude
decreed by the State to regulate
but the voluminous
only of crime,
codes
which in past
never of the criminal. That
whom Dante relegated to the Infernal
ignoble
Regions were consigned by
magistrates and judges to the care ofjailers and executioners, who alone deigned to deal with them. The judge, immovable in his doctrine, unshaken by doubts, solemn in all hisinviolability
and convinced of his wisdom, which no one dared
to question, passedsentence without remission according to his whim, and both judge
and culprit
were equally ignorant
of the
ultimate
eff ect of the
penalties
inflicted.
In public
1764, the great Italian attention
extorted
to those
by torture
jurist
can thus
without
founder
Classical
School
and Francesco
only at establishing undiscerning founder
(if
the sole foundation
of
for the trial,
sentence
were
not on human souls and bodies.
Penal Jurisprudence,
Carrara the greatest and
of
which
Beccaria
most glorious
of penalties. In
writing
was the
disciple,
and fixed laws to guide capricious
judges in the application wasinspired
called
statements
which was bestowed blindly,
hearing the defense, exactly as though
sound judgments
of this School
Cesare Beccaria first
whose confessions
of the punishment,
being passed on abstract symbols, The
beings,
be called) formed
the sole guide in the application without formality,
and economist,
wretched
aimed
and often
his great work, the
bythe highest of all human sentimentspity;
but although the criminal incidentally receives notice, the writings of this School treat only of the application of the law, not of off endersthemselves. This
is
the
diff
erence
Jurisprudence. The
between
the
Classical
and
the
Modern
School
of
Penal
Classical School basedits doctrines on the assumption that
all criminals, except in a few extreme cases, are endowed with intelligence and feelings
like
normal
individuals,
being prompted
thereto
was considered,
and on it the
severity of
his
of the sentence
by their
and that
they
unrestrained
whole existing
commit desire for
misdeeds consciously, evil. The
off ence alone
penal system has been founded,
meted out to the off ender being regulated
the
by the gravity
misdeed.
59
Lombroso-Ferrer
60
CRIME
AND
The
BEHAVIOR
Modern,
Jurisprudence, anti-social
their
or
Positive,
School
on the contrary,
tendencies
of
of
Penal
maintains that the
criminals
are
the
physical and psychic organization,
result
of
which diff ers
essentially from that of normal individuals;
and it aims
at studying
the
functional
phenomena
of the criminal
morphology
instead of punishing founded which
Modern School is there-fore
on a new science, Criminal as the
because it embraces
constitution
human
as anthropology
does
beings and the diff erent
races.
If
we
examine
a
number
of
criminals,
in civilized
only of primitive back
as the
we shall
times characteristics,
...
was explained
developed
orbital
the
arches
to carnivores raw flesh. Thus the span the
not
savages, but of still lower types as far
carnivora.
origin
jaws, strong canines, prominent
of the
his organic and psychic
and social life, just
in the case of normal
History
who reproduces
remarked in criminals,
Anthropology,
Natural
asin a vast plain under a
flaming sky, the problem of the nature of the criminal,
Thus
with the object of curing,
him.The
may be defined
Criminal,
and various
standing out clearly illumined
of the enormous
zygom,
and strongly
which he had so frequently
for these peculiarities
are com-mon
and savages, who tear and
also it
was easy to
of the arms in
understand
criminals
are used in
anomalies
exhibited
why
so often exceeds
height, for this is a characteristic
fore-limbs
devour
of apes, whose
walking and climbing. The by criminalsthe
other
scanty beard as
find that they exhibit numerous anomalies in the face,
opposed to the general hairiness of the body, prehensile
skeleton, and various psychic and sensitive functions,
foot, diminished
so that they strongly resemble primitive races. It
was
these anomalies that first drew myfathers attention to the close relationship savage and
made him suspect that
are of atavistic
When a young
a criminal
tendencies
doctor
at the
Asylum in
named
Vilella, an Italian crimes
of Lombardy.
Pavia, he
examination Jack the
had spread
Ripper,
terror
Scarcely had he laid
on
in the open the
when he perceived at the base, on the spot
where
the internal
occipital
crest or ridge is found in
normal
individuals,
a small
hollow,
median
occipital
fossa. ... This
which
abnormal
he
called
of the vermis, i.e., the spinal cord
separates the cerebellar lobes lying cerebral hemispheres.This the
case
of
Vilella,
that
it
underneath the
vermis wasso enlarged in almost
formed
a small,
inter-mediate
cerebellum like that found in the lower types of apes, rodents, and birds.This among inferior
races,
American Indian Peru, in is seldom
tribe
in
anomaly is very rare
with the exception of the
of the
met with in the insane
found
(40%).
It
or other degenerates,
have shown it to be prevalent
criminals.
This
discovery
of that skull,
waslike
a flash of light. At
says myfather, I
common
of
the
so
the sight
seemed to see all at once,
to
development
of the
absence of the lateral
orbits,
often
criminals
which,
imparts
jaws (prognathism) supernumerary double bone
row as in
and
criminals
snakes)
Peruvian
to
of the criminal,
and
the
hooked
aspect
of
birds
part of the face and
in some cases to a cranial
Indians):
the
who reproduces
Subsequent research showed
(epactal
character-istics
atavistic
physical,
origin
psychic, and
ancestors.
on the
that
bones
all these
one conclusion,
qualities of remote
his disciples
the
of the lower
excessive
found in negroes and animals, and
as in the
the
with
teeth (amounting
pointed
apes;
combined
to
of prey, the projection
other
part of factors
my father besides
and
atavism
come into playin determining the criminal type.These are: disease and environment.
Later on, the study of
innumerable
to
off enders
led
them
the
conclusion
that
all law-breakers cannot be classed in a single species, for their ranks include very diversified types, who dif-fer not only in their
South
Aymaras of Bolivia and
whom it is not infrequently
but later investigations
skull,
nose,
the which
enormous
ones,flattened nose and angular or sugar-loaf form of the
was cor-relatedfunctional
character
to a still greater anomaly in the cerebellum, hypertrophy
cheek-pouches,
middle incisors and frequent
size
make a post-mortem
who by atrocious
skull,
criminal
origin.
wasrequested to
Province
between the criminal and the
hand,
number of lines in the palm of the
crime,
bent towards
a particular
but also in the degree of tenacity
displayed
by them
in their
perverse
form
of
and intensity
propensities,
so
that, in reality, they form
a graduated scale leading from
the
normal
born
criminal
Born
criminals
to
the
form
off enders, but, though the
individual.
about
one
inferior
in
most important
part
third
of the
mass
of
numbers, they con-stitute
of the
whole
crimina
CESARE
army, partly becausethey are constantly appearing be-fore common to the region the public and also becausethe crimes committed by them
are of a peculiarly
other two thirds off enders),
normal
are composed
occasional
do not show
monstrous character;
and
such a
of criminaloids
habitual
(minor
criminals,
etc.,
marked degree of diversity
us
and
who
from
nucleus
naturally salient
with
the
of the
born
criminal,
wretched
manifests the
who
of the
contrast
to the
skull,
face
intimately
features just enumerated
fossa
and
myfather
brought to light
abnormal
connected
excessive dimensions
of off ender. By care-ful
and others
manyanomalies in bodily organs, and
criminal,
size,
with the greater with that of the
setting
muscles of the
and cheek-bones
besides the atavistic
of the
may have been influenced
masticatory system.
by the habit of certain
of the teeth
or tension
mouth, which accompany
eff orts and are natural to
of his School have
of the
of the jaws
admit of other explanations
They
narrow fore-head
...
gestures, the
are not the only peculiarities
by this aggravated type
research,
other
the
of the senses ascompared
centers.
and
which the
most animals, is of disproportionate
one of a greater development
median occipital
exhibited
vault
a phenomenon
of law-breakers, The
army
most numerous
anomalies.
The
low
like those of
nervous
or country from
61
...
Face. In striking
development
commence
as principal
hails.
The
the
persons.
Let
criminal
LOMBROSOS
of the
violent
mus-cular
men who form energetic
or violent resolves and meditate plans of revenge. Asymmetry is a common characteristic
functions both physical and mental,all of which serve
of the
to indicate the atavistic and pathological origin of the
criminal physiognomy.The eyesand ears arefrequently
instinctive
situated at different levels and are of unequal size, the
criminal.
It
would be incompatible
summary,
were I to give a
innumerable Modern traits
anomalies
School, to
back
to
their
with the scope of this minute description
of the
discovered in criminals
by the
attempt
to trace such abnormal
source,
or
eff ect on the organism. This
to
demonstrate
Criminal
has been done in a very
Man and his subsequent
subject,
to
Anthropology,
Prison
Recent Research in
Palimpsests,
which readers desirous of obtaining
knowledge The the
etc., etc.,
present
volume
The
senses
briefly
of criminals,
and
Eye.This
shifty
with
marked irregulari-ties
world, is
which the
naturally
of a psychic character,
glance, which are difficult
mind
the centre
of
hard expres-sion,
to
describe but
are, nevertheless, apparent to all observers. Side by side with peculiarities
of expression,
anomaliesptosis,
a drooping
unilateral;
of the iris,
on
with the
asymmetry, as
functions.
window, through
outer
many anomalies
frequently
will only touch
characteristics
the
wefind
many physical
of the
upper
eyelid,
appearance
and is
which gives the eye a half-closed
a morethorough
of the subject should refer.
principal
in
work
writings on the same
Modern Forms of Crime,
Criminal
weshall seelater, is connected
opens to the
their
minute fashion in the three volumes of myfathers
nose slants towards one side, etc.This
its fellow;
oblique
...
Other anomalies
which frequently eyelids, a
are asym-metry
diff ers in color from
Mongolian characteristic,
object of presenting a general outline of the studies of
with the edge of the upper eyelid folding inward or a
criminologists.
prolongation
of the internal fold of the eyelid, which
Metchnikoff regards as a persistence of embryonic characters. PHYSICAL
The
ANOMALIES
OF THE
BORN
CRIMINAL
The
Head. Asthe seat of all the greatest disturbances,
this
part
naturally
anomalies,
which
manifests the greatest extend
from
the
external
of the brain-case to the composition The
criminal
characteristics
skull
does not exhibit
of size and shape.
it tends to be larger
or smaller
number
of
conforma-tion
of its contents. any
marked
Generally speaking,
than the average skull
Ear.The
external ear is often of large size;
occasionally
also it is smaller than the ears of normal
individuals.
Twenty-eight
handle-shaped chimpanzee: levels.
...
per cent.
ears standing
of criminals
have
out from the face asin the
in other cases they are placed at diff erent
Anomalies
are
also
found
in
the
lobe,
which
in some cases adheres too closely to the face, or is of huge size as in the ancient
Egyptians; in
other cases
62
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
the lobe is entirely absent, or is atrophied till the ear
especially in
assumesa form like that common to apes.
swindlers.
The
Nose.This
of aflattened,
is frequently
twisted,
up-turned
negroid character in thieves; in
The
or
murder-ers,
on the contrary, it is often aquiline like the beak of
The
Mouth. This
part shows
perhaps
a greater
any other facial
organ.
have already alluded
to the excessive development
the jaws in criminals.
...
The
lips
have thin,
of violators
The
of women and
lips.
of
is
An increase
found
character
of
human
murderers are
more common
in
in
common
races
The
uncommon
Palate. ...
in
as in
Another frequent
Teeth.These
abnormality is
are specially important,
have normal
incisors
dentition. The
are
absent
and
excessive size, a peculiarity rodents.
the
incisors
Sometimes
the
show
homodontism
middle
show
both the
ones
the premolars,
are
Premature
projects
of
of
caries
Chin.
is
is limited
to
part of the face
Europeans. In criminals it is
almost invariably
manifested by criminals,
observer.
Hair.The
cannot fail
Pelvis
hair of the scalp, cheeks and chin,
of anomalies. In general it hair,
criminals
of
both
sexes
sex.
Abdomen.
lowest
The
organs sometimes
The
Upper
frequent
limbs,
Limbs.
anomalies of the
owing to
nipples,
order
of
a
the
exhibited
of
humerus
in the
and
with the lower
which the span of the arms exceeds the character.
bones
Six per cent exhibit
rare among
foramen,
where
it
normal in-dividualsthe
a perforation
articulates
is normal in the ape and
found
most striking
by criminals is the exces-sive
which is extremely
the
pelvis,
show an inversion
arms as compared
olecranon head
abdomen,
One of the
height, an ape-like
an anomaly
with
in the the
ulna.
dog and is frequently
of prehistoric
man and in some
of
the existing inferior races of mankind. Several
abnormal
characters,
which
point
to
an
Supernumerary fingers (polydactylism)
tend
to
exhibit
Dark hair prevails
or a reduction
in the usual number are not uncommon. ... The length of the fingers
varies according
which the individual
crimes
against the
The often
lines
thieves,
have short,
sexual
of crime guilty
lines
nature
of
clumsy fingers
Long fingers are common off enders,
and
pickpockets.
on the palmar surfaces of the finger-tips
of a simple
principal
to the type
is addicted. Those
person
and especially short thumbs.
to swindlers, may be said that in the dis-tribution
of the opposite
and
...
to
...
eyebrows, and other parts of the body, shows a number
of
anomaly.
we often find
or absence of the or
are
normal ones
atavistic origin, are found in the palm and fingers.
Wrinkles. Although common to normal individu-als,
characteristics
nipples (which
women.
sex-characters.
This
common.
Generally speaking, this
the abundance, variety, and precocity of wrinkles
The
unifor-mity
Polymastia,
on the contrary,
monotremata
Hottentot
with tubercles like
of gorillas and orang-outangs.
moderately in
the
or prehistoric
below the
of
total
vertebrates.
long, short or flat, asin apes.
strike
atavistic
numerical
mankind.
and reproductive
often small and receding, asin children, or else exces-sively
to
of civilised
of
The
of
uniformity,
lower
uniformity
which are furnished
molars, a peculiarity
The
a strange of the
In some cases, however, this
...
the
number
an
The chest is often covered with hair which givesthe
for crimi-nals
which recalls the incisors
Very often the teeth
the
with
development
length
recalls
contrasts
the is
many mammals) is not an uncommon
those
...
which
in
This
subject the appearance of an animal.
the greatest number of anomalies. lateral
are not
mammals; or the breasts are flabby and pendent like
criminals.
development. rarely
decrease
criminals.
placed symmetrically
imperfect
cleft palate, a fissure in the palate, due to defective The
or
of
or the presence of supernumerary generally
which recall the pouches of certain species of mam-mals, not
delinquent
to animals and lower
and
characteristic
are
12%
... In female criminals,
persons. Folds in the flesh of the cheek
to the
limbs.
Thorax.
ribs
We
asin negroes. Swindlers
Hare-lip is
than in normal Cheek-pouches.
peculiar
characteristic
and protruding,
straight
criminals
and The
of anomalies than
fleshy, swollen
blemishes
only confined to the face and head, but are found in the trunk
a bird of prey. ...
number
murderers, and curly and woolly hair in
...
as in
the
anthropoids.
are The
on the palm are of special significance
CESARE
whereasin normal individuals
Normal persons possessthree, two horizontal and one vertical, to
but
one
in
criminals
or two
of
these
horizontal
lines
are
often
or transverse
direction,
as
in the normally constituted scarce or entirely
in apes. The
Lower
Limbs.
Of
a number
of
criminals
16% showed an unusual development trochanter,
a protuberance
where it
articulates
on the
with the
The
above
of the
mobility
big-toe,
of the quadrumana,
used for
prehensile
Cerebrum
and
the
Cerebellum.
chief
and acquired
of the vermis, in
the
In
lower
through
which represents
born criminals of large,
illness. The
the
middle lobe found
and epileptics and
numerous
to criminal
skull and
and, marked,
anthropologists
peculiar to cretins form
what is called
case have the anomalies
since they are neither the cause
tendencies
of
the
criminal
of the cretin. They
nor
of
the
are the outward
...
The
above-mentioned
anomalies
cells,
supplemented
and all these
converge,
mountain
there is a preva-lence the
polymorphous
are further
physiognomical and skel-etal
peculiarities, as
plain, towards
...
pyramidal,
trunk,
evokes evil impulses that arelargely of atavistic origin.
most
of the cerebellum is the hypertrophy
mammals.
when
type. In neither
importance,
anti-social
limbs,
of degeneration, which in the case of the criminal
and
to the sensory and functional left-handedness common anomaly
abound in
and visible signs of a mysterious and complicated pro-cess The
mostcommon anomalyis the prevalenceof macroscopic
notable
they
type, in exactly the same way as the sum
mental deficiencies
grasping.
anomalies in the left hemisphere, which are correlated to criminals
the
face,
the
what is known
an intrinsic of
in
the
the cretinous
of the toes and
produce the
which is
and in
The foot is often flat, asin negroes.... The
in
the inter-digital of the characters
hand are very common,
with the greater
greater length
all,
asthe criminal
Feet. Spaces between the toes like
conjunction
anomalies
constitute
of the
in quadrupeds.
spaces of the
foot,
These
distinctly
with the position
white substance, in the
and epileptics
this part of the brain. ...
head of the femur
pelvis. This
atavistic character is connected hind-limb
of the third
Whereas, moreover,
brain, nervous cells are very
absent in the
case of born criminals
exam-ined,
63
small, triangular, and
star-shaped cells predominate. ...
reduced
LOMBROSOS
born
criminal
abnormal
streams to the
a central ideathe
by functional characteristics hollow in the
atavistic
nature of
CHAPTER III
Psychological
Theorie
PSYCHOLOGICAL THEORIES OF CRIME
John
W
hy do individuals
commit
in our society? The questions,
crimes?
criminal
and criminologists
At the same time,
why is crime present
justice system is very concerned
are attempting
to answer them.
with these
In actuality,
the
question of why crime is committed is very difficult to answer. However,for cen-turies, people have been searching for answers ( Jacoby 2004). It is important
to
recognize that there are manydiff erent explanations asto whyindividuals commit crime (Conklin
2007). One of the
mainexplanations is based on psychological
theories, which focus on the association among intelligence, personality, learning, and criminal
behavior. Thus,
must contemplate
Whenexamining three
theorists
have expanded
the
Also germane Combined,
perception to
work of
perception
his or her potential to commit how an individuals
crimes. The
Gabriel Tarde through
crime. In other
one
of the on the
his or her likeli-hood Behavioral
behavior
modeling
major premise of which sug-gests
manifested ( Jacoby, 2004) aff ect
words, behavioral theory focuses on
of the world influences theories
his or her behavior.
are personality
or characteristics
behavioral, personality, and intelligence) individual
which is centered
experience influences
and how it is
psychological
these five theories
causation,
second is behavioral theory.
third is cognitive theory, the
that an individuals
crime
of crime, one must be cognizant
early, childhood
future
and social learning. The
theories
first is psychodynamic theory,
an individuals
for committing
concerning
theories.
psychological
major theories. The
notion that
in any discussion
psychological
and intelligence.
(i.e., psychodynamic,
cognitive,
off er appealing insights into
maycommit a crime (Schmalleger 2008).
why an
However, one should not
assume this there is only one reason why a person commits crime. Researchers looking for a single explanation should be cautious, becausethere is no panacea for the problem of crime.
EARLY
Charles
Goring (18701919)
flawed intelligence.
RESEARCH
discovered
Goring examined
a relationship
more than
between
3,000 convicts in
crime
and
England. It is
6
W. Clark
68
CRIME
AND
important
BEHAVIOR
is morality.The superego serves to passjudgment Goring found no physical dif-ferences
to note that between
noncriminals
he did find that criminals to be unintelligent,
that
ultimately thought
or inventive
the
however,
poor social behavior.
Gabriel Tarde (18431904),
individuals
imitate that
criminals;
are morelikely to beinsane,
and to exhibit
A second pioneer is maintained
and
learn
from
one another.
other
Interestingly,
out of 100 individuals, and the remainder
each
who
behavior
The
ego
Tarde
actions
of individuals
gratification
and the strict
right from committed,
wrong.
advocates of psychodynamic committed
miserable
of psychodynamic
individuals
theory
personality is controlled
suggest that
an
by unconscious
mental processesthat are grounded in early childhood.
and aggravated. They
which
by a lack of love and/or
is
most
often
nurturing,
of psychoanalysis. Imperative to
this theory are the three elements or structures that make up the
human
personality:
ego, and (3) the superego. as the
primitive
part
(1) the id, (2), the
One can think
of a persons
that is present at birth.
biological
has a weak(or absent) ego. Mostimportant, suggeststhat having a weak egois linked
unconscious
sex, and other
necessities over the life span.
is known
is often paramount All
too
criminal
often,
one
with instant
while disregarding
stories
and
concern for and it
behavior.
studies
Is it possible that these
MENTAL
orders. Criminal
DISORDERS
AND
CRIME
but
off enders
of crime are mood dis
may have a number
disorders that are ultimately
disorder
found
and
in
children
disorder
is
Clark,
are ultimately
mood
One example
conduct
acceptable
& Cornell
of
manifested as depression,
disorder.
have difficulty
behaving in socially
maleand female of-fendersMurrie,
are driven by instant gratification? The second
theory
rage, narcissism, and social isolation.
with conduct
about
off enders who have no concern for anyone
themselves.
with weak egos maybe morelikely to engagein drug
makeup
as the pleasure principle,
news
and dependence
abuse.
Most im-portant Within the psychodynamic
when discussing criminal sees
research
with poor or
drives for food,
is the idea that the id is concerned
others. This
off ender
on others. Researchfurther suggests that individuals
believed the id
represents the
pleasure or gratification
or
of the id is
mental
Freud (1933)
unhappy, characterized
a criminal
This theory was originated by Sigmund Freud (18561939), absenceof social etiquette, immaturity, the founder
are
occurred in their
Because of a negligent,
childhood,
would
suggests that crimi-nal
drawn to past events that
early childhood.
theory
a crime because
superego.
theory
off enders are frustrated constantly
Proponents
of the superego.
However, when a crime is
In sum, psychodynamic
THEORY
desire for instant
morality
suggest that an individual
( Jacoby 2004).
PSYCHODYNAMIC
on
1933).
One can assume that young adults as well as adults un-derstand
he or she has an underdeveloped
were prone to imitation
(Freud
mediates between the ids
and
only 1 was creative
and
2008).
of a
Children
following
rules
ways (Boccaccini, Conduct
disorders
manifested as a group of behavioral and
element of the human personality is the ego, which is
emotional problems in young adults. It is important
thought to develop earlyin a persons life. For example,
note that children diagnosed with conduct disorder are
to
whenchildren learn that their wishescannot be grati-fied viewed by adults, other children, and agencies of the instantaneously, they often throw atantrum. Freud (1933)
suggested that
the
ego compensates
demands of the id by guiding
an individuals
for the actions or
behaviors to keep him or her within the boundaries society. The third
ego is guided
element
friends
the
moral standards
parents; and significant
and clergy
members.The
ill.
focus of the superego
It is important
to inquire
include
child
school performance, Children
as to
why some children
some of the
and atraumatic
with conduct
disorder
aggressive behaviors toward
et
2008),
and
are
most promi-nent
abuse, brain damage, genetics, poor
exhibit al.
or evenmentally
disorder and others do not.There
many possible explanations;
and values of others, such as
bad, delinquent,
develop conduct
principle. The
of personality, the superego, develops as a
person incorporates the community;
by the reality
of
state astrouble,
they
event. are
morelikely
to
others (Boccaccini
may be cruel
to
animals
PSYCHOLOGICAL
Other manifestations include fear; initiating
fights;
golf club, or a baseball bat. could
also
sexual activity. one
someone
Other conduct into
to destruct unacceptable
an individuals
obligations,
Last,
more likely
to
A second example
most often
behaviors lying
fires
with the
associated
and stealing,
obtain
desirable
with
violate
conduct
curfews
build-ing
despite their
home
and
to
be
late
for
or
truant
There is no question that children above-mentioned
behaviors
must
a
and psychological examination. It is important that
many children
with conduct
well have another posttraumatic attention
existing
stress disorder,
to recognize
that
children
likely to have continuing, do
not
receive
treatment, accustomed
to
continue
the
the
earliest
will
not
demands
of
onset.
be
able
adulthood
and even with finding
or occupation.
disorder
Treatment
is often considered
with a variety
and
of children complex
oppositional defiant disorder
or attachment that
are
are
viewed
The
second theory
disorder focuses
learned
of a
with conduct It
in authority that the and
at
medical doctor convincing
Behavior therapy help the
anger.
clinician
to consider is
others, and eliminate
fear in their lives.
and psychotherapy
may be necessary
child learn
Moreover, special
required for children cases, treatment
how to
control
education
with learning
may include
and express
classes
disabilities.
prescribed
may be In some
medication,
with in
issues
to explain
oppositional theory
of oppositional that
years. defiant
suggests the defiant
demonstrate
disor-der
the
eff ects
used by parents or persons to recognize
observed in adolescents
oppositional
defiant
children
disorder
without
this
also
disorder.
Relevantexamplesinclude a child whois hungry,tired, or disobeys/argues to
note that
with his or her parent. adolescents
and
children
with oppositional defiant disorder often exhibit symp-toms that
component for the
the child to develop a good attitude, learn to
cooperate, trust
to
or psychological
a productive
developmental
on learning. This
times,
disorder
during the early toddler
attitudes
children
occur,
It is important
ultimately living
of
defiant
(Siegal 2009). It is important
troubled,
An important
or autonomous
oppositional
majority of symptoms
behavior patterns takes time. As mentioned previously, and for
problems begin in
mayhave experienced a
as a continuation
early treatment offers a child a greater probability for and successful life.
of
of negative reinforcement
will
is rarely brief, because establishing new attitudes and
improvement
however, there
figure. In essence, the bad attitudes
characteristic
were not resolved
are
maintaining
and exigent.
is no known
skills andlearning to separate from their primary care-taker
become and
figures,
2008). There
suggests that
negative characteristics
Without
to
and other authority
children as early asthe toddler years.It is important to
are
problems if they
to have problems and issues
relationships job
at
children
disorder
toward
defiant disorder;
Onetheory
that
2008). It is important
with conduct
and
behaviors
are two primary theories that attempt to explain its de-velopment.
very
such as anxiety,
long-lasting
treatment
these
to note
drug or alcohol abuse, or
deficit disorder (Siegal
a very
to lose ones temper;
difficult time developing independent
medical
disorder could
condition,
disorder
note that adolescents and small children who develop
school.
who exhibit the receive
defiant irritability;
annoying
peers, parents, teachers,
parents
from
atendency
deliberately
cause of oppositional
are
desires.These children also are morelikely to run away from
negative attitude;
is
Manifestations
of oppositional
defiance; uncooperativeness;
in children
2008). This
childhood.
such as police officers (Siegal
individuals disorder
disorder (Siegal
diagnosed in
exhibiting
goods, avoiding
possessions from
children
with
breaking
of a disorder found
defiant
or characterizations
or even kill some-one. include
house or an unoccupied to
and taking
stores.
starting
69
medicine would ideally be reserved for chil-dren
is oppositional
unwanted
CRIME
or spontaneity/impulsivity.
with conduct
into
property
disorder include
or car, lying
bottle, a
damage may also be a concern;
may observe these children
ultimate intent
or
Adolescents
force
Property
a broken
OF
experiencing problems with depression, attention,
and using a weapon, such as
a gun, a knife, a box cutter, rocks,
disorder
although
bullying; intimidation;
THEORIES
hinder the learning process, lead to poor
adjustment
in school, and
relationships oppositional tantrums, comply to follow
with others.
hurt the childs
Some of the symptoms
defiant disorder include excessive arguments
with adult requests,
frequent
others for ones
mistakes, being easily annoyed
of
temper
with adults, refusal to
questioning
rules, refusing
rules, engaging in behavior intended
or upset others, blaming or
most likely
to annoy
misbehaviors
by others, frequentl
70
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
having an angry attitude, speaking harshly or unkindly,
marked by extreme highs and lows; the person alter-nates
and deliberately behavingin waysthat seek revenge. In
regard
parents
to
diagnosis,
who identify defiant
the child disorder.
be taken to a qualified health professional Doctors
is
it
often
into the history
of any previous
childs
behavior.
are desirable.
often prevent future
mental
disturbance
into their
often
behavior.
is schizophrenia.
exhibit
illogical
processes, and they
and
often lack in-sight
behavior and do not understand
reality.
also experiences
behavior delusions that involve
persecution
A
wrongdoing
( Jacoby 2004). Individuals
or
with paranoid
schizophrenia
often believe everyone is out to get them.
It is important
to note that research shows that female
and
Actually, early treatment
can
off enders appear to have a higher probability mental health symptoms include
problems.
disorders, conduct
melancholic
individuals
thought
behavior
of the
As always, early detection
mental health problems, including
anxiety
incoherent
loud
may assist
observations
Oppositional defiant disorder mayexist alongside other
mental health
complex
will verify the
also
and
and
be-havior,A person with paranoid schizophrenia
of all interested
testing
assertive,
listless,
Schizophrenic
diagnosis.
of the childs
and
clinical
Psychological
in assigning a diagnosis. treatment
and/or
the perspective
parties (i.e., parents and teachers)
must
excited,
and lethargic,
second with op-positional
or adolescent
medical doctor
which includes
and
However, children
who will make an official
will inquire
results
teachers
between
mood and
disorder, and attention
symptoms
obsessive
than
male off enders. These
of schizophrenia,
behaviors.
At the
of serious
same
paranoia,
time,
studies
and
of
males
accused of murder havefound that three quarters could be classified as having some form
of
mentalillness.
deficit hyperactivity disorder. Treatment for children
Another interesting fact is that individuals
and adolescents with oppositional
been diagnosed with a mentalillness are morelikely
will be determined childs
physician childs
medications
caretaker include
health,
also considers
symptoms,
or parent.
anger
childs
expectations
that
therapy.
making changes
for
of a certain
for the course
treatment
and they
appear in court
rate. Last, research suggests children
have a higher rate of clinical
compared (Siegal
with adolescents in the
at a dispro-portionate
mat delinquent mental disorders
general
population
2008).
Treatment
could BEHAVIORAL
control,
may also be in the
system
The
with the
second This
major psychological
theory
skills. Peergroup therapy, whichis focused on developing social skills and interpersonal skills, also
theory
maintains that
developed through
of behavioral and com-munication
interaction
THEOR
and
Here, the approach is focused
family
be arrested,
problem-solving
impulse
within the family
desired goal of improved
to
or preference of the
teaches
skills,
management skills. of family
or totality
tolerance
Most important,
communication
form
who considers the medical history. The
and the opinion
psychotherapy
skills,
and
the extent
the
or therapies,
of the condition,
on
by a physician
age, overall
defiant disorder
who have
learning
is behavior-ism.
human
behavior is
experiences. The
theory is the notion that
hallmark
people alter or
change their behavior according to the reactions this behavior elicits in other people (Bandura 1978). In an
is an option.The last and least desirabletreatment op-tion ideal situation, behavior is supported by rewards and is
extinguished
medication.
by negative reactions or punishments.
Behaviorists view crimes aslearned responses to lifes situations. MENTAL
ILLNESS
AND
CRIME
behavior The
The result
most serious forms in
mental
disturbances
are referred
Examples
of
disorder
and
of personality
disorders.
The
most
disturbance serious
to as psychoses (Siegal
mental health schizophrenia.
disorders include Bipolar
will
Social learning theory, theory, is the
most prominent
Bandura
(1978).
are not born
mental
2008).
suggested that, are learned
disorder
is
(Bandura
most relevant
social learning
Bandura
in
through
contrast,
ability
1977). In
other
that
is
Albert
individuals
to act violently.
violence
a process
of
of
to criminology. theorist
maintains
with an innate
bipolar
which is a branch
and
He
aggression
behavior
words, children
model-ing learn
PSYCHOLOGICAL
violence through the observation of others. Aggressive acts are modeledafter three primary sources: (1) family
the relationship the fact that
experiences, and (3) the
mass media. Research on family that
children
demon-strates enables
interaction
who are aggressive are morelikely
to have been brought
up by parents or caretakers
who
The
second
source
of behavioral
experiences, who reside in to
reside
in low-crime
display
argue that and absence
who
local
2006).
areas are without 2001).
norms, rules,
Furthermore,
behavior.
One could
there
is
an
Manifestations
of
to gain
who
adhere
to
conventional
behavior
children
and
from
with sorrow
acts, social learning to inflict
adjusting
to the
when the
does the child
or
or indiff erence ( Jacoby
for stimuli
theorists harm
10,000 prevents
response. Thus,
about a homicide,
When searching
is likely
Furthermore,
over a 10-year period
an individual
news reports
2004)?
or adolescents
behavior.
desensitizes
psychological
adolescent respond
that foster
suggest that
violent
an individual
when he or she is subject to a
violent assault, verbal heckling or insults,
disparage-ment,
and the inability to achieve his or her goals and
drug or alcohol abuse; and failure to
obeythe local, state, and federal laws. Mostimportant,
71
media violence
A person could argue that viewing on television
aggressive behavior than those areas (Shelden
their
violence
(i.e., desensitizes)
individuals
prone
unconventional behavior include the inability
individuals
media
appropriate
conventional
employment;
consistent
more
(Bohm
of
that
are crime
CRIME
media and violence is
aggressive children
or rationalize
are
high-crime
customs
suggests
areas that
likely
or allows
to justify
homicides en-vironmental
problems,
between the
many studies suggest that
adolescents.
are aggressive ( Jacoby 2004).
OF
whom does society blame or punish? Substantiating
interaction,
(2) environmental
THEORIES
aspirations (Siegal 2009).
are
invested in society and committed to a goal or belief system. They activities,
are involved
such
as football,
baseball,
often they have an attachment The It
is
difficult
to
video
violence
are
theories
the
harmful
Scouts,
the
ultimate
2004).
role
mass of
to
mass media are responsible
violence in our society. They
major psychological
criminal framework.
shows that
depict
processes
Ultimately,
social
theorists
children. us to
A third
In recent years, significant
the
Scholars have suggested that
beckon
accept the fact
that
for a great deal of the
hypothesize
that children
who play violent
video games and later inflict
or psychological
damage to someone
at school
THEORY
and
problems is the
games, and television
learning
Girl
to family (Kraska
discern
media in regard to crime. films,
or
third source of behavioral
media.
COGNITIVE
in schools or extracurricular
within the cognitive
Here, psychologists of individuals.
is cognitive theory.
focus
on the
More important,
attempt to understand
theory mental
cognitive
how criminal
off enders
perceive and mentally represent the world around them (Knepper
2001).
individuals
solve
19th-century
physical did so
behavior
theory
gains have been madein ex-plaining
and
Germane to cognitive problems.
Two
psychologists
William James.
theory is how
prominent are
pioneer-ing
Wilhelm
Two subdisciplines
Wundt
of cognitive
becauseof the influence of the video game.Important
theory are worthy of discussion.The first subdiscipline
to note that in the above-mentioned
is the
mediaoutlets (e.g.,
moral development branch, the focus of which
video games), violence is often acceptable and even
is understanding
celebrated.
reason about the world.The second subdiscipline is in-formation
Moreover,there are no consequences for
the actions of the provide
significant
athletes
the
of misbehavior
Over the last
many documented
children
who
50 years, there
behavior
cases have important observe
a 10-year-old
amateur
he haslearned
by observing
this
without
people acquire, retain, and retrieve information 2009).
behavior.
athlete imitates
on and
and retrieval). focuses
implications Thus,
when
One theory on
reasoning fashion.
Thus,
from
(Siegal,
with the pro-cess retention,
within the cognitive frame-work
moral and intellectual
Jean Piaget (18961980)
behavior that
professional sports figures,
Ultimately, scholars are concerned
of those three stages (i.e., acquisition,
cases of professional
who engaged in inappropriate
off the field. These for
example
consequences.
have been
processing. Here,researchers focus on the way
major players. Professional athletes
an interesting
how people morally represent and
hypothesized
development. that
the in-dividual
process is developed in an orderly birth
onward
an individual
wil
72
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
continue to develop. Another pioneer of cognitive
to stage four, the premise is based on law and order.
theory is
In this stage, individuals recognize the importance
applied
Lawrence
Kohlberg (19271987),
the concept theory.
of
Kohlberg
pass through Most important are levels, levels
(1984)
who
laws, rules, and customs. This to crimi-nological
moral development
believed that
stages of
to his theory is the notion that there
stages, and social
orientation.
are Level I, preconventional; and Level III,
The
three
postconventional.
With respect
I. Stages 3 and 4 fall under
Level
under
This
Level II, and Stages 5 and
level is
wrong.
most often found
through
fifth
at the grade levels
grade.
themselves
in
a
manner
that
is
consistent
with socially acceptable norms (Kohlberg
in society, pillars
to
chaos.
In
the
obedience.
must obey Ultimately, of right and
without laws and punish-ments if
an individual
suggested that
in our society remain
morality is driven
Stages 5 and 6 exist at the postconventional Stage 5 is referred are
to as the social contract.
concerned
with
the
moral
of
with the basic values of liberty, the
terms associated with this stage are majority decision and compromise. Stage 6 is often termed
the threat
or application
conscience. This
of punishment.
by individualism, Ultimately,
individuals
seek
recognize that
the to
their
conventional in
individuals likely
level
young adults
own
the
(Kohlberg
stage
of
Mostimportant
through
way are more
viewpoints
and expectations
and fourth
Important that
this stageis the idea that individuals or not other
of them (Kohlberg attorney,
what role
Tangentially, It is important this
where agood
his or her standing
or disapprove
For example, if you are an
does society
expect you to
play?
does the clergy hold in society?
to note that
stage as well.
this is
people approve
1984).
what role
concept within
perception is germane to
Ultimately,
the literature
boy or girl attempts or role
within society.
suggests
and criminology
is
The
would ultimately
argued that
call for
Hesuggested that individuals
is that
are significantly
the
disobeying could
prog-ress
fashion.
Kohlberg suggested
lower
in their
moral
development. next subdiscipline This
people
to recognize that
Kohlberg
for criminology
judgment
stages fall
areinterested in
universal
the six stages in a chronological
criminals
area
is
When
is the information-processing
predicated
use information
with this is the understanding of
the roles that one plays. Animportant
justice
is subjective. Thus,
unjust laws.
recognizes that he or she is now a member of
whether
to criminal
by
human autonomy.
or grounded in justice. It is important justice
is often
by comparing
characterized
and respect for
principled
the notion that laws are valid only if they are based on
under this level of development. In Stage 3, the indi-vidual branch. society. Coinciding
stage is
of justice
It is believed that
moral reasoning
of actions
third
principles
quest for justice
1984).
morality
1984). The
and
means acting in ones
or adults.
those actions to societal
suggests
interests
who reason in a conventional
to judge
and
do the same. This
behavior
own best interests (Kohlberg The
Stage 2 is
instrumentalism,
characterization
fulfill
others should
maintains that the right
found
societal
rules and values, but only insofar as they are related to or consistent
Ultimately, this obedience is compelled by
exchange.
level.
Here,indi-viduals
worth
principal.
that
at this
by outside forces.
behavior is attributed to au-thoritywelfare of humanity, and human rights. Fundamental
conforming
figures such as parents, teachers, or the school
characterized
who
others would recognize that
Kohlberg (1984)
majority of individuals which
one
of society.
contrast,
breaks the law is punished, and exhibit
of
because in
the significance
Obviously, a society
During this stage,
conduct
function
the social
must recognize
leads
with obedience and punish-ment.
individuals
1984). This
individuals
stage, in
III.
Stage 1 is concerned
of kindergarten
Level
properly
and recognize
Level II, conven-tional;
to the diff erent stages, Stages 1 and 2 fall under
6 fall
order to in-dividuals
moral development.
is important
to
on the
understand
an individual
makes
notion their
a decision,
that
environ-ment. he
or she
engagesin asequence of cognitive thought processes.To illustrate, or
store
and
these
individuals the
relevant
interpreted
information
at a later
individuals
and then they they
experience
search
findings
regarding
use information
With respect
delinquent
or
for
and
so
be
it
can
(Conklin
the
appropriate
this
decision. There
Second,
response,
action.
are
more likely
behavior
Last,
are some vital
process. First, individuals
properly criminal
encode
retrieved
2007).
determine the appropriate
must act on their
to ascertain
date
an event
(Shelden
to
who avoid 2006)
PSYCHOLOGICAL
Second,
those
who
judgments
to
avoid
a mental script that
is prolonged
third
of faulty
or rejection
by parents
consequences
has
Contemplating
rejection
demonstrated
violence as a coping
that
preference for
entertain
the
who
Openness, referring
73
who score high on
In contrast,
than
The
is related
fourth to
have a curious.
maintain
who
are
unconven-tional
closed-minded.
who score low in behave in
and have a conservative
pleasure
positive and negative emo-tions
individuals
persons
find
Openness are willing to
or novel ideas,
prefer the familiar,
more
& Mazarolle 2001).
so
to indi-viduals
feelings,
and are intellectually
values, and experience
use
likely to exhibit other problems, such as alcohol and
to their inner
variety,
unique
more
self-esteem.
individuals
is
beauty, are attentive
A
or dismissal is
mechanism are substantially
drug dependency (Piquero
in
is oversensitivity
or peers.
of long-lasting
domain
Individuals
may account for
likely to produce damage to an individuals Research
may be
exposure to violence.
reasoning
third
who have an active imagination,
on a
waslearned in childhood
flawed reasoning
The
for flawed
he or she
CRIME
and shy (Clark et al. 2007).
decisions
may be relying
Asecond reason that
possibility
events are
an explanation
OF
often characterized by being reserved, independent,
reasoned
behavioral
process; specifically,
( Jacoby 2004).
make
with emotional
is that the individual
cognitive
following
to
antisocial
2008). Interestingly,
reasoning faulty
conditioned
when faced
more likely (Siegal
are
THEORIES
Openness often
conventional
viewpoint
(Clark
manners,
et al. 2007).
domain is
Agreeableness. This
interpersonal
tendencies.
domain
Individuals
who score high on this domain are considered warm, altruistic,
forgiving,
softhearted,
sympathetic,
and
trusting. In contrast, those who are not agreeable are described as hard-hearted, intolerant, impatient, PERSONALITY
AND
CRIME
argumentative.
Conscientiousness, the fifth Personality can be defined as something what
we are
and
others (Clark, Ideally,
also
between
theories
model provides
results.
Big Five
a vigorous
five
Conscientiousness
Individuals
from
Examinations
of
and crime
have
One of the
most
used to examine
structure
into
which
domains (1)
anxiety. In
Neuroticism
are often
persons described
tempered,
calm, and relaxed.
whoscore high
The
domain,
second
by sociability,
optimistic
is
as even
(Clark
are thought
are often
also are more
In contrast, introverts
to be careless, lazy, and
morelikely
et al. 2007).
One personality
study
discovered
of hostility, impulsivity, with delinquent
that
the
per-sonality
and narcissism
and criminal
research conducted
Furthermore,
behavior.
by Sheldon and
a number of personality traits that
are
werecharacteristic
of antisocial youth (Schmalleger 2008). Another im-portant figure is
who examined the criminal personality
Hans Eysenck (19161997).
antisocial
score
Individuals
(extraverts)
and assertive. They
toward the future.
on
characterized
and stimulation.
who score high on Extraversion very active, talkative,
domain
personality
neuroticism.
Extraversion,
excitement,
by others
who are conscien-tious
Eleanor Glueck during the 1930s and 1940s identified
Neuroticism
who score low
those
are
determined,
assign fault to others than to accept blame themselves
ideas, uncontrollable impulses,
contrast,
efficient,
desires. In contrast, people who score low on this
traits
on this domain often demonstrate anger and sadness and
willed. In addition,
Conscientiousness
are morelikely to achieve high academic and occu-pational
are correlated
et al. 2007).
involves emotional stability. Individuals and have irrational
and strong
for
Openness,(4) Agreeableness,and (Clark
who score high on
Neuroticism,
account
and exercise self-control.
described as organized, thorough,
can be categorized.
diff erences in personality:
(2) Extraversion, (3)
erent
model of personality.
characteristics
model suggests that
individual
diff
domain, focuses on a per-sons
ability to control impulses
makes us
& Chaplin 2007).
personality
of personality
is the
most personality
(5)
us
Caillouet,
yielded inconsistent
well-known
This
makes
that
personality is stable over time.
this relationship This
which
Boccaccini,
the relationship often
that
and
at
the
neuroticism criminal
(1) extraversion
ends
are
of
either
morelikely
(Eysenck
domain
to
of
extra-version
be self-destructive
& Eysenck 1985).
two
and (2)
Eysenck suggested that individuals
is associated abusing
traits:
Eysenck identified
who and
and
Moreover, neurot-icism
with self-destructive
drugs and alcohol and committing
behavior (e.g., crimes)
74
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
PSYCHOPATHIC
illustrate, some people have short fingers like their
PERSONALITY
mother and brown eyeslike their father. Antisocial terms
personality,
are often
a product
Psychopaths within
a product
themselves.
rights
others,
relationships,
shallow
include
if
individual
suff
by
may engage as
in
thrill to
childhood
a
It is important
and of
Thus,
crime
if
personality
in
the
forces
at an early stage
Other
off enders
can predict
that
root
influence
With respect to nurture themselves inherited.
are
on the There
exists
have suggested
crime cause
society (i.e., environment). To demonstrate, their
2008).
CRIME
a link
2004).
between
Some
childrens play
quality time
beliefs
delinquents
possess low
intelligence
causes
that
the
Holy
criminals
from
ideology into
the The
or
scholars
noncriminals of IQ
of individuals
that
is
related
impacts
this
have continued The
to
ultimate
crime debate
goal. The
whether
the
psychological
&
we share
Rosenfield our
2007).
parents
Science DNA.
The
To
of of
children,
poorly
major influence
children
on
in
art,
in
and these children
on intelligence
a childs
test.
nurturing
are Other
are friends,
Ultimately, the child
Research
has
who has no
demonstrated
nature-versus-nurture
that
the
debate
will
continue.
The debate has peaks and valleys. For years,the debate subsides,
and this
is followed
highlighted Hirschi scholars
likelihood
development
of the role
moreeducation a person has,the higher his or her IQ.
These
environment
not
events. Some parents spend no
with their
times.
Travis
debate is a psychological to
difficult
that
2004).
is
At an early age, parents read
and a great deal of attention.
has crystallized ( Jacoby
for
re-search
predict
ground
friends or relatives and drops out of school is destined
low
to suggest
ability
makechoices.
is placed on the role
music; and engage their
relatives, and teachers.
and
As criminological
and
the
(Messner that
criminals
Manyindividuals
intelligence
parents are a
behavior.
groups important
there
(Dabney,
and that
is the
nature-versus-nurture
heredity
recognizes
criminality.
that
crime
are that
intelligence
nature-versus-nurture
argument
and
Grail is causality.
or concept
centuries
intelligence
common
has advanced,
for
an individuals
is some recognition
believed to perform Criminologists
studies,
who havealow IQ but
that
however, emphasis
museum, and sporting AND
(Siegal
other
theory, advocates
premise
heredity;
books;
INTELLIGENCE
that
refrain from committing crime.
human
of life (Siegal
influences
Last,there are manyindividuals
discipline.
the
which in turn
in our society believein the ability to
level.
that
IQ,
behaviors
tendencies,
assume
and
he or she
pathologic
traits
intelligence
data
the failure to account for free will.
psychopathic
many chronic
of these
IQ tests to
indicated
criminal behavior? Onecriticism of this perspectiveis
as
the
or inconsistent
one could
found
development
with
note that
then
is
arousal
to
basis
on
decades of
However, can researchers assume a priori that heredity determines
arousal
high-risk
low
events;
to
violence,
their
parent
traumatic
sociopaths.
or
may contribute
is
of
score low
administered results
has
some scholars argue that the role of nature is prevalent.
may
Interestingly,
levels
typically
male children. The
On the
population
2008). In the early
40% had below-average
2008).
disorder,
examination,
seeking
off set
that
personality
low
a neurological
crime
dynamics
from
close to
cold-heartedness,
2008).
nature-versus-nurture With respect to
on the prison
shown that inmates
delinquent
egocentricity,
origin
humor? The
the 20th century, researchers
of
enduring
neurological
(Siegal ers
charm,
to form
and
consistently
IQ tests (Schmalleger
violations
2004). The
socialization,
the nature side, research is
superficial
taking,
(Jacoby
abnormality
measured
such
risk
forcefulness
traumatic brain
guilt,
persistent
and
get their love
debate addresses this issue.
or aberration
However,the
Where do individuals
of sports, literature,
personality
an incapacity
emotions
and an
of
impulsivity,
manipulativeness, and
levels
are
Sociopaths
home environment. defect
antisocial
intelligence, of
sociopath
2009).
of a
The
by low
above-average
or
(Siegal
of a destructive
are
characterized
the
psychopathy,
used interchangeably
question remains:
school
this
and
Michael that low
major stud-ies
was conducted Hindelang IQ
argument
argument is that
by
(1977).
increases
behavior through
performance. This
elementary. Their
One of two debate
suggested
of criminal
by years of scrutiny
the
its eff ect on
seems somewhat a child
with a lo
PSYCHOLOGICAL
IQ
will perform poorly in school. In turn, this school
failure is followed school
by dropping out. Given the poor
performance, (Hirschi
a child is left
&
Hindelang
leads to delinquency this
position
important
has been widespread.
to note that
populated
The
it is
U.S. prisons and jails are highly
education.
At the same time, these same
second
attention and
Furthermore,
Charles
of their
nature-versus-nature
Murray (1994).
In their
book The
Curve, these scholars suggested individuals IQ are morelikely to commit
Bell
theory
is the
behavior real
world, there
individuals
criminals
data, the researchers have a lower
research
concludes
those
criminal
who have been caught and those IQ lower
general
these public.
the
the
that
to criminal
is significant. attempting
This
For centuries,
to explain
scholars
be-haviorexisted
for
a crime.
criminal
that
are the roles of the id, ego, and superego in criminal
criminality
behavior.This
wasfollowed by a discussion of mental
disorders
crime.
conduct Through
disorder
and
oppositional
both disorders,
defiant
associated
ultimately
crime. the
Bipolar
next
was
disorder
most serious
the
role
concluding
of
disorder.
mental
are two
of
Research suggests that
Neuroticism,
Agreeableness, and Extraversion
Concerning can be
Neuroticism
are
behavior.
Last, the intelligence and
data
are
mea-sured
Conscientiousness.
and
IQ
dis-cussed
Extraversion,
centuries,
debate has
demonstrate
more likely
We
related
that
in-dividuals
to engage in
to the discussion of intel-ligence
delinquency and adult
haveconsistently demonstrated the link be-tween
the two. In reality, it is not difficult to understand in
his or her career or future
options.
Occupations
have desirable salaries often require
a high school
degree
as
well as a bachelors
when citizens
or
masters
and scholars attempt
why people commit given to psychological
and
of
of-fenders
and evaluat-ing
major topics
personality
have examined future
that treat-ment In sum,
illness
next
criminal
why a person whofails or drops out of school is limited
pos-sess that
is paramount.
and schizophrenia
disorders.
were
with delinquency
is a necessity and early intervention Discussed
here
welearned that children
many characteristics and adult criminality,
examination
that
and IQ is school performance. Researchstudies
theory as developed by Sigmund Freud. Included here
Under
how
were Kohlbergs
and intelligence.
behavior. Important
chapter examined the role of psychodynamic
and
on
and information-processing
that
domains
with a low
have been
why someone commits
followed
we can conclude
we learned
Openness, learned
and criminal
theory
were personality
&
CONCLUSION
psychology
mental processes of
examined
world around them. The
via
between
of
are poor at processing information
(Herrnstein
social
examined is cogni-tion.
discussion
subdisciplines
personality,
relationship
theory
A
Ultimately,
off enders
Murray 1994).
The
most prominent
Albert Bandura,
examined.
moral development theory.
who have not have an
than the general population
which
most relevant
perceiveand mentally represent the world.
important self-reported
discovered that
IQ than the
theory,
Furthermore, how do individuals solve problems? Two
those
whose actions go undetected?Through
individuals Thus,
what about
behavior
by a negative
is the
Moreover, the
Here, the importance
suggested that prisons and jails are highly populated
that
Social learning
psychological
is
others. In the
assumption
theory,
of this
change their
from
and eliminated
of behavior
third
individuals
exists the
theorist is
The
that
via rewards
to criminology.
crime, get caught, and be
however,
mentioned,
At the forefront
to reactions
or punishment.
individuals
IQs;
premise
according
IQ and crime link to another level. Specifically, they with low
As previously
experiences.
learning
sent to prison. Importantly, these authors transport the
with inmates
major psychologi-cal
through
learning
with alower
with bipolar
suggests human behavior is fostered
is a branch
Herrnstein
75
and delinquency and/
second
is behaviorism.
CRIME
behavioral theory
war-rants reaction
study that
by Richard
behavior. The
is reinforced
off ense were unemployed.
was conducted
and schizophrenia
theory
of
who only have an average of
at the time
disorder
ultimately Support
with inmates
eighth-grade inmates
1977). This
and adult criminality.
OF
there is a correlation betweenindividuals
op-tions or criminal
with very few
THEORIES
a crime, recognition
theories.
a serious error in judgment
degree.
to under-stand must be
Not doing so would be
76
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
REFERENCES
AND
FURTHER
READINGS
Hirschi,
T., & Hindelang,
M.(1977).
A revisionist Bandura,
A, (1977).
Cliff s,
NJ: Prentice
Bandura,
A. (1978).
Journal
Social
Englewood
How Behavioral
Bohm, (2nd Clark,
J.,
Belmont,
and
Law,
CA:
26,
theory
model
Chaplin,
or personality
outcomes
in
Criminology
(9th
Messner,
jury
and
civil
Boston:
CA:
Cengage
Eysenck,
Crime types:
H., & Eysenck,
S. (1933). New
Herrnstein,
R.,
Intelligence York:
Free
A text/reader.
Allyn
Belmont,
New York: New
York:
&
Plenum
introductory
and indi-vidual
Schmalleger,
Shelden,
on
Siegal,
C. (1994). in
The
American
bell curve: life.
of
moral development:
New York:
criminal
justice.
Harper
Long
(2007).
R.
dream
(4th
Mazarolle,
ed.).
&
Grove,
Crime
and
Belmont,
P. (2001).
CA
Life course criminol-ogy:
and classic readings.
New
F. (2008). ed.).
Criminal
Englewood
Belmont,
Cengage
L. (2009).
Silver,
E.
theory:
Long
Cliff s,
CA:
The
A brief introduc-tion
NJ: Prentice
and
Grove,
Criminology:
juvenile
IL:
Waveland
core (3rd
ed.).
Hall. justice
in
Press. Belmont,
Learning.
Criminology
(10th
ed,).
Belmont,
CA:
Learning.
(2002).
Extending
A multilevel
among
justice:
Delinquency
society.
L. (2008).
psycho-analysis. Siegal,
Norton.
Murray,
psychology
Rosenfield,
R. (2006).
CA:
Press.
lectures
&
A., &
Cengage
and class structure Press.
Personality
in criminology.
Press.
Press.
Contemporary
American
M. (1985).
Long
Wadsworth.
Learning.
diff erences. Freud,
S.,
(7th D. (2004).
The
American
Piquero,
34, 641660. ed.).
ed.).
Wadsworth.
W.
traits,
criminal
Academic
moral development.
Waveland
Bacon.
Dabney,
L. (1984).
the
Wadsworth.
Justice and Behavior,
J. (2007).
IL:
&
and symptoms
Carolina
Kraska, P. (2004). Theorizing
jurors?
487510.
B.,
NC:
(3rd
Row.
psychopathy:
influence
and de-linquency: Sociological
Press.
P. (2001). Theories
Essays on
D.(2008).
of criminology
Waveland
Durham,
ac-tion.
Classics
IL:
Kohlberg,
and delinquency
M., Caillouet,
case
cases. Criminal Conklin,
& the
Five factor
selection,
naming labels
Primer on crime
Boccaccini,
(2007).
and
and
Hall.
D., Clark, J., & Cornell,
Sciences
ed.).
of thought
NJ: Prentice
psychopathy
R. (2001).
of aggression.
American
471741.
J. (2004).
Knepper,
foundations
diagnosing,
do youth
theory
42,
Grove,
28, 1229.
Cliff s,
M., Murrie,
Describing,
Review,
Englewood
Jacoby,
Social learning
A. (1986).
Boccaccini,
theory.
Hall.
of Communication,
Bandura,
&
Social learning
Intelligence
review.
persons
with
social
approach
disorganization
to the study
mental illness.
of violence
Criminology,
40,
191212.
Tarde, Holt.
G. (1903).
The
laws
of imitation.
New
York:
PART II
Micro-Level Process
Social
Theorie
PART II INTRODUCTION
Micro-Level
I
n Part 2 weexamine social learning
a shift
Social
Process
Theories
micro-level social process theories, focusing
and social control theories. The
away from the individually
oriented
theories
theories
on
covered in Part 2 mark
(rational
and psychological theories) discussedin Part 1toward
specifically
choice,
biological,
micro-level social process
theories that incorporate social, cultural, structural, and interactive factors. This is in stark contrast to psychological and biological theories locus of criminal behavior lies within the individual. and psychological arguments that criminals to normal
human beings, or that they
process theories socialization,
learning,
key assumption
no diff erent from
authors
theories,
of the
social learning
interactionism here).
theory
harm
For
Part 2 discuss two theory
morality
control
(a third
and rationalizations
what
are
not covered
is what people
during
early child
human beings can learn criminal
of off enses that
theorists
process
theory, social
theorists
occurs primarily
words, normal
norms, attitudes,
social
A
or criminals
diff erent social
of social constructionism
process that
periods. In other
others.
social
individual
with others.
delinquents
behavior for social learning
the socialization
behaviors,
criminal,
and interaction
and social control
with the skills and excuse the to
monitoring,
madethem
developed through
non-criminals.
theory
and a related
developmental techniques,
behavior is
Readings in
Whatleads to criminal
learn through
had traits that
criminal
supervision,
wereatavistic throwbacks orinferior
made by social process theorists is that
are essentially The
argue that
which argue that the
Contrary to early biological
leads
that
makeit to
provide them
possible for them
criminal
behavior
is
the
failure of childhood socialization to develop effective inner controls or the lack of self-control.
Social control theories then shift attention away from the causes of
crime to focus on what keeps most peoplefrom committing crime. Social learning theory focuses on how normal people learn wrong and values that criminal
or
both teach them
delinquent
sociological, associated
with theories
genetic components the positivist
behavior.
insofar
as it
how, and allows them, to justify Consequently,
engaging in
theory
goes beyond the stimulus-response
of behavioral
of biological
social learning
behavior is con-sidered learning
psychology1 and beyond the trait-based
theories.
And, social learning
push for the study of crime and behavior
theory
using scientific
and
continues principles.
7
80
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
The founding social learning theorists Sutherland and
Cressey(1966) argued that criminals
diff erent from
non-criminals.
fundamental
diff
erence
Instead,
between
off
enders as rooted in the learning non-criminals
learn
conventional
life,
values
and
criminals
well as justifications, primary learning
for law
and
process.
and
offending
others. This
Whereas to
values,
as
small intimate
with others, usually in
groups. Those
most influential
process are those
learned.
motives
contrary
friends,
and peers.
enders
that
learn
learn
conform
values,
norms,
to
or
norms,
skills,
whereas
and
motives
of-fenders
that
are
and which equip them crime.
when criminal
with
Crime is
values
out-weigh
values. the specific
techniques
act,
values,
skills,
happen
with learning
motives and criminal
criminal
convention,
and values, to commit
conventional Along
the to
to the convention
the knowledge, most likely
of learning,
pro-cess
key diff erence is the content of what is
Non-off
and
in the
not only occurs in close association
posits that the learning
is the same for all forms
we have a close relation-ship
with such as parents, family, However, learning
theory
noncriminal. The
behavior. The
is because social learning
is conveyed in close association
Social learning
non-off
conducive
norms
theory of psychologist Albert Bandura.
saw the
mechanism occurs in close association
with significant
learning
enders
norms
learn
were no
they
and movedthe theory closer to the cognitive learning
about
individuals
also
knowledge,
how to
learn
skills,
commit
a
rationalizations,
or
with others but can also occur vicariously, or through
neutralizations, that excuse or justify their criminal or
social modelingfrom role models,celebrities, or others
delinquent behavior. Neutralization theory (Sykes &
who may be available via social mediaand television (Bandura
1973;
1977;
2001).
Celebrities,
Matza 1957) which is another social process theory, challenges the idea that there is a stark contrast be-tween
cultural
conventional mainstreamsociety and delinquent
heroes, and other personas on television, the Internet, or other social knowledge
media and gaming
and thus,
of knowledge, influenced,
may play a part in the transmis-sion values, and/or
taught,
around them
can also transmit
and ultimately
norms.
of
Edwin
Sutherlands
theory.
what others
diff erential behavior
interaction.
is
(1947)
diff erential
association learned
definitions
favorable
theory
within
Social interaction
varying configurations
crime
exceed
proposes that of
exposure
those
founded in
behavioral
to
when
was
movedthe concept from its early behaviorist
roots toward recognizing context
of learning
others.
Unlike the posited in
theorists through
the importance
through
symbolic
association
Sutherland
behavioral
interaction
with
models, social learning is active
and occurs
how the transmission
occurs, Akers (1968)
of
Neutralization are able to
maintaining other
and
theory neutralize
a connection
to
words, no one engages
all the time;
crime
values
rather
conventional
people drift behavior
and
allow them to be morally free to do so
1964).
Unlike the previous theories theorists
do
mechanisms.
not
see
the
discussed, social con-trol
cause
of
crime
as
rooted
Instead,
social
control
theorists
turn
the
ask what keeps most people from offending? Similar to classical theory, social control theorists believethat without
restraint
went on to
While of do so
there
would
be
a
universal
to crime. In essence, they explore
mecha-nism or restrains
with others in small groups.
did not specify
social learning
of the social
passive stimulus-response
propose that learning
behavior
and
mainstream society, and
offenders
society. In
both
question of what causescrime around and instead they of psycho-logical
components
theory but its adaptation to explaining criminal behavior
in
while still
learn
in biological, psychological, or even social learning
unfavorable
to crime, criminal behavior results. Social learning
how
of guilt
out
individuals norms
underbelly.
neutralizations (Matza
social
of behavior;
their involvement
explains
in and per-spective,
Rather,
non-conventional
subterranean
in criminal
association
contexts
provides
of definitions to
its
and
conventional
developed as areformulation
Drawing from the symbolic-interactionist
criminal
through
feelings
heroes.
subcultures.
conventional
whether these are par-ents, thus
expose them to,
theory
People are
act on
peers, gang members or cultural Social learning
or criminal
people from
committing
internal disciplinary
to examine a variety and external controls,
controls,
may also include
the
societal failure
However,
view of control
of control
mecha-nisms:
parental controls,
controls, to
what controls,
crimes.
they go beyond classical theorys limited because ofcosts
motiva-tion
form
etc.
Controls
attachment
PART
and commitments to conventional parents and teachers (Hirschi
others, especially
1969).
Social control
II
gratification. The
mainidea behind control theory is
that the ties, or bonds, to conventional
the social processesand social organizational arrangements to
friends,
help explain crime and deviance.
a risk for
have developed This
Hirschi
a theory
thrill-seeking
through
and
main types
of social control theory,
and failure to bond theory
Henry 2010). Broken bond theory beings are socialized
into
(Lanier
argues that
conventional
and so on make crime too
process theories focus
and
reduction
exchange
policies
of
should
nature. Policymakers
group
knowledge,
be social
would identify
potential
group therapy, counseling
dynamics,
then
crime
psychological
off enders and
provide such
legal behaviors for illegal
prevention
rationalizations
in
programs
or other interventions
that they learn to substitute
reasons,
on the learn-ing
are urged to implement
hu-man ones. Furthermore,
behavior
much of
most people.
behavior
that
behavior.
are two
broken bond theory and
parental controls
engaging in sensation
parents, school,
processes that involve interaction,
of self-control.
of adequate
employers,
Because social
(2001)
child rearing, lead some to seek imme-diate
gratification
There
Gottfredson
of the failure
suggests that a lack
and inadequate
and
81
the lure of sensation-seeking behavior for immediate
theories are considered sociologically rooted since they look at
More recently,
INTRODUCTION
or
involves
exposing
neutralizations
for
the
crime
from an early age, but something breaks or weakens
asincorrect, inaccurate or misguided. Control theories
the bonds to convention, freeing a person to deviate
advocate creating or strengthening ties to conventional
(Akers
1994).
As we have seen this
broken
occur through the neutralization of the law
or
as
we shall
see
in
Part
disorganizationisolation
conform
to
the
dominant
or
of a commitment
go
stake in conformity more likely to
maintenance
bond
attachment
attachment,
forming
of time
Although (1973),
and can easily
a variety
provide
analysis
of
that
not just
theory.
learning
learning
presented
several its from
via the
Ronald
principles
criminals
and
theorist
many of these
the
has
behaviorism,
which requires a responsible, lovingly re-sponsive
learning
learning reject
Psychology
a secure
social
incorporates
generally
place, humans
to
to
leading
sociological
or
break the law. This
has been attributed parents failure
1.
and
commitment
in the first
to deviate and to
factors, including
NOTE
assumes that the very cre-ation
much investment
Without this
controls and
to
and to socially
requires
the quality of
culture.
to achieve (Box
and considerable
failure
mainstream
activities, and improving
of com-munitiescan supervision.
to convention,
wrong.
are
breakdown
society by strengthening involvement in conventional institutions,
parenting, and both direct and indirect
social
book,
norms and values is difficult
1971). This energy
can
a persons commitment
Failure to bond theory
approved
3 of this
and
undermine
bond
moral bind of
Social
personality-type are
diff erent
versions social
into
his
theorists
psychological
from
non-criminal.
of learning,
learning
others,
Akers
theory
but
also from
mass media (Bandura,
1977;
beyond involves images 2001).
and sensitive mother-figure whois empathetic and able to satisfy childhood
needsfor emotional and REFERENCES
physical security (Bowlby 1946). Otherssuggest the cause of a failure to bond is the inability
to internalize
absence
of
threat from
direct
of punishment, parental
of internal
parents
to
social
the failure
monitoring
or self-control,
an internalized 2001). This
personal
external
self-control controls
of indirect
and supervision
and the as
the
controls
and a failure
which for some depends on
sense of guilt (Hirschi too is seen as the result
adequately
such
train
their
& Gottfredson of a failure
children
by
to resist
Akers,
R.(1968).
Social
Problems
Definitions
in the
and
Sociology
of Deviance:
Behavior.
Social
Forces,
Behavior:
A Social
46:
455465.
Akers,
R. (1973).
Approach.
Akers,
Deviant
Belmont,
R. (1994).
and Evaluation.
CA:
Criminological Los
Learning
Wadsworth.
Angeles:
Theories: Roxbury
Introduction Press
82
CRIME
AND
Bandura,
BEHAVIOR
A. (1973).
Analysis. Bandura,
A. (1977).
Cliff s,
A.
Research, 154196.
J. (1946). and
Holt,
Social
Learning
Hall.
Theory.
Cognitive
Englewood
by
of
Theory
of
Personality: Theory
and
by L. A. Pervin Guilford
Forty-four
and P. J. Oliver,
Juvenile
Lanier, 3rd
Matza,
Theives: Bailliere,
of
Reality, and Society.
and
The
Their Tindall,
New York:
California
Press.
M. (2001). Criminals
and
Roxbury
M.M.
R.
Edition.
Crime, pp.
Edited
8196.
Los
Press.
Boulder,
D. (1964).
Self-Control
and
Bachman,
& Henry, S. (2010).
Sutherland,
E.
Philadelphia:
CO:
Essential
Westview
Delinquency
and
Criminology.
Press.
Drift.
New York: John
Delinquency.
Berkeley:
H. (1947).
Principles
E. H. & Cressey,
G.
Philadelphia:
&
Neutralization: American
of
Criminology.
J. B. Lippencott.
Criminology. Sykes,
Winston.
Causes of
Gottfredson, Explaining
R. Paternoster
Sutherland,
Reinhart,
& In
Wiley.
Press.
Home Life. London:
Deviance,
T. (1969).
University
T.
Angeles:
Handbook
York:
Hirschi, Theory.
Cox.
Box, S. (1971).
Hirschi,
Learning
Social
ed. edited
New
Characters and
In 2nd
A
NJ: Prentice
Hall.
(2001).
Personality.
Cliff s,
Social
NJ: Prentice
Bandura,
Bowlby,
Aggression:
Englewood
Matza,
D. R. (1966).
D. (1957). A
Sociological
Principles
of
J. B. Lippencott.
Theory Review;
Techniques of
Delinquency.
22: 664670
of
CHAPTER IV
Social Learning
Theorie
A THEORY OF DIFFERENTIAL ASSOCIATION
Edwin Sutherland
S
utherlands theory is stated in the form of nine propositions.
behavior is learned byinteracting learn
others. Criminals
Donald
crime and the definitions favorable to crime
from these others.The sixth proposition, whichforms the heart of the theory, states that a
person becomesdelinquent becauseof an excessof definitions favorable to law
violation over definitions unfavorable to violation of law.
Accordingto Sutherland,
factors such associal class,race, and broken homesinfluence crime becausethey affect the likelihood that individuals to
The
1.
following
statement
Criminal
Criminal
also the
Negatively, this
criminal
communication
communication
person
in
behavior is
who is not already trained
in crime
make mechanical
mechanics.
behavior is learned in interaction
principal
means that criminal
behavior, just as a person does not
unless he has had training
communication. This
3. The
process by which a particular
as such; also, the person
does not invent inventions
refers to the behavior:
behavior is learned.
not inherited,
2.
will associate with others whopresent definitions favor-able
crime.
comes to engage in criminal
with other persons in
is verbal in
many respects
a process of but includes
of gestures.
part of the learning
personal groups. Negatively,this
of criminal
behavior occurs within intimate
meansthat the impersonal agencies of com-munication,
such as moviesand newspapers, play a relatively unimportant part in the genesis of criminal behavior. 4.
Whencriminal behavior is learned, the learning includes (a) techniques of com-mitting the crime, whicharesometimes very complicated, sometimesvery simple; (b) the specific direction of motives, drives, rationalizations,
and attitudes.
5. The specific direction of motives and drives is learned from definitions of the legal codes asfavorable or unfavorable. In some societies an individual
is surrounded
persons who invariably
define the legal codes as rules to be observed,
others heis surrounded
by persons whose definitions
of the legal codes. In our
and
He argues that criminal
with others, especially intimate
both the techniques of committing
H.
by
while in
are favorable to the viola-tion
American society these definitions
are almost
85
R. Cresse
86
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
always mixed, with the consequencethat
would be stated in quantitative form and a math-ematical
we have
culture conflict in relation to the legal codes. 6.
ratio
such aformula
definitions favorable to violation oflaw over definitions
of
differential
and
association.
anti-criminal
refers
associations
counteracting they
It
forces.
is the principle to
both
and
has
do so because of contacts
patterns.
culture
are in conflict; r
a Southerner
because other
r.
means far
as
crime
other learning.
associations
concerned
instance, learns
which have
are
little
or
as
9.
needs
and
effect on criminal
are concerned
with the legal codes. This
behavior is important the
time
of
criminal in
7.
the
a child
especially
so
that
he is
not
neutral
criminal
Frequency
with
also
as
and
striving
continue
to
behavior
as completely
differentiate
associations
It
modalities
to
be futile
an
for social status, the have been and
since they as they
are similar
criminal
is
not
explain
explain explain
but
must
lawful criminal
to respiration,
from
which
which does not
non-criminal
things.
at this
necessary,
why a person
this
he has; of as-sociations
need no explanation.
is assumed to beimportant in the sense
that lawful
is
behavior.
meansthat associa-tions and
and duration
behavior
work in order to secure money.
principle,
behavior. They
he is so engaged
behavior vary in those respects.
are obvious
Priority
non-criminal
money motive, or frustration,
of
may vary in frequency, dura-tion,
behavior
with anti-criminal
since
is necessary for any behavior
priority, and intensity. This
be described
by general drives and values, such as the
happiness
neutral
contact
by association,
behavior is an expression of general
values
behavior
behavior.
Differential associations
with
in
behavior
The attempts by manyscholars to explain criminal
which
as an occupier
behavior during the time
to the
who is seduced, for
steal in order to secure money,but likewise
behavior
may be related to associations
not restricted
A person
criminal
honest laborers
learning to brush onesteeth.This behavior has no or positive
behavior is
meansthat the learn-ing
expressionofthe same needsand values. Thieves gen-erally
effect
on the genesis of criminal behavior. Much of the
negative
patterns
imitation.
Whilecriminal
experience of a personis neutral in this sense,e.g.,
except as it
by as-sociation
needs and values, it is not explained by those general
as-sociation
neutral no
of
difficult. behavior
but this process would not ordinarily
patterns
of differential
sense
mechanismsthat areinvolved in any
of criminal
assimilates
other
this
and anti-criminal
Negatively, this
process of imitation.
anti-criminal
do not pronounce
proposition
that is
involves all ofthe
does not pronounce
Southerners
Negatively, this
so
unless
criminal
with criminal with
from
in
would be extremely
process of learning
with criminal
Any person inevitably
surrounding
do
When persons become crimi-nal,
patterns and also because of isolation
the
8. The
criminal to
A formula
has not been developed, and the development
A person becomes delinquent because of an excess of
unfavorable to violation of law. This
be reached.
In
certainly
level
of explanation,
has the associations
involves
a complex
an area where the delinquency
which
of
many
rate is high,
a boy whois sociable, gregarious, active, and athletic is
behavior developed in early child-hood verylikely to comein contact with the other boysin the life, and also that
neighborhood, learn delinquent behavior from them,
delinquent behavior developedin early childhood
and become a gangster; in the same neighborhood the
may persist throughout may persist throughout has not priority
been adequately
seems to beimportant
its selective influence. defined
life. This tendency, how-ever, psychopathic boy who is isolated, introverted,
but it
has to
demonstrated, principally
Intensity do
is
pattern
and
with emotional
the associations. criminal
behavior
In
through
not precisely
with such things
prestige of the source of a criminal
a precise
and
as the
related
description
of a person these
may remain
with the
other
to
of the
modalities
at
athletic,
behavior. The
boy
situation,
and
not
the sociable,
may become a member of a
not become involved persons associations
in a general context ordinarily
neighborhood,
In another
aggressive and
home, not become acquainted
boys in the
become delinquent.
scout troop
or anti-criminal
reactions
inert
and
of social
reared in a family;
in
delinquent
are determined
organization.
A child is
the place of residence
o
A
the family is determined largely by family income; and
frequency
THEORY
OF
DIFFERENTIAL
ASSOCIATION
87
with which they commit crimes. Oneof the
the delinquency rate is in
manyrespects related to the
best explanations of crime rates from this point of view
rental value of the houses.
Many other aspects of social
is that
organization
affect the kinds
of associations
a person
The
term social
satisfactory
has.
The
preceding
explanation
purports
to
behavior
of individual
explain
the
of criminal
criminal
persons.
it is possible to state sociological behavior
to
and
account
comparison
for
variations
explanation
and
involves
a
group at different times. The
of a crime rate
of the criminal
must be consistent
is that
with the
behavior of the person,
criminal
organized
not entirely
The
is based, regardless
crime is rooted in the social
against
is
social organization.
of that
social
may be organized for criminal
when thus stated, rates
the term differential
is an expression
of criminal
of a community,
of the crime rates of various groups or the
crime rates of a particular explanation
crime
earlier,
disorganization
disorganiza-tion.
and it seems preferable to substitute
on which this theory
non-criminal
theories
problem, in
behavior
As indicated
which explain the criminality
nation, or other group. The is
a high crime rate is due to social
behavior.
both for criminal
for it
postulate
of the name,
organization
organization. behavior
A group
or organized
Most communities and anti-criminal
group
organization.
as an explanation
Differential
of the
group or-ganization
of variations in crime rates
is consistent with the differential association theory of
sincethe crime rate is a summary statement of the num-ber the processesby which persons become criminals of personsin the group whocommit crimes and the
are
behavior
and in that sense the crime rate is an expression differential
and
SOCIAL LEARNING
THEORY
Ronald
and
T
he purpose theory
association
of this chapter is to provide with attention
theory
and the
an overview
to its theoretical behavioral
Empirical research testing the utility
roots in
psychology
of
Sutherlands Skinner
diff erential
and
Bandura.
of social learning theory for explaining by a discussion
macro-level applications of the theory (i.e., social structure and social
learning). The chapter concludes with a brief offering of suggestions for future research and a summary of the importance theory in the criminological
ORIGIN
Burgess and an eff ort to association for
AND
literature.
OVERVIEW
Akers (1966)
theory
(1947)
and principles
(1968,
further
development
learning
theory).
OF SOCIAL
diff erential
meld Sutherlands
Akers
of social learning theory as a general
1973;
of the theory,
Sutherlands
THEORY
association-reinforcement sociological
of behavioral
Alters,
LEARNING
Krohn,
approach
in
psychology. This
Lanza-Kaduce,
theory
was
his diff erential wasthe founda-tion
& Radosevich
1979)
which he came more often to refer to as social
diff erential
association
theory
is contained
in
nine
propositions:
1.
2.
Criminal
behavior
is learned.
Criminal behavior is learned in interaction
with other persons in a process of
communication.
3.
The principal part of the learning of criminal behavior occurs within intimate personal groups.
4.
When criminal (a) techniques sometimes (b)
5.
The
behavior is learned, the learning includes of committing
the crime,
which are sometimes
very compli-cated,
very simple, and
the specific direction
of
specific direction
motives and drives is learned from
legal codes asfavorable
of
motives, drives, rationalizations,
and attitudes. definitions
of the
or unfavorable.
89
Akers
Wesley G.
of Akers social learn-ing
variation in crime or devianceis then reviewed; this is followed of recent
L.
Jenning
90
CRIME
6.
AND
BEHAVIOR
A person becomes delinquent because of an excess of
definitions
favorable
definitions
The
7.
to
unfavorable
to
of
the
of
criminal
with criminal all
of law
violation
process of learning
involves
violation
the
involved
in
any other learning. 8.
Although
behavior
is an expression
needs and values, it is
of
not explained
behavior is an expression
of the same needs
association
priority,
and intensity.
longest-running, will
be
varies in frequency,
most
earliest
efficacious
The and
or
dura-tion,
that
violating
aff
being
the law.
an
definitions
(intensity)
in
likelihood
More specifically, definitions
more likely
and
deviant
Although theory
of
if a person is ex-posed first (priority),
in frequency
to
and
and strength (duration),
demonstrate
the
involvement
acts.
Sutherlands
(1947)
began to accumulate
of attention throughout
of learned
of the diff erential
individuals
increase
with law-abiding
behavior. It is the
and persist for some time is
criminal
most frequent,
with criminals
associated
and balance
ect
to pro-criminal these
closest influences
determinant
or that
nature, characteristics,
individual
values.
Diff erential
9.
crime
being associated
persons leads to conforming
by
those general needs and values, because noncrimi-nal
and
to
association
criminal
general
merely state that
patterns
are
(see Cressey 1960, p. 49). According to
Sutherlands (1947) seventh principle, the theory does
leads by as-sociation
behavior
that
criminals not
law.
and anti-criminal
mechanisms
over
diff erential
associa-tion
a rather large amount
the sociological and crimi-nological
literature in the years after its emergence,
behavior. (pp. 67)
Burgess and Akers (1966) noted that the theory had Sutherland
(1947)
referred
to
the
sixth
still
statement
as the principle of differential association. According to
Sutherland,
definitions He
can
that
either
that
favorable
behavior,
that
of
definitions
or
favorable
he
can
learn
excess
of
the
criminal
is
that
he will
behavior.
to
more likely
of
versus
unfavorable
and criticisms.
between studies regarding
the support criticism
and a common
response
of operationalizing to
of diff erential
these
of the
To
(as exemplified
their
for
and
diff erential
the
theorists theory,
and
among scholars
on
concepts.
prior
failure
in specifying Burgess and
the Akers
version of the theory, that
association-reinforcement
describe
within
the theorys
criticisms
association
process
is, diff erential
the
definitions
support
Some of these
both
association
modifications
favorable
empirical
the inconsistency
presented their reformulated
act(s).
Learning
considerable
some of its shortcomings issues included
learning law
violations
to commit
receive
and had yet to be adequately modifiedin response to
In
Stated
of the
to
the difficulty
an individual
violations
unfavorable
the law, that individual
others
unfavorable
when
toward
definitions
of
behavior.
decrease the probability
involvement,
definitions
types
from
the probability
would likely
criminal
two
a particular
he would engage in a particular
terms
learns in
learn
the
definitions
learns
committing
would likely increase
commit
in
an individual
toward
failed
revised
theory.
version
in
terms
of
its
and derivations from the original theory in
Sutherlands
[1947]
nine principles),
can also be described as a process wherebyindividuals
Burgess and Akers (1966) offered the following seven
attempt to balance pro-criminal
principles that illustrate the process wherein learning
prosocial or conforming
definitions
against
takes definitions. It is logical to as-sume
place:
that individuals learn favorable or pro-criminal definitions for committing in
crime
themselves
learn crime
crime,
from
unfavorable those
and this
It should
(i.e.,
individuals
assumption
be remembered,
for law-abiding attitudes for an individual
crime from those involved the
criminals)
definitions who
and,
for are
not
is supported
in
1.
con-trast,
committing involved
and definitions,
in
2.
empirically.
to pro-criminal
just as it is possible
to learn conforming
definitions
behavior is learned according to the
principles
of operant conditioning
of
however, that it is possible
persons to expose individuals
Criminal
from
Sutherlands
Criminal
situations
Principles
behavior
that
and through behavior
is
of other
of Sutherlands
learned
8). both
are reinforcing
that
for
(reformulation
1 and
in
or discriminative
social interaction
in
persons is reinforcing
criminal
behavior
Principle
2)
nonsocial
which the or dis-criminative
(reformulation
SOCIAL
The
3.
principal
part of the learning
behavior occurs in those groups which comprise
learning theory association theory.
major source of Sutherlands
The learning
of criminal
techniques,
attitudes,
a function
of
the
eff
(reformulation The
and avoidance and
of the
frequency
reinforcers
are
and the rules or norms are applied Principle
by which these reinforc-ers of
Sutherlands
1966)
draws
is
behavior
is
a function
for
of
criminal
norms
behavior,
such
(reformulation
its
of criminal
reinforcement
Principle
learn-ing
behavior is a direct func-tion
frequency,
and probability
(reformulation
of
and, later,
modifications
1985,
of
and empirical
developments
to ease the interpretation assumptions
discussed
to this original serial list and has further
revised the theory in response to criticisms,
and explanations
of social learning
tenets remain
theoreti-cal
in the literature,
theory,
and
of the key
but the central
the same. It is important
that, contrary to how social learning
to
social
B. F. Skinner,
through
reinforcement.
on how his
with cognitive learning with
According to
Albert
Burgess and
1977,
1985,
operant Stated
Bandura
Akers
1998),
the
process takes
conditioning
or
more clearly, operant
actions taken by an individual,
are
reinforcers and punishers(described later) ultimately in-fluence anindividuals
decision of whether to participate
in conforming and/or nonconforming behavior. imitation
element of the behavioral learning
modeling) to be subsumed operant conditioning;
Sutherlands
has since
of
commented
Akers (1973,
place are primarily
as simply
1998)
Akers
mechanisms by which the learning
note here
successive approximations mechanism.
accept the
uniqueness
imitation
from
reinforcement. importance principles
in the literature, social learning is not a rival or com-petitor
or instrumental
Burgess and
began to
learning
and to
or vicarious
Akers also recognized behavioral
of learning
theory, stimuli,
other
seen
be shaped
mechanism of
of observational learning
of additional
of
and not a separate
of the learning
discriminative and
wasitself could
However, Akers later
operant
discuss it in terms
is often described
of Sutherlands (1947) theory and his original
of behavior that
behavioral
process (or
under the broad umbrella
that is, imitation
one kind
through 1977,
work
associated
(1996)
of
Burgessand Akers(1966) originally considered the
7). (pp. 132145)1
Akers (1973,
those
among others.
of Sutherlands Principle 6).
of the amount,
classical
Akers (1998)
(1977),
of which takes place when such behavior is
strength
as
differential
affected by asystem of rewards and punishments.These
which
the
91
proposed by Burgess and Akers,
the
behavior, or voluntary
discriminative
The
from
aspect
more closely aligned
diff erential
more highly reinforced than noncriminal behavior
7.
learning
theory (as first
specific
available,
5).
Criminal
are
are a function
(reformulation
learning
theories
which are learned
and
behavioral
theory
Principle 4).
eff ective
do not negate/discredit
yet, morerecently,
reinforc-ers,
contingencies
of occurrence
which
specific
procedures, is
reinforcement
of Sutherlands
The
3).
available
specific class of behaviors
and their
6.
Principle
behavior, including
ective
and the existing
5.
of reinforcements
THEORY
sociallearning theory, and findings that support social
the individuals (reformulation 4.
of criminal
LEARNING
components
the and
such as classical condi-tioning, schedules
of reinforce-ment,
mechanisms.
Considering the brief overview of social learning
propositions. Instead, it is offered as a broader theory
theory as described earlier, the central assumption and
that
proposition of social learning theory can be bestsum-marized
modifies and builds on Sutherlands theory and
integrates this theoretical of other scholars learning
theory,
continuation, Taken together,
principles in
particular
explicated
social learning
theory
explanation
in
crime
compared
original
theory; thus,
theory
acquisition,
is presented as for involvement
with
any such support
for diff erential association
behavioral
Akers 1985, p. 41).
more comprehensive deviance
in
behavioral
and cessation (see
a
and
in the two following statements:
perspective with aspects
Sutherlands
that it off ered
provides support
for
The
basic assumption
in
social
theory is that the same learning context
situation, deviant
direction on
behavior
of social
structure,
produces behavior.
...
[of]
The
the
learning
process in a
interaction,
both diff
and
conforming erence
balance
lies
and in
the
of influences
92
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
The in
who engagein certain kinds of behavior (criminal/
probability that persons will engage
criminal
and
and the
deviant
probability
behavior
of their
the norm is decreased associate
others
criminal
behavior
favorable
to it, are relatively
in-person
the
to
diff eren-tially
or symbolically
in a situation
in the current
or future
relatively
greater reward
than
the
decision
Sutherlands face-to-face that
or
to
for the
of
whether
are the
and/or
exposing
nonconforming
It is worth emphasizing that social learning theory whyindividuals first participate in crime and deviance, why they specialize/generalize, and why they Social learning do
not
from
theory
become
opting
to
Thus,
and
peer groups
involved
considering
only in
during
is
of the theory
devoted in the following central concepts
learning
theory
have received
that
of attention
in the criminological definitions,
(Akers
diff
1985,
literature:
erential
1998;
more
paragraphs
out the four
amounts
as an
in (or lack
behaviors,
fleshing
varying)
behaviors.
participation
pro-criminal
to
of Akers social
considerable
and empirical diff erential
reinforcement,
(yet
support
association,
and
imitation
assume the status of the primary group that provides groups can also indirectly with
the
Secondary or reference
provide the context for
diff erentially
behaviors,
norms,
associates him-or
values,
beliefs with groups of individuals,
including
leaders,
or
(2002)
called virtual
the
Internet,
schoolteachers,
and
so
even
early (priority); amount
last longer
Although to
theory
and involve
important
partners/peer
having bad
friends,
person
decides to
(either
directly
providing occurs.
An
or indirectly)
individuals
simply
the individuals
diff erentially
the social
component
cannot
context direct
in
Akers
be reduced with
play an integral
interaction
most
closest, or
most
the intimate,
groups (intensity)
exert the greatest eff ect on an individuals participate
in
either
conforming
or
will likely decision to
nonconforming
consideration, are exposed to
and prosocial norms, values, and defini-tions
is diff erentially
whom a
transmitted
and secondary
her probability
by means of his or her
peer groups, the greater his or
is for engaging in
deviant
or criminal
behavior:
role in
social learning with
primary
morean individual
associated and exposed to deviant be-havior
and attitudes
importance,
associate and interact
wherein
happen the
as well as patterns of reinforcement supportive of
is one of primary
its significance
mass media,
or occupy a disproportion-ate
of ones time (duration);
criminal or prosocial behavior.The social learning
Warr
on.
frequently;
ASSOCIATION
association
neighbors, what
groups, such as the
and
According to the theory, the associations that occur
pro-criminal
diff erential
attitudes,
church
the theory proposes that individuals
The
years and
groups typically
behavior. Taking these elements into
Akers et al. 1979).
DIFFERENTIAL
oc-curs
adolescence. In
spouses, work groups, and friendship
herself
instead
conforming
the generality
and
why individuals
crime/deviance,
for an individuals prosocial
attention
in
For the
contrast, during young adulthood and later in life, the
learning if an individual
involvement.
also explains
participate
explanation thereof)
criminal/deviant
behaviors.
diff erential association
the social context for learning. why they continue to offend, why they escalate/dees-calate, desist
an individual
by means of the associations formed in school, leisure,
1995, p. 50)
is a general theory in that it offers an explanation for
to
groups
and exhibiting
within the family in the early childhood
punishment
(fol-lowing
on intimate
the primary
definitions
through
individual
and friends
emphasis
most salient for
most part, learning
situation
the
to
of these
behavior.
are typically
favorable/unfavorable
recreational,
choose
supportive
that family
[1947]
groups)
conforming
behavior, and have received in the past and anticipate
ects
Akers has indicated
crimi-nal/deviant
as desirable
discriminative
for the behavior. (Akers
aff
more exposed
it
and expose the individual
values, and attitudes
opts to participate in a particular
who commit
to salient
define
norms,
behaviors
and espouse definitions
models,
justified
conforming
when they
with
deviant or conforming)
is increased
others
The
groups
association
with which one is in diff erential provide the
major social context
SOCIAL
in
which
all
of
the
mechanisms
learning operate.They to definitions, models
to
necessarily indulge,
social
definitions
not only expose one
(source,
and
diff
schedule,
erential
value,
or conforming
commission
and amount)
For instance, toward DEFINITIONS
toward
and
attitudes
consider
the
commission
appropriate or inappropriate. definitions
that
Akers considered these
definitions
that
orient
or away from
specific beliefs are personal
an individual
either
participating
toward
that it is
com-mitting
may believe
not to partake in or condone this sort of violence.
bit of
wrong in smoking
Yet,
definitions
influence individual
behavioral in
criminal
beliefs
some free drinks;
restaurant
I
want
was under the
my fault;
and This
deserves to get beat up because he is annoy-ing. types
of beliefs
have both a cognitive
eff ect on an individuals or
deviant
provide a readily
individual
The
money, so they can aff ord it if I
of alcohol, so it is not
that
as
etc.) include
office supplies;
an internal
personal
rationalizations,
going to take these
a criminal
alittle
marijuana here and there.
Akers also has discussed
that
do not get paid enough, so I am
violence, this same individual
may not see any moral or legal
techniques
disengagement
statements such asI
These
morally wrong to assault someone and choose
despite his belief toward
(i.e., justifications,
in certain criminal
or deviant acts. For example, an individual
verbalizations, moral
definitions
Matza 1957). Examples of these neutralizing defini-tions
moral, and other conven-tional to give myfriends
values. In comparison,
of
as using
or excuse its use.
of neutralizing
and
of
with users come
literatures (see Bandura 1990; Cressey1953; Sykes &
makes enough
General beliefs are ones personal definitions
are based on religious,
observation
associating
come to justify
notions
neutralization,
or unjustified,
to be expressed in two types: (1) general and
(2) specific.
negative attitude
are apparent in other behavioral and criminological
of
a particular act as being moreright or wrong, good or bad, desirable or undesirable, justified
incorporates
of asso-ciation)
(i.e., diff erential
by an individuals justifications, that
behavior is permissible.
marijuana but through
Akers conceptualization
and attitudes
personal as opposed to
definitions
areinfluenced excuses,
why a particular
justifications
to accept it as not really bad, or not as harmful
orientations
a given behavior. These
peer and other group
belief also favors the
by an individuals
or otherwise
or
or deviant act, but this type
models and through
alcohol, own
conventional
one may have an initially
smoking
using
are ones
A neutralizing
of a criminal
or excuses for
93
who adhere to these
who hold to
of belief is influenced
behavior. (Akers
THEORY
much higher probability of using
those
negative definitions.
reinforce-ment
& Sellers 2004, pp. 8586)
Definitions
but those
have a
marijuana than
but they also present one with
imitate
for criminal
of
LEARNING
discriminative as
these
more likely Behaviorally,
stimulus to
what
that kind
to commit
they
provide
presents of
an
behavior
appropriate/justified
neutralizing beliefs. Conventional beliefsare definitions
example, if a minimum-wage employee who has been
criminal
and
deviant
conforming neutralizing favorable
beliefs
toward
is a definition criminal
acts
that it is cool
favorable
toward
com-mitting
dishwasher,
are supportive
crime and deviance.
For instance,
marijuana.
5 years suddenly gets his or her hours reduced to part-time
are those that
holds that
A positive belief committing
morally desirable or if
an
individual
or
a
wholly
decide to steal
will
employee
money from the register
and
deserves
some personal definitions into
might
or steal food unjustly
it.
Akers and Silverman (2004)
wholly acceptable to get high on
Not all who hold this attitude
then the long-time
because she believes that she has been treated
believes
marijuana, then this is a positive belief favorable toward smoking
at the same restaurant for
becausethe managerchose to hire another part-time
an individual
and
washing dishes full-time
committing
For
behaviors. In contrast, positive or
or deviant act is
permissible.
or
a particular situation.
is
comprising either conventional beliefs or positive or that are negative or unfavorable toward
in
Cognitively,
accessible system of justifica-tions
or deviant act.
cues
decision to engage
behavior.
make an individual
with
and
an individuals
radical ideologies
learned of
went on to argue that
are so intense
and ingrained
belief system, such as the
militant and/or
terrorists
groups
94
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
that these definitions alone exert a strong eff ect on
classmatessmile with approval andinvite John to come
an individuals
overto their house after school to play with them.This
or criminal
probability
the street
Andersons
can serve as another
definition
For example, if
a deviant
(1999)
code
peer approval
of
assault.
example of a personal
that is likely to have a significant
an individual
down
of committing
act. Similarly,
an urban inner-city and
youth is
observes another
Positive
(who
that
a behavior
nice jewelry, then the
individual
urban juvenile
in jumping
stimuli.
and taking
his jewelry
these examples, criminal
makes right.
Akers suggested that
and deviant acts are not
they are either
the kid
because of the code of the street
or the personal belief that might
the
Despite
majority
motivated in this
weak conventional
commit
the
can increase
the likelihood
to escape or avoid For example,
adverse
or unpleasant
Chris hates driving to and home
work because every day he has to drive through on the interstate.
decides to come into
One day, Chris
work 1 hour early so he can in
turn leave 1 hour early. Chris realizes that early and subsequently
leaving
by coming in
early, he is able to avoid
the speed trap becausethe officers are not posted on
the interstate during his new travel times. motivate anin-dividual
are positive or neutralizing beliefs that criminal/deviant
act
when
faced
money,
will be repeated if the act allows the
the same speed trap
beliefs that off er little
to no restraint for engaging in crime/deviance or they to
from
of way;
can also be provided
an increase in status,
Negative reinforcement
walking
youth
yields
for the
awards, or pleasant feelings.
resides in the same area) flaunting might feel justified
reinforcement
moti-vating when a behavior
role in
to participate in crime or deviance.
the street
serves as positive reinforcement
this new travel schedule the following again he avoids the speed trap.
with an opportunity or the right set of circumstances.
Herepeats
day, and once
His behavior (coming
in an hour early and leaving an hour early) has now been negatively reinforced DIFFERENTIAL
REINFORCEMENT
In Similar
to
the
mechanism
whereby an imbalance favorable
toward
of
diff erential
increases the probability
a deviant
that
increases
will commit present,
the
and
in
he the
or
she
future.
an
Furthermore, and/or
continues
or diff
behavior
the
that
from
an
the yellow line influence. drink
place
know that
scenario. John is a quiet and making friends.
him on the playground
will be his friend if
friendship.
hitting
others is
Two of his and tell
he hits another
not right,
child. John
boy may
but he decides
with their suggestion in order to gain their Immediately
has
when she decides to go
and is arrested for
Her decision
driving
and subsequent
and drive resulted
in a painful
under the behavior
to
and unpleasant
This last scenario is an example of negativepunish-ment.
positive punishment,
because they do not like this particular
to go along
Rachel
Marks mom decidesto buy him a new car but
tells him not to smoke cigarettes in the car. Despite his moms warning, Mark and his friends still decide
shy boy who has difficulty
him that they
of a particular
For example, driver
serve
consequence: an arrest (a positive punishment).
the
reinforcement
and negative punishment.
classmates approach
or decrease the probability being repeated.
that
bar. On her way home, she gets pulled over for crossing
past,
process operatesin four key modes:positive reinforce-ment,
Consider the following
and negative),
punishers
night she decides to drive herself to and from the local
experienced
refrains
erential
negative reinforcement,
(positive
and negative
always had a designated
individual
aff ect the probability
The
to reinforcers
diff erential reinforce-ment out to the bar on Friday nights, but on one particular
will participate in a behavior in the first
whether
behavior
contrast
are positive
to increase
act
will engage
that
anticipated
rewards and punishments individual
in
likelihood
a given behavior.
and future
or criminal
an individual
in such behavior, an imbalance also
there
association,
of norms, values, and attitudes
committing
because he avoids the speed
trap (i.e., the negative stimulus).
after he punches the boy, his
to smoke cigarettes in the vehicle. odor
when she chooses to
His mom smells the
drive his car to the grocery
store one day and decides to take away privileges for
2
months for
Marks behavior (smoking been negatively Similar
to
not following
her rules.
cigarettes in the car) has now
punished (removal diff erentia]
Marks driving
of driving privileges).
association,
for diff erential reinforcement;
there
are
mo-dalities
more specifically
SOCIAL
LEARNING
THEORY
95
rewards that are higher in value and/or are greater in
context
number are morelikely to increase the chances that a
process of imitation is still assumed to exert an effectin
behavior
will occur and be repeated.
the reinforcement an either/or
occur
law
but instead
in
favor
operates according
of effect wherein the behaviors
most frequently
chosen
maintaining
of
and
are highly reinforced
alternative
perhaps
dimensions occurs is
Although
the least
complex
or
individuals
his
behavior.
or An
the behavior of potential
her
observation
individual
of can
an-other
models either directly or themselves,
of
the
models
the
and the observed consequences
all aff ect the probability the behavior. The
process of imitation
to as vicarious reinforcement (1981)
until the late
provided
embezzlers, diff erential
did not emerge in the
qualitative
provided
association
for social learning).
study
of professional
well-known
research on ap-prehended
preliminary
these seminal
various components of social learning theory, and the evidence
is rather
robust
(see
Akers
&Jensen
to list
or discuss each individually;
of
some of the of
most recognizable
Akers social learning
and
his
to
therefore,
if they like the
model
imitate
modeled
or respect the
and comprehensive
theory
performed
receive
model, see
reinforcement,
see
performance is
where imitating is reinforced....
common
when
an
the
models
Inverse imita-tion observer
does
with a number
behavior,
process of imitation
the initial
acquisition
new behavior. Thus,
most salient in
and performance
of a novel or
an individuals
show for the first time
an individuals is
in crime or deviance after
another
maintains that the
occurs throughout
Akers has argued that imitation
peer for the first
decision to engage
watching a violent television
or observing time
his friends
best
be summa-rized
drinking
study, and first of these
projects, and by far the
and cited, is
2006). This
most well-known
research project involved primary collec-tion
of survey datafrom approximately 3,000 students Grades 7 through 12 in eight communities in the Midwest.The
life,
can
(4) the rape and sexual coercion study.The
in
being punished. (p. 187) theory
of samples and
minor deviance to serious
research
(2) the Iowa study, (3) the elderly
oris in an environment where conformity is
social learning
and this
of
the Boys Town study (for a review, see Akers &Jensen,
not
like the model,seesthe model get punished,
Although
tests Akers
in terms of four projects: (1) the Boys Town study,
the
model give off signs of pleasure, or are in an environment
criminal
by
of
associates.
on a range of behaviors from
behav-ior
the fol-lowing
noting the findings
scholars over the years across a variety to
2006).
makean attempt
Akers has tested his own theory
tend
studies,
research now spanning morethan five decadeshascon-tinued
this process:
Observers
support
(e.g., also off ering support
Following
discussion is limited
Baldwin
a concise summary
(1937)
and Cresseys (1953)
will imitate
1977).
tests of all of the dimensions
There are far too manystudies to
is often referred
(Bandura
THEORY
theory
behavior
of the behavior
that an individual
LEARNING
to demonstrate varying levels of support for the
characteristics
Baldwin
a given behavior.
1970s, early research, such as
observe
media). Furthermore, the
and
the
of Akers social learning
for
theory. Imitation
indirectly (e.g., through the itself,
Nevertheless,
literature
of the four
engages in a behavior that
follows
SOCIAL
full empirical
Sutherlands
of Akerss social learning
on
occur.
are
behaviors.
when an individual
modeled
can
or desisting from
TESTING
that
theft is
imitation
to
IMITATION
Imitation
which
process does not necessarily occur in
fashion
a quantitative
Akers clarified that
in
attack
provides the key social
on
adolescent
the first
majority of the survey questions focused substance
use
and
survey that included
The
results
Town data provided social learning sets
of variables
studies
of
diff
erential
was also
permitted
theory.
relying
overwhelming
theory, including
it
et al. 1979) to fully test
of social learning
of the
but
questions that
Akers and his associates (Akers the four components
abuse,
on the
support
for
Boys Akers
each of its four association,
definitions
main
96
CRIME
diff
AND
erential
BEHAVIOR
reinforcement,
and
imitation.
The
multi-variate
results indicated that greater than half of the total
variance in
(R2
= .54)
in
the frequency
and
marijuana
more
than
use (R2
social learning
two
variables
eff ect on explaining elements
eff ect on the
dependent
of imitation).
The
variable
more
eff ect of imitation
modest
on substance
(with results
cumulative
of
learning
use.
also
variables
the termination
Akers,
of alcohol,
the
social sanctions,
Krohn, the
and
and
definitions
these
correlated
to
to abstinence continued
use
of
of
and senior
of smoking
high school students in
among
provided the initial
3 years of data indicated
approximately
3% of the variance
being a smoker in either of wasrelatively
werefound for the ability
of the
41% explained variance; Krohn, Skinner, provided longitudinal
support for the social learning
capacity to
predict the frequency
using the complete
behavior The
on the social learning third
see
project
in
eff ects for smoking
variables.
use and problem
of elderly
Florida
& Jensen,
and
2006).
in four
New Jersey (for to the
a review, results
which examined
use among adolescents, the
significant
study drinking
respondents
Similar
the Boys Town and Iowa studies,
in this study
the Iowa
was a 4-year longitudinal
of alcohol
a large sample
Akers
of smok-ing
5 years of data from
study and revealed some reciprocal
Muscatine,
test of social learning
models
Massey, & Akers 1985). Akers and Lee(1996) also
among
was
Path
variables to predict the continuation
each
Iowa (for areview, see Akers &Jensen 2006). Spear and Akers (1988)
theory.
and the cessation of smoking by the third year (ap-proximately
of the frequency
project, the Iowa study,
examination
smokers.
eff ects of the social learning
had not reported
social learning
nega-tive
of
3
who would be a smoker in Year 3 if that
communities
second research
a 5-year longitudinal junior
explained
models,
substances.
The
variables
with
aversive drug experiences,
unfavorable
using the first
that the direct and indirect
variables
social
marijuana, and hard drug
exposure
constructed
more than
analysis of the Iowa data also pro-vided
for social learning
weak, stronger results
among
use, with cessation being related to a preponderance nonusing associations,
support
use (first
that
were significantly
The longitudinal
being regular
the 2 prior years. Although this evidence
role in initiating
demonstrated
and nearly half reported
when the
having smoked,
individual
for
use was not surprising
Lanza-Kaduce,
(1984)
and peers smoked,
found
use) versus having a strong effect on the frequency or maintenance
none of these youth
smokers. In contrast,
the exception
considering the hypothesized interrelationships
Radosevich
parents
in predicting
independent
the social learning variables. Also,imitation is expected to play a more important
being regular
out of every 4 of these youth reported
who
use, but also each of
a substantial
smoking, and virtually
reported
more seri-ous
Not only did
yield a large
substance exerted
by the variables
move on to
from
adolescents
variance
that the adolescent
would
drugs and alcohol.
the social learning
the four
the
social learning
also aff ected the probability
in
of
alcohol
were explained
variables. The
involvement
drinking
thirds
= .68)
began to use substances
of
very high probability that the adolescent abstained
of elderly individuals
multivariate
of
sub-stance
results
also demonstrated
eff ects for the social learning
variables
as
theory onthe first wave(year) of the Iowa datain an at-temptpredictors of the frequency of alcohol use and prob-lem drinking. The
to replicate the findings of the Boys Town study. The
results of the cross-sectional analysis revealed
for
more than
Once again, the
social learning
variables
over half of the variance in self-reported each of the social learning independent
neither
Additional
illustrated
adolescents
smoking,
and
had a rather strong
eff ect on the outcome (with the exception
of imitation). (1998)
variables
explained
the
evidence
provided
substantial
influence
of the
of the
process accounted
explained
variance
in
self-reported
The last project by Akersand his associatesreviewed here is a study samples
of rape and sexual coercion
of college
1991). The
findings
men (Boeringer,
among two
Shehan,
in these studies also
& Akers
mirrored the
results of the previous studies by Akers and his associ-ates, with the social learning
variables exerting
to strong eff ects on self-reported
behavior.
When
coercion in sex in addition
smoked, there
was a
proclivity
parents and peers on their
of the parents or friends
by Akers
social learning
elderly alcohol use/abuse.
nearly identical results among the youth in the Iowa study as was previously found in the Boys Town study.
50%
use of nonphysical
to predicting
(i.e., the readiness to rape).
moder-ate
rape and rape Although
Aker
SOCIAL
theory to various degrees using dependent variables Akers
alcohol
2003),
cross-national
2006),
and
Jensen
2004),
homicide
even terrorism
the findings
reviewed
and drug
from
clearly identify
&
rates
&
(Akers
the
(Akers
studies
anomie,
defined structural
class oppression,
group conflict,
variables
social
disorganization,
conditions
of societies,
Differential
social
location
refers
to
membership in and relationship SOCIAL
PRELIMINARY
amount
behavior
of
at the
the
LEARNING:
ASSUMPTIONS
Akers social learning
and reference
AND
friendship/peer
EVIDENCE
theory
in
criminal
level
(see
individuals
to primary,
sec-ondary,
groups such as the family,
groups, leisure
groups, colleagues,
and work groups.
has explained
variation
individual
communi-ties,
or groups.
AND
THEORETICAL
to
patriarchy, and other concepts that
criminogenic
of the empirical
theory.
STRUCTURE
refer
have been used in one or more theories to identify
just
4. SOCIAL
97
structure.
3. Theoretically
& Silverman
classic
the strength
status of social learning
use (Hwang
THEORY
groups, or social categories in the overall social
and his associates havecontinued to test social learning such as adolescent
LEARNING
a consider-able and
Akers
With
attention
to
these
social
structural
domains,
Akers contended that the differential social organiza-tion
deviant
of society and community
& Jensen
2006), and Akers (1998) recently extended it to posit
locations
of individuals
within
and the differential
the social
structure
(i.e.,
individuals gender, race, class,religious affiliation, etc.) an explanation for the variation in crime at the macro-level. Akers social structure and sociallearning (SSSL) theory
hypothesizes
factors
that
have
The
an
that
indirect
assumption
diff erential
reinforcement,
on
structural
individuals
be-havior.
effect hypothesis is guided
and
definitions,
imitation)
that
decisions
Akers (1998;
p. 91) identified
the social learning
association,
on individuals deviance.
are social
eff ect
by the
that the eff ect of these social structural
is operating through (i.e.,
there
indirect
to
see also
four
specific
a direct
engage in
ef-fect
crime
& Sellers,
domains
wherein the social learning
variables diff erential
have
Akers
fac-tors
or
2004,
of social struc-ture
process can operate:
provide the context in which learning occurs (Akers Sellers 2004, p. 91). Individuals crime/deviance
wherein the learning exposure
Differential social organization
refers to the struc-tural
definitions
or
deviant
including agecomposition, population density,and other
2.
attributes
that
lean
societies,
and other social systems toward
relatively high or
relatively low crime rates (Akers
1998, p. 332).
mediate
hypothesized, should
characteristics
of individuals
and social groups that indicate
their
the larger
Class, gender, race
social
and ethnicity, positions
structure.
marital status,
and standing
niches within
and age locate
the
of persons and their roles,
place and the individuals
to
the
possession
commission
interactions
social
then
exhibit
variables;
of
with
(a) the
direct
(b)
direct
structural
criminal
deviant
models.
the
on
crime
as
variables
eff ects on the social learning
social
eff ects
eff ects
social structural
structural
on the
(c) once the social learning
variables
should
dependent
variable;
variables
are included
and
in
model,these variables should demonstrate strong
independent
eff ects
on the
dependent
variable,
and
the social structural variables should no longer exhibit eff ects on the
dependent
variable,
or at least their
direct effects should besubstantially reduced. Considering
Differential location in the social structure refers to sociodemographic
environment
Stated in terms of a causal process, if the social learning
direct
communities,
of the
peers and attitudes,
favorable
and
decisions to engage in
a function
takes
deviant
acts,
variables
correlates of crime in the community or soci-ety the that affect the rates of crime and delinquency,
to
of
exert
1.
are thus
&
social only to
the relative structure
a handful
examine
mediation studies
to
in support delinquency
its
date
and
of studies theoretical
hypothesis.
novelty social
thus
of
learning
far
assumptions
have demonstrated
and substance
pro-posed
theory,
have attempted and/or
However, the few
of social structure
Akers
its
preliminary
positive findings
and social learning use, elderly
alcohol
for
abuse
98
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
rape, violence, binge drinking by college students, and variation
in cross-national
homicide
rates (for
a review,
than alternative programs), but there are still
unanswered questions about the feasibility and eff ec-tiveness of programs
see Akers &Jensen 2006). Yet, despite the consistency of positive
preliminary
social structure
some nonsupportive make a definitive primary
findings,
statement
mediating
social
findings
structure
that
Akers
social learning association
crime/deviance.
these few studies provide
of
theory, there
is the between
a suitable
benchmark
studies testing the theory
against
can build upon
and improve.
likely the
to
life
be in the form course
empirical
and
validity
to
of longitudinal
be
cross-cultural
is truly
also
have already
societies
2008),
The future of sociallearning theory lies alongthree paths. First,
there
will continue
to
be further
and
tests of social learning at the micro-or processlevel (i.e.,
theory
Miller, Jennings, much
Western
world.
There
studies
sup-porting
(see, e.g., Hwang
Alvarez-Rivera,
more research
of
&
& Miller
needs to examine
both
how wellthe theory holds upin diff erent societies and on
more accurate
but
the
been some cross-cultural
Akers 2003;
the
and control
American and
around
the social learning DIRECTIONS
over of
a general theory, then it should
to the explanation
crime and deviance not only in but
studies studies
of the theory in diff erent societies. If
have applicability
societies
FUTURE
social learning
Future research along all of these lines is also more
social learning
Nevertheless,
designed around
theory.
are
and it is still too soon to
force in the
and
which future
in support
and social learning
many
how
much
variation
there
is
in
the
eff ects
of
the
social learning variables in different cultures.
at the level of differences acrossindividuals), including measures of variables from other criminological and
these
studies
will
use
better
measures
central concepts of the theory.
theories,
of
all
of
Having said this, it is not
likely that the empirical findings
will be much diff erent
from
future
the
continue
research
so far,
to include
explanations
of the
but these
more research most serious
behavior as well as white-collar
studies
of the
SSSL
and violent
take
would follow
the lead
direction of Jensen
and
to the
Akers (2003,
and
most macro-level.
Structural theories at that level are moreapt to be valid the
of the theoretical
learning
wasto provide a historical development
structure of
morethey reference or incorporate the mostvalid
in
of Akers so-cial
theory, review the seminal research testing
the general theory,
better
principles
of this chapter
and discuss the recently
macro-level version of social learning
development
that this could
2006) to extend the basic social learning
the SSSL modelglobally
criminal
using
purpose
overview
should
and corporate crime.
model, again
measures. A very promising
The
on social leaning
Second, there is need for continued and testing
CONCLUSION
the
and social learning), where future
order to further
research
may wish to
the research
along
proceed
of the theory.
evidence
with a number
have not been specifically
(i.e., social
as well as off er sugges-tions
advance the status
What is clear from in this chapter,
theory
proposed
presented
of studies that
mentioned or discussed in
this chapter (for a review, see Akers &Jensen 2006), is that social learning hasrightfully
earned its place as a
principles found at the individual level, and those are
general theory of crime and deviance. Onetheorist has
social learning principles.
referred to it (along with control and strain theories) as
Third,
social learning
be applied in Gendreau, rehabilitation,
principles
cognitive-behavioral
& Andrews
2003)
and correctional
provide some theoretical
(Cullen,
prevention, programs underpinning
policy.
Research on the application
of such
programs
least
will continue
Wright, treatment,
and other-wise for social
and evaluations
have thus far found
moderately eff ective (and
to
usually
them to
be at
more eff ective
constituting theory
the core
(Cullen,
Wright,
has been rigorously by the theorist criminologists
of contemporary
& Blevins 2006). The
tested a number of times,
himself
theory not only
but also by other influential
and sociologists;
cited in the scholarly literature a common
criminological
it
has been
and in textbooks;
topic covered in a variety
widely it is
of undergraduat
SOCIAL
and graduate courses; and it provides a basisfor sound
Akers,
policy and practice. Ultimately, the task levied
at any general theory
crime and deviance is that it should crime/deviance culture,
and context. Therefore, of future
type, time, place,
if past behavior is the
theory
its generalizability
across these various dimensions
support
will continue to demonstrate
tests of Akerss SSSL theory
as a macro-level explanation
outcomes
L.,
are indeed
open to
for
all variations
in
through
the process of continuing
and its
macro-level version to rigorous
No theory
criminal
behavior,
tests in sociology and criminology
Angeles:
can it be
Anderson,
of the
Sutherlands
theory,
York:
Burgess
and
Akers
Bandura,
R. L. (1968).
Problems
Social
definitions
READINGS
behavior.
of devi-ance:
Social
Forces,
Learning
Press.
approach.
Akers,
(2nd
(3rd
R. L.,
Belmont,
of
& Jensen,
past, present,
NJ: Transaction.
theory
(Eds.),
theory
(pp.
Cressey,
A social learning
deviance.
3776).
Cullen,
3,
and
status Brunswick,
of
coercion
and
of fraternity
A diff erential
of criminal
behav-ior.
128147.
money.
Epidemiology
A case from
Glencoe, IL:
criminology.
&Blevins,
Pacific Sociological
K. R. (Eds.).
of criminological
Wright, J. P., Gendreau, What correctional
In
individual
(2006).
theory.
New
NJ: Transaction.
criminological theory.
and
4758.
status
(2003).
in
Social
40, 558564.
Other peoples
J. P.,
Cullen, F. T.,
New
sexual
theory
Wright,
deviance: The
stock: The
R. L. (1991).
R. L. (1966).
14,
stock: The
Brunswick,
Wright,
in
Press.
contribution
Relations,
& Akers,
Psychologies,
mind (pp. 161191).
R. (1960).
F. T.,
status
In. F. T. Cullen, J. P. Taking
D.
Review,
Press. empirical
the
York:
disengagement.
University
learning
Family
Problems,
conduct:
Boston:
moral
C. L., & Akers,
Assessing
L.,
of
New
Press.
Taking
of crime
W. W.
Beyond sociobiology.
theory.
and states of
D. R. (1953).
Free
and social structure:
The
OH:
Decency, violence,
of terrorism:
Cambridge
and social
R.
Cressey,
A social learning
Wadsworth.
and
G. F. (2006).
and future.
& K. R. Blevins criminological
crime
UK:
association-reinforcement
learning
Wadsworth.
CA:
Social learning
University
of social learning
CA:
behavior:
Violence:
New York:
learning
Origins
S., Shehan,
Social
behavior:
Belmont,
theory
A social
Wadsworth.
Deviant
ed.).
Northeastern Akers,
CA:
ed.).
R. L. (1998).
A general
behavior:
Deviant
R. L. (1985).
approach
Akers,
Belmont,
R. L. (1977).
approach
Akers,
Deviant
M. A. Zahn,
Cincinnati,
city.
Mechanisms
theologies,
membership. Burgess,
R. L. (1973).
ed.)
Elsevier.
aggression:
46,
455465.
Akers,
(4th
(Eds.),
1935).
J. I. (1981).
W. Reich (Ed.),
Boeringer,
in the sociology
and
theo-ries:
asocial learn-ing
In
Code of the street:
Social
contexts Akers,
Toward
& S. L. Jackson
of the inner
A. (1990).
In
principle.
FURTHER
A.(2004).
A. (1977).
Cambridge, AND
and application
to research (pp.
moral life
ideologies,
REFERENCES
of
Criminological
and terrorism.
J. D., & Baldwin,
Bandura,
ninth
evaluation,
E. (1999).
and the
General
omit
Journal
LexisNexisAnderson.
New
reformulation
of
Norton.
NOTE
their
C. S. (2004).
H. Brownstein,
Baldwin,
chose to
smoking.
test
317343.
model of violence
own and in comparison to other theories.
In
American
Roxbury.
From theory
determined how muchthe theory can account for onits
theory.
&
deviant
A longitudinal
Adolescent
R. L., & Silverman,
H.
L.,
and
636655.
theory: 26,
99
Lanza-Kaduce,
a general
G. (1996).
R. L., & Sellers,
Akers,
of
44,
Introduction,
Only
and sound em-pirical
test
Review,
Drug Issues,
Los
D.,
THEORY
Social learning
& Lee,
social learning
can
to subject the theory
A specific
R. L.,
and
of crime. Yet these
M.
M. (1979).
Sociological
Akers,
Akers,
will also gamer
debate.
account
1.
Krohn,
behavior:
behavior, then the expectation is
that social learning
that future
of
be able to explain
across crime/deviance
best predictor
R.
Radosevich,
LEARNING
theory: R. L. Akers
criminological
theory:
P., & Andrews,
treatment
Implications
can tell for
social learning
& G. F. Jensen (Eds.), Vol. II.
D. A.
us about
Social learning
Advances theor
100
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
and the explanation (pp. Hwang,
S.,
R. L. (2003).
& Akers,
& G.F. Jensen (Eds.), Vol. 11. crime:
In
and
variation
in
peers as
delinquency:
Advances
(pp.
New
M. D., Skinner,
smoking.
Lanza-Kaduce,
Radosevich,
W. F.,
Social learning
L.,
Massey, J. theory
Social Problems, Akers,
M. (1984).
R.
L.,
L.,
and
Cessation
of
M.
Warr,
alcohol
D.,
smoking American
among
variables
adolescents:
Journal
of Preventive
Chicago
E. H.(1947).
professional thief
Chicago:
Press. Principles ofcriminology
(4th
ed.).
Lippincott.
G., & Matza,
D.(1957). of
Techniques
delinquency.
of neutraliza-tion:
American
Journal
of
Sociology, 22, 664670.
adolescent
32, 455473. Krohn,
study.
A theory
& Akers,
use among
test of social learn-ing
Social learning
H. (1937). The of
Philadelphia: Sykes,
NJ: Transaction.
&
336348.
E.
Sutherland,
theory
151178).
L.,
Drug Issues, 38, 261284.
of habitual
4,
University
of
L.
substance
A partial
R. L. (1988).
Muscatine
Medicine,
model.
Alvarez-Rivera,
Explaining
Journal
Spear, S., & Akers,
mecha-nisms. Sutherland,
mediating
W. G.,
M. (2008).
and the risk
A social learning
5, 7996.
Rican adolescents:
theory.
of New
Vol. 11. Social learning
of crime
J.
Puerto
theory:
3964).
& G. F. Jensen (Eds.),
theory:
explanation
R. L. (1985). cigarette
(pp.
Miller,
learning,
R. L. Akers
adolescents:
Behavior,
H. V., Jennings,
The
Gender
beliefs,
Brunswick, Krohn,
In
and the explanation
new century
R. L. Akers
criminological the
social
Miller,
Korean
NJ: Transaction.
G. F. (2003).
and
theory
A guide for the
Self-images,
in
of
theories.
Advances in criminological
Social learning
Brunswick, Jensen,
test
and self-control
use by
use among
Deviant
NJ: Transaction.
Substance
A cross-cultural
bonding,
drug
A guide for the new century
New Brunswick,
adolescents:
social
of crime:
339362).
&
and
of
M. (2002). criminal
University
Companions conduct.
Press
in crime: The
Cambridge,
UK:
social
aspects
Cambridge
CHAPTER V
Social
Control
Theorie
SELF-CONTROL
THEORY
Travis Michael
I
n the
summer
of
1998,
three
to the rear of a pickup backroads
truck
white
men in
and
dragged
near his hometown. The
the road the next morning.
victims
east
Texas
chained
him for several
remains
a black
strewn
Whenarrested that same day,the three
along
men hadin
their possession a large quantity of meatthey had stolen during a burglary of a packing plant. According to
mediareports, all had served time in prison and
all had been drinking heavily at the time the crimes werecommitted. In federal law, murder involving race hatred is punishable by death. In Texaslaw, murder involving
kidnapping
death penalty.
(forcing
the
movement of the victim)
Many calls for speedy execution
days that followed. These
is also subject to the
of the offenders
calls were not limited
were heard in the
to one area of the country
one ethnic group. In fact, a good guess would bethat about 95 percent of the population arrested
favored the death penalty in this case.Through men quickly
A theory and
denied participation
of crime should
horrible
they
more common
be able to
truancy, shoplifting,
U.S.
one of the
make sense of these facts, however rare should
also
make sense of the far
at the other end of the seriousness
underage smoking,
or to
in the act.
may be. A general theory
crimes and delinquencies
his lawyer,
scale:
bicycle theft, cheating on tests.
What are the facts in this case? You may have heard that theories favor some facts and ignore theory
others. If so, what you have heard is true. Facts accepted by one
may be rejected
or ignored
by other theories.
Self-control
theory
focuses
on the typical features of criminal acts and on the criminal record of the offender. In the case in question, self-control (1).The
theory
would emphasize the following:
offenders had long records of involvement in criminal and deviant acts.
(2).They
did not limit themselves to one kind of crime, but engaged in a wide
variety of criminal and deviant acts, evenin a short period of time (burglary, kidnapping, believes
that
these
punishment. are considerable (5).
drinking acts
are
(4). The
deviant
under the influence). and
that
to commit
costs to the off enders of the crimes described
deserve
minimal and of short
described,
Although three
them
Everyone
potential
them. (6).
of
(3).
or
of the crimes
some
mur-der,
criminal
and long term; the benefits are
Despite the enormity
is required
excessively, driving
no special skill
off enders
se-vere
duration.
or knowledge
were involved
R.
man
miles along the
were found
Hirschi
in these
103
Gottfredso
and
104
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
crimes, they did not act as an organized group. Indeed, one off ender took the first opportunity to claim that he did not participate
in the
Self-control theory features its
most serious
unusual
brutality
Self-control of
pays little
and
is
not
theory case
ignore
interested
in
the
of the
motives
The
would lead usto guess that the off enders in this were
uneducated
so because it
unskilled,
assumes that
crimes are unlikely to obtain
and
but
it
would
people committing
do
such
to have exerted the eff ort required
an education
or a high level
have in common? They
quick and easy ways of getting
safety, reputation, The
of occupational
skill, not because poverty forced them into the acts in
features
what one wants.They
and economic common
to
unless these features enduring
tendency
the likelihood regardless
well-being.
various
crimes
and
Those
that they
people the theory
must diff er in
current
enduring
calls self-control.
degree of self-control
damaging
the
People
consequences. This
who have a high
whatever
one another
will take the quick and easy way
of long-term
acts potentially
devi-ant
were reflected in some relatively
of individuals.
diff erence between
are all
dangerous to ones health,
acts would not cause them to predict
of
in the social
perpetrators.
manyforms of criminal and devi-ant
not listed)
are all also, in the long run,
to the serious-ness
uninterested
backgrounds
the two
of race hatred.
attention
off enders. It is also relatively or economic
behavior
madeit so newsworthy:
and its element
theory
crimes
that
drug use (and the
offense.
would largely
of the homicide
Whatdorobbery, theft, burglary, cheating, truancy, and
to their
benefits
these
avoid
prospects,
acts
seem
to
question. In short, self-control theory takes the social
promise.Those
and
easily swayed by current benefits and tend to forget
economic
conditions
of
off
enders
as
a reflection
future of their tendency to off end, not as a cause of their of-fending.
Bythe same token, the theory would paylittle attention
to the time and place of the crime. In its view,
there is nothing
special
with respect
to crime about
east Texas or the end of the twentieth Which of the facts listed
is
We
begin to answer this question
by asking another:
answer is previous crime.
want to know the likelihood
commit do
no
criminal better
count
the
diff
erent
kinds
is the central fact
theorist
theory is
degree of self-control are
are between
these
extremes,
sometimes doing things they know they should not do, other times
being careful not to take unnecessary risks
for short-term
of previous
advantage.
criminal
criminal
and
the theory
heart of the theory and
deviant
deviant
acts. The
is self-control,
or short-term for
important
theories.
theory
that all crimi-nal
predict at the
future heart
as the tendency
of
to
costs exceed their immedi-ate
facts
view, it also questions the by competing
concept
benefits. This
the
is the ability
acts to
defined
avoid acts whose long-term
accounts
criminal
in the past.
on which self-control
based. It says to the self-control
will
you can
of
and deviant acts he or she has committed This
What
that a person
or deviant acts in the future,
than
Most people
So, a fact at the
century.
most important?
fact best predicts crime? The If you
costs.
with a low
future
concept,
in
about
crime.
our In
view, our
meaning of the facts claimed Where did our version
of self-control
come from?
and deviant acts, at whatever age they are commit-ted,
whatevertheir level of seriousness, havesomething BACKGROUND
in common. It says also that people differ in the degree
AND
HISTORY
to which they are attracted to or repelled by whatever it is
crime
and
We know
deviance that
in common them
predicts
who smoke
have
criminal
to
and
For a hundred years or so, criminologists, social work-ers,
off er. deviant
acts
because participation
participation and drink
to
cheat
on tests,
in any one of
in all of the others. People
are
more likely
who do not smoke or drink to useillegal classes,
have some-thing
to
break
into
than
people
drugs, to cut houses,
to
rob
and steal. People who rob and steal are morelikely than people
who do not rob and steal to smoke and drink,
use illegal
drugs, break into
houses, and cheat on tests.
and ordinary citizens havetried to draw a clearline between the delinquencies of adults. justice juvenile
As a result, juveniles
systems,
universities
delinquency
continue to focus ignore
of children
the
and
and the crimes
and adults have separate off er separate courses in
criminology,
on the activities
and theories
of one group and to
other.
Beginning in the
1960s, academics
became interested
in the connection
between juvenile
delinquency
and adult
crime,
often called the issue o
SELF-CONTROL
maturational reform. It
wasthen
widely believed that
THEORY
105
are morally wrong. Hirschi assumed that these causes
mostdelinquents quit delinquency asthey enter adult-hood,could change over the life course, and could thus ac-count with only a small careers.
Although reform
explanations In
was thought
before Robert
famous
delinquency
Glueck (1940), work
of
Martinson (1974a)
researchers,
had concluded Nature
Sheldon and
that reform
and
Father
wasthought
Commit
popular at the time. The
delinquency
most popular
called strain theory, the theory
acts
kids
were less likely
whether
by self-reports
research on the theory
Hirschis
was
theories
was what is now
behind the
measured
parents, kids attached to
and diligent
delinquent
Great Society
theory In
or
to
delinquency
was
police records.
Initial
did not, however, test its ability
exposition
and
over time.
test
of social
control
was published in 1969 as Causesof Delinquency.
1974,
Robert
article just
Martinson
published
mentioned, What
his famous
WorksQuestions
and
Answers about Prison Reform, concluding that indeed
Waron Poverty programs of the 1960s and 1970s.
This theory said that peopleturn to crime becausethey
ways not true
worked reasonably
to account for change in delinquency
Time.
to be common, it
seen as a serious problem for the
and
school, ambitious
Eleanor
was simply
was testable in
When tested, it
well. Kids attached to their
works in the justice system, two
Mother
Because reform
of earlier theories.
credit.
popularized
changes in delinquency.
Social control theory
to be common,
of it tended to be vague and unsatisfactory.
the view that nothing
for corresponding
going on to criminal
mostaccounts, the justice system wasgiven little
Indeed,
the
number
nothing
works.In the same year, he delivered at a con-ference a paper titled The
cannot realize the American Dream through conven-tional
Myth of Treatment and the
Reality of Life Process.The second paper attempted to means.So, according to the theory, poverty, dis-crimination, and lack of opportunity are majorcauses of crime. This and to
sounded
plausible to
most academics.
flaw. It could delinquent,
perhaps explain but it
being delinquent.
could
delinquency
this
theory
much delinquency. do not
are still there
when
defect. This
theory
or broken.
In
one version
society, the individuals
in
says that
part to
delinquent
bond to society is weak
(Hirschi
1969),
the
ties to institutions
bond
and
made up of four elements: (1).
to
bond of respect, love, or aff ection. The
more
the adolescent cares for the opinion of others, the less likely
he or she is to commit
delinquent acts.
(2). Commitment, the bond of aspiration, investment, or ambition. The (Toby
greater the individuals
1990), the
of delinquent
(3).
of
commit activities.
the
delinquent (4).
by the
restriction
social
more he or
she has to lose by the commission Involvement,
Put bluntly, something the
opportunity
acts. to
view that
bond
criminal
to and
conformity delinquent
about
the
treatment
of
behavioral
crime
sciences.
said there
was
of crime on which
was based.
Martinson turned
said
theories
and
of treatment
enterprise
for crime, ageis
of
with the theories
To illustrate
to the relation
this
between
140 years earlier, the French statistician had said: . . . among all the causes that
the growth
Martinson
failure
social
the failure
Quetelet (1833)
and abatement
without admitted
of the penchant
question the that
we
most energetic.
did
not
know
shape of the entire age-crime curve, but he thought knew enough to useit to judge theories.
the
we
Weknew when
crime tends to begin and weknew something about the peak age. Wealso knew that
what he called drop out
after the peak ageis quite common, and that complete of life.
usually takes place sometime
Another thing
are chronic allowed
we knew, he said,
or persistent
before the end wasthat there
off enders. This
knowledge
Martinson to sketch a hypothetical
age-crime
curve for two societies (see Figure 8.1). Martinson then applied the
major theories
to these facts, quickly concluding
cre-ated acts
the
the
wrong
age and crime:
acts by engaging in conventional
Belief, the
in
treatment
influence
that
important
dominant
stake in con-formityremission
1957), the greater the individuals
and personal capital (Coleman
saw
something then
other
Attachment,
of delinquency.
Martinson
inadequacy,
was developed
when an individuals
the
stop
begins to decline.
acts result
people, is
why they
and lack of opportunity
middle teens. They
Social control remedy
why some kids become
too
control theories
had an obvious
not explain
It predicted
Poverty, discrimination, go away in the
many Americans
But the theory
deal with issues raised by hisfirst paper and by social
them
was adequate to the task.
that
of delin-quency none of
Hethen introduced
106
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
2200
B
800 Incidenc
A
010
30
20
50
40
70
60
Age
Figure
8.1
Hypothetical
Curves of the
Age
Distributions
of
Acts
Definable
as
Deliquency
or
Crime in
Birth
Cohorts in
Two
Societies
theory
he thought
he called the
A
New
attention
theory.
of
The
actually
This
was
After
for
before
him.
much
eff ort,
Martinsons
was
whether
the
the
No existing for
such
of
5.
and adequate
that
conclusions
they
deserve
could
in
to
desist
that from
treatment 2.
The
is
failure
the idea
criminal
a of
off enders
off ending
crime
treatment
is analogous
by appropriate
is
a
failure
to a disease treatment
of
theory
of ...
for the
complex
age, and
should
reflecting
variations and
nonoff
crime
relationship therefore in
enders.
the life
between include
the
crime
variables of
must
be expanded
of social
for
both
himself
later
arguing
the
to
include:
of legal
punish-ment;
damage
persistence
in
We did
its
which is of off end-ers
one
arguing to
better,
worse
[Hirschi
1975].)
social
bonds
had shown actually
maturation social
extend
Martinsons such
his position
off enders
of
by
processes. the
criminal
age limits.
with
way or the
idea
unpublished
delay
ordinary
that
make
of-fendersno evidence
fact
therefore,
normal
on the
a book-length
from
not agree
maturation,
expanded
may in
at treatment,
beyond
must be able to ac-count work,
course
theory
(1617)
prison
was contrary
An adequate
and
career
which of
individual.
3.
control
eff ect of the threat
off enders
Attempts
correctional
that
that
shielding
correctional
myth.
may be cured
damage,
work
may be induced
through
although
account
do so.
account
crime.
is able to
repeat-ing
social idea
theory
b) a notion
to
Martinson
The
to
theory deterrent
age curves
here.
1.
potential
Control a) the
belief
sociological
age distributions,
has the
concepts
hypothetical
4.
control
and
he concluded
(1974b)
which to
social
involvement,
account
had
eff ort,
and commend[ed]
audience.
commitment,
Martinson
not.
be useful in this
Beginning
his
question
attachment,
could
might
other. it
idea
an eff ect
of delayed
of treatment
that
treatment
does
not
(If
treatment
does
not
also
does
We did
not
agree,
that
change
accounts
for
in the
make
them
however, the
strength
reformation
that of of
SELF-CONTROL
THEORY
107
800
600
400 Rat
1970 1974 1983
200
0
40
020
60
80
Age
Figure
8.2
Arrests for
Burglary
by Age, United
States, 1970,
1974,
1983
juvenile delinquents. It seemed necessaryto look
more
accidents, legal drug use, promiscuous sexual activity.
closely at the connection
Does
It appears to be true for all groups and societies,
crime follow In
the path described by
1983,
we published
in a paper titled Age This
what
This shows
the
than vary from
facts
Crime.
cause of crime, and what
more
but
less
com-plex
But wherever
in
prisons.
It
their
At the
restricted
own
time
delinquent
to
or prison
is
true
our
article,
official
measures of crime
and
had been in usefor some time, they
allowed
doubters
to
argue that
the
data was evidence only
as they get older. undermined
peak levels, and continue to decline throughout
reckless acts diff er greatly in the likelihood
appears
to
to
be true
be true
for
as well for
all, or almost behavior
life.
all, crimes.
similar
It
to crime:
decline in
of off enders to avoid detection improves
adolescence and early adulthood, decline rapidly from appears
data.
delin-quency
had not yet
the place and whatever the time, they are highest in
This
were
way to the age question.
with age shown in official
that the ability
we
based on po-lice,
recordsso-called
been applied in a convincing This
whether
or by asking people
measures of crime
self-report
at all
acts.
we published
largely
court,
one society to an-other, crime
over time.
even
to report
in Figure 8.2, which
dramatic
places,
measured by police records
Although
guessed them to be. Crime rates
often change
and
crime is
Goring 70 years earlier
group to group and from
and they
of
of nature.
are
Martinson
times
question
Quetelet 150 years earlier
law of nature is illustrated that
to this
Explanation
Charles
had called a law
Martinson?
answer
mostenergetic
English physician
(1913)
our
and the
paper rediscovers
had called the the
between age and crime.
such
Webelieved facts already available skepticism.
Criminal,
deviant,
and
that they
will be observed or recorded, yet almost all decline with age. Automobile accidents,for example, arein important
108
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
mayresult from short-term deviant behavior seen early in life are still presentlong
waysanalogousto crimes.They
advantage (speeding, drinking, inattention) may produce long-term are
considered
accidents,
conceal themand so.The is
those
could
involved
accidents
much like the decline in crime
accounted for by a quirk of predicted that
self-report
turned
it does not. It to require in crime
data.
from
the
age.
Active, high-rate
itself
Self-reported
Illegal
Behavior
by
that
in
of off enders to reform
up with facts suggesting Criminal
statistics
on
of crime
activity
declines
with age, but it
True reform is too rare to show crime.
What
was
needed
was
the tendency to offend over the life course.
and
Age and Sex: Percent
18
17
Reporting
One or
More
Offenses
19
Chi2
Gamma
20
21
22
23
1.1
.7
2.5
1.3
18.2*
.38
10.2
5.3
8.7
6.2
32.7*
.27
12.0
7.5
8.7
3.1
47.7*
.32
4.5
4.1
1.6
53.6*
.38
21.7*
.52
31.8*
.18
12.1
.17
Males
Hit Supervisor Fight
at
3.8
Work/School
Gang
Fight
Hurt
Someone
Badly
Robbery
16.2
14.1
20.3
15.9
15.6
14.8
4.2
Steal
< $50
Steal
> $50
41.2
39.0
Joyride Parts
Trespass Arson
28.8
10.2
34.0
25.8
Damage
School
Work Property
Any
Aggressive
Any
Property
Any
Offense
Sample
Property
Offense Offense
Size (Weighted)
6.4
1.5
1.2
.0
32.1
4.2
2.8
1.2
6.0
6.3
3.7
.5
2.1
11.5
10.4
3.2
2.2
21.7
6.2
19.4
.5
2.3
10.4
5.7
.5
.1
.7
102.8*
.0
3.3
9.2
19.3
.3
24.3
5.7
16.4
16.4
1.1
31.3
7.5
22.8
4.2
11.5
9.7
37.3
7.3
3.2
Damage
7.9
11.6
39.9
5.2
Car
.1
3.0
8.9
Shoplift
Steal
1.8
.0
.36
18.2*
.39
31.0*
.33
111.3*
20.3*
.40
.59
19.5
14.5
4.9
4.3
3.1
2.7
10.4
10.7
5.5
6.7
3.1
4.4
34.9
28.0
21.8
20.6
13.8
17.0
68.5
59.6
47.8
46.4
42.1
31.0
27.7
140.2*
.36
74.3
65.4
54.6
53.1
45.7
40.7
29.7
149.8*
.3
593
289
246
with
that reform is
Age
Offense
It,
diff er
a
theory capable of explaining persistent diff erences in
with age, but so does everyone else. criminal
Weended
declines for everyone.
off end-ers
everywhere.
by factors
one society to another.
not the issue.
It
to explain the decline
decline is found
be explained
must explain the tendency
all too rare in
meaningful to ask, why do delinquents do not.
cannot
theories
to of-fendbecause
meaningful
So, we began with the idea that a theory
Our pre-diction
these facts changed everything.
with age.The
therefore,
Wetherefore
measures would confirm
sociological
was no longer
was
justice
system changes, for good or for ill, the tendency
to
with age, could not be
measurement.
Differences between people in their
Table 8.1
need
Table 8.1).
because they
slow down
no
meaningful to ask how the criminal
wished to do
out to be true, something
Once recognized, was no longer
no longer
with age, which
described by official
social science (see
quit?
feel
not even if they
decline in automobile
age-crime relation
after the peak ages of crime are behind them. It
and
ill eff ects. Precisely because they
269
241
122
.8
127
113.0*
.56
3.1
25.4*
.29
8.7
77.2*
.32
SELF-CONTROL
Table
THEORY
109
(continued) Age
Offense
20
19
18
17
23
22
21
Gamma
Chi2
Females
Hit Supervisor Fight
at
Work/School
Gang Fight Hurt
10.9
Someone
Badly
2.8
Robbery
.7
Steal
$50
23.2
1.6
Shoplift
Steal
Car
Parts
Trespass
1.9
1.0
1.1
1.0
1.0
19.3
18.2
15.4
Damage
Work Property
Any
Aggressive
Any
Property
Any
Offense
Sample
Offense Offense
Size (Weighted)
16.4
1.9
1.0
1.3
.1
.6
.0
.0
.4
.1
6.4
3.3
2.5
1.5
1.4
1.1
1.9
1.7
1.1
2.0
1.1
1.7
2.9
9.3
5.4
14.6
34.7
29.3
28.3
18.9
22.7
16.8
50.8
40.1
35.9
32.1
25.3
25.2
24.3
318
304
8.5
314
157
306
.36
9.5
.35
.38
.30
34.7*
.50
2.0
.09
1.1
15.0
9.8
3.2
.2
45.0
.35
69.6*
.2
19.5
676
9.3
1.3
.0
.0
.01
80.4*
.9
4.4
6.1
.17
4.0
7.0
.0
8.2
23.5*
1.6
11.8
8.0
.34
5.6
11.2
1.1
.4
.3
Property
.0
.8
Arson
School
.2
2.0
10.5
.41
.1
1.9
9.6
12.3
.7
2.3
12.7
.38
.6
13.3
.6
45.3*
.5
2.3
18.8
Damage
19.2
1.1
1.0
26.6
Joyride
3.0
23.0
1.6
2.7
8.6
.2
.16
3.2
9.1
7.2
11.4
3.2
6.3
9.9
7.4
6.1
7.1
.2
.80
.0
.2
.1
18.8*
.0
.0
1.6
44.7*
.28
.31
104.1*
98.3*
.29
147
* p < .05 Source:
Osgood et al. (1989,
398)
THE
To construct distinguish forced Crimes
in follow in the
such
a theory,
it
between
crime
and
us by the
age
upon
rise
and
fall
the tendency this
pattern.
2nd
trouble
THEORY
and
3rd
with juvenile
more likely
to serve
more likely
to
during
to
the
in
grades
are
authorities
have trouble
was first
necessary
criminality,
of
life
but
course,
criminal
at 15 and
with their
diff er-ences
to
be in
that
element
that
We began this chapter
Texas
in
take
the
summer
of
Crimes
man to a battered
1998.
pickup
points
describing
in
men
and
acts
space
or
and
an event in east
Three
truck
are
tied
another
dragged
him to
his
death.
That
trial
is
lies
drives
a
crime:
under
after
murder.
oath. That
drinking
under
are are
Each year in the
United
15
to
million
A
is
ten
16; they
and jobs
crime.
place at specific
20s; they
families
is
events
driving
cans
the influence.
arrests
the
witness
a crime:
a
criminal
perjury.
of beer. That Crimes
States, the Federal
in
A man
is a crime:
are very common. police
Bureau
report
about
of Investigation
(FBI).
at all ages. So, to
changeable
time.
do not
with teachers
more likely
in their
crimes.
acts
trouble
terms
to
a distinc-tion
distribution
commit
Children
prison
The
discuss the facts
may change
sensibly,
we need something
with age and something
that
may not.
The
unchangeable ofpeople
element
is criminality,
to engage in or refrain
from
the
criminal
ten-dency acts
110
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
was unusually difficult, possibly requiring several min-utes
Becausecriminality is a propensity or tendency, it can-not be
counted,
From
such
would
but
it
can
be
observation,
allow
themselves
observed
we know to
or
that
be involved
in
everybody foolish
does it
is obviously
elsewhere as well.)
And
we know that
murder
foolish.
It is
We know that
many
are
that
usually
commit
more likely
Criminality
than
act
others actually to commit
deviant
following
act
another
may be compli-cated,
the commission
should
not
be
confused
of with
characteristic
of criminal
and
acts is that they entail just such long-term difficulties,
or costs. These
are called sanctions. Jeremy
Following
Bentham ([1789]
of sanctions.
them.
naturally from
1970),
devi-ant
compli-cations,
costs or penalties
the British
philosopher
weidentify
Physical sanctions
four
kinds
are those that follow
the act, without the active intervention
of others. Examples include
the task of theory is clear: It
maytake only a split
of perjury
itself.
Indeed,
some
however, it shows that
distinction,
the
or
would and do drive after
is a matter of degree.
With this
a criminal
perjury.
or deviant
consequences
but the difficulties
of
more than the law allows. In fact, experience
More meaningfully,
second. The
more people
shows that everyone is capable of criminal acts.
people
statement
might, under the right circumstances,
drinking
few
the
a stranger. (In context, the oft-repeated
to accomplish. Perjury too
measured.
hangovers and diminished
health from the consumption
of drugs, disease from
is to identify and explain criminality and to relate it to
promiscuous sexual activity, injuries from the actions
the
of victims attempting to defendtheir persons or prop-erty,
commission
of
criminal
acts.
Webegin by looking deviant acts.
under the influence (and theft, assault, cheating on tests,
burglary,
robbery,
common? The
require
down a mountain.
no special learning
them
without
practitioners.
and fraud)
an outnumbered
Indeed,
and relatively
by (1).
wrapping
man; (2).
hooking
bumper; (3). driving
Children in-vent
by saying No
to
major
and trust.
around
law.They
wrap and hook a chain, and
pictured
happened
present the moment the child is able to affirm or deny the occurrence of an event.
rarely the
product
of lengthy
and elaborate
Among our examples, drunk the
most time-consuming
considered
hard
work.
is most often committed
the
United
States,
be
Compared to this,
madeinstantaneously,
on
our east Texas homicide
form
var-ies
but they
are usually
of legal
and
and serious.
refer
to the
risk
because they cannot
be imposed
moral
unless the
or caught in the act.This
as an eff ort to
punish
deviant
or religious emphasizes
theory
suggests
whose application
as devices
or not it is seen
does not require
super-natural
physical or natural sanctions
does not require third-party (2), It emphasizes
of deviance, the tendency
level and variety
problem,
whether
sanctions for several reasons: (1). It
often serious
and to be involved
solve this
behavior
by others. Self-control
or intervention;
homicide
with a gun. In the typical case,
the decision to aim and fire is the spot.
prepara-tion.
driving appears to be
but would not normally In
are
aslong-term
by supernatural Their
on the luck of offenders or their ability to avoid explained
or eff ort. They
and even execu-tion. and impeachment.
hereafter.
to another,
of
detection. Indeed, religious sanctions are sometimes that
time
the
violations
the possibility of cost-free crime and deviance, depend-ing
highest rates of drunk driving arefound among those take little
expulsion
in
off ender is convicted
still learning these skills. Most crimes
for
are those imposed
and
one religion
sanctions
Driving drunk requires
only the ability to drink and the ability to drive.The
now
We often
may be accom-plished
are those imposed
organizations
also include
Religious sanctions
from
perjury is thus
and
include
and reduced responsibility
include lines, imprisonment,
They
Most people know or could
capacity for
of public opinion. They
Political or legal sanctions
by governments
a pickup
when what actually
Yes. The
in the court
divorce, shaming, shunning,
murder
a chain it
Moralor social sanctions arethose imposed by
family, friends, neighbors, employers, clients, and con-stituents
authorities,
away.
on the spot how to
complex
most adults know how to drive. Perjury
would require
is as
most crimes
or knowledge.
truancy.
have in
help. Young people are their
Afiendish
may be committed
learn
forgery,
Chinese have a saying: Crime
easy as falling
and diminished earning capacity from repeated
more closely at crimes and
What do murder, perjury, and driving
knowl-edge
the generality
of people to repeat off enses
in a wide variety
of them.
of deviant activity increase,
As the detectio
SELF-CONTROL
THEORY
and automatic penalties become more and morecer-tain; life of another, an offender insufficiently (3). It emphasizes the spontaneous and unplanned nature
of
criminal
inconsistent
deviant
acts,
reckless,
among deviant acts
it is judged
deviant,
and
family
simple. It requires
only a ques-tion
who has sworn to tell the truth,
person is insufficiently
restrained to prevent
logical structure
of two distinct
by the legal system, but it
(usually
that is available and attractive to the
sinful.
off ender,
In
the
under
misleading.
fact,
one reason
natural tendency
Driving
make
assault.)
the crime.
alcohol) a
an off ender
own
intoxicated,
said
prevent the crime. The
that
capable
to seek their
to bethe quintessential criminal act, but lying in other
under the influence
vehicle
oath) is sometimes
and friends
Perjury (lying
would
most concerned
a crime is to control
of the victims
intervention
murder or aggravated
asked of a person where that
third-party
and
system
Murder is a crime punished reckless,
deviant,
all produce potentially
Distinctions
basis of the sanction
revenge.
(Life-saving
ultimately
that
with them are to some extent arbitrary
also
intervention.
concealment.
and sinful acts tend to go together, to be com-mitted Perjury is
reason
by the same people:They
is
the scene, and absence of life-saving
attempted
another
restrained to
prevent the crime, a victim unable to remove himself from
characteristic
the crime
see
painful consequences. on the
a
with successful long-term
We now
criminal,
and
111
is
combines
acts. It requires
accessible
to
of operating
the
the
element
common
to these
off ender,
vehicle
and an off ender insufficiently
the
a drug
while
restrained
acts (and
all
to
other
contexts is also subject to natural, social, and religious
criminal
penalties. Driving under the influence of alcohol has
a person willing to risk long-term costs for immediate
only recently become a major concern of the criminal
personal benefits. Self-control theory
justice system.
Notlong ago, it
and considered taken to
only
mildly deviant. This
mean that it
legal or
was widely practiced
moral status, few acts are
drunk
driving.
Since the invention
in the
United
States alone, drunk
hundreds
of thousands
countless
others).
The
idea that
of its
murder!
driving
driving
practitioners
has killed (as
drunk
well as
driving, and
(and all other criminal
have something
Sex
more reckless than
acts) is an unrestrained
in common
crime, that they as
well,
and
is not shoplifting!
under the influence!
smoking Perjury
Self-control
is
and
in
practice
not restricted
to
of
in their
erence
disease,
The
and
benefits
Everyone
ease, euphoria,
them.
awareness
is
not
activities an
efficient
that aware-ness of
crime
enjoys
are
money,
and revenge.
crime provides a direct and easy
between
So, according off
enders
and
to the theory, nonoff
enders
is
of and concern for the long-term
costs of crimesuch
does
the
off enders.
way of obtaining diff
crime
them. It says further
appreciation
sex, power, excitement,
is not
theory
says there is
may be found in noncriminal
that
method of producing
and delin-quent the
is sometimes
as: Marijuana
off ender,
nothing extraordinarily attractive about the benefits of
of the automobile,
murder, perjury,
met by such statements not
not be
Whatever its
deviant
Everyone can see that
marijuana smoking acts)
should
was not punished.
and
things
even
eternal
idea that
crime
as arrest, prison, disgrace,
damnation.
satisfies
special
needs
and that
not saythese acts are the same thing. It says they have
off enders are strongly
something in common. This
purposesis acceptedin manytheories of crime and dis-cussions
be identified structure
common element
more clearly by focusing
of criminal
and
deviant
may
motivated to accomplish their
of crime control policy.The source of this idea
on the logical
maybe the obvious imbalance between the short-term
acts.
The logical structure of an act is the set of condi-tions and uncertain rewards of crime and its long-term and necessary for it to
occur. Each distinct
criminal
more
certain
penalties.
Off enders
often
or deviant act has a unique set of necessary conditions.
a cow for a bag of beans, to risk
For example, smoking
for
marijuana requires attractive (for
reasons of cost, quality, and reputation)
and available
marijuana. It also requires an off ender unrestrained the consequences complex.
of
It requires
marijuana use. Homicide is interaction
and a victim, an offender
with the
by more
between an off ender means of taking the
brief sexual pleasures or small
strike
such
bargains, the logic
be driven by emotions of considerable this problem
strength.
powerful
of or concern for the long term.
trade
positions
monetary gains. To must
and compulsions)
Self-control the
to
goes, off enders
(seductions
by reducing
appear
theory
off enders
solves
awareness
What distinguishe
112
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
off enders from othersis not the strength of their appe-tites but their freedom to enjoy the quick and easy and ordinary
pleasures of crime
the pains that
mayfollow
From the crime,
nature
without
the
nature of criminality.
who engage in crime are people long-term
of the
moment. They
are,
to
People
who tend to
consequences. They
children
consequences,
or tend
self-control
strong
support
does low
in pursuit
come
from?
All
whine, hit, and steal. They
these
shows that the greater the attachment
of us, it
with the ability to useforce and fraud
horrendous
for
the child, the lower
be,
have what we call low
of our private goals. Small children
do lie, bite, consider
self-control
Delinquency
to
shows that
can and
also sometimes
crimes they are too small to carry
linquency.
By extension,
way toward
factors
in crime;
number
conclusions.
of the parent to It
discipline of nonde
this child-rearing
model goes
all of the
neglect, abuse, single
of children,
It
of delinquency.
predictors
explaining
low
research
and adequate
most important
a long
are
the likelihood
careful supervision
are among the
Where
missing, continued
neglect
self-control.
appears, are born
is
may be the result.
provides
nega-tive
whatever their legal or moral status.
When any one of them
them.
are present, the child
presumably learns to avoid acts with long-term
undue concern for
of crime, and acts analogous
we thus infer
When all of these conditions
major family parents, large
parental criminality.
All of these
measures of the extent of parental concern for the
off. By the age of 8 or 10, most of uslearn to control
child or are conditions that affect the ability of the
such tendencies to the degree necessaryto get along at
parent to
home and school. Others, however, continue to employ
would be expected, they are also major predictors of
monitor and correct the childs behavior. As
behaviors wecall analogous to crime: truancy, quitting the devices of children, to engage in behavior inap-propriate to their age.The differences observed at ages 8 to 10 tend to persist from remain good. concern to their criminal
then
Not so good children
on.
that low self-control
a source of
consider
learn from
the long-range
sanctions,
certain forms
It include
burns from
down stairs
of their
we previously
penalties that follow
from
many sources to
called
acts. natural
list is long.
hot stoves, bruises from falling
or out of trees, and injuries
from
eff orts
to
use the theory
reckless
attracted
acts.
to
acts
certain
force
that
speed
to explain deficient
provide
with
up the
immedi-ate
Criminal,
definition.
process
and
in
minimal ef-fort,
consequences.
and reckless acts fit this
and fraud
Persons
pleasure
whatever their collateral
In
many,
reduce
the
eff ort required to produce the desired result. In others, mind-altering
more or less automati-cally
of behavior. The
are
and
and apparently
deviant,
consequences
source
deviant,
self-control
is natural and that self-control
presumably
One important
criminal,
facts lead to the conclu-sion
is acquired in the early years of life. Children
We are now ready
Good children
remain
parents, teachers, and eventually to the
justice system. These
school, smoking, excessivedrinking, andjob instability.
In still or in
the
chemicals others,
risks
Persons
it
pleasure
shortcuts
inheres
to
in the
happi-ness. act itself
entails.
sufficient
because they
the
provide
find
in
self-control
that their
avoid
collateral
such
acts
consequences
by others to belong to them.
outweigh their benefits. Force and fraud in the service
Obviously, natural sanctions can be dangerous and
of self-interest are opposed by the law and by most
to take things thought
painful. In fact, the natural system is so unforgiving
people (including
that parents and other adults spend alot of their time
entail risks to self and others inconsistent
major sources
are the actions Parents
who
best they something
of self-control,
can.
for
their
When they
they should
children
our view,
see their
watch
thus
monitor, recognize
has four (deviant
adults. them
children
not do, they correct,
or punish them. The logical structure socialization
in
of parents or other responsible care
Drugs
with long-term
goals. And reckless behavior gains its charm from
protecting children from it. But the
those lacking self-control).
doing admon-ish,
of successful
necessary conditions: behavior),
as
and
care, correct.
the very possibility prospects,
that
it
whatever they
Theories from example, in every particle
may put an end to future
may be.
explain facts
by stating
which specific facts
general
proposi-tions
may be derived.
For
Newtons theory, apples fall to earth because of
matter in the universe is attracted
every other particle. The the attraction.
larger
by
the particle, the stron-ger
We often condense this explanatio
SELF-CONTROL
THEORY
113
into one word, gravity, but the truth and value of the
periods of time.This is among the best-established
explanation are not reduced by this practice. By the
facts in criminology (Nagin and Paternoster 1991;
same logic, in self-control
theory, people commit
acts because they fail to consider consequences. This into
explanation,
a single concept,
(low)
and value are not reduced Other theories
been blocked from
crime
would
by saying that
theory
people commit
have learned
such
treat
or
might
criminal
behavior
from
their peers. Choosing among theories is not, then, so much a matter of their logic as of their relative ability
or
treatment
Goggin 1996).
rehabilitate
off enders
to engage in established,
do
to
show
crime
search for eff ec-tive
extraordinarily
that
once
treatment
difficult;
But
tendencies
and delinquency
successful
have been
is, at
a minimum,
(Martinson
1974a;
et al. 1979. For a strongly contrary Andrews
not
programs of course continues.
continues
acts because they have
success by noncriminal
means. And social learning
acts because they
acts can be
strain theory
criminal
to
research
which specific
attaining
orts
produce the desired results. The
but its truth
by this practice.
from
say that people commit
explain
may be condensed
self-control,
For example, traditional
conventional
their long-term
Gendreau, Little, and Eff
of course also explain crime by stat-ing
general principles derived.
too,
crimi-nal
Se-chrest
view, see
et al. 1990).
Intervention
eff
orts
greatest promise (Tremblay
in
childhood
off er
the
of success in crime reduction
et al. 1992).
The law enforcement or criminal justice system has
little
to predict the facts about crime and criminals.
eff
ect
on the
Off enders
do
volume
not
of
attend
to
criminal
behav-ior.
increases
in
the
number of police or in the severity of penalties for TESTS
OF SELF-CONTROL
THEORY
violations
Crimes
of law (Andrews
may be prevented byincreasing
required to commit Our version 1990,
of self-control
which
Given the traditions definition
of the field,
untested. They
whose fate
theory
was published
makes it a new or contemporary new theories
are hypotheses
depends on the results
conducted. This problematic
suggests that
than theories
to test or falsify
them.
true. If theories
are logical
understandings
of research
not yet are
have withstood
more eff orts
Actually, the reverse should systems
with the results
be
based on current
of the facts, new theories
consistent
are by
or conjectures
new theories
that
in
theory.
should
of current
be es-pecially
research.
And the use of old theories to explain facts they once ignored or denied should be viewed with considerable
declines
off enders
them (Murray
with age among
and in almost
(Cohen
and
Hirschi
Land
all groups
all types
1987;
the eff ort
1995). of
of off ending
Gottfredson
and
particular
forms
1990).
Offenders
do not specialize in
of crime.
Career criminals
(Wolfgang
et al. 1972; Britt 1994).
Offenders
have
higher
death rates than
are extremely
accident,
illness,
nonoff enders (Farrington
rare
and
and
Junger 1995) Offenders are
morelikely
than
nonoff enders to
uselegal and illegal drugs (Boyum and Kleiman 1995).
Offenders are morefrequently involved in non-criminal
suspicion.
Self-control theory is based on and, predicts
Crime
et al. 1990).
forms
therefore,
of deviance
to restrictive Differences between high-and persist over the life on the frequency ranked once
similarly acriminal
diff erences
low-rate
course.
of their
always a criminal.
in height,
to commit
off end-ers
Children ranked
delinquent
later in life. This
in tendencies
(Evans
et al. 1997).
Offenders are more weaklyattached than nonof-fenders
the following facts:
acts will be is
not to say
It is to say that crime,
maintain themselves
like
dif-ferences
over long
careersfamilies,
Glueck
institutions schools,
jobs
and long-term (Glueck
and
1968).
Compared
to
nonoff enders,
off enders
with respect to intellectual skills (Hirschi
and
Family structure,
are
disad-vantaged
or cognitive
Hindelang 1977).
family relations,
practices are important
and childrear-ing
predictors
of deviant
114
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
behavior
(Glueck
Stout
and
Glueck
Hamer-Loeber
1950;
Loeber
Although it focuses on an element common to all
and
1986).
forms
of
crime
and
theory In
our view, these facts
consistent
with all of them, something
that
one type
theory is cannot
be
particular IMPLICATIONS
OF THE
THEORY
or burglary.
by analyzing
spray
control
the
features
theory of
the
approach to
act to occur.
criminal
of off enders and to The
act
pattern
major relevant
period
and
the
off ender.
characteristics
eff orts accord-ingly. one of its
prevention characteristics
of off enders
the
are youthfulness, limited cognitive skills, and low self-control. Becausethe rates of such important
crimes as
are unguarded also requires
at
generally
for a predict-able
by removing
any
or by altering
off enders.
Clearly, ef-forts
off enderstreatment,
incapacitationwill
a
an unrestrained
may be controlled
of unrestrained
directed
approaches
necessary for
necessary physical conditions
behavior
others.
have no impact
accessible, paintable,
of time. It Graffiti
to
Graffiti, for example, requires
paint and large,
policy is to analyze
hijacking
conditions
observable surfaces that The
Procedures for prevent-ing
Offense-specific
the
self-control
an off ense-specific
may be inapplicable
Eff ective eff orts to control
begin
self-control,
supports
of crime
on vandalism
said for any of its competitors.
POLICY
actually
low
con-firmed approach to crime prevention.
have been repeatedly
by research. In our view, self-control
deviance,
deterrence,
be highly inefficient compared to
burglary, robbery, theft, shoplifting, and vandalism all
programs that restrict accessto paint and to paintable
peakin
surfaces.
mid-to late adolescence and fall to half their
Self-control theory is based onthe idea that behav-ior
peaklevels as early asthe mid-twenties, effective crime control
policies
activities
will naturally focus on the interests
of teenagers.
Because the cognitive
off enders are relatively limited,
their
typically
simple and easily traced.
targeting
sophisticated
have low self-control, the immediate
of
criminal
acts are
As a result,
policies
off enders or career criminals
unnecessarily complex and inefficient.
are
Because off enders
they are easily deterred by increas-ing difficulties
and risks of criminal
costs of criminal are
behavior.
auto theft, and than increased The
Consequently, steering
more eff ective than increased
of
criminal
acts
wheel
moreeff ective
relevant
to
to
which crime
the likelihood
As we have seen,
as fines
and imprisonment.
system,
by increas-ing
of such legal sanctions
Nevertheless, self-control
theory leads to the conclusion justice
justice
may be reduced
and severity
that the formal
criminal
system can play only a minor role in the preven-tion
and control
of crime.
do not consider
eff
ect
on
Because potential
the long-term
their acts, modification their
of these consequences
behavior.
observed
off enders
legal consequences
Because
so quickly and easily accomplished, directly
police presence in preventing robbery.
characteristics
according
penalties in re-ducinglittle
movingin groups is
by its consequences.
this idea is also central to the criminal
acts
and are generally unaff ected by changes in the long-term
locks
is governed
and
skills
criminal
of
will have acts
are
they are only rarely
by agents of the criminal
justice sys-tem.
As a result, evenlarge increases in the number of
their
such agents would have minimal effect on the rates of prevention have beenlisted earlier. Crimes provide im-mediate, obvious benefit, are easily accomplished, and
most
require little skill, planning, or persistence.They involve no driving force beyond the satisfaction of everyday human
desires.
criminal
opportunities
can be prevented difficult.
Because people
by
are unavailable to them, making them
For example, increasing
banning its use in particular with little
lots
complexes
preventing
eff ort.
theft and vandalism.
when
other
the following policy (from
or
1.
considerations
led
recommendations Gottfredson
Do not attempt adults.
and
for
us to
advance
crime control
Hirschi 1995):
parking
can also be eff ective in
to control
crime by incapacitating
A major factor in the decision to incarcer-ate
off enders is the number
will often produce Guarding
and
crimes
more complex
the cost of alcohol or
settings
the desired result or apartment
do not suff er
crimes.
These
have
committed.
more likely
The
to
Most people
result
of prior off enses they is
be imprisoned would
agree
that
adults
than that
are
much
adolescents. prior
record
SELF-CONTROL
should be considered, but the age distribution
of
media
to
be. In
fact,
control
gangs and highly
are too old.The
Do not attempt
are two
eff ect,
which
above, there
program
for
has been shown to be eff ective. If nothing
Do not attempt
crime
and truancy
self-control nothing
8.
target
and seek to remedy lack of
have been shown to have promise. This the control theory
notion that
is acquired early in life. The finding
works in the treatment
to programs focusing
the
penalties available to the criminal justice system.
families
does not contradict
but time
by altering
programs designed to provide early educa-tion
supervision
adults
and
organiza-tions
and eff ective child care. Programs that
to pretend otherwise.
to control
asks, do people unable to resist
that force them to resist such pleasures? Support
dysfunctional
first is the age
unnecessary. The
no treatment
works, it seems ill-advised
7.
against treatment
makes treatment
second is that
syndicates.
violence find the discipline to construct
the crime rate by reha-bilitating
very good arguments
criminal
the pleasures of drugs and theft
morethan
As has been shown
programs for adult off enders. The
organized
Where,the theory
average age of persons
to control
adults.
Support
that
area maybelimited
on adolescents and adults.
policies that
promote
and facilitate
Legal penalties do not havethe desired effect be-cause
two-parent families and that increase the number
offenders do not consider them. Increasing
of caregivers relative to the number of children.
their certainty and severity may makecitizens and
Large families
policymakers feel better about the justice system,
handicapped with respect to
but it
will have a highly limited of
likely
unsupervised
requires
individuals.
activities
opportunity
walls,
Much can be gained from limiting
unattended
houses,
and
of the great success stories the century
uniforms,
and
prevention
license
other.
in fatal
increases in the
truancy
have potential
each
ac-cess
unwatched
of the last
wasthe reduction
that followed Curfews,
to
justice
unrestrained
of teenagers to guns, cars, alcohol,
of
is
pregnancy
is itself
with the criminal
should therefore
to
weak families
among adolescent
important
Programs
are more
acts and are especially
A major source of
unmarried
which
criminal
are
evidence
prevent
such
girls,
of low
self-control.
pregnancies
be given high priority.
auto acci-dents
drinking
age. CRITICISMS
school
of
OF THE
THEORY
these
Self-control
value for the same reason.
Limit proactive policing including
families
monitoring and dis-cipline.
to become involved
system.
One
quarter
programs,
restrictionsall
to commit
morelikely
of teenagers.
and
and single-parent
As a consequence, their children
eff ect on the deci-sions
off enders.
Restrict the Crime
5.
out
theory questionsthe very existence of hugejuvenile
prison is ineff ective because by then it is too
ten years after the peak age of crime.
4.
them
crime (see Figure 2) shows us that putting adults
sentenced to prison is the late twenties,
3.
make
115
in
late. They
2.
often
THEORY
police sweeps,
theory
is
among
the
most frequently
tested theories in the field of crime and delinquency. It
is also frequently criticized. These criticisms are con-centrated police stings, intensive arrest programs, and ag-gressive drug policies. Control theory seescrime as
three
more
or less
traditional
issues:
a product of human weakness.It sees no point in
(1) the definition
creating opportunities for crime in order to iden-tify
and deviant behavior; (2) the logical structure
those suff ering from such point in exploiting benefit
6.
around
of the
law
such
weakness. It sees no
weakness
enforcement
that
repeated
by the
off enders
are
and (3) the ability
particular
of crime
media.The the
to deal
with
off enses.
off ered by THE
justice system and uncriti-cally
not
of the theory
of the
establishment.
Question the characterization agents of the criminal
merely for the
theory;
of the dependent variablecrime
DEPENDENT
VARIABLE
evidence suggests
dedicated,
and clever professionals law enforcement
inventive,
and the
Self-control
theory attempts to explain short-term behavior that
entails the risk
self-interested
of long-ter
116
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
sanctions. Becauseit is framed
law, this definition includes actsthat maynot be defined as criminal
and
may exclude acts defined as criminal
the jurisdiction
in question.
Examples of the first
behaviors
we have labeled analogous
premarital
pregnancy,
Examples
The
divorce, job-quitting,
on behalf
definition
in the
to crime
of the second are terrorism
acts committed
also
public interest
(e.g., killings
the
use
by soldiers,
forced removals
This
definition
restricted
pointless,
That
fraud
by po-lice, fact trivial
activities
to
and
according
includes
all
to
which
behavior
in
the
crime is
violation
of
by the laws or norms of all societies (terrorism)
choice
in
this
explain
without from
matter.
and their
changing
Terrorists long-term their
Theories
define
definition
cannot
them.
self-control
Terrorist
theory
reflect commitment
to a political
consequences
cause or organization.
acts.
of their
they
do not meet by control
by an unrestrained
The
seriousness
of
this
criticism
of
to
cover
As far
as
we can
see, this
is
of
low
self-control
tautological.
nature
STRUCTURE
to
the
crimes
of interest.
is These
the
pure theory term
necessary
the
definition
On the
theories.
and
Selvin
Theories
or and
or circular contrary,
is always tautological
(Hirschi
entail
with
between
in this
[1967]
entail
we
1994).
definitions,
source of confusion
appears
to be the belief among social scientists that tautological theories
cannot
be falsified.
This
belief,
in
our
view,
is
false.
Applicability
In
element
of the
constructing on the
The
statements
theory.
It cannot be otherwise. The
us to
self-control
as behavior
is logically
repeats
negative
a relation
We do not deny the tautological
Definitions
Self-control theory says that crime is the best predictor that
theory
of self-control
believe that
from
and
defined
and crime
The
vice versa.
small
crime
and crime is
negative consequences,
Theory
to
Particular
losses purpose looking bizarre
of the
are
has led some
theory,
Crimes.
triviality
with
which
and
smaller
was to first
crimes,
the
they
crimes
that
justice
of the theory
to concen-trate
crimes. This predictability,
are
committed, typically
distractions
mainly at large,
media and criminal critics
and they
gains
avoid
or
we tried
of ordinary
their
speed
common often
self-control characteristics
emphasize
ease and
of
meaning of tautology is that the logical
consequences, long-term
by traditional
crime.
LOGICAL
are not
small,
especially when compared to the theorys coverage of definitions
be
self-control
number
the very large number of acts ignored
Theories
to engagein behavior with long-term
theory will depend on the range and frequency of actsit fails
theory.
possibly
definitions. Thus, if low self-control is defined by will-ingness
demonstrably
ender.
of control
nor
for the nauseousness of the behavior they
However hei-nous sense of the
to acts explained
be committed
criticism
1998,
relations among concepts may be derived from their
acts, and however se-verely
by the state, they
common
(Akers
is neither logically
necessary. It cannot therefore
Another
Onthe contrary,
quo.
pointless
labeled this
attempt to explain.
regard for the broad or
of their
they are punished
theorythat
be changed
described
may be tautologi-cal,
have indeed
But such repetition
responsible
we have behavior
acts are excluded
purpose is to alter the status
the requirement
the
because they are assumed to
do not act without
the consequences
off
a valid
behavior that is rarely if ever punished
by the state (accidents)? The answer is that
repeat themselves
and theoretically
168169).
owners by university
repetition
or worse.
and some criminologists
How can weexclude behavior that is clearly crimi-nal
they
crimes
Universal whole Life
statement introduces
meaning of the term: The
of crime is very diff erent from
definition,
and include no
is but a nauseous Tautology. This another
or
Oxford
1687: Our
is trivial,
force
of the
or, by extension,
again. The
Dictionary lists an example from
empirically
traditional
saying
organizations.
officials).
law.
doing the same thing
are (e.g.,
by the legal system
undercover
of property
of tautology is repetition;
and espionage,
of
or as required
a serious criticism
theory in the eyes of manysocial scientists. One mean-ing
by
accidents).
of political
excludes
described as tautological,
without regard to the
attract
the
system. This
the the
involve. that
serious,
led
come
or appar-ently attention strategy
to the conclusion
tha
SELF-CONTROL
it applies only to the ordinary, mundane crimes from which
it
ignores
was constructed.
We believe
this
the success of our strategy
shared
in revealing
by rare and common,
off enses. Indeed, most serious
we began this
Evans,
conclusion
fea-tures
off ense to show that it fell
easily
crimes
outside
at
where
self-control
is
The
Testing
the
Criminology,
within
or
another
include
to
fall
Burton,
R.
social
Dunaway,
&
consequences
general
theory
of
of
crime.
35:475504.
David P.
Criminal
&
Behavior
income
not
from
Those a factor
Gendreau,
tax
Paul,
Marianne Junger
and
Mental
involved should
(eds.).
Health,
the law-abiding
of the
& Claire
predictors
What works! Glueck,
in crimes
be
Tracy Little,
meta-analysis
crime, organized
Tests of these alleged exceptions
us straightforward.
indistinguishable
time
crime, corporate
crime, and gambling. seem to
one
of the theory
white-collar
V.
(1997).
117
(1995).
5(4):
Special
Issue.
said
the scope
evasion,
Cullen,
Farrington,
the scope of the theory. Other
T.,
self-control:
serious and trivial
essay with a rare and
F.
M. Benson.
THEORY
Sheldon
&
Delinquents
of adult
Criminology,
Eleanor
Grown
Goggin. (1996).
Up.
off ender
A re-cidivism:
34:575607.
Glueck.
(1940).
New York:
Juvenile
Commonwealth
Fund.
otherwise
population.
As
(1950).
Unraveling
Juvenile
Delinquency.
_____.
of
now,
it
seems
to
us, the
evidence
on
these
points in directions favorable to the theory. Those involved in such apparently exceptional crimes tend to have
been
involved
in
other
forms
of
Cambridge,
matters
crime
and
devi-ance
as well(Le Blanc and Kaspy 1998).
MA:
(1968).
Delinquents
Perspective.
Charles. (1913). The
Theory
University
Structure:
A General Theory
Boston:
Northeastern
Andrews, Bonta,
Does
Ivan
Paul
Bentham,
Gendreau,
Principles
and
Crime and
Social
Deviance.
D.
& Francis
T.
treatment
Cullen.
(1970). and
An Introduction
Legislation.
to the
other
J. Petersilia
Britt,
Chester
&
Mark
Reprint.
Pp. 295326
(eds.).
Crime.
L. (1994).
of Deviance.
London:
Lawrence
Hirschi.
Crime.
crime
(1990).
Stanford,
CA:
control
policies.
Causes of
California
A
Stanford
Society,
Labeling
Walter
Delinquency.
Berkeley:
Press. theory
An assessment
Hirschi.
and
juvenile
of the evidence.
Gove (ed.),
Travis
and
(1990).
ICS.
Pp. 173192
in
Generality
&
The
Michael
explanation
C. Land. (1987). versus
rates through
Age
Labeling
Gottfredson.
of crime.
MA: Belknap.
of
&
Michael
Intelligence
and
delin-quency:
Pp. 181203 of
Deviance.
(1983).
American
American
Sociological
Hirschi.
Travis
&
Delinquency
Age
Journal
of
Le Blanc,
Marc
An
and
of
personal
and
adjudicated paths. 14:181214
boys
A revisionist
review.
Selvin.
[1967]
(1994).
of
Analytic
Appraisal
Kaspy. (1998).
problem
behavior:
control
on synchronous
Journal
(1977).
NJ: Transaction.
& Nathalie
of delinquency
Social Theory.
C.
Brunswick.
asymmetry
social
Hindelang.
Review. 42:571187.
Hunan
Research: New
J.
delinquency:
the 1990s.
Review, 52:170183. Foundations
Travis
Methods.
NJ: Transaction.
Symmetry
of crime
Sociological
James.
Cambridge,
crime:
Alcohol
(eds.), The
C. & Kenneth
projection
Hirschi,
Wilson and
Francisco:
Versatility.
New Brunswick,
and the American
San
(1995).
in J.Q.
M.R. Gottfredson
structure
Coleman,
A. R. Kleiman.
drugs.
T. Hirschi and
Cohen,
Travis
Montelair.
Sociology, 89:552584.
David
and
of
(1975).
and the
Althone.
Boyum.
Convict.
Halsted.
[1789] Morals
of
&
National
University
in
28:369404.
of
R.
Travis. (1969),
A clinically meta-analysis.
English
Press.
(1995).
_____.
(1990).
in
University
32:3037.
Hoge, James
work?
informed
_____.
Hirschi,
Press.
Robert
and psychologically
Jeremy.
The
Zinger,
correctional
Criminology,
of
University
D.A.,
relevant
Learning
Nondeliquents Harvard
Smith.
Michael
General
Social
MA:
Press.
Goring,
REFERENCES
(1998).
Press.
and
Cambridge,
NJ: Patterson
Ronald.
University
_____.
Gottfredson,
Akers,
Harvard
of
Trajectories Comparison
characteristics and
Quantitative
of
nonsynchro-nous Criminology,
118
CRIME
AND
Loeber,
BEHAVIOR
Rolf
Family
&
Magda
factors
conduct
problems
M.H.
Tonry
Stouthamer-Loeber.
as correlates and
&
N.
delinquency.
Morris
A Review of Research.
29149
Crime
University
in
Robert.
and answers Spring,
Justice:
of
Chicago
about
of life
process.
the
April.
in J.Q.
The
The
behavior.
at the
Eastern
physical
in
Crime.
to
Social
of
Criminology,
& Lloyd in
Criminology,
Paternoster.
past to
Patrick
future
J.
On in
of hoodlums.
Richard
Helene
M.
and
27:389417.
OMalley, (1989).
Jerald
Time
self-reported
trends illegal
G.
early
McCord
onset
and
Behavior.
Marvin,
Delinquency in Chicago
factors
(eds.):
Offenders:
DC:
National
and stake in the
preda-tory
of Criminal
Vitaro,
Press
Lucie
Beauchesne,
David. (1992).
prevent
Antisocial
Criminal
Journal
E., Frank
LeBlanc,
Wolfgang.
29:163189.
D.Johnston. arrests
(1991).
participation
Brown
disorganization
Complementary
Man.
Reprints.
Law,
and Police Science, 48:1217.
& Lucille
Pp.
(eds.),
and
Washington,
Parent of
and child
Study.
R. New
Tremblay York:
Robert Figlio, a Birth
Bertrand,
Helene
delinquency:
Longitudinal-Experimental
Wayne,
trends
(1957).
conformity:
Tremblay,
of
Prospects.
A Treatise on
& Elizabeth
Rehabilitation
of Sciences.
Marc
environment.
White,
Academy
Philadelphia.
S. & Raymond
delinquency.
age
delivered
O.
and
Criminology,
reality
ICS.
Daniel
Bachman,
The
and the
Facsimiles
Problems
Toby, Jackson.
Questions
Public Interest,
Wilson and J. Petersilia
relationship
D.
Paper
Association,
Francisco:
Osgood,
and
reform.
myth of treatment
Charles. (1995).
349361
Nagin,
works?
(1969).
Scholars
Susan
behavior
The
Psychological
San
prison
What
A.J. [1833]
FL:
Lee,
35:2254.
_____.(1974b).
Murray,
(1974a).
Sechrest, (1979).
and
Press.
Martinson,
Lambert
Gainesville,
of juvenile
Pp.
(eds.),
Chicago:
Quetelet,
(1986).
and predictors
A
Boileau,
training Montreal
Pp. 117138 (eds.),
in
Preventing
Guilford.
&Thorsten
Cohort-Chicago:
Sellin. (1972). University
of
PART III
Macro-Level
Structural
Theorie
PART III INTRODUCTION
Macro-Level
S
o far
the
we have only looked free
choice
at
(classical
more deterministic
micro-level theories and
biological
Structural
rational
that
choice,
Theories
either focus
routine
on in-dividual
activities)
diff erences and psychological
or on
and personality
propensities that predispose people to the potential for committing
crime.
We
have also seen social processtheories that explain crime by humans exposure to diff erent kinds of interaction
with their peers and parents that socialize them
into the norms and values of deviant subcultures, or that fail to sufficiently bond them
into
the
norms,
values
and
we change up the analytical institutions,
level
social structure,
These
kinds
behavior
of convention.
of theory
and culture
from
social
of analysis are described
actor
embedded
within
by limiting
them from
families
them.
Social
forces
include
can significantly
what they
Asimple example
will illustrate
white
from
family in a
black
Wellfleet,
female
a
New
Orleans
look after her younger siblings life diff
female
teen
Massachusetts who goes to
from
an
the point.
established
them
Consider
Wellesley College, compared
because her single parent
and
well-to-do
Ward who stops attending
9th
race
a persons life
might have been and channeling
erent
of
class,
impact
a certain set of choices. chances
to social
which refers to social
the
life
book
and groups as well asthe
toward diff
3 of this
the individual/group
as macro-level,
gender each of which, or their intersections, choices
Part
of the wider society.
and cultural forces that shape the institutions, individual
In
with
high school to
mother is
working. The
chances for each of these teenagers is likely to be very diff erent as each has a erent
cultural,
structural,
and
class
location
characteristics, personality and abilities. If profile the teenager from divide
than
an
which
transcends
their
individual
we add gender to the demographic
Wellfleetis likely to experience an even greater experien-tial
African
American
male from
New
Orleans.
But these
forces
are
not inevitable or consistent in determining outcomes as New Orleans native and jazz impresario California,
Branford
Marsalis or Serena and Venus
demonstrate;
Williams from
Compton
however, asfar as the general trend is concerned
Branford,
Serena and Venus are exceptions. we might think rather than
of these
proximate)
and career possibilities
From a criminological
wider systems
and structures
perspective, even though as having
distant (distal
eff ects, those eff ects acutely reach into family, and they also channel
children
education,
and teenagers subject to
12
122
them
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
into
diff erent
kinds
of
encounters
with
the
law.
These encounters have different consequences and are shaped by the structural
and cultural
contexts in
which
people are located. There
are
a number
of
part of the book (Part
macro-level
forces
In the
we will consider
in
and (2)
next part of the
a range of critical
take a diff erent interpretation
Anomie/
book (Part
macro-theories
of the
4)
that
waystructural
becauseof low rents. However,these areastypically lack community
integrity
that
the
reduces
among
this
3) we are going to consider just
two kinds: (1) Social Ecology Theory Strain Theory.
and
bottom end of the socio-economic spectrum to the area
and
other
neighbors and
each
children.
violation
SUBCULTURAL
THEORIES
by geography and the importance
in
organization
that reduce informal
transition
mentioned
lead
to
earlier,
areas seem insulated
of a
1950), founded
Chicago School of Sociology
in 1920s and 30s (Park et al. 1925; Shaw & McKay
places and/or inhabits
cultural
McKenzie 1929; Thrasher
the characteristics groups
in crime (Henry
some neighborhoods
etc.
argued the
more or less prone to engage
the common-sense
are bad
others, e.g.crack
barrio,
or
city, the red
As Robert empirical
Sampson
view that
contain
that
of
social
social control
crime
from,
as an
which
the
p. 38)
has
means
occurs
not
crime-prone
supportive
not
community
seen
as
because
structured
limited
fractured
residents
are
makechoices
toward
by the
and disorganized
Areas of cities that transition
preda-tory
meaning of life
settings
are constantly
with people
(Henry
&
in
population
moving in and out, coming
(at least
street
crime),
relative
to those
environments.
found
Charles heart
English historians Booth, of
and demographers
documented
London.
These
in
Chicago sociolo-gists
were one of the first to point his out, although
the
as
tend to become areas with higher rates of
more stable suburban
such
19th
such as
neighborhoods
rookeries
were
rife
in with
gin houses and houses of debauchery, as well asinfa-mous gambling parlors and shops for receiving stolen
area or imported into the area becauseof its reputation Whatis clear is that rates of arrest
is
Lanier 2006, p. 129).
have relevance for ex-plainingCentury
a higher than average rate
Crime
in impoverished
crime
district,
within
are
are environmentally
light (1997,
outcome
or experience less crime,
communities
actionschoices
immigrants,
Whetherthis crime is indigenous to the
is not always clear.
and for In short,
levels
forced into offending, but becausethey
more crime-prone
macro-level variations in violence. This that these locations
control
Where neighborhoods are more prone
these
broken:
data suggest that the structural
elements of social disorganization
of street crime.
or
& Lanier 2006, p. 129). Research over
the years tends to support
than
of specific
crime
may make a person who
those spaces, or who is engaged in the social
networks formed in them,
of
or church-based networks with close ties in organized to
1927) share a view that
low
Where neighborhoods
communities.
1942; Shaw, Burgess &
absence
to go uncontrolled.
communities
persons spatial location, social ecology theories (Amos by the
control
members over each
This
this is believed to result from
Influenced
social
between groups to gain traction
crime and law
inevitable. AND
fragmentation
of informal
and community
others
allows conflict
As
ECOLOGY
experience
allows crime to run rampant.
cultural forces shape crime and behavior.
SOCIAL
and
eff ectiveness
property: Generally, the geographic area in question
for street crime in these areasare higher than in other
is a particular neighborhood and the crime-promoting
areas, and that people who do not want to participate
tendency is often related to the economic and social
in crime, as a perpetrator
factors
Social ecologists something area that
ask questions
about
avoid the area. whether there is
that
makesit
more crime prone than
social disorganization.
provided
other areas.
by social ecologists is
Areas with dilapidated
have become run
down
a diverse range of immigrants
housing
or blighted,
high density
and conflicting economic urban
factors
are themselves urban land
and abandonment
experienced
areas. Inhabitants
feel excluded from the
these neighborhoods,
population,
cultures
development,
these en-courage
and others at the
shape and sustain
such as poverty,
about the area and about those drawn to an
One answer to this
stock, that
or a victim,
social
disor-ganization,
or subcultures. The
tied
to the
use, and the
by those
of blighted
politics
of
alienation
who inhabit
neighborhoods
mainstream of society
and, as
PART
result,
become
hostile
to
all
but
those
in,
their particular ethnic group (Henry
or closest
& Lanier 2006,
areas,
and this
flight)
movement
most
residents
suburbs, those remain
and
loss
become
neighborhoods, born there,
those as
vital
able
to
concentrated.
eff ect on a
move
out
models for
children
who
often
behind
live even
networks
children
didnt
isolation.
more
those to
be
to
areas typically
are
become the catalyst
which provide
the anonymity
neighborhoods.
protection
and lack
Gangs,
because of the rather than
more systemic
community problem
good apples in
a bad barrel
bad; the problem, in other
than individual.
or neighborhood
requiring
level.
Indeed,
the level
change to communities,
geographic
to the economic
and political
where police work in partnership
migration
anything
or
in the
deviant,
and transience
particular
gangs
form
of the areas,
One pattern
of
low income
Sub-groups
within
deriving
from
occurs because of
that is aff ordable,
and already rife
a larger
which
mainstream culture
from
with other subcultures in a neighborhood. Feelings of from
the
mainstream
cultural groups canlead to formation groups, including other struggling
Some gangs have become
identity
generations.
both violent
drug trafficking
other
to
in
which
are removed
demonstrate
that
simply engaging in arrest
combined
with
dilapidations,
and cleaned
people
At a broader level
property
aff ect land
transience,
of criminal
concept
policing
(Henry
are
justice system that change the face
areas has led to social
capital,
produce supportive, self-monitoring,
practices
and social ecologists
the
nurturing,
efficacy
and
through
the
not least dense
disorga-nization
more generally,
of collective
empowerment,
of social
vandalism
permanence, rather than
the importance
neighborhood
of
care and are in control.
beyond
blight. The
theorists,
idea
up immediately,
use and urban design that
of neighborhood
the
social
ties
that
resource-sponsoring,
and safe and social environments
& Lanier 2006, p. 131).
features
ANOMIE
of cer-tain
AND
STRAIN
THEORIES
features that span
these gangs
crime and
windows
and graffiti
is
with each
As a meansto sustain their autonomy
enhance their reputation
This
and reputation.
permanent
urban areas with organizational
and
of self-protective
gangs,that arein conflict over territory,
broken
with problems.
whichthey disaff ect, and they also mayhave differences alienation
incarceration.
to explore may have long-standing
culture
diff erences with the
and
and
policies that lie outside the criminal
neighborhoods
migration to a neighborhood is typically
to prevent crime, rather than
about the individuals
gang formation
disorganized
polic-ing
with commu-nity
membersto develop solutions to area problems
and
members
of community
criminal
of
is seen as a sociological
Onesuch local-level but national policy that can
for
to their
will
words,
makea diff erence to the structure of a neighborhood
further
who live in the neighborhoods.
in
Even putting many of them
victimization
control
social environment,
of the bad apple verses the bad
regions, and particularly
makes
some individu-als
major challenge is at a diff erent structural
are pockets of resistance to the circum-stances
to form
isolation
of the toxic
forces that shape these areas.
turn
ordained by such crime-prone locations
socially
is
and the inculcation
or community is problem-solving community
There
from
the impact
in
undermined.
these
development
are able to insulate
Consider the analogy
turn a
skill
or group level. Even if treat-ment,
the remaining
This
social
in
choose
vulnerable
of informal
in
the
barrel.
the
results
demoralizes
in
to
of problems
This
role
which further
who left
are
from
or black
is because when the
with the greatest amount
of adequate
residents
white
or amplifying
neighborhood. This
successful
training,
of coping strategies
out (whether
has an intensifying
deteriorating
strive to leave to live in better
residents
unstable neighborhoods
123
provide a policy challenge since it is not effective to deal with crime at an individual
Perhaps not surprisingly,
INTRODUCTION
Such crime creating orsocially toxic environments
to,
pp. 129130).
these blighted
III
and
may be involved crime,
and human sex trafficking.
as well as
The
second kind of macro-level theory
stems from
work of one of the Founding
Fathers
Emile
wrote
Durkheim
(1892),
who
to society in the 19th century major structural
change:
from
one
the
of sociology,
about
as it
the
chal-lenges
underwent
dominated
b
124
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
agriculture and small-scale, face-to-face communities
production, specializa-tion crime is just as pathological as too
to one dominated byindustrial and
high levels
disorganization
control,
of division
theory,
communities
that
obligations
anomie
theory,
about a system-wide from
societal change that
a social structure
common
breakdown
cities, anomie theory
characterized
or shared values among its
characterized
1994), in
in
and
much crime
In this tradition is institutional
movessociety
is
which the
manifest
the
would
be found (Henry
a recent theoretical
development
materiality
undermines
Dream,
social
institutions,
over-emphasis
these institutions
altruism
and
Institutional
pursued
through
criminal
argued that this didnt recognized if those
their
aspirations,
interdependence
which they
Healso said that emerge around
Durkheim
on each other and
rose to the positions in
new forms
of moral regulation specializations.
that this
would
of special interest
would However,
morelikely lead to
groups, than to
collaboration and interdependent
mutual
community.
Anomie theory then explicitly links variables (the type of society, free
1957) wrote
American
on materiality
ability
to
provide
ad-equate
not only builds on
theory,
What
diff erential
has
become
after the
known
societys
members to
Pursuing
the
if
befrustration,
achieve the
pursue the
American
behavior;
uniform
the
is
of the social
goals that American
blocked,
behavior, either
the
drive Dream.
result
as an illicit to
by the system
& Lanier 2006, p. 154). This
can
that can means to
desired goals, or as a reaction
perceived as unjust treatment
without the
the
as strain
depression and anger, emotions
what is (Henry
mismatch between goals
provided
strain
to
Dream is a driving force for
Dream
and the institutionally
Great
access
sees a clash between the inequality and its culturally
much
1930s
the
structure
leads to structural
macro-level
who in the
about
Dream.
convert to illegal
were best suited (meritocracy).
occupational
he did not anticipate a competition
which
have to be the outcome if people
with the best abilities
society to
and
then
some of
behavior.
drive
as educa-tion,
in higher rates of crime
anomie theory
Merton (1934; Depression
social respon-sibility,
mutual interdependence,
the outcome is unlimited are
achievement
and de-emphasizes
seen to
such
of be-havior.Durkheims original insights but also that of Robert
Wherethis structural change is accompanied success (egotistical),
and is
be acceptable,including illegal ones.
manufacturing, and eventually
by a culture that celebrates individual
society is
since all meansto achieve material goals are believed to
Anomie states that at times of rapid change the divisions created to maximizethe production of goods moral regulation
&
& Rosenfeld
of industrial
American
of its
health care, etc.This
diff erences in
(Messner
moral control, resulting
services, can undermine the
in
measured by monetary achievements,
in the
character
values.
and services through
over-controlling
rapid transformation
anomie theory
based on success,
members, to one
by diff erences, including
Too
undergoing
much crime. Too
a rigid,
Lanier 2006, p. 154).
talks
by similarity
would represent
system.
societies
levels of
disorganization
about community
crime
social
social
having fewer
members and lower
urban contexts, specifically
little
tight-knit
of informal
However, unlike social
which talks
Like social
contrasts
communities
among their
social control.
of labor.
have high levels
with fragmented
to ameliorate these problems. Surprisingly, too little
meansto achieve them
and relative
deprivation;
those
meansare denied reaching these com-monly
shared cultural goals, such as material success:
market capitalism,
for example) with micro-level behavior (such asfrus-tration,owning a house, a car etc. In contrast, those who have anger, depression, suicide, or crime). It explores how the total behavior
of its
of societal others. view
of these
of a society
impacts
members, and asserts that
organization
As
abnormal
organization
Durkheim
produce
theories,
crime
circumstances. Thus,
can be determined
is
a normal
the health
by the amount
some forms
more crime from
revealed,
the
the
the the
meanssucceed in achieving these goals, forcing under-achievers
Adaptations
than
point
reaction
of to
of a society
of crime present or
by the ineff ectiveness of the societys social institutions
to
included
crime,
into the
deviance,
committed
subcultures
a state
strain
of some
individually
and gangs
of relative perceived of
deprivation. relative
which
can
or collectively
who use illegitimate
depri-vation involve
through means to
achieve these same material goals of success. However,
some
such
as
Nicos
Passas (1990),
out that strain does not just aff ect lower
point
class member
PART
of society whocannot achievethe culturally prescribed
III
INTRODUCTION
125
REFERENCES
goals of materialism, but it also impacts corporations and
white collar
means) to
Agnew (1992) Strain Theory
diff erent direction, strain and and
who cheat (use illegitimate
maximize their achievement
Robert General
off enders
developed that took
emotional
this
strain
theory
results
from
situations
and
frustration
as
micro-than
blocked
macro-in
His
version
its level
of
strain
of analysis
is
to escape their
from
this results in anger that can turn violent.
Park,
As Henry and Lanier (2006) point out, the policy implications
of these various
macro-level theories
aspirations, reducing inequalities,
enabling those suff ering strain to better cope far the
majority of policy suggestions
from
traditional
such
as
micro-level increasing
Agnew,
have suggested
by stopping their
social
intervening
people treating supports
Sampson,
By
and
others
and coping
Others, Shaw,
badly,
in
mecha-nisms.
Few have been brave enough to challenge the deep-seated forces that in the first
place.
create these structural
strains
C. R. Urban
&
The
Essential
and Social
Press. Structure.
Crime
and
the
Wadsworth.
R.(1925). The
City.
Press. and
Corporate
Deviance.
Crises 14(3):15778. The
embeddedness
development:
on urban
Cambridge:
at the
of
Press.
Westview
R. (1994).
Anomie
adolescent
Violence and
(2006).
E., & McKenzie,
R. J. (1997).
perspective
Press. A Theory
Ronald
CO:
Belmont:
Chicago
N. (1990).
Contemporary
and
have attempted
opportunities.
Rosenfeld,
of
Free
Ecology:
Social Theory
Dream.
University
and implementa-tions
strain theories
to increase access to legitimate
with it.
&
Strain
Press.
R. E., Burgess,
Passas,
involve a variety of waysto change the society, includ-ing lowering
S.
NY:
M. M. (Eds.)
Free
American
General
of Labor in Society.
New York:
Reader. Boulder,
York:
Messner,
and that
Human
R.K. (1957).
New
Division
Suicide.
Structure.
S. & Lanier,
Merton,
a
4787.
Press.
H. (1950).
Criminology
but shows
present situation
A.
Community Henry,
1933).
Free
for
30(1),
E. (1897/1997).
Hawley,
more
how people can become alienated and frustrated their inability
Durkheim,
and they are forced to suff er pain
a result.
E. (1893;
New York:
in
Foundation
Criminology
Durkheim,
a
to structural
which people find their lives and opportunities or are unachievable
in
to social and psychological
that
R. (1992).
Theory.
what he calls a
giving less importance
moreimportance
Agnew,
of goals.
violence.
Childhood Cambridge McKay, Areas.
H.
child
A community-level In
in the Inner University D. (1942).
Chicago:
of
McCord,
J., (Ed.),
City, (pp.
3177).
Press. Juvenile
University
Delinquency of
Chicago
Press.
Shaw,
C. R., Zorbaugh,
S. (1929). Chicago Thrasher, Chicago
Delinquency
H., McKay, Areas.
H. D. & Cottrell,
Chicago:
L.
University
of
University
of
Press. F. (1927) Press
The
Gang.
Chicago:
CHAPTER VI
Social Ecology and Subcultural
Theorie
SOCIAL
DISORGANIZATION THEORY
Jeff ery T.
A
description
of the
history
theory is not asimple because of an abundance
and
current
undertaking,
of it.
state
of social
disorganization
not because of a lack of information
From its beginnings in the study
but
of urban change
and in plant biology, research related to social disorganization theory hasspread to many different fields. These areas of concentration range from simple spin-off s of the original studies (Bordua 1959; Chilton 1964; Lander 1954), to the variety of research in environmental criminology (Brantingham to the growing field related to crime such far-reaching
topics
the space limitations, to the original
PRECURSORS
The
forerunners
as the behavior
OF
SOCIAL
of social disorganization
and the growth
1974).
Given
THEORY
research are probably
thought. The
ecological study
more varied than of delinquency
is
of the study of change in France, plant biol-ogy,
of the urban city.
direct lineage biology.
dogs (Stewart
its discussion to studies closely related
DISORGANIZATION
the result of the unlikely combination
The
of fighting
& Rafcliffe 2005), to
of the theory.
any other area of criminological
plant
mapping (Chainey
this chapter limits
principles
& Brantingham 1981),
of social disorganization
Warming (1909)
proposed
that
research is found in the study plants live in communities
varying states of symbiosis, or natural interdependence.
of with
Communities containing
plants predominantly of the same species were morein competition
with nature
than with each other. Communities with several different species, however, com-peted for limited resources more among themselves than
with the environment.
Warmingcalled this relationship a natural economybecauseof the use of resources by the plants. This used
the
German
natural economy word
oikos,
from
was expounded which
economics
on by a Haeckel (1866), was formed
to
coin
the
who term
ecology. One of the first Guerry compared 1825 through
social ecological studies the crime rates in
1830.
was conducted
86 departments
by
(counties)
Guerry in in
1833.
France from
His study showed that crime rates had marked variation
in
12
Walker
130
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
diff erent cities in the country. Similar studies compared diff erent regions
and cities in
diff
1862/1983),
erent
Kingdom (Rawson, countries
The
and juvenile
delinquency
was first
business
district,
rates were located
United
and
by Burt
Abbott in
the
lowest
studies by
examined
in
Breckinridge
delinquents
theory.
high
Burgess
and
used the concept
phenomenon
people
in
describe disrupt
in
reestablish previously
through
order
dominant
Park,
They also applied
which a stronger
the community
where
and succession group
area
would
(succeeding)
a
in
(1969)
expanded
work by observing
majority;
then
previous
level.
proximity
McKay
and
Burgess
cluster in rings set at about 1-mile increments from
central
the center of Chicago and that the patterns changed
and
dramatically from one ring to the next. For example,
a ring
Part et al. found a zone of manufacturing enterprises
economic,
immediately
surrounding
of the city.
ring,
the center homes.
housing.
dominant
working-class
central
Outside this factory
of very low-income the
the
of the city
fourth
and fifth
this
pattern
dis-trict
industry.
and
and
the
in the
prevalence
upper-class the
Burgess
outskirts
of delinquency. and
McKay
condemned was
an
final
analyzed
association
would
from
Park the
of
manufacturing zone
of
they
the
rate.
an
between
homes in
the
and the
characteristic
number
area. They number
an area and its
Moving
a reduction
characteristics
was the in
was
physical,
were studying
delinquency
physical
Shaw
surrounding
industrial
factors
to
home ad-dresses
Borrowing
levels
be-came
return
delinquency,
that
the
would
relationship
areas and the
high
The
group
of the city, they found of these
The
homes
condemned
high
ethnic)
that
the
was a zone
population
a corresponding
toward
rings from
and
the
organization
invading
rates
found
by
of
a term
(typically
To analyze
Surrounding
characterized
concentric was
the
delinquents.
district
was an area
characteristic
were middle-and
Park et al. labeled
zonal hypothesis.
zone
In the third
residential
homes. The
business
business
popula-tion
neighborhood.
crime
they
that
social one
to industry
(1928),
as population
a rise in crime
mapped industrial
of juvenile
The
examined
because
the
until
the
and
that
groups
caused worse
near their
that
of the population tended to
order
progressively
deterio-rated,
and succession,
of
another
with
was a corresponding
delinquency
of
(3)
areas
residents.
proposed
members
and
McKay
found
They
population
of heavy industry,
and
dominance,
into
to
be physically
there
disruption
moved
disruption get
to
areas
change. They
because
variables
that
transient
or decreased
used for an
between
McKenzie
on Park and Burgesss (1928)
certain characteristics
of
(2)
housing,
proposed
Shaw
influenced
status,
of an area: (1)
highly
of invasion,
group
to
group.
Burgess, and
they
change and eventu-ally
by replacing
with
delinquency.
shifts process
goals and at the
of dominance
in
status.
used three
tended
characteristic
increase
population
close to
basis
centered
physical
They
rates
increased
and
describe
communities
compete for resources.
a situation
to
to industry.
ecological
disorganization
(1)
condemned
ecol-ogy
On the
disorganization
status and
urban
social
(1942)
physical vacant
was population
what
Park
of symbiosis
for common
Warmings concepts
develop
Specifically,
human
work together
same time
Abbot to
McKay
populated
Warming, and the re-search rates
ecology.
and (3)
and
primary
Haeckel, the concepts of human
of social
of variables:
geographically
used the terminology
of Breckenridge
developed
sets
delinquency
and
between
of human
delinquency.
study
status,
(2)
of these delin-quents
used the ideas
association
they
three
measure the
Park and Burgess (1928)
called
THEORY:
MCKA
and juvenile
Their
around
proximity
in
juveniles homes werelocated in afew areas of the city.
they
the
research
change,
indicated that a disproportionate number of the
the
this
economic
the geographic
homes of juvenile
study
Shaw
undertaken
Chicago. A mapshowing the location
of
of
of the city.
was conducted
1912. They
of the
adjacent to
with
McKay (1942)
characteristics
with the
areas
ecological
States
distribution
and
district
London
near the periphery
One of the first the
Shaw and
explored
were located
THE
AND
United
a citys central
who proposed that areas in
central
the
to
between
highest rates of delinquency the
in
OF
SHAW
1836).
relationship
in 1925,
England (Mayhew
countries
1839), and England and European
(Bulwer,
DEVELOPMENT
of found
vacant that
of
vacant
delinquency
rate Shaw and there and
rate.
SOCIAL
Next, Shaw and association
between
and its
McKay (1942) the
delinquency
economic
rate. They
assistance, (2) the
area, and (3) the
rented.
Shaw and
of families
of families
receiving
low
that
rise in
status
status.
relationship
between
and
delinquency. They as the
to
the
found
and
with
higher
McKay analyzed
median rental that
median rental
Finally, Shaw and
with
delinquency
waslow, there As home ownership from
economic
Shaw and
conditions
rates. They
between
of delinquency
atmosphere
of social
affluence
produced
delinquency This
controls, an
influenced
delinquency
areas off ered
an
whereas areas of low
environment
because of the diversity
diversity
on
suggested that
influence
affluent
conducive
for these
acts, thus
behaviors.
Finally,
Shaw and
people
residents, eff ort to
of its
McKay
conducive to delinquency. Shaw and
McKay found
that
highly
conventional
norms
areas but that
competitive
way of life,
existed
delinquency such that
in
was a
there
was
advantage for some people to engage in
delinquency
and there
became the
were fewer consequences. This
core of social disorganization replicated their cities. Their
theory.
Chicago findings
research
research, becoming
Shaw and
most of the current
also spawned
criminological
McKay
in at least eight other a
wealth
one of the key theoretical
THE
SECOND OF
WAVE:
SHAW
AND
Shaw and
of
other
seeds for
theories.
REPLICATIONS MCKAY
McKays(1942) research generated several
replications spanning
morethan a decade. Each added
the relationships McKay in slightly
first
diff erent
considered
Lander
would be permanent
tried
would expend less
organization
rate of the neighborhood.
or decrease
(1954)
1939 through from
the
in
the
1942
correlated Baltimore
diff erent conclusions
8,464 juvenile Juvenile
with demographic
1940 census.
by Shaw and
ways. None of the replica-tions,
from those in the original study.
whereas people renting
Shaw and
that
in areas with high delinquency werecontributing
homes had a greater stake
where they
McKay concluded
to a breakdown in the social order of the area, resulting
however, drew substantially
maintain the social
the delinquency
rates
who
ones home in that
own their
Delinquency
Onthe basis of their findings,
McKay
delinquency
aff ord to
group.
areas where the displaced
off ering tacit sup-port to the knowledge base of ecological literature by exam-ining
proposed that economic status influenced
could
total
majority of people
in the case of owning
in the neighborhood
heads
(1942) concluded that the ecological conditions exist-ing
in the
rates of delinquency, however, some of the residents delinquent
minority
despite the
to
would not tolerate abnormal behavior. In areas of high condoned
and
rates
of the residents.
rates of delinquency
delinquency, a substantial
nativity
wasthe factor contributing
area because of the disparity in social norms. In areas of low
meanthat
Delinquency
to delinquency.
of economic status
indirectly
in
They
constant
moved. Shaw and
even in small incre-ments high-delinquency
McKay (1942)
asserted that
constant
household.
or ethnicity
of home ownership. the influence
shift to another
also remained
in conditions Where home own-ership
the lowest level, the level
delinquency,
population
foreign-born
remained
of
residents,
were high rates of delinquency. increased,
does not
numbers
the area of study, and not the nativity
being lowest in areas with the highest levels
In explaining
households
McKay examined the relationship
home ownership and delinquency.
heads of
wasthe cause of crime.
in areas containing of
with the highest
higher
rates
price of the area rose.
negative relationship
black
that this finding
or ethnicity
areas
population
own homes and the delinquency rate.Their findings
dropped,
cautioned
that
contained
price
between the percentage of residents who owned their revealed a significant
McKay found
foreign-born
rates. They
areas
Shaw and
than
there
McKays
of an area and its rate of delinquency.
rates
was higher in areas
relative
composition
delinquency
rather
131
(1942) study wasthe relationship betweenthe popula-tion
of the
that, as the number
Next, Shaw and
the
dropped
owned
delinquency
delinquency
economic
economic
price
social assistance increased,
was a corresponding concluded
of homes
McKay found
receiving
area
variables
median rental
number
an
used three
for this analysis: (1) the number social
of
THEORY
The final analysis included in Shaw and
analyzed the
status
DISORGANIZATION
Specifically,
delin-quents
Court from
variables taken Lander
analyze
132
CRIME
juvenile
AND
BEHAVIOR
delinquency in terms of the
of school completed, with 1.51 or substantial
median monthly rent, homes
more persons per room,
repairs
and
median years homes
residents,
and
owner-occupied
Landers
(1954)
Lander
findings
established
noted,
however,
followed
the concentric
by Shaw and
McKay (1942).
that
the
use
for the zones oversimplified of delinquency delinquency
rates
because it
McKays (1942) and
1 -mile
the spatial
incre-ments
distribu-tion
obscured the range of
did not support
correlation
close
followed
Shaw of
Shaw and
to industry.
His results
indicated that the delinquency rate in census tracts
analysis
and
the
were better
physical
or economic
conclusions
(1942).
status
Zero-order that
these
of delinquency
variables.
Although
supported
those
than
Landers
of Shaw
and
were some diff erences in the findings.
For example,
Lander found
inverse relationship
noting that
population
demonstrated
predictors
generally
McKay, there
of
McKays
variables
variables
a statistically
significant,
between delinquency
residents.
Lauder
most of the foreign-born
and number
explained
many of the foreign-born
were recent immigrants,
between high delinquency
proximity
(1954)
of foreign-born
within each zone.
Landers (1954) findings
rates
of
Landers
correlation
homes.
ring pattern
highly correlated variable in Landers analysis.
needing
or having no private bath, foreign-born
non-white
and delinquency. In fact, home ownership wasthe most
by
Chicago resi-dents
whereas in
residents
this
Baltimore
were wellintegrated
into the community, characterized by a high degree
pur-posesof home ownership. Lander also found that in areas
with lessthan 50% of the area zoned for industrial
waslower than the city average. Lander, however,
with a moderate proportion of blacksthere wasa high
found a more pronounced relationship in Baltimore in
rate of delinquency. As the percentage of blacks rose
areas
above 50%, however,the rate of delinquency dropped
zoned
for
these findings identifying
commercial
that
Shaw and
He concluded
McKay
areas close to the center
highest in delinquency to ecological factors Lander
also found
between
population
conclusions
increase increases
of
to those
diff erent
of
rate
tracts
had with
delinquency
or no population
housing.
juvenile data
as an additional
measureof the physical status of the area and found
In
Landers (1954)
of housing
units in
because they a person
might live.
the
an eff ort to clarify
had drawn
criticism.
data from
1950
Borduas
U.S.
(1959)
the
status
housing
were generally
and contradictory
(1942).
Bordua found
Also supporting
study
Michigan,
1952 and census tract
physical
(1954)
between
some of
Borduas
Detroit,
and
analysis
supportive to
Shaw
only
overcrowding. of Landers and
McKays
a weaker but significant
overcrowding
and
Lander and counter to the findings
of Shaw and
McKay, Bordua found a nonsignificant
relationship
between
substandard
housing
Borduas (1959) findings regarding economic status found the
median rental value to be nonsignificant
values
were Lander
were an unreliable
merely indicators did find
of
a significant
less
substantial
significant
pre-dictor percentage where
added
than
those of Lander (1954).
Lander
did.
but less substantial
Bordua
relationship
also
median income
to represent
significant
indicator
that income
Bordua and
found
a
between the
of homes owned and delinquency.
the analysis and found re-lationship,
however, between homes owned in an area
and
delinquency.
analysis, the
median rental value
re-lationship
delinquency.
supported
was not significantly
of
Census.
substandard
His findings
part
essentially
Lander reasoned that economic
variables such as rental
from
replicate
and delinquency.
Baltimore
related to delinquency.
study in
to
court for 1948 through
included
a substantial (r= .73) but nonsignificant relationship between overcrowding
attempted
(1954)
change.
between delinquency and substandard He added overcrowding
(1959)
Landers
showed that
Lander found asubstantial (r =.69) but nonsignificant relationship
Bordua
used delinquency
Landers
of 40% or more and decreases of
with little
proportionately.
the issues that
correlation
delinquency
20% and that
due
to industry.
the
His findings
more had substantially
rates than those
for
wholly contradictory
McKay, however.
population
was primarily
change and delinquency.
with the third-highest
a population
were correct in
proximity
no support
from
of the city as the
but that this other than
are not
Shaw and the tract
20% or
use.
economic
Bordua status
in
was not a statisti-cally
of delinquency
SOCIAL
Borduas (1959)
analysis
was supportive but contrary
findings
revealed that
to
related to delinquency
individuals
to
number of black heads
chose
total
number
unrelated individuals
was significantly
On the basis of these the
ratio of
of
133
were supported
by the replications, McKays findings
characteristics not supported
and delinquency but not completely. concerning
and delinquency
popu-lation
were generally
by the replications.
unrelated
families
status.
between economic characteristics Finally, Shaw and
birth
measure of population that
Borduas
foreign
Bordua the
(1954).
but that
was nonsignificant.
contradictions,
McKays (1942)
Landers
THEORY
vari-ables McKays (1942) findings concerning the relationship
population
of Shaw and
research
of households
of
DISORGANIZATION
as
an
ad-ditional
Lander found
THE
LEAN
TIMES: IN
was significantly-correlated
SOCIAL
THE 1970S
DISORGANIZATION AND
1980S
with delinquency. Chilton
(1964)
Indianapolis,
used juvenile
Indiana,
data from the
1950
from
data from
1948 through
1950 and
U.S. Census to compare the find-ings
of Lander (1954)
and Bordua (1959)
with those
After the replications (1942)
research,
that followed
social
began to decline. This on the use of official
Shaw and
disorganization was primarily
McKays
as a theory
a result
of attacks
data in crime studies and growing
results of Chiltons analyses of
criticism of theoretical problems with the theory. Afew
between physical characteristics and
studies, however, continued to follow the principles of
in Indianapolis. The the relationship
court
delinquency essentially confirmed the findings
of the
social disorganization. The
general direction of these
other replications. Chiltons findings of the relationship
studies followed that of Shaw and
between delinquency and substandard housing showed
followed their design closely enough to be considered
a substantial
but nonsignificant
Chilton
also found
overcrowded per room) though,
conditions
delinquency. essentially
confirmed
studies. The
delinquency
ownership
of Landers
between
was found
Borduas value
to be nonsignificant
Chiltons findings
to
of
variables
and
and
concerning
home
the other replications.
population
characteristics
example,
status
through
His
tended
these
studies
scale
examined
measurement
analysis of change in population
characteristics In analyzing
correlations.
between
indicators
median rental
For
than single-variable
in Indianapolis
significant
those
also supported related
1.5 persons
analyses of economic
relationship
similar to Landers.
findings
(more than
Unlike the other two stud-ies,
statistically
Chiltons
be-tweenpopulation
correlation
the degree of overcrowding
was one of two
and
a substantial
and delinquency.
replications. with delin-quency.
correlation
McKay, but few
research
in
this
individuals
economic
era
status
focused
on
the
and
rather the as-sociation
delinquency,
economic
status
rather than the housing conditions
by Shaw and economic
McKay.These
characteristics
and the occupational contradictory
of
studied measured
educational
status of residents.
findings
contention delinquency,
studies typically through
and
levels
Because of the
of earlier research and the grow-ing
that foreign
birth
these studies
had little
to do with
began to look to additional
to refute both Shaw and McKay(1942) and the other
measuresof population status in an eff ort to better
replications. Chilton found both percentage of foreign-born
measureits relationship
people and percentage of black people to not be significantly related to delinquency in Indianapolis.
He
concluded that ecological research can identify general conditions
associated
with delinquency
The and
findings
of Landers (1954),
Chiltons (1964)
relationship area and
social disorganization
to be a sustained
and (3) be ad-dressed
theory.
Borduas (1959),
studies suggest that although the
between the physical characteristics delinquency
may vary by city there
relationship
Kentucky, in
of an appears
at some level. Shaw and
status.
status, Quinneys
most closely
McKays (1942)
Lexington, with social
Quinneys research included
(1) economic
ethnic
the variable
with delinquency.
obtained data from
1960 and analyzed them
area analysis.
diff er-ences dimensions;
but that
between cities exist such that they cannot with traditional
Quinney (1964)
women in
rates, and single-structure analysis showed that family with juvenile
(2) family family
associated
physical status.
data concerning
the
status,
status
was
with Shaw and
Quinney used census workforce,
housing. The status
three
fertility
results
of his
was negatively cor-related
delinquency. These
findings
wer
134
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
significant even when interaction variables wereincluded. to
examine
economic
grades completed The
the
The
(1)
and (2) number
correlated census
racial
the
Quinney used two variables status:
race
to
degree
of delinquency
in
areas
with
white
less
Quinney
was found
to
steadily as the proportion
Quinney the
by each race. This
2%
blacks
rates and
were
however was highest in areas with less than 2% black or
more
than
50%
black
but
was lowest
when
the
1940 to
drawn from court in
1970 in 10-year increments. male referrals
to the
the years of 1940,
1950,
and from
all
analysis revealed that with the indicators
Chicago juvenile 1960, and
was
reversed.
Bursik
years.
delinquency
the
Webb
also
communities
exhibiting
characterized
by the highest increases in
most rapid
change
analysis showed that communities change
with the high-est
had an average of 12
more off enses per 1,000 youth than
areas with either
moderate or slow change.They concluded on the basis not the peopleinvolved in the change,that wasaffecting
high and low economic status and high and low family
from Shaw and McKays, Bursik and
status. In this analysis, delinquency
that
self-reported In
this
through
of using official
research, Johnstone
administered
questionnaires
18 living
in
measures
results
of a factor
data in
youth
Four
theory.
aged 14
also used a
status
measures. The
analysis revealed that
wrong but that it historical
context
was and
process that [has] of the 1942
(p. 36). Schuerman
and
Kobrin
a study similar to Bursik and
a 20-year
County.This the juvenile
historical
analysis
was accomplished court for
them composition,
area-status
differed
Webbconcluded
since the publication
years later,
conducted with
was not
a specific
in a model of ecological
monograph
social area analysis using area
and family
within
changed dramatically
used
self-reported
1,124
Chicago. Johnstone
modified ShevskyBell status
to
study,
(1978)
data to test social disorganization
study, Johnstone
delinquency
Quinneys (1964)
the earlier study
conducted
grounded...
the rate of delinquency. of
and to address the criticism social disorganization
rates varied in rela-tion
however, the presence of high
status always lowered
were
delinquency.
delinquency. In explaining how their findings
In a partial replication
that
of these findings that it wasthe nature of the change,
racial
mix was predominantly, but not completely, white. In a
family
was not
found
third analysis, census tracts were divided into areas of
to economic status;
A
periods, however, this
and
rates of population
1970
of change between 1940
and 1950. For the two following trend
Data were
census data for the corresponding
associated
peaking
Black delinquency,
McKays own data and updated
it to the time of their study to facilitate an examination
The
increased
of blacks increased,
in the 15% to 40% black grouping.
used Shaw and
regression be
determine
delinquency
than
was
status.
analysis to
exhibited
that
work-ers.
ethnic
with delinquency.
a second
analysis revealed lowest
status.
examine
They from
school
delinquency
makeup of a census tract
conducted
of
of blue-collar
with economic
variable
most highly correlated
then
number
results showed that juvenile
negatively used
eff ects of economic
with
Webbs(1982)
of
Los
by gathering
Angeles data from
1950, 1960, and 1970 and cor-relating measures of land
socioeconomic
Schuerman
(1986)
and
status,
Kobrin
(1986)
use, population
and subculture. proposed
that
measureshad a positive but nonsignificant relationship
neighborhoods travel through three stages: (1) emerging
with fighting and weapon-related crimes and a negative
areas, with verylow delinquency rates; (2) transitional
and nonsignificant relationship
areas, with moderatelevels of delinquency; and (3) en-during with all other delin-quency areas, which maintain high levels of delinquency
measures.In regard to family status measures, lower-class
status
was significantly
associated
with
Uniform
Crime
Report Index
many years.They (supporting
off enses, and city
arrests.
An enduring research
was the
criticism
pattern in the community change. test this
of Shaw and
assumption
Bursik
hypothesis
and
McKays (1942)
of a stable
rather than Webb (1982)
by examining
delinquency
one experienc-ing attempted
data from
also proposed that deterioration
preceded a rise in delinquency in early stages of transi-tion
fighting and weapons off enses, burglarylarcenyrobbery off enses,
for
to
Chicago.
Shaw and
McKay 1942) but that asthe
movedto the enduring stage, rises in the delinquency
rate
preceded
In
deterioration.
analyzing
the
relationship
between
land
use
(physical status) and delinquency, Schuerman and Kobrin (1986)
land
found
use type
that
the
number
wasinversely
of
related
homes
owned
and
with delinquency
SOCIAL
They
also found high mobility levels in personsliving
in high-delinquency
areas. A cross-lagged regression
analysis revealed that highly
associated
emerging and
and
Kobrin
in
rose, however, the
to
economic
than the change itself
to
in
even
more substantial
Schuerman
on delinquency, the
occupation,
housing
characteristics
Sampson and
of a low
and
analysis
number
workers and a low
in
exam-ined
education,
of census tracts. This
population
percentage of
238
was that that
localities
in
were not valid
Sampson and
data were superior
mobility, and family social disorganization,
was a general housing
units
as one
McKays
proposal
negatively
correlated
of
which
supported
characteristics,
significant
in
the and
was positively
percentage
findings Chilton
of homes
of
Lander
transmit
(1954),
theory
participation
slightly
from
of
Kobrin
were
in emerging
(1986)
areas.
force
Similar
not
a
areas of
examined
four
trends
non-white
force. In
1970,
From
participation
in
1950
population
while the
dramatically
occurred
female
high-delinquency
of blacks in the
decreased
participation.
black female
white and (4)
1950 through
whites
Shaw and
sur-vey
McKays (1942)
also proposed that
and
Groves concluded was supported,
variations
in social
that
social
stating
that
disorganiza-tion
on
rates
of
both
criminal
(p. 774).
structural
victimization
Furthermore,
they
Shaw
and
States
(p.
Anironic research
McKays
the
other than the
776).
major drawback
of social disorganization
has been the relative lack
or explain
model explains
rates in a culture
research
(Bursik
of theory
1988).
to guide
Much
of the
research in this area has paid tribute to social disorga-nization in the literature review and then simply con-ducted analyses with little theoretical explanation for
in the labor
areas, the percentage
structure
which in turn, increased crime
off ending
in that
United
population characteristics: (1) white and (2) non-white and (3)
on census data
disruption lead to community
crime and delinquency
preceded increases in delinquency only in transitional
population
rationale
argued for expanded support for social disorganization
and enduring stages. and
Their
much ofthe eff ect ofcommunity
and criminal
Unlike physical
variables
of delinquency
areas,
Schuerman and Kobrins study. Socioeconomic status
Schuerman
disorga-nization
Groves also argued that
theory
characteristics
and
increases in the
(1964).
Sampson
disorganization
Shaw and
high-delinquency
economic
factor
Britain.
had relied
to
between-community
low-delinquency
delinquency
overcrowding
Bordua (1959),
multiple
percentage of people renting with the
analysis,
owner-to
supported
were also significant
degree
status
from
single to
moved from
that
with the
owned. There
trend
and from
areas.This
correlated
the rate of
McKay(1942) and the replica-tions. and delinquency rates (p. 775). Onthe basis of their
findings of Shaw and
high-delinquency
turn-over,
low economic status, ethnic heterogeneity, residential
among housing characteristics in
housing
and population
reliance on official crime. They
Kobrins study also supported the
to
along
measures of community
trend
There
analysis
a survey of 10,905 resi-dents
Great
research
Schuerman and
renter-occupied
this
characteristics,
Groves (1989) tested social
using data from
previous
or crime.
of profes-sional
people with advanced education in high-delinquency areas.The
from
were
analysis.
were preceding and greatly influencing
factors
Kobrin (1986)
Kobrin concluded
change in
theory
unemployment,
revealed expected results
and skilled
and
cross-lagged
increase in delinquency.
of change rather
of socioeconomic
in the
with high rates of deterioration
that resulted in a neighborhood
Schuerman
and
rapid
moving from low to high crime rates. In analyzing the influence
135
labor force dropped substantially. These findings
Schuerman
the speed
THEORY
slightly in high-delinquency areas, but the whitefemale
that
deteriorate
most significant
characteristics.
argued that
was most
delinquency
As the area continued
delinquency shifted
deterioration
with increases
areas.
factors
physical
DISORGANIZATION
in
the
female
through
in the labor force
same labor
1970, the dropped
Two authors (Sampson 1986, and Stark
1987) attempted to advance the theory itself and to provide
a better link
research
and
the
Responding
rose
percent-age the
the findings.
lacked and
an intervening
in
this
show the link
that
factor
Sampson informal
premise
neighborhood-oriented
foundation.
to criticisms
criminality,
breakdown
With
between
theoretical
in
ecological
between
(1986)
the
variables
proposed
social
controls
mind,
Sampson
among ecological
research
is
this
set
characteristics,
that
a
link.
out
to
socia
136
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
disorganization, loss of informal delinquency.The first link the structural earlier in
reduced
maintain surveillance strangers.
in
the
it
area.
was
When
able to recognize their
activities,
for
residential
this
difficult
in
were
an increased
First,
a link
turnover
with
he proposed
poor there
anonymity
and less
supervision
also linked
economic
status to
in
his
maintaininformal social control.
that
people who owned their
attachment took
and commitment
steps to
maintain
social control. families informal
and their
families that
and
delinquency.
networks versus
ability
to
increased
to
add
important
that poor,
dense
status to delinquency,
physically
unattractive
areas
also supported Shaw and
McKays
cannot
and
maintain
with a highly transient commitment
and cannot
to
the
area
maintain social control
of
maintain that
A
two-parent
supervision
RESURGENCE:
SOCIAL
THEORY
and
IN
DISORGANIZATION THE
1990S
were aware of and intervened in
more serious
delin-quent At least focus
furthered
a theoretical
research
Stark through
one-parent
activities.
ort
of children.
mixed-use neighborhoods
population
to industry
by the residents
of involvement
Stark (1987) eff
proximity
and
relative
because of this they
proposition
to the neighborhood
two-parent
were
was more
conclusion that physically deteriorated areasin close
own homes had a greater
Sampson proposed
provided
in predecessors
He also proposed
neighborhood
social control.
This
willingness
population
He examined
areas
delinquency
proposition
tend to be
status).
reduced peoples commitment to their neighborhood.
that economic status wasrelated to delinquency
to
to delinquency
population
therefore,
between new residents and strangers. Sampson pro-posedStark proposed that
the neighborhood and the neighborhoods
and
homes in
(p. 902). In relating
through the attachment or social bond a person hadto
waslinked
status
that
neighborhoods
had a greater
such
Stark pro-posed
more crowded;
neighbor-hoods physical status
making it difficult to distinguish
be committed.
economic status
ways (physical
typically
with
opportunity
whereby he argued that
of new faces,
that in two
less
or be concerned
who wanted to commit
might have to travel a great distance to get to a
place where such acts could
and
who lived
also proposed
with a high population number
know
residents
neighbors
Sampson
mobility
to
occurred,
resulting
of youth
available and close by. In purely residential
areas, however, juveniles thefts
to
of persons in a given living
more
their
delinquency.
of a neighborhood
and guardianship
As the number
area increased,
were readily
In an
proposed that increases
the ability
businessesthere was more opportunity
to commit delinquent acts (e.g., theft) becausetargets makecon-cerned
he attempted to
density of a neighborhood.
work, Sampson (1985)
density
or industrial
social control, and
Sampsons framework
to
by formalizing
aspects of
(1985, social
on neighborhoods
1986)
the 1990s.This
disor-ganization
increasing
some of the
Shaw and
within criminology
more
McKays (1942)
and criminal
experienced
waslargely
justice,
the
a resurgence
in
based on recognition
of the
decline of American cities, increasing
crime
rates, and the popularity
of community
policing. This
renewed focus produced a great deal of research on
findings in developing a set of 30 propositions. The
neighborhoods.
primary focus
social disorganization theory but largely abandoned it
of Starks propositional
was on Shaw and
framework
McKays physical status variables.
The factors Stark used to analyze population status were transience
of population,
and overcrowding. transience
directly reducing social control
Stark (1987)
weakens voluntary
basis for understanding
how proximity
mixed-use areas influenced that
in
areas
and formal
sources
where
residents
to industry
delinquency. lived
close
of a
and
Stark argued to
commercial
Some studies,
Raudenbush,
theory. These
thereby
(p. 900). Stark also sought to provide
basis.
& Grasmick 1993; Sampson
studies
understanding
In
one
of social
often attempted
of neighborhoods
methodological
techniques
of
neighborhoods Grasmick (1993)
the
however
more
and
(Bursik
& Raudenbush 1999;
& Earls 1997),
at least some of the tenets
proposed that
organizations,
both informal
as a theoretical
neighbor-hoods, Sampson,
mixed-use
Most of the research paid homage to
maintained
disorganization to further
and crime
with better
more appropriate
extensive
and crime in the
statements
1990s,
presented a reformulation
the
data. of
Bursik and of socia
SOCIAL
disorganization theory by placing it within systemic theory of community,
a broader
which emphasized how
neighborhood
life is shaped by the structure
and informal
networks
and
Grasmick
three-level
system of relationships
relationships
first level, the strength
within a neighborhood,
next two levels.
strong
neighborhood
second level. neighbors
to events that
which
are influencing
of the community.
The
was the when
final
the common
level
wasthe level at which a
would be able to
Wikstrm.
marshal resources to
and
that youth in
organizations
(e.g., a halfway
house) or crime
of public housing collectively
Bursik
and
Grasmick
(1993)
found
to exert social control. population to
turnover
other residents.
housing
unit
relationship
At the level
to
maylive there for years and never form with his or her neighbors.
do not know the children to intervene
a public
displayed
research. This
extensive
but that
project
and
diversity
and examine
disorganization
et al. (1996)
of neighborhoods
neighborhood
theory.
analyzed
(measured
when there
erences
groups.
were a variety
in
Elliott
on the
control
Bursik
capacity
and introduced
combined
& Raudenbush
wasan intervening
of the
among
with shared expec-tations of public 2001,
space
(p. 3;
p. 1).
argued that collective efficacy
variable between structural condi-tions
of neighborhoods (poverty, residential instabil-ity) and crime..They examined collective efficacy using as part of PHDCN. In their analysis, Sampson
the
For
ethnic
by the number
et al. examined residential
values
and
norms
et al. proposed that
of languages
being spoken,
structural
stability,
characteristics
immigrant
measures.They
regardless of
characteristics
of residents
status, etc.), and collective
a statistically
between the ethnic
diff
social
Sampson et al. (1997)
of
on
residents
for informal
crime
based
crime
For example,
p. 627) took
research
control
theory
of collective efficacy, defined ascohesion
of diff erent languages spoken) to examine the influence crime
(1993) to
paths.
(1999,
his-tory
a wealth of
disorganization
conceptual
Raudenbush
work of
perhaps in the
research. It spawned
diff erent
and
since the
most
data on 343 Chicago neighborhoods and their resi-dents
in the 1990s began to fragment of social
took
neighborhoods
Alarge part of research related to social disorga-nization
Elliott
Human
was easily the
and
related to social
the se-curity see also Sampson
in the open without being detected.
portions
Project on
criminology
McKay (1942)
Grasmicks
concept
weak networks increased the ability of crime to occur
only
&
used social disorganization
Chicago.This
research in
Sampson
the places crime could hide from surveillance, whereas
example,
ability to
theory as a basisfor a reexamination of neighborhood
because it reduced informal
surveillance. A strong neighborhood network reduced
disadvantage
of the residents
Development in Chicago Neighborhoods (PHDCN)
unacceptable
also negatively influenced
of the neighborhood
a
who
of the area were less likely
when the children
behavior. Instability
Residents
argued that this
began to change the nature of social disorganization
of criminology
high
were morelikely to
neighborhood
and alack
research
p. 1135) indi-cated
defend against crime (as stated by Bursik
publications
ability
maintain ties
a tenant in
& Bellair
of single-family
off ending. They
By the end of the 1990s, the
instabil-ity
of residents,
made it difficult For example,
that
residents
of the family
1993).
Shaw and
greatly reduced the neighborhood
consensus
McNulty
public housing
in serious
crime patterns in combat invasions into the neighborhood, such as un-wanted (e.g., drug dealers).
137
was also con-siderable
Loeber (2000,
could be due to the serious
of relation-ships
werethose between residents and organizations
neighborhood
of P.-O.
Grasmick
external to the neighborhood, such aslocal government officials or the police.This
Much of this research (e.g.,
participate
would result
know each other, they are morelikely to pay
attention good
the base
Grasmick argued that
might not be reached. There research related to a breakdown
unit.
Grasmick argued
networks,
Bursik and
and
units (especially related to race) on crime. The
of individual
among residents
difficult,
2003) sought to examine the influence
informal
formed
Bursik and
mat strong relationships in
influencing
a
be
THEORY
concerning appropriate values and behaviors for the
(p. 55). Bursik argument
could
community
of formal
used as a backdrop to their
social control. The
for the
of association
communication
DISORGANIZATION
concentration,
etc.),
(race, age, socioeconomic efficacy in relation
to violent
found that collective efficacy had
significant of structural
neighborhoods.
(disadvantage,
They
relationship
to violent
or individual argued
that
crime
characteristics in low-crim
138
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
neighborhoods, residents
used informal
control
to
(P.-O.
Wikstrm
& Loeber 2000), sexual activity at
regulate the behavior of members by developing rules
an early age (Browning,
Leventhal, & Brooks-Gunn
and collective
2004),
addition,
goals for the neighborhood.
occur, residents
must develop relationships
among one another. had a high level them,
informal
disorder In
of social cohesion
addressing
was easier
neighborhoods
residents
and develop
and trust
to
exert,
among
and
social
and
the influence
many of the variables
disorder in the
more likely
(2003)
and
of collective
Raudenbush (1999)
used in early social
efficacy followed
disorganiza-tion
socialization level
in an area was often associated
delinquent
which
would lead
these
witness violence
that
P. H. Wikstrm the
development
propensities
was influenced
among chil-dren
by community
and that this relationship
was due to the
low
in
collective
efficacy
who were often unsupervised,
threat
of repercussions
Sampson and
in turn increased
neighborhood,
to
in
of collective efficacy present in the neighborhood.
Neighborhoods
little
juveniles
problems.
argued
and adolescents
with high levels of disadvantage. This the
were
Sampson
children research. For example, they argued that a high per-centage of immigrants
In
mental health
of antisocial
wereless likely.
Sampson and
and violence.
and trust
When a neighborhoods
control
and crime
on crime,
For this to
allegiance
for
was
negative behaviors.
Raudenbush
to social
produced
and there
(2001)
disorganization
also indicated
but strayed from
mostinnovative
its original connotation. They conceded that the ability
research involved
to understand social disorganization is crucial to rally
driving down selected streets using video equipment
understanding urban neighborhoods. In their research,
to capture
however, social disorganization consisted primarily of
to high levels of crime.
One of the
and extensive parts of the PHDCN
measuresof physical and social disorder.
Sampson and Raudenbush found that both social and physical
disorder
characterized
in
neighborhoods
by a diverse commercial
were observed
and residential
use of property. They could
be explained
disadvantage,
concluded by collective
wasresponsible
They
efficacy,
meaning that of a
for high levels of crime.
of neighborhood physical deteriora-tion.
proposed
was an indication
predictions in the
changing the calculus
IN
THE
21ST
THEORY
CENTURY
and social efficacy
By the turn
of the
theory
20th century,
had largely
social
disorganiza-tion
died out in its original
form.
that
attributions
homebuyers,
proposed that
of disorder.
was low,
Where physical
high levels
of collective
proposed,
did not produce crime. They
relationship
real
(p. 1).
rather than social disorganiza-tion
the level
disorder
and
and outsiders alike,
Raudenbush (2001)
were usually found. They
disorder
deterioration
agents, and investors
structure
influenced
triggers
of prospective
estate agents, insurance
neighborhood DISORGANIZATION
physical
minds ofinsiders
Sampson and SOCIAL
that this
of what was happening in the neigh-borhood,
such that disorder
that the level of crime
not race or the ethnic composition
neighborhood,
visual indications
between
disorder
and
however, found
homicide,
no sug-gesting
that crime and disorder were both influenced
It wasreplaced with (a) research paying tribute to the theory but straying from its original intent, (b) research
by something else.They
focused on collective efficacy, and (c) research focused
underlying factor
on neighborhood characteristics but using a diff erent
the neighborhood and the cohesiveness and informal
theoretical
social control of its residents (Sampson & Raudenbush
conducted
base (including
the variety
under the term environmental
A number
of studies acknowledged
criminology). social
but did not use the theory. These tribute
to the theory
from
of the theory. These socially
disorganized
that juveniles
neighborhoods
likely to engage in aggressive and delinquent
were more behaviors
would feed into
on collective Continuing
paid
but they rarely used the
studies found
2001). This
disorga-nization
studies
by using the term social disorganiza-tion
to describe neighborhoods, tenets
of research
and
disorganization They
line
(2001),
(2001)
Sampson and others re-search
of
research Morenoff ,
made a connection
and
viewed local
of
efficacy.
the
Raudenbush
Raudenbush
proposed that the common
comprised the characteristics
what they termed
communities
made up of friendships,
kinships,
of
Sampson
Sampson, between
and social
social capital.
as complex
systems
and acquaintances
SOCIAL
They
argued these groups
were tied to each other
through family life and other aspects of their sociallives. Morenoff et al. (2001) the social
ties
used social capital to
between
people and
positions. They
argued social capital increases the social and trust
within
networks,
They
proposed that
of social capital and
maintain
control.
This
of the neighborhood
social problems, including
of
to
lead
to
ward off unwanted Morenoff
expectations
were shared among a community,
one
of
the
few
disorganization,
pointed
(1942)
few ties were
findings
that
Kubrin and
refocused
on
for a return
and
be
and
models of neighbor-hood
the
that although
inclusion
could then influence
research.
community
characteristics
of
models
community
Kubrin
the reciprocal
in
which
between crime and community characteristics has They
aided in recent research systemic
by addressing it as more of a
model that included factors.
substantive
and
trend in
They
argued,
methodological
however,
to
continue
The and
to
Weitzer
(2003)
Kubrin
included
proposed
by Kubrin
advancements
between
neighborhood
and crime. They
variable that efficacy.
hasimproved and
research. Finally,
neighborhoods
in
the
of
complete
and
and
that,
should
although
Weitzer
more rigorous
testing
shortcomings,
of social
They
continued
measurement
neighborhood their
level
more
disorga-nization because
conceded
that
to be challenged
of central
concepts
and
social disorganization
with meth-odological
theory
of crime at the
with the improvements
outlined
in
article.
Combining
social control was not central to social disorganization
that
was possible
innovations.
devel-oped
and research.
concluded
propositions
researchers
proper
one anothers
more fully
theory
Weitzer (2003)
methodological
although the
be
the pri-mary could greatly increase the understanding
the theory is collective
Weitzer argued
of
structural
argued that
outcomes
Kubrin and
could influence
in social disorganization Kubrin
theorys
of key concepts and the addition
mediating variables characteristics
adjacent
mat
theory
that
argued that spatial interdependence, whereby spatially
advance.
substantive improvements
operationalization
theory
that
issues remained
mul-tilevel
Weitzer proposed
should receive greater attention in social disorganiza-tion
level of disorganization, extra-neighborhood
both intra-and
needed to be overcome if social disorganization were
was
is still
contextual effects addressing the connection between
of social disorganization theory.
argued that social disorganization theory
com-munity
characteristics
that experimental and analytical work on the connec-tion the neighborhood andits effect onindividual led to clarification
to
crime and crime
on the current and
Kubrin
were beginning
could influence
Drawing
modeling,
stated
dynamic
Weitzer also indicated
addressed,
nature of Shaw and
urban dynamics, and they called
to including
eff ects of crime
McKays
was the changing
change in social disorganization
social
Weitzer (2003)
one of Shaw and
decried the research following
not sufficient.
articles
139
models, reciprocal effects,
out that
principal
of social
necessary among neighbors. In
correctly
values
control
increases in crime.
et al. did concede that if strong control
devoid
hold common
THEORY
contextual effects, and spatial interdependence. They
McKays as dismissing maintain co-operation.
helps
lack
as dynamic
cities. They
organization
neighborhoods
were less able to
social
an inability
which
describe
innovations
DISORGANIZATION
many of the developments from the
theory, formal social control (police, code enforcement,
previous 15 years, Warner(2007) sought to delineate
etc.) was a critical concept in social disorganization
the forms of social control (and collective efficacy) by
research and should be brought into future research.
examining the willingness of residents to directly inter-vene in a situation rather than relying onformal
Finally, Kubrin and Weitzer bemoaned the fact that the culture
of the neighborhood
in recent research. They
McKays (1942) Kubrin
and
original
Weitzer (2003)
innovation that clarify
been ignored
proposed that there should
a return to the neighborhood and
has largely
culture included
in
causal
Like
paid tribute
the
recent meth-odologicalthe theory
in social disorganization
theory
many of the previous studies,
identified
these
variables.
by
review
but did little
Warner
mobility
were social ties
Warner
to support
disadvantage
as classic social
Other independent
or
theory in the in-troduction
in the research, only including
and residential
and
police, but also avoidance
to social disorganization and literature
described
models.They
(typically
tolerance).
work.
had helped researchers test key propositions relevant
be
Shaw
of control
means
disorganiza-tion
variables
and faith
included
in the
police
140
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Life course theory and research from the PHDCN
Warnerfound that the relationship between neighbor-hood disadvantage and social control She argued that this
methods of control
tolerate
the situation,
were morelikely
theory, the
people
direct
and positively
of using indirect etc.),
but it
The
related
Furthermore,
was not related
(police,
the
efficacy
through
quickly
means that
research
another
decade.
of Sampsons
probably
work on
ensured
numerous
1970s with the work of crime
environmental
developed into
design
research
( Jeff ery
wasformed.
what is now termed
envi-ronmental
based morein routine activities theory (among other than social disorganization
theory, but the tenets of social disorganization theory 21st century
than in the last
seemed to fare
no better
part of the 20th century. The
still received some support
from research
a few
of the variables,
to the theory in the literature
conducted
neighborhood
consistent
with
the
research
theoretical
theory
can easily be found in recent
only parts
or simply review
that
paid
complex ability
place for social
was faintly of
social
of social disorganization
on which it
human
FUTURE
DIRECTIONS
used the
theory to explain neigh-borhood Walker termed
was based (social
ecology, environmental
complex systems theory). annual
Walker (2007)
this
new
ecodynamics theory after the various theoretical
traditions
disorganization.
may theory
an eff ort to improve
change and crime. theory
criminology
disorganization
criminology.
systems science in
and then
foundation
much of this line of study. A
development in environmental
signal a larger
on neighbor-hoods, within environmental
most of the research included
of the theory,
Chicago.
criminology.This line of research is typically
to the likelihood
methods. Warnerfound support for
Overall, social disorganization theory in the first
tribute
have
the intricacies
change in
at least
popularity
the
other researchers and
1971), a new area of neighborhood This
over
in this area for the foreseeable future.
prevention
theory.
but
detailing
probably
has
work
other researchers
data for
theoretical foundations) these results in confirming the tenets of social disorga-nization
decade of the
and
of these data for
Beginning in the late
was
theoretical
neighborhood
popularity
collective
with the likelihood control
availability
publications disad-vantage
Mobility
Sampson
will be using these
Warner found
mobility:
of the
many publications
its current
pattern of
asthe
lessened.
methods of social
of using direct
middle
methods and
of direct action increasing
patterns for residential
much
of crime related to
Warner stated
using indirect
of the neighborhood
significantly
produced
to use
of social disorganiza-tion
which would hold a morelinear
the likelihood
avoidance,
action.
to the tenets
most disadvantaged
similar
were likely
(the police) or to avoid or
whereas people in the
to take
this is in opposition
dominated
highly disadvan-taged past 20 years.
meant that both
and highly advantaged indirect
was nonlinear.
has
Afew conference
meeting on environmental
and
papers at an
criminology
to the argument that social disorganization continue to be tested
disorganiza-tion,
criminology,
gave rise
theory
morein its classic form
may
by these
Onecould argue that the future of social disorganiza-tion researchers than by othersin criminology. theory looks bleak. Although it is likely to still be considered one of the
majortheories, especially given
a continued focus on neighborhood research, it very well dissipatein its classicform. articles likely
to be related to
likely that replications McKays (1942) do look
promising theory,
PHDCN and (2)
work
Otherthan afew
dissertation
or semireplications will disappear.
work, it is of Shaw and
Two directions
for the vestiges of social
disorgani-zation
however: (1) studies using data from the
and its associated work from
collective
environmental
CONCLUSION
may
efficacy theory
criminology.
Social disorganization
theory
has its roots in some of
the oldest research in criminological
theory,
dating back
to the early 1800s. Studies of neighborhoods, crime
characteristics,
with the development began to University
build the
rose almost
simultaneously
of the field of sociology. Department
of Chicago,
he centered
includ-ing
of Sociology
As Park at the
on the concept
o
SOCIAL
human ecology.This
examination of human behavior,
REFERENCES
DISORGANIZATION
AND
FURTHER
THEORY
141
READINGS
mostly at the neighborhood level, gaverise to Burgesss research
and ultimately
Shaw and the
Henry
of
Cliff ord
R.
social disorganization
McKays (1942)
development
researchers
work resulted
of social disorganization
in the
theory
neighborhoods
and how changes in those characteris-tics
disorganization
the
level
theory
in criminological
of crime.
enjoyed
thought,
and research through
and characteristics
After
a time
producing
Breckinridge, and the
Bursik,
disrepute in
the theory,
theorys
Bursik,
neighborhoods interest in
understanding
theory
and researchers
relation
of
American
to new
this
period,
a new
however, social
again downplayed
methods and theory.
the theory
in
By the end of the
began to produce a new line
of
based on collective efficacy.
After the turn
paid tribute
of the
to the
20th century,
most research
historical importance
of social
modern research. Research on collective efficacy
prevailed, as did research focusing on neighborhoods but doing little to further the theory itself. The
future
of social disorganization
close to its current status. the theory
Afew criminologists
close to its original configuration.
of the research is likely to follow collective
theory
efficacy theory
more along the lines
or to examine
theory.
disadvantage Research in
Jeff ery,
of true
social
of
Continuity of
London:
mapping.
delinquency for
area
Baltimore,
American
W.J., Huizinga, B. (1996). The
Sociological
R., Elliott,
development.
Delinquency,
Journal
of
33, 389426.
Essai sur la statistique
Generelle
Germany:
C. R. (1971).
Georg
Beverly
morphologie Reimer
Crime
W. C.(1978).
C. E.,
D., Sampson,
eff ects of neighborhood
morale de la
Crochard.
E. (1866).
&
Weitzer,
disorganization
Crime and
in studies
Indianapolis.
M. (1833).
J.
delinquent.
Wiley.
Hills,
Delinquency,
der organismen.
Verlag.
prevention
through
environ-mental
CA: Sage.
Social class, social areas, and de-linquency.
Sociology and Social Kubrin,
Journal
GIS and crime
on adolescent
design. Johnstone,
American
change
Press.
Crime and
Paris:
Haeckel,
of eff ective
7183.
of
neighborhoods
with only parts (or even none) of the tenets social disorganization
and
A.
G. (1993),
Community
young
e, J. (2005).
UK:
D., Wilson,
are test-ing Most
The
of London
29,
France.
H.
and
Lexington.
delinquency.
A comparison
Berlin,
appears
New York:
R. J. (1964).
Guerry,
Problems
dimensions
Webb, J. (1982).
of
A., & Rankin,
disorganization theory but didlittle to bring its tenets into
&
& Rateliff
Detroit,
Elliott,
&
and
88, 2442.
research:
Review,
and political.
delinquency:
Grasmick,
West Sussex,
Chilton,
41, 697720.
disorganization
and crime: The
L. (1925).
S.,
and
control.
University Chainey,
of neigh-borhoods.
was seldom tested in its classic
century, the PHDCN theory
deterioration
C.
Social
Jr.,
patterns
J. (2004).
diff erences in early ad-olescent
26, 519551.
R. J., Jr.,
and
made a brief resur-gence Burt,
the characteristics
Even during
form
social
and rising crime rates produced
disorganization
community Bursik,
child
Bentley.
crime
X,
Sociology),
theory
1990s as the
R.
Foundation.
Criminology,
Neighborhoods
future.
Social disorganization in the
foretelling
of
Sage
Demography,
Jr. (1988).
J.,
prospects.
not muchresearch using social disorganization theory wasconducted during this time.The research that was
R.
delinquent
France, social, literary,
Richard
theories
of Shaw and
Russell
The
T., & Brooks-Gunn, and racial
(1981)
L.
Hills, CA: Sage.
E. (1912).
York:
context
H. L. (1836).
London:
work and because of a moveaway
downplayed
New
P.
Beverly
C. R., Leventhal,
Bulwer,
from official data concerning crime. As a consequence,
disorganization
home.
and anomie:
Brantingham,
& Abbott,
Neighborhood
many replications
theory fell into
&
criminology.
S. P.,
Browning,
delinquency
Social Problems, 6, 230238.
sexual activity.
of prominence
the 1970s as a result of sharp criticism
conducted
P. J.,
social
the early 1960s.
Social disorganization
McKays (1942)
this,
of
Juvenile
at replication.
Brantingham,
as
of the behavior
influence
D. J. (1959).
An attempt
Environmental
an explanation
could
Bordua,
half of the 20th century.
Shaw and formal
hiring
D. McKay, who went on to become
most influential
in the first
to the
Research, 63, 4972.
R. (2003). theory.
Journal
40, 374402.
New
directions of
Research
in in
142
CRIME
Lander,
AND
BEHAVIOR
B. (1954).
delinquency. Mayhew,
Towards
New York;
H. (1983).
London
Neuberg,
Ed.).
published
1862)
McNulty, and
T. L.,
ethnic
and
understanding
AMS labor
Mineola,
London
Dover.
(V.
DC:
work
Sampson,
poor
(Original
& Bellair, P. E. (2003). in
family
adolescent
Explaining violence:
racial
well-being, and social capital. Justice
Neighborhood
the spatial
R. J.,
&
inequality,
dynamics
Raudenbush, collective
of urban violence.
S.
W.
efficacy, and
Criminology,
39,
R. E.,
science
& Burgess
E. W. (1928).
of sociology.
Chicago:
Introduction
University
to the
of
Chicago
R. E., Burgess,
growth
of the
E. W., & McKenzie,
city,
Chicago:
R. (1969). The
University
of
(1964).
R.
areas.
Journal
of
Crime,
Research
and
delinquency,
in
Crime
and
social
Delinquency,
Rawson,
W. (1839).
England
London,
Sampson,
An inquiry
and
2,
Researchin
R.(1987).
crime.
University
victimization.
Stewart, J.
& M. Tonry (Eds.), Chicago:
social control.
and crime: American Journal
603651.
of
In
M. Tonry Chicago:
Warming,
places:
Testing
social
disorganization
struc-ture theory.
of
S. W.(1999).
of public spaces:
neighborhoods.
Systematic
A new look
American Journal
so-cial
at disorder of Sociology,
of the ecology
of
and the control of
dissertation,
Complex
Bowling
plant
systems
theory
and
Quarterly, 24, 555581.
Oecology
of
plants:
communities.
An introduction
Oxford,
a social
Directly intervene
of forms
UK:
Oxford
or call the authori-ties?
of neighborhood
disorganization
social
framework.
control
Criminology,
99130.S
P. H., & Sampson, of community
in
Press.
Press.
criminality.
Caspi (Eds.),
In
R. J. (2003).
influences
on crime
B. L. Benjamin,
Causes of conduct
delinquency (pp. 118148).
Social
mecha-nisms
and pathways
T. E.
Moffitt,
disorder
and
New York:
& A. serious
Guilford
Press.
Wikstrm,
P.-O.,
neighborhoods
of Sociology, 94, 774802.
of Chicago
Advancing science and research in crim-inal
Warner, B. D.(2007).
45,
Chicago
A theory
doctoral
analyses. Justice
study
within
of
Social disorganization
E. (1909).
juvenile Community
University
University.
Walker, J. T. (2007).
Wikstrm,
A.J. ReissJr. &
Communities
4, 893909.
dogs. Unpublished State
eff ects of formal
Press.
R.J., & Raudenbush,
observation
Journal
and crime (pp. 271311).
of Chicago
struc-tural
careers in
Juvenile delinquency and
University
Deviant
M.(1974).
University
Delinquency, 22, 740.
R., & Groves, B. W.(1989).
urban
of crime
Society of
and crime: The
Crime in cities: The
Communities
Sampson,
Sampson,
of personal
Crime and
and informal
statistics
August
A multi-level
Community
H. D.(1942).
Criminology,
A study Neighborhood
R.J. (1986).
(Eds.),
the
of the Statistical
crime:
S. (1986).
urban areas. Chicago:
334344.
R.J. (1985). determinants
Sampson,
into
Wales.Journal
W., & Earls, F. (1997,
efficacy. Science, 277, 918924.
& Kobrin,
Shaw, C. R., & McKay,
to the
149154.
105,
S.
A. J ReissJr.
non-linear 1,
Disorder in Washington,
Press.
Green
Chicago
S.
and violent
justice/criminology:
Quinney,
in
L.,
W.(2001).
it lead to crime? of Justice.
Raudenbush,
of collective
crime. In
Press.
in
R. J.,
fighting
Press.
Park,
Department
Neighborhoods
study
Stark,
517559.
Park,
& Raudenbush,
and crime (pp. 67100).
D., Sampson,
(2001).
US.
Schuerman,
Structural
Quarterly, 20, 501528. Morenoff , I
R.J.,
urban neighborhoodsDoes
and the
NY:
Sampson,
15).
diff erences
disadvantage,
of juvenile
Press.
adolescent
& Loeber, cause
delinquents?
R. (2000).
well-adjusted A study
off ending, risk and protective context.
Criminology,
of
factors,
38, 11091142
Do disadvantaged children
to
become
malejuvenile
serious
and neighborhood
CHAPTER VII
Anomie
and
Strain
Theorie
STRAIN
THEORIES
Robert Agne
S train
theories
state
crime. These
that
certain
strains
or
stressors
increase
the
likelihood
of
strains involve the inability
to achieve ones goals (e.g.,
monetary
or status goals), the loss of positive stimuli
(e.g., the death of a friend,
the loss
of valued possessions), or the presentation of negative stimuli (e.g., verbal and physical abuse).Individuals
who experience these strains become upset, and they
mayturn to crime in an effort to cope. Crime may be a wayto reduce or escape from strains. For example, individuals
maysteal the moneythey want or run away
from the parents who abuse them. Crime maybe usedto seek revenge against the source of strain
or related targets.
who harass them.
Crime also
individuals
may engage in illicit
feel better. Strain theories
orts
to
This strains
control
chapter increase
that
describes (a) the types of strain the likelihood
make themselves
explanations
of crime,
and,
have had a major impact
of crime,
most conducive
and (c) the factors
will cope with strains through
mostindividuals cope with
back on expenses, borrowing to explain
certain strain theories
for ex-ample,
on
crime.
that individuals
most individuals
may assault the peers
negative emotions;
drug usein an eff ort to
are among the dominant
as discussed in this chapter, eff
For example, individuals
may be used to alleviate
that
crime.
increase
the likeli-hood
All strain theories
cope with strains in a legal
monetary problems
to crime, (b) why
manner. For example,
by doing such things
as cutting
money, or working extra hours. It is therefore
why some individuals
engage in criminal
coping.
ac-knowledge
critical
After presenting
a
basic overview of strain theories, this chapter describes how strain theories have been usedto explain group differences, such as gender differences,in crime.The chapter concludes with a discussion of the policy implications
TYPES
OF STRAIN
Inability
Merton (1938) theory
to
developed the first
MOST
Achieve
CONDUCIVE
Monetary
major strain theory
was developed in the midst of the
TO
of strain theories.
CRIME
Success
of crime in the 1930s.This
Great Depression, so it is not surprising that
145
S.
146
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
it focused on that type of strain involving the inability to achieve monetarysuccess. Accordingto Merton,everyone in the
United
Statedregardless
encouraged to strive for time, lower-class from
are frequently
achieving such success through
not equip them do
well
inferior
in
prevented
legal channels. In
particular, the parents of lower-class
children
with the skills and attitudes
school.
Lower-class
individuals
college educations
or start their
consequence, they
more often find themselves
This
own businesses.
As a
unable to
creates
and prostitution.
much frustration,
and
crimes such as theft, drug selling, Merton(1938), however,emphasized
mostindividuals
do not cope
Agnew (1992)
with this strain
claimed that the inability might result in
According to and conditions
Agnew (1992),
that are disliked
events and conditions ones goals. Asindicated strains
by individuals.
why some individuals
crime and others do not. is whether individuals
to achieve
or on others.
Crime is
earlier in this chapter, however,
of negative stimuli.
language, strains involve (a) lose something
In
situations in
and
Mertons (1938) gangs. Like
of strain in the
Cloward
and
Ohlin (1960)
theory to the explanation
Merton, they said that the
which individuals
United States is the inability
basis of Agnews generalstrain theory (GST),
Literally hundreds of specific strains fall under the of these
However, they
strains
example,
went
by forming or joining delinquent groups, such as gangs. Strained juveniles selling.They
conducive
mayform gangsin order to better
money-making opportunities, such as drug mayform gangsin an eff ort to achieve
the status or respect they desire. In particular, juveniles
conducive
to
Strains
Conducive
to
crime.
GST
middle-class status
of strain.
For example,
to achieve
out
by ones
of strain that is not that
strains
are
most
when they (a) are high in
magni-tude,
social
control
(or
with little
to lose
and (d) create some pressure or incentive coping (see Agnew 2006).
crime),
for criminal
Homelessness is clearly con-ducive
to crime: It is high in as unjust, and associated
from
with
magnitude, often perceived
with low social control
who are homeless havelittle
(indi-viduals
to lose by engaging
in crime). Furthermore, being homeless creates much pressure to engagein crime, because one must often steal to
meet basic needs and engagein violence to
protect oneself (see Baron 2004). Being placedin time out
for
misbehavior
has
none
of these
characteristics.
most likely to result in crime. to achieve
monetary goals as
specific strains are mostlikely to result in crime:
began
monetary success
was not the only important Greenberg (1977)
of strain that is very
(b) are perceived as unjust, (c) are associated
following
or
states
For
well as a good number of other strains. In particular, the
Crime
Beginning in the 1960s and 1970s, criminologists to suggest that the inability
GST. Not all however.
Being placed in time
These include the inability Other
crime,
misbehaving is a type
GST lists the strains
sometimes join gangs in an eff ort to feel important.
to
homelessness is a type
parents for
on to state that juveniles sometimes cope with this strain
pursueillicit
are
conducive to crime.
monetary success or,in the case of Cohen, the somewhat broader goal of middle-class status.
now the
dominant version of strain theory in criminology.
ofju-venile low
to achieve
bad, or
(c) cannot get what they want.These ideas formed the
have
major type
and
more simplistic
good, (b) receive something
likely to lead to crime
when the blame is placed on others.
Cohen (1955)
applied
with
One key factor, for example,
blame their inability
monetary success on themselves morelikely
cope
These
to achieve
may also involve the loss of positive stimuli
money,and still oth-ers three broad categories of strain listed in
some guidance as to
in psychol-ogy
mayinvolve the inability
strain, others lower their desirefor
Merton provided
Later,
strain refers to events
simply endure this
of other goals.
to achieve
and sociology to point to still other types of strain.
through crime. Some individuals turn to the pursuit
relations
delinquency.
drew on the stress literature
the presentation
may cope by engaging in crime, including
income-generating that
attend
monetary goals through legal channels.
goal blockage
individuals
with parents. They
often do
often
from adults, and harmonious
any of these goals
necessary to
schools, and they often lack the funds to obtain
achieve their
pursue a broad range of goals,including popularity with peers, autonomy
of class positionis
monetary success. At the same
individuals
Huizinga, and Ageton (1979) suggested that juveniles
type
and Elliott,
Parental rejection. aff ection
for
their
Parents do not express love or children,
show
them, and provide little support
little
interest
to them
in
STRAIN
Harsh/excessive/unfair discipline. Such discipline
THEORIES
147
to haverelatively large eff ects on crime.The following
involves physical punishment, the use of hu-miliation aretwo examples of recent research in this area. Spano, and insults, injury.
screaming,
and threats
of
Also, such discipline is excessive given the
nature
of
the
infraction
disciplined
or
when
are
when they do not deserve it.
Child abuse and neglect.This abuse;
sexual
failure
to
medical
individuals
abuse;
provide
abuse;
adequate
food,
negative relations treat
or belittle
account
of such things
shelter,
include
the juvenile),
unfairly,
and the
or
low (e.g.,
humiliate
experience
whether the juvenile
(2004)
studied
common
a sample
among
finding
little prestige,few benefits,little advancement, being fired),
coercive
control
and unpleasant
(e.g., simple,
repetitive
taxing
on
opportunity for (e.g., threats
that
they
had
such as age, gender, and
peer association.
These findings,
however, test only one part of
GST. GST not only asserts that certain strains in-crease these
strains
of crime but also describes why
increase
crime.
The
next
section
focuses
on this topic.
WHY
autonomy;
work).
STRAINS
INCREASE OF
THE
CRIME
when it is chronic and Strains
frequent
conflicts
are
said
based on race/ethnicity,
gender,
that
is,
goals, including
excitement, high levels of autonomy,
thrills/
masculine
likelihood
of
crime
they lead to
negative
depression,
individuals
about it.
and
bad
and
ac-tion;
want
to
Crime is one possible response.
earlier in this
means for reducing
feel
chapter,
crime
or escaping from
may be a
strains, seeking
revenge against the source of strain or related targets, or alleviating negative emotions (through illicit
status, and monetary goals.
for
create pressure for corrective
strained
As indicated
Homelessness.
the
Most notably,
emotions
do something
or religion.
increase
such as anger, frustration,
fear. These
victimization.
to
several reasons. emotions
and verbal and physical abuse.
Failure to achieve certain
was much more
of
others.
Discrimination
crime
who reported
LIKELIHOOD
Marital problems, including
Criminal
that
working conditions
tasks; little
Unemployment, especially blamed
pay,
monitoring,
many months in the prior year.This
the likelihood have low
sex,
belonged to a gang. Baron
were taken into account,
assaults.
jobs. Such jobs
as the juveniles
wastrue even after a broad range of other fac-tors
criminal
Abusivepeerrelations. Peerabuseincludes insults,
to
of homeless street youth in a
youth
been homeless for
of
gossip, threats, attempts to coerce, and physical Workin bad
more likely
and
the
who
held true even after
age, prior level of violence, level of parental
with teachers
the juvenile
much
physical
school as boring and a waste of time.
physically
were
that juveniles
violence. This
Canadian city and found
Negative school experiences. These
teachers
victimized
found
and
care.
grades,
were violently
engage in subsequent they took
includes
emotional
Riveria, and Bolland (2006)
use). Anger occupies a special place in
drug
GST, because
it energizes individuals for action, reduces inhibitions, Research
on
Strains
and
and creates a strong desirefor revenge.
Crime
Several Researchers
have
preceding strains these
strains
certain
examined
on crime. Their
do increase
of them
the
the
eff ect
most
of
the
of
crime,
with
most important
causes of crime (see Agnew 2006, for an overview). example, victimization,
parental and
rejection, homelessness
the
studies suggest that
likelihood
being among
of
harsh discipline, have
all
For
criminal
been
found
attempts
have attempted
to
whether strains lead to negative emotions these
emotions,
have focused
in
turn,
lead
on the emotion
to
determine and whether
crime.
Most
studies
of anger, and they tend to
find that strains increase anger and that anger explains part of the eff ect of strains on crimeespecially crime (Agnew (2003)
asked
2006). individuals
violent
For example, Jang and Johnson to
indicate
the
strains
o
148
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
personal problems they had experienced. strains werelisted, including problems,
family
feeling
and criminal
found
more strains
angry and that
Also,individuals
different types of financial
problems,
Jang and Johnson experienced
arethreatened by others mayjoin gangsfor protection.
Manysuch
that
were
individuals
more likely
others
chronically
depression,
frustration,
and fear
the eff ect of strains Recently, strains than
researchers
may be
may sometimes
have suggested
morelikely
anger.
by others
that
certain
to lead to some emotions that involve
one cannot
long
escape from
may
lead to depression. Furthermore, certain emotions may be morelikely to lead to some crimes than others. As suggested earlier, anger maybe especially conducive to
period
Individuals
level
negative treatment
by people such as parents, teach-ers,
spouses, and employers. can
reduce
the
conventional
or the termination treatment
can
also
involves
reduce
the
cause
to
these
such things
grades
extent
as low
Furthermore,
direct
control
to
to
others. Individuals
and
retreat
from
that
who arelow in these types of con-trol
teach
(1955)
is, strains
others beliefs
who
and Cloward and
strained individuals
may lead individuals
to
crime, crime.
with their
abused or neglected juveniles acceptance
model ...
Ohlin (1960)
may associate
in an eff ort to cope
to find
do tend
to
reduce
of crime,
the
&
Mazerolle
likelihood
simply through
social
control,
and contribute
to
(see Agnew 2006;
1994).
of crime
Strains, then,
for
several
may
reasons,
not
their eff ect on negative emotions.
FACTORS
THAT
INCREASE
THE
CRIMINAL
LIKELIHOOD
OF
COPING
are a variety
of ways to cope
schoolwork,
for example,
homework;
friends;
convince
important;
with strains,
most
who are having trouble
with
might devote
seek help from themselves
exercise or listen to
As
to
typically
school
Cohen
have suggested,
parents, or is
not
who experience
that
strains
cope using legal strategies such as these.
some individuals
to
musicin an eff ort to feel
this fact, it is critical for strain theories as-sociate
crime,
more time
teachers,
that
better; and so on. Individuals
reinforce
favorable
Paternoster increase
their
conventional
Furthermore, strains mayfoster the social learning
and
strains
of them legal. Juveniles
haveless to lose by doing so.
with
is,
such as negative emotionality
There
sanction
are morelikely to engagein crime, becausethey
of crime;
that
nega-tive
may occur if strains such as child
individuals
morelikely to
exercised
which conventional
behavior
are more
individuals
if the
individuals
rule violations). This
the
society, particularly
the
(i.e., the
monitor
bond
reduce
of employment.
can
over individuals
abuse
emotional
It
in conventional
negative treatment
others
Such negative treatment
individuals others.
investment
involve
to cope in a
new strains
Severalstudies havefound support for these argu-ments;
traits
often
ability
continued
copethrough crime.
foster the social learning
Strains
are easily up-set
Not surprisingly, such people are then
of
control.
over a
conducive
when upset.The
of strains reduces their
may also lead to crime because they reduce social
strains traits
traits such as negative emotionality.
manner. As a consequence,
to drug use. Researchersare now examining theseideas. Strains
personality
likely to overwhelm them and makethem very upset.
violence. Depression, however, maybe moreconducive
ones
who experience
high in negative emotionality
experience
who are
may come to believe that theft
and become very angry
legal
by
or excusable.
may develop
to crime, including
unjust
may be especially likely to lead to
Also, strains that
unemployed
Finally, individuals
ex-plain
bullied
wayto cope. Individuals
is sometimes justifiable
such as
on crime (see Agnew 2006).
others. For example, strains
treatment
emotions
who are regularly
may come to believe that violence is ajustifiable,
or at least excusable,
this anger had a large effect on
also suggest that
may develop beliefs favorable to crime.
For example, individuals
who
to report
crime.
A few studies
who are subject to those strains con-ducive
to crime
victimiza-tions.
Given
to explain
why
choose crime as a means of coping,
According to GST,criminal coping is mostlikely to be enacted byindividuals
with certain characteristics:
with other criminals
strains. mayjoin
and support.
For example, gangs in an ef-fort
Individuals
who
Possesspoor coping skills and resources. Some individuals lack the skills and resources to legally cope
on their
own. They
have poor
problem
STRAIN
traits
such
as negative
constraint.
Individuals
emotionality with
these
are
Money is allows
have limited
a great coping
one to
purchase
(including tutors,
financial
resources.
resource,
because it
can turn
individuals
for
strains.
Not
others to
assistance. This
having trouble in school
crime
provocations worse)
coping.
is
an
Some
excusable,
believe that
response to
(Anderson
violence
a wide range
1999). They
others, especially
Also, as indicated
learn these
criminal
previously,
of
they
others,
sometimes
develop these beliefs after experiencing chronic
assistance, and direct assis-tance
in coping. For example, children
to criminal
that
For example, they
beliefs from
assistance
For example, gang
or even desirable response to certain
provocation
advice on how to cope, emotional
support, financial
believe
is an appropriate
whom
may
harassed.
Hold beliefs favorable
justifiable,
own but also they lack
responses.
of-ten
they
may be called cowards (or
and regularly
unable to legally cope
Furthermore,
who do not respond to
with violence
and lawyers).
Havelow levels of conventional social support.
might include
nonviolent
members
needed goods and ser-vices
only are some individuals
they
punish
Fur-thermore,
the services of people such as
counselors,
on their
with social approval.
eas-ily
upset and tend to act without thinking. they
and they reinforce violent responsesmost
possess and low
traits
149
members directly encourage a violent response,
solving and social skills, including skills such as the ability to negotiate with others.They
THEORIES
or long-term
who are
strains (e.g., being bullied over a
long period).
might seek assistance
from their parents, who maycomfort them, give
Arein situations wherethe costsof criminal coping
them advice on how to study, and arrange special
arelow andthe benefitshigh.In particular, strained
assistance
are
from
their
unemployed
their friends, loan them Are
low
may obtain
individuals
who
assistance
who may help them find
in
social
control.
and
Some
they
individuals
also
engage in
criminal
because their family others
sanctions
havelittle
In
members,
sum, individuals
criminal
when they
to lose if they are
others, such as parents and teachers, think
coping
(c) are
disposed with
and
or work in bad
of
jobs, and do not have a good
criminal
model criminal
others.
Other
coping, frequently
gang
when it
occurs. Imagine,
member who is insulted
gang member is because
that
how
gang respond to similar
other
these
coping
coping,
because of the
attractive
opportunities
for
have factors
examined
the
influence
the
extent
to
which
likelihood
of
cer-tain
criminal
coping.The results of their studies have been mixed
through encourage in-dividuals
for
example,
a
provocations;
of
the
other gang
morelikely to cope
coping is
morelikely
with strains
among individuals
are high in negative emotionality delinquent
with vio-lence found
members
are
crime; for example, some research indicates that
criminal
by someone. This
morelikely to respond is
to lose by criminal
criminal
encounter
with these factors
criminals
to engage in crime, and often reinforce crime
to
(see Agnew, 2006). Some havefound that individuals
view crime as wrong orimmoral. with
to engage in
crime.
Researchers
also do not
most likely
whom they associate and the beliefs they
(d)
do not plan on going to college, are unemployed reputation in the community. They
are
when they (a) are unable to engage in
legal coping, (b) have little
hold,
Also, they are doing poorly in school,
Associate
An individual
morelikely to engage in theft if he or she comes
because they do not care what conven-tional people
punished,
...
money, for example, is
across a valuable item that is unguarded.
do not closely supervise
and rarely impose misbehave.They
of them.
absence of capable guardians.
work and
when
attractive targets for crime in the
are unlikely to be punished if they
engage in crime, neighbors,
are more likely to turn to crime
they encounter
from
with a desperate need for
to lose if
coping. They
do
Individuals
money.
have little
them
teachers.
peers.
or who associate
Other studies,
however,
who with
have not
this.
Criminologists these
mixed results
are now trying (see
to
Agnew, 2006;
make sense of Mazerolle
150
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Maahs2000). Onepossibility for the conflicting results has to
the
do
with
the
preceding
However, it coping the
standing
factors
is favorable
Maahs (2000)
association
with criminal
criminal
all
three
coping,
of
one another.
engage in criminal
parental
to
most of
such
coping.
(1) low
constraint,
(2)
factors
Maahs found
were
favorable
highly strained individuals
to
were quite
Part
morelikely
on all or
Mazerolle and
these
...
conducive
peers, and (3) beliefs favor-able
coping.
maleshavesubstantially higher levels of offending than females.
examine
explored this possibility.
three factors:
to criminal
often
from
when their
examined
when
researchers
may be that individuals
only
Mazerolle and
that
that
factors in isolation
preceding
They
fact
of the
to experience to
crime.
discipline,
and
GROUPS
however, that
females than
DIFFERENCES
IN
CRIME
Strain theories have been used primarily to explain why someindividuals are morelikely to engagein crime than
are
that
conducive
are
explain group diff erences in crime, in particular class, and community
gender,
diff erences. An
explain
individuals crime
version of strain theory
class
diff erences in
because they
have
monetary goals through that the relationship
in
achieving their
legal channels.
Note, however,
between class and crime is not as
between class and
lower-class individuals
experiences
are somewhat
minor crime (see
appears to belittle
minor crime,
although
through gender
experience
as
much or
Many of the strains
with the care of
to experience
crime,
such
to
close supervision
and elderly parents).
more likely to
to
however, are not conducive
Furthermore, certain
as sexual
strains
abuse
and
Overall, however, males are
crime.
morelikely to cope with strains
Part of the reason for this has to do with
diff erences in the emotional males and females
reaction to strains.
tend to
they experience strains. The
become angry
anger of females,
more often accompanied
by emotions
shame, anxiety, and depression. This more often strains,
blame themselves
view their anger
anger
males, however, is
by
of
when
however,
such as guilt,
is because females
when they
experience
anger as inappropriate,
that their
morelikely to en-gage to
Agnew 2009). Furthermore,
(e.g.,
It is important
strains involving
Males are also
Lower-class is
higher rates of
more trouble
strong as many people believe.There relationship
crime.
are said to engage in
has been
are
harsh
morelikely than females to experience strains that are
Both
example of this use has already been presented.
as
conducive to crime (see Agnew 2006).
others. Increasingly, however,they are also being usedto
used to
such
are
homelessness, and
males.
by females,
crime. These include
females
males
to achieve goals such as thrills/
gender discrimination.
Mertons (1938)
strains
masculine status.
others (e.g., children
age, ethnicracial,
is that
by others and the burdens associated
likely to engage in crime.
EXPLAINING
includes
victimization,
more overall strain experienced
this
negative school
perhaps the inability excitement
for
many of the strains that
This
low grades), criminal
note,
reason
and
worry
might lead them to harm others. The
moral outrage. This
is
blame others for their
negative treatment
they
more often accompanied because
strains
males are quicker
and to interpret
have experienced
the
as a deliber-ate
are morelikely to engagein
challenge or insult. These gender differencesin the
certain types of white-collar crime, especially corporate
experience of anger reflect differences in socialization
crime. Recentversions of strain theory haveattempted
and
middle-classindividuals
to explain this by noting that individuals especially
middle-and upper-class
do sometimes experience monetary strain, when they
more advantaged
compare
themselves
with even
members of certain groups are morelikely to (a)
experience strains that
are conducive
cope with these strains through consider and crime.
With the exception
to crime and (b)
crime.
the strong relationship
position.
Females,
often taught to be nurturing
As an illustra-tion, between gender
of a few types of crime,
for
example,
are
more
and submissive, and so
they are morelikely to view their anger asinappropri-ate. In any event, the
moral outrage of angry
more conducive to criminal
others (Passas 1997).
GST explains group diff erences in crime by arguing that the
social
malesis
coping, especially to crimes
directed against others. Also, coping
males are
increase the likelihood things,
more likely
because of their
standing of criminal
to engage in criminal on those factors that coping.
Among other
malesare higher in negative emotionality
in constraint.
and low-er
Maleare lower in certain types of socia
STRAIN
supportespecially lower in
emotional supportsand
aggressive behavior, to condemn
more weakly tied to school, and less males are
likely to associate with other criminals favorable to crime. have delinquent
more
and hold beliefs
Males,for example, are morelikely to
friends
remain
and to be gang
members than
Association, program. in
beliefs that are conducive to criminal as the belief that they should Data provide
experience
that
for these arguments.
males are
many of the strains that
more likely
to
are conducive
to
crime, and studies tend to suggest that
males are more
is the
which sponsors
National
Head Start
a preschool
enrichment
Head Start focuses on preschool-age children
preschool
areas. Such children
program
are placed in a
designed to equip them
skills and attitudes
with the
necessary to do well in school. The
also works with the parents of these children,
teaching them how they can help their children in school.
betough.
some support
Research does indicate
coping, such
existence.
program
disadvantaged
Finally, malesare morelikely to hold gender-relatedprogram
are females.
in
One such
be punished for
crime. Furthermore,
151
status) through legal channels. Certain of these pro-grams
manytypes of social control. In particular, males
are less well supervised, less likely to
likely
they are
THEORIES
Another
older juveniles
program,
Job
and adults. This
equip individuals
to obtain a good job. both these programs
Corps, focuses
program
with the skills
do well on
attempts
and attitudes
to
neces-sary
Some evidence suggests that
are successful in reducing
crime,
likely to cope with strains through crime, although not
especially whenthey are wellimplemented (see Agnew,
all studies havefound this (see Agnew 2006; Broidy &
2009, and Agnew,in press,for further discussion), GST suggests still other strategies for controlling
Agnew 1997). Strain theory, then, can partly explain has also
crime (Agnew, 2006,in press).These strategies fall into
age,class, and
two broad groups. First, GST recommends reducing the
gender diff erences to crime. Strain theory been usedto help explain ethnicracial, community
diff erences in crime (see Agnew 2006 for
an overview;
see Agnew 1997;
Eitle
and
& Fowler
selected
Warner
argument
2003,
for
here is the same. The
& Turner
2003;
studies).
The
members of groups
with higher rates of crime are morelikely to experience strains that
are conducive
such strains through
early strain
(1955),
and
with
FOR
theories
crime.
CONTROLLING
of
Cloward and
CRIME
Merton (1938),
Ohlin (1960)
because their primary goal is to reduce the likelihood individuals
will experience school and/or
such as working in bad
major
Waron Poverty, which
under President Johnson.The
War on Poverty consisted of a number of programs designed to eliminate While eliminating goal in itself, it would reduce
poverty in the
poverty
THE
STRAINS
THAT
other
social
Poverty
were directly inspired
programs
were designed to
achieve the goal of
eradicating
problems,
poverty
such as crime.
were part of the
War on
by strain theories. These help lower-income
monetary success (or
that
work problems, unemployment.
reducing the likelihood
will cope with strains through
REDUCING
EXPOSURE ARE
Several programs reduce
that
crime.
OF INDIVIDUALS
CONDUCIVE
certain
people
middle-class
have tried
of
the
strains
example, parent training
TO
TO
CRIME
that
to eliminate
or at least
conducive
crime.
to
For
programs attempt to reduce
parents will reject their children
and use harsh or abusive disciplinary
methods.These
programs target at-risk parents, such as teenage par-ents, or the parents
States.
was, of course, a desirable
was also felt that
Several of the programs that
United
jobs or chronic
Second, GST recommends
was developed under President Kennedys administra-tion the likelihood and implemented
Corps fall into this category,
Cohen
had a
impact on eff orts to control crime.These theories were one of the inspirations for the
to strains that are conducive to
Head Start and Job
individuals
crime.
RECOMMENDATIONS
The
to crime and to cope
exposure of individuals
believed to things,
of delinquent
be at risk for
delinquency.
such programs teach parents
discipline conflicts
their that
children arise. They
members to spend activities.
youth
and
Among
other
how to eff ectively
how to
better
resolve
may also encourage family
more time together
Furthermore,
or juveniles
these
programs
in
pleasurable may attempt
to reduce some of the stresses or strains that
parent
152
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
experience, such as work and housing problems.These
Parents,for example, mayeventually come to reject and
stresses have been found to contribute to a range of
harshly discipline children
poor
programs,
parenting
Another
practices.
This
on bullying
administrators
consequences
or peer abuse at school.
more
aware
of bullying. These
of the
extent
individuals
REDUCING
and teachers and others closely
WILL
Still
reduce strains
as poor
work and employment
other
of bullying
programs
academic
attempt
to
performance,
problems, and homelessness.
Many of these programs haveshown
much successin
Although
Still other programs recognize that, that
we
will
not
be able
are conducive to crime.
likely
continue
however,
alter
to give low strains
so
that
to
eliminate
all
strains
Teachers, for example,
make them
less
will
Wecan, conducive
crime.
as fair
punished.
more likely to be perceived
that
by individuals
are more likely to be who are arrested
Many such techniques
are embodied
restorative justice approach. ... In addition, to avoid strains that
and
in the
we can make are conducive
to crime. For example, we can makeit easier for students to change teachers or schools with
school-related
strains
for individuals to
Or
we can
make
it
easier
movefrom high-crime communities
Finally, wecan equip individuals
with the traits and
skills to avoid strains. Individuals sometimes provoke treatment
peers, teachers, when individuals negative
are low
upset, tend
in
individuals
act
these individuals
who maythen respond
much to reduce the exposure
eliminate
may be taught
skills, thereby increasing be able to
of
to crime, it is unlikely such exposure.
For that
develop and implement
On a related
methods for better
increase
may
anger.
with increased lev-els
For example, they
might be assigned Also, a range
may be developed to
cope when they face strains such aslong-term
unemployment,
in the job
may
manner if they are
managing their
assistance programs
help individuals
methods for
individuals
mentors who provide assistance in coping. of government
will
note, individuals
also may be provided
of social support.
and social
that they
legal
Toillustrate,
how to respond in a legal
Individuals
For example,
problem-solving the likelihood
with their strains.
be taught
homelessness, and discrimination
market. Beyond that, steps may betaken to
the
level
of
social
control
to
which
individuals
parents,
increase the bond between parent and children and im-prove parental supervision. Also,school-based programs can raise academic performance relations. These
is especially true
constraint
As indicated, to
have an antagonistic
surprisingly, people,
others, including
and employers. This
emotionality.
are easily often
from
CRIME
are subject. For example, parent training programs can
wherethey areregularly victimized.
negative
WITH
coping skills and resources of individuals.
when other eff orts to deal
fail.
STRAINS
to strains conducive
profes-sionalsharassed by peers.
Likewise, police and justice
it easier for individuals
TO
INDIVIDUALS
One set of programs attempts to improve the
be taught
perceived
RESPOND
THAT
reason,it is alsoimportant to reduce the likelihood that
grades in a
can adopt techniques
nega-tive
individuals respond to strains with crime. Several pro-grams
dealing
manner that is
LIKELIHOOD
we can entirely
to crime. For example, teachers can be taught to assign
as fair by students.
elicit
in this area haveshown some successin reducing
despite our
grades to students.
as to
THE
we can do
individuals
reducing crime (see Agnew, 2006, 2009, in press). eff orts,
that individuals
others.
Bullies are disciplined
manner, and the victims
are off ered support.
best
from
anger and show
As such, these programs
program.
are established,
monitor the school for bullying.
such
manage their
before acting.
treatment
these rules
Clear rules against bullying
in an appropriate
and
Several
are then
given assistance in designing an anti-bullying
are widely publicized,
to better
some restraint
makestudents, teachers, par-ents, may reduce the likelihood
program attempts to and
individuals
program that attempts to reduce exposure
to strains focuses
with these traits.
however, have shown some success in teach-ing
and high in
such individuals
without
interactional frequently
thinking, style.
and Not
upset other
with negative treatment.
that individuals
coping, because
morelikely to result in punishment,
and
have moreto lose if they are punished.
Programs with criminal criminal
studentteacher
programs reduce the likelihood
will engage in criminal
such coping is individuals
and improve
may also be used to reduce peers and alter
coping.
beliefs that
For example, certain
association encourage
programs
hav
STRAIN
THEORIES
153
shown some successin altering beliefs that are favor-able strain theory constitutes one of the majorexplanations to drug use. Unfortunately, it has been more dif-ficult of crime and has much potential for controlling crime. to convince individuals
to quit juvenile
stop associating
with their
progress is being
made, however.
delinquent
gangs or
friends.
Some REFERENCES
Agnew, CONCLUSION
R. (1992).
of crime Agnew,
Strain theories idea:
are based on a simple,
When people are treated
upset and engage in crime. this idea
badly, they
may become
Strain theories
elaborate
most likely
to result in crime,
why negative treatment
of crime, and why some people
morelikely than others to respond to negative
treatment
with
low social control, and they create some pressure or for
crime.
Examples include
harsh or abusive or
work in bad
homelessness, achieve
discipline, jobs,
discrimination,
parental
chronic
criminal and
monetary goals.These
of negative emotions,
victimization,
the inability
strains lead to a range
action,
emotions
with crime being
one possible response.
Crime
strains, seek revenge, or allevi-ate
their
negative emotions
control,
may allow individuals
(through,
e.g., illicit
to
drug
may also increase crime by reducing social
fostering
beliefs favorable
association to crime,
with criminal
to traits
such as negative emotionality. Individuals
are
by engaging in crime, are disposed to criminal coping, and arein situations that present attractive opportuni-ties strain theory
are using the theory
to
42,
for controlling Agnew (2006)
Also, the implications crime
In
A test
of
Recommendations
H. Barlow
work.
Press. New York:
General strain, Agnews
& S. Decker,
Putting theory to
Code of the street.
W. (2004).
Press.
Causes and control.
revised
street
Norton. youth
theory.
and
Criminology,
457483.
Broidy,
L.
M., & Agnew,
general strain Crime
and
Cloward,
R.,
R. (1997).
theory
perspective.
Delinquency, &
Ohlin,
34,
Cohen,
A. (1955).
Gender and crime: Journal
A
of Researchin
275306.
L. (1960).
Glencoe, IL:
Delinquency
and
op-portunity.
Free Press.
Delinquent
boys.
Glencoe,
IL:
Free
Press.
Eitle,
D. J.,
and
&
Turner,
young
adult
in impor-tant
Elliott,
D., Huizinga,
help explain
diff erences in crime, such as gender
off ending.
theory.
University
E. (1999).
University
Press.
Temple
S.
of Researchin
R. J. (2003).
crime.
Stress
Sociological
exposure,
race,
Quarterly,
44,
243269.
Researchers are extending
group
strain
general
most likely
An overview ofgeneral
crime:
Philadelphia:
crime:
for such coping.
in
University
Controlling
policy:
Anderson,
resources to legally cope with strains, havelittle to lose
Oxford
and public
most
likely to engagein criminal coping whenthey lack the
ways.They
general
theory:
of
Journal
delinquency:
Criminology
Baron,
peers and
and contributing
Oxford
T. P.
38, 319361.
Juvenile
R.(in press).
from
to
reduce
use). Strains
New York: Agnew,
over
In
and delinquency
of strain
and delinquency.
New York:
R.(2009).
crime
foundation
types
Pressured into crime:
strain theory.
in
NJ: Transaction.
on the the
Delinquency,
Agnew, R.(2006).
Agnew,
Brunswick,
Specifying
to lead to crime
theory
explanation.
theories in crime
Building
theory:
change
theory
strain
30, 4787.
Advances in criminological
New
R. (2001).
strain
rejec-tion,
unemploy-ment
such as anger. These
create pressure for corrective
or escape from
101132).
Crime and
magnitude, perceived as unjust, and associated with incentive
(Ed.),
a general
and
A strain
Vol. 7. Developmental
Agnew,
for
READINGS
Criminology,
Stability
course:
Thornberry
crime.
The strains mostlikely to lead to crime are high in
Foundation
R. (1997).
(pp.
FURTHER
and delinquency.
the life
on
by describing the types of negative treatment
increases the likelihood
are
commonsense
AND
diff erences
of strain theory
are receiving increased
perspective Research in Greenberg,
attention.
described still other extensions.
In sum,
S. J.,
behavior.
Delinquency,
Delinquency
Contemporary
& Johnson, and
S. (1979).
Crime and
D.(1977).
of society. Jang,
D., & Ageton, on delinquent
deviant
of
16, 327.
and the age structure
Crises, 1, 189223.
B. R. (2003). coping
An inte-grated Journal
among
Strain,
negative
African
emo-tions,
Americans
154
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
A test of general Criminology, Mazerolle, and
P.,
strain
&
Maahs,
delinquency:
R.(1938).
Sociological Passas,
relative The
J. (2000).
General
strain
examination
Quarterly,
Social structure
Anomie,
deprivation. of
Northeastern
theory
Quantitative
theory of condi-tioning
and anomie.
reference
N. Passas
Mazerolle,
delinquency:
of
Research in
Crime
and
Delinquency,
31,
Spano,
R.,
American
Riveria,
of timing
of
a high
American
C.,
& Bolland
exposure
to
poverty
youth.
J. (2006).
violence
sample
Journal
The
on violent
of inner
of Youth and
city
impact behav-ior
African
Adolescence, 35,
681692.
theory
University
R., & and
In
anomie
Journal
in
17, 323343.
Review, 3, 672682.
future
Paternoster,
of
235263.
Justice
(1997).
N.
Journal
An alternative
influences. Merton,
theory.
19, 79105.
groups,
and
& R. Agnew (Eds.),
(pp.
6294).
Boston:
Press. P. (1994).
General strain
A replication
and extension.
Warner, B. D., & Fowler, Testing a general Journal
of Criminal
S. K. (2003).
strain
Strain
and violence:
model of community
Justice,
31, 511521
violence.
PART IV
Macro-Level
Critical
Theorie
PART IV
INTRODUCTION
Macro-Level
W
e have already seen that
to explain meso-to
crime
and
theories
behavior
macro-levels of analysis.
about
Critical
Theories
crime causation
can be targeted
at diff erent levels from
Here we look
at a cluster
micro-through of seven diff erent
theories that are targeted at the macro-level of analysis but that are alsocritical. According to
Henrys overview (Reading 1) macrotheories assume that external
forces, resulting from the configuration
and organization of society as a whole,
shape the nature of social institutions,
and within these, channel the behavior
of humans and their interaction. Thus, crime
as the
outcome
from criminogenic outcome,
or
of biological
structural,
rather than choosing crime, or seeing
or psychological
cultural
and social
more accurately, the co-production
tendencies,
crime results
processes. Crime then is the
of society;
societies
having a lot
of crime are referred to as criminogenic. Henry (Reading seen ascritical. definitions
of
rights; (2) do of the
crime
but
(1)
instead
define
context;
or race-divided
crime
advocate radical
macro-level theories
as
social
themselves
harm
that
violates
are
to state human
off ender causes crime independently
(3) oppose the existing social order of capi-talist,
society; (4) question the justice
which they see as a reflection
individual
ways these
neither accept, nor limit
not accept that the individual
wider social/cultural patriarchal,
justice,
1) says that there are five
because they:
of the dominant
of the criminal
power structure;
and (5)
policy changes to society rather than just to its institutions
or its
members.
Critical theories share a similar view of humans and their relationship to society which Henry and Lanier (2006, p. 183) sayview
humans as potentially
active creative entities who havethe ability to shape their social world, but who also recognize that the world,in the form of hierarchical power structures, shapes them.
Critical theories are not structurally
of society does not force individuals a degree of individual cultural
deterministic (meaning that the struc-ture
to act criminally)
human agency that is channeled
but instead
recognizes
by wider structural
and
forces.
Critical theorists crime. This
also see powerful interests
occurs when dominant
of subordinate
segments
at work in defining
groups/segments
or classes threatening
what counts as
or classes define the behavior
their interests.
Henry and Lanier
15
158
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
(2006, p. 183) explain that Dominant as a weapon to criminalize
groups uselaw
others behavior, and use
the criminal justice system to enforce their definitions
of reality
about
dominant
positions in soci-ety.
also see crime occurring
the direct
harms to subordinate
dominant
segments, such as when corporations
the environment,
or violate
segments
of society
Critical
theories
divided into to
each
reflect their
comprised
two
interest
other
and
existing
political
groups
define
groups interests;
who struggle
law
and
crime
and (2) radical
whoseadvocates believe, based on a
was
to
programs
Marxist analysis,
those
and it
mitigate the
through
advocates for
harsh inequalities
than
waiting for revolu-tionary
& Lanier 2006, p. 298).
through
the excluded
job training
Left
segments
of
and education-for-work
(p. 298).
Parallel to this
theory
pushes for the im-mediate
of social institutions
want to reintegrate
the population
to
It
structure,
change (Henry realists
classes, as well
over criminal justice,
of social justice:
programs
kinds:
based on the idea that society
competing
dominate
control
democratization the
of social institu-tions
of the lower
community
in the present system rather
originally
theory
and empowerment
and safety regula-tions support
health
greater democratization
as democratic
by
pollute
governing the workplace.
(1) conflict
involving
and the pursuit
through
& Lanier 2006,
p. 297).The left realist reform agendalooked to poli-cies
own groups
what is unacceptable for the
purpose of preserving their Critical theories
bythe criminal justice system (Henry
development
who challenged
in critical
theory
were
whether class alone was suf-ficient
to explain domination and inequality. Feminist
that the major division in society is power based on the wealth and property; the resulting
theorist formed afourth approach (4) in critical theory
classinequality
allows the economically powerful elite
that saw the bigger challenge coming from patriarchal
social
determine
social structure. Patriarchy is the law
private ownership
as
classes
crime
to
and
criminals.
to romanticize and
white
resistance their
street
collar
laws
own domination,
kinds
of
produced and
seen
as
counts tended
of
of society, both to
and to perceived economic
crime
the reality
and
fails
to
justice
which
corporate a form
Critics point out that this left
by the criminal
their
is
segments
as it is called, ignores both
what
theories
and demonize
Crime
by subordinate
define
radical
crime
crime.
social injustices.
and
These
and
ideal-ism
of the victims
consider
the
of
system to off enders
known
as left
institutions,
realism,
by social inequalities,
perspective (3)
which saw crime as produced relative
deprivation
and exclu-sion
of lower classes members of society, particularly its underclass.
Left realists (e.g. Young & Matthews
from
Main Street to
simultaneously marginalizes
relative
each other.
society,
frustration
disrespect
Added to their
is a class-biased
criminal
primarily
class and
vulnerable
lower
nots
while
as Jock Young has called
and abandons
deprivation,
express through
have
of the excluded,
its
poor; they
suff er
and anger, which they
and violence inflicted
on
misery and self-destruction justice
system that
minority
targets
males, the
most
who are then also punished
societal and from
to
privilege
disagreed about the in patriarchal
saw domination
as a result
males
social
through
of socialization
institutions;
and
more
(ii)
in
radical
as rooted in biological females;
these
are
real
physiological
diff erences that science and observation
have
and
clarified,
these
diff erences
result
in increased
aggression and violence by men relative to illustrated
promoting competitive individualism,
greed. This exclusive it,
and
feminists
between
by the fact that
domination
haves
theorists domination
saw male domination
divide
the
to the factory,
male-dominated
of all serious
into
the family
Wall Street are structured
discrimination
diff erences
are
Under patriarchy
systems: (i) liberal
traditionally
of the father in
accomplishments
of females.
malegender
1992) believe that the polarizing eff ects of capitalism societies
and
men. However, feminist source of
feminists
led to a more moderate third
activities
valued than those
gender
harms
families.
This
male
(iii)
as a result
that
inequality
crime;
men commit 80 percent
socialist
of social
perpetuate
male
there
feminists
and
were social
Marxist
constructionist
perspective
genders. In
postmodernist feminists,
as performing
identities.
the
their
argue that the
of the
lat-ter
masculine
Feminists taking
a social
diff erence in
maleviolence is a result of the gender-structured and see crime as an outcome
male
hierarchical
between
feminists,
saw
and institu-tions
dominated
constructionist
of which saw crime socially constructed
feminists structures
diff erences of power
addition
women,
world
way males claim
PART
build and sustain their domination
over
masculinity
women.
Crime
is
a
and is seen asdoing
manifestation
gender
of
(Henry
&
Current feminist
criminological
a more integrational
organizing
race, and ethnicity in
womens
lives.
includes
diff erent
experiences
to
of
cultural
these
experience,
market situation
criminal
correct
Gender, class,
oppress and channel
intersection
justice
structural
and
forces
policy
created at
multiple levels
emphasizes
the
diff
a coproduction decisions whom
harmful
For radical
the complete removal of patriarchy and its replacement
and
diff erences
Crime is thereby than the
Postmodernist
policies that
voices
bad
or groups through
perpetrated.
toward
change, including
care
of a series of power
individuals
action is
looks
was
and Punish.
constructed
of all of society, rather
of particular
criminology
by including
seek to
them
changing the discourse
in
em-power social
of crime talk
a replacement
discourse
of
reconstruction.
Since
er-ences
of crime is dependent upon
Discipline
of society.
and harm spectacles into
institutionalized
159
of power and control
book
based on socially
divergent
justice
2006).
that expose women to victimization. feminists, the reduction
also
critique
his 1977
Foucault saw crime as an outcome
socialization
and criminal
of women of color (Daly
Feminist need
has adopted
social life.
coalesce to
The
patterns, labor
theory
stance arguing that gender is one
of several divisions
post-structuralist expressed in
relationships
Lanier 2006, p. 203).
INTRODUCTION
Postmodernist criminology is rooted in Foucaults
power. For them, crime stems
from and is an expression of, menspower, control, and
IV
the
criminology
1990s
a
distinctive
postmodernist
has emerged, the mostelaborated version
of which has been termed constitutive (Henry
&
Milovanovic 1996).
criminology
Constitutive theory
with the values of matriarchy, that is, connectedness,
recognizes that the social structures of inequality
nurturing
not only the source of the harm that is crime, but are
2006,
and creative diff erence (Henry
p. 204).
criminology
Other feminists
is too narrow
this to include
feminist
arguing that by
criminology
men and doesnt
masculinist
themselves inequalities
and social justice has largely
stud-ies,
been framed
have the capacity to transcend
its
limitations.
Postmodernism, informed
a fifth
and transcends disciplines. arbitrary
whether
want to broaden
question
a field and
theory
& Lanier
including (5)
dimension
Postmodernism
but also
exposes norms
postmodern-ism,
the
modern
somewhat
values and institu-tions,
a process called deconstruction
which the fundamental
assumptions
Postmodernism questions
in
are laid
bare.
whether truth can ever be
create
socially
Moreover, humans
through
their
divisions
and
constructed
use of values.
complex
generate these
discourse Once
systems
these
of inequality
and are sustained
continued
of energy into elaborating
investment
(talk),
created,
are self-perpetuating,
through
the these
inequalities. The
of critical theory
not only criminology
nature of society
through
feminist
which
crimes.
are
policy
response
replace harm-producing
of constitutive discourse
is healthy and constructive institutional
structures
constitutive
theorists
of restorative justice
theory
is to
with discourse that
and invest energy and build around
this.
Like
anarchists
believe in a decentralized designed to reintegrate
victims and community. They
system
off enders,
also believesocial judo
known and particularly questions the value of scientific
(turning the power of the offender back on itself), is
methods as being any better at discovering truth than
preferable to a retributive system that adds new harms
any other method of inquiry. Its advocates believe that rational thought is just thinking,
and that it is not necessarily a superior
It also believes (1) that rational power; (2) that that there
truth
about
of knowledge.
knowledge
rather than truth itself
p. 221).
thought
is a form
knowledge is not cumulative;
are pluralities
all statements
to those already present. The postmodernist critique wasone ofthe forerun-ners
one among several ways of of
and (3)
It claims that
are simply
(Henry
way.
of a holistic approach to thinking is called cultural
(Ferrell
explores the use and subversion
of
et al. 2010) that
mass mediaimages
by those subject to the power of others discursive
claims to
& Lanier 2006,
criminology
about crime that
Crime
here is seen
meaning that and
filters
criminology,
as a
mediated
mass media and popular
discourse
in
stories
then, represents
about
prac-tices.
phenomenon,
culture shapes crime.
Cultural
a sixth (6) area of critica
160
CRIME
theory
AND
BEHAVIOR
which suggests that
any individual
action
that produces harm is a reflection and an outcome of media communication criminology forces
explores the
interweave
crime control.
of
power
of crime
entertainment
is
meaning, contested
(Ferrell crime
expression
as
as social et al.
becomes a
and
moments of
a means to escape the constraint
that
Lanier
2006, p. 257). of justice,
on crime threat
of crime emanates
crime
&
retributive makes war or the
violence simply
does not reduce crime but adds
its own violence to that
which has already
occurred
& Lanier 2006, p. 258).
Whereas anarchists
a
ways
with violence
State sanctioned
a cycle that
when
in (Henry
state (government)
and suppresses
(Henry
them
under-standing
and
be approached
Under conventional
The
of violence. ...
perpetuates
and
to produce conflict,
arise these should
the existing
A seventh (7) critical theory
mutual respect
diff use them rather than solidify
of linear
and orderly social structures.
on problems, peacemaking advocates
celebrating
are less likely problems
forms
protest,
subversion,
violence.
and
constructed
or political
criminology
of play, and artistic
of
always
crime
or state-sanctioned
resistance;
the
event or subcultural
p. 2). In cultural
form
in
of makingwar believe that
cultural
which cultural
practices
crimewhether
as video-taped
2008,
many waysin
with the
and
construction
danger
culture:
It emphasizes the centrality
representation,
ephemeral
and popular
collaborative negotiation to overcome conflict. Instead
system
call for
total
of state-run
replacement
criminal
of
justice
mutual aid system of decentralized,
with
face-to-face
from an anarchist perspective that opposes all forms
justice, peacemaking criminology calls for alternatives
of power and domination,
that
and that
has blossomed
into two other applications: peacemaking criminology and restorative justice. It sees crime as conflict and seeks to reconcile peace through criminology and
the conflicting
restorative first
emerged
Dennis Sullivans The
Criminology
and
Jeff
Ferrell
(who
of cultural
the
1980
Larry
and reappeared
Tiff t Crime,
become
one of the found-ers
criminology).
Anarchist
criminology
and conflict
between
people,
and embodiment
conflict.
In
spite
This
of the connotation
disorder and overthrow
that
anarchy implies
of government, it
actually
of traditional
institutions
and change
in
the
process.
should be a system of restorative justice
incorporates
1980s peacemaking
ideas
than
rather
typical
war-making
of state control
of restorative
justice
toward
into
conflict
and punishment. The
It
many levels of justice,
punitive taking
discipline
justice,
and
with victims
and
restoration.
has
circles and
been incorporated
In
developing
forms
replac-ing
contrast
involves
for the harm they
Interestingly,
in-volving
participation
schools.
justice
concept
principles
and is increasingly in
restorative
responsibility
these
active community
resolution.
traditional
and abolitionist
mediation, talking
requires
that
and fear-mongering
employing
off ender-victim conferencing,
systems of power and authority
divisions
problem solve among participants structure
in the
Hal Pepinsky and
indeed it sees crime as an expression of
with
Anarchist
writing of
went on to
charges all hierarchical with creating
in
by bringing
practices.
Struggle to be Human:
Anarchism
1990s, largely through
parties
justice
the
to
off enders
cause victims
of compensation
some
of the
original
anarchist criminologists such as Sullivan and Tifft have
refers to a society without rulers (disorder is feared
becomeleading figures in the field of restorative justice,
by supporters of hierarchical systems). Instead of the
contributing
feared chaos, anarchists believe that
without govern-ment,topic.
humans would organize a world through aid
and
in
1991 laid
would look like.
Although restorative justice has been criticized
bysome radical criminologists for failing to addressthe fundamental
collaboration.
Hal Pepinsky joined
is
mutual
out
what
with
Richard
peacemaking
Peacemaking, like
predicated
on individual
Quinney and
(Shank
criminology
over time
anarchist
criminol-ogy,
responsibility
and
books and editing ajournal devoted to the
social structure
structural
inequalities
that create conflict
& Takagi 2004), it argues that it by changing the
control
systems
that
makes change
wayintuitions
operate their
eventually
changes their
PART
REFERENCES
Henry,
S.
&
Milovanovic,
Criminology: Daly, S.
K. (2006). Henry
and
Criminology Westview Ferrell,
J.,
Feminist
Thinking
M.M.
Reader,
Lanier pp.
about (Eds.),
Crime
The
205213.
in
Essential
Boulder,
CO:
Hayward,
Foucault,
K. J.
Criminology
UK:
Lanier,
J. (2008).
London,
(1977).
Harmondsworth,
Henry, S. and
& Young,
An Invitation. M.
D.
INTRODUCTION
(1996).
161
Constitutive
Postmodernism.
London,
UK:
Sage. Pepinsky
as
H.
&
Quinney,
Peacemaking.
R. (Eds.).
Bloomington:
(1991).
Criminology
Indiana
Universit
Press.
press.
Criminology:
Beyond
IV
UK:
Discipline Allen
and
Punish.
The Essential
Westview
Press.
P. (2004).
Critique
Social Justice 31 (3):
147163.
Tiff t, L. & Sullivan, Crime
(2006). CO:
G. &Takagi,
Justice.
Sage.
Lane.
M. M. (Eds.)
Reader. Boulder,
Cultural
Shank,
UK: Young,
Cienfuegos J.
&
Criminology: Sage.
D. (1980).
Criminology
and
Restorative
Struggle to be
Anarchism.
Sanday,
Human: Orkney,
Press.
Matthews, The
The
of
R. (Eds.). Realist
(1992)
Debate.
Rethinking
London,
UK:
CHAPTER VIII
Conflict, Left
Realist
Radical, and Theorie
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
Stuart CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
theory
can be divided
Criminological advocates
believe
or assume
and structural.
Critical
type. Individual-based individual
choice
circumstance (biological, of these
choices social
actions,
follow
anomie,
such
strain,
criminology,
social
within
Critical from
ecology,
channel
more
although
can
Frankfurt
through
School) critical
critical realist,
anarchist
is
choices
consequences such
the term
as
critical
configuration
and
institutions,
and
diff ers in significant of
strain
and
Moreover,
of social
social
ecol-ogy,
critical
it also consid-ers human
structure
role is to
ways
social
although
structure
as a distinctly
criminologys
rela-tions
product
only
demystify
has the that
ap-pearance
change.
(not not
theory, theories
actions. Thus,
as social
interaction.
with conflict.
critical
the
or
social
theories,
of social
their
and sees society
what
under
from
nature and
importance
human
force;
social
criminology
diff erent
similarities
be significant,
to facilitate
the
such
of individuals
grouped
in
combination
ongoing
and
and those
a structural
crucial
meaning
resulting
some
the
and laws,
struc-tural
either
diff erences
theories
that
structure-based
structural
the
of an external
Critical
of
although
some
be changed
believe
humans
lie
pro-cess,
by opportunity
or in
process-based
shape of
reformist-oriented
agency to
appearance
behavior
of the
bio-psychological
social
forces,
as a whole,
emphasizes
human
conflict,
where their social
of crime
may belimited
the
on
of theories
the causes
or in
rules
contrast,
external
the
having
criminology
violate
based individual,
to a group
that
influence
they In
that
criminology,
the
that
Social
of groups
kinds
psychological),
theory
of society
these,
or
THEORY
is located:
that
forces.
violation.
broad
choice),
and labeling
whether
assume
organization
assume
and neoclassical)
members
including
from
refers
and internal
between and
criminology
personality,
control,
three
of crime
and situational
trait-based
learning,
into
STRUCTURAL
the source
theories
(classical
(rational
AS
one
to
be confused
distinct
theory
structurally-oriented
criminology or abolitionist,
includes
with but
theories. the
following
peacemaking,
critical
critical
social
an umbrella In its
theory
term
most inclusive
theories: feminist,
conflict, critical
of the
for
a range interpre-tation,
radical, race,
left queer,
16
Henry
166
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
postmodernist, constitutive,
chaos, and topology.
morerestrictive interpretation three
of these, reserving developments
primarily
would exclude the first
are post-1970s,
by non-Marxist
A second
manifestation
criminologist
for theo-retical subordinate
the term critical
that
influenced
A
and those
when corporations
suite OF
by dominant
CRIME
range of theories has changed
there
associated
with critical criminol-ogy
and expanded
are underlying
unifying
over time,
themes
although
that
cut across
these diff erences. In its broadest interpretation,
harm is compounded
criminology
includes
all theoretical
the source of crime stemming
positions
from societally
that
see
conflict, fueled by a system of domination, based on in
their
claim
that
crime
is
the
Third,
direct
by the legal
are liable.
the
Another
when whites,
and
discriminate
see crime as a form
segments to their
perceived economic
Resistanceis looting,
that limit
occurs
marginalize
by subordinate
and to
em-ployees
women, gays, and lesbians.
critical criminologists
resistance
generated
inequality, alienation, and injustice. Critical theories are similar
males, or heterosexuals against blacks,
or violate
crime, also called
holes or purchased legal protection
version of this kind of disrespect
critical
critical
designed to protect
consequences to which the powerful The
the
segments, such as
and organizational
crime). This
loop
to
pollute the environment,
health and safety regulations
social theory.
crime
is the direct abuse and disrespect of segments
(corporate TYPES
of
of
domina-tion
and social injustices.
manifestthrough such
meansas riots,
workplace theft, sabotage, and civil disobedi-ence
(also called political crime or collective crime).
or indirect
outcome of conflict between different segments of soci-ety. Crime as resistance is also seen in
political action
campaigns and protests. They see membersof society divided bytheir differ-ences, and they challenge the
typically
advocate
a change from
criminal justice to the broader concept
social justice.
Looking
critical criminologies,
Fourth,
way diff erence is exploited
as a basis of power and interest. They
at the similarities
of
among these
they all assume that
to the critical
harm created such that
personal, individual,
or humanistic
segments of
believe that
of inequality
powerless
meaning that some segments
have more power than others, existing in a hierarchical relationship
to each other. Individual
as products Although individual
of these
theorists human
hierarchical
variously
humans are seen power
recognize
agency, ultimately
as repressed, co-opted,
and
structures.
criminologist,
crime is the
being competitively
divided
and egotistic interests
are pursued at the expense of social, collective,
society, based on whatever diff erence, exist in relations to each other,
by a society
Critical
criminologists
many of the crimes that the structurally commit
violence, street
interests.
altru-istic,
on each
theft,
crimes),
are
other,
such
hate,
and
domestic
the
result
of
as interper-sonal abuse
this
(called
competitive
individualization.
a degree of
they see humans DEFINING
manipulated for the benefit
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
of dominant powerful interests. Crime, from the critical criminological
perspective,
Critical criminology is designatedcritical
for several
is harm that comes from differencein power, andit can
reasons. It is critical
be manifestin several ways. One manifestation occurs
nor limit themselves to state definitions of crime.They
when dominant groups or segments definethe behavior
prefer to define crime associal harm or as violations of
of subordinate Dominant others
segments as threatening
groups
groups
is unacceptable one kind of state
(this
the
social
of reality
use of law
can be considered
crime).
order.
system to
definitions
about
Groups or segments
for the purpose of preserving their in
justice
own dominant
human rights. the individual
use law as a weapon to criminalize
behavior, and use the criminal
enforce their
their interests.
what as
do this
the
becausetheorists neither accept
Nor does critical criminology
off ender causes crime independently
wider social context,
off enders
have
themselves
occurs, first, dehumanization,
posi-tions criminal justice
accept that
without also considering been
victimized.
Such
of how vic-timization
by society through its inequities,
and alienation and subsequently, system, through
of the powerless for punishment.
its selective
by the
processing
Critical criminologist
CRITICAL
are critical too, becausethey oppose the existing social
DIFFERENCES
BETWEEN
CRIMINOLOGY
CRITICAL
167
CRIMINOLOGISTS
order of inequality, facilitated through the capitalist, patriarchal, They
or race-divided
organization
question the purpose and
justice
system,
dominant
which they
power structure,
correct injustice critical
methods of the criminal
see as a reflection
of the
rather than an instrument
or achieve social justice.
to
Finally, they are
because the policy changes they advocate usually
demand justice,
a radical transformation,
not just
but the total social and political
society. Thus, bad
instead
apples
criminologists
of criminal
organization
of
of seeing some people as inher-ently
(individual
theories)
other apples to go bad (social
turn
of society.
or as causing
process theories),
see the society as a bad
critical
barrel that
will
most of the apples bad that are put into it; the only
In
1958,
George
was rooted
in
of
George
of
Ralf
up
Simmel
control
public
clash
of cultures,
instrumental
or from
Austin
Turk
allegiance
cluster of critical criminologies it is helpful not only to
gaining
identify
able to criminalize
what they havein common, but also to outline
how their analysesdivergefrom each other.
to
their
own
Critical
OF
criminological
take to be the
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
theories
diff er over
of the
diff erences that are the basis of social inequality. These diff erences include ideology,
class, race, gender, ethics or moral-ity,
religion
some, an infinite
or belief, social status,
variety
and for
of yet to be constructed
power, especially (both
elite group
its instrumental
power.
society, sites
multiple
Radical criminol-ogy
and structural
Marxist
versions) - challenges class power, especially
Other
dominant
such
Taylor,
Paul
radicals Tony
such
works
Marxist of the
this
social structure heterosexual from it;
critical
especially
based on it; queer theory challenges
power and the race theory
white supremacy;
criminology
challenges
homophobia
that
results
challenges
white
power,
anarchist
challenge
theory (including
and peacemak-ing
governmental
the power ofprofessionalism; constitutive
conflict
power and
and postmodernist
known and yet to be constructed
diff erences.
the structure of
diff ered
based on
by also
to
by
rooted
in
occurring
concentration
of capitalism,
dominant
of
Marxism), forces
Willem
and
symbolic
mere epiphenomenona, conflict.
power of
They
and in
wealth
by
on the
of
whether
class
sustains
or
of capitalism
whether
ap-propriation
minority to
owner-ship
that
provide
criminologists
the state is
ruling
that
the
crimogenic
wealth
Marxist
saw
point
private
a society
But
economic system
and
beginning
societies. They
vast inequalities
clas-sic
Engels
at the
social
renders
crime.
Chambliss, on the
criminologist
based
which
American
Friedrich crime
economic
class-divided
1970s, Ian
and
William
economic
in
early
drew
the
were
and
for
the
Young
Dutch that
of a deeper
over the issue
(instrumental constituent
and
believed
the
both
criminologists
Spitzer,
Marx
property,
mystify
norms.
having
control
in new
application
century
conditions
are from
a multidimensional
Quinney,
Steven
Karl
by generating the
and
varieties of chaos theory)
all bases of power and inequality
class interests
groups
deviating
as
for
Jock
of inequality
Marxist,socialist, and post-modernist)
challenges malepower and the patriarchal
and
of
dimensions
powerful to control state institutions,
especially the
Walton,
Bonger. They
consequences
police; feminism (radical,
British
theorys
class power; left realism challenges the rights of the
by
in
criminologists
as the
and
20th
an
behavioral
with struggles
as Richard
Platt,
claiming dominant
of diff erence.
critical
however,
Thus,
groups,
crime
roots
in
become
and
and symbolic
ethnicity.
a
and
diff erences
of those
saw
that
wealth,
Dominant
behavior
standards
at
dif-ferences.
Conflict theory, for example, challenges group
the
fragmented
what they
nature and relative importance
of key resources.
and
of symbolic
and
some
own
define
recognize
from
culture,
criminologists,
instrumental THEORIES
their
to
outcome
race,
that
cultural
Conflict
defining
theorists
the
mainstream
control
Sellin. dimensions,
power
over status,
religion,
argued
solution is a new barrel. In seeking to understand this
sociology
diff erences in economic
struggles morality,
reformist
each
the
Conflict
from
that
sociology
on several
groups,
for
theory
century
and Thorsten
as divided
issues.
may stem
ideology,
Coser
struggling
crime
19th
1950s
Louis
numerous
and
a conflict
late
and the
was seen
of
interests
developed
classic
Darendorf,
Here society made
Vold
the
manipu-lated
interests
their
the
who
domination
impersonal
are responsible
for it
168
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
maintenance and reproduction Instrumentalists as shaping
see the economic
the
the intensity
need to
semiautonomous
monetary
in
and
corresponding
Through its
the
powerful
of legitimating
whole capitalist
by the
and
of power and authority, as flawed. They
that
the
the state and
conflict
and
Marxist
theorists,
criti-cal
feminist criminologists, such as Carol Smart, Meda Chesney-Lind, see the
Kathleen
major division
as patriarchy. This male activities than
those
is the law
of females,
men.These
challenged
Sally
and
of the father
in
are
which
to the factory, critical
Simpson,
which conflict
and accomplishments
from the family privilege
Daly, and
around
which
more valued
societal
institu-tions,
are structured
feminist
the gender-structured
emerges in
construction
authority.
A similar
transcendent
to
position
justice. This abolitionist
been
ways minority groups
on everyone.They
systemic discrimination,
obscures racial
marginalization,
movedto oppose
prejudice, bigotry, economic
harassment, and
oppression. The
ultimate challenge is to help bring social change that reduces the harms caused by these social and institu-tional of diff erence. Indeed,
critical race theorist
inequality
Katheryn
the intersections
many, such as
Russell, now see a value of these structures
of
and diff erence based on class, race, gender,
of class,
anarchist
and eco-nomic
replacement
criminal justice
with
should be a system of restorative
ideas of
typical
of state control
In
a
polar
and
Harold Pepinsky and Richard
criminology,
and punishment.
opposition
left
to
realism
1980s by Jock Young, Brian
of the
the
idealism
of
anarchist
was a position founded
Roger
MacLean. Instead
celebrations
Matthews, John
in the
Lea, and
of what they saw as romantic
off ender
as a primitive
by some idealist
structurally
revolution-ary,
Marxist theorists on the reality
powerless street
perspectives,
which
definitions
gender, race, or sexual
criminologists
such as Larry
focus
of crime,
and
and serious-ness
between
off enders,
justice system. Left realists
Unlike critical
of the
and victimization
of
powerful, powerless
emphasizes
victims,
and the
the re-lationship criminal
want to both strengthen
and democratically control the criminal justice system of capitalist society, believing that the law can provide the structurally
powerless with real gains, if not ideal
victories.
Finally, and most recently, through Henry, Arrigo,
Dragan
Milovahovic,
the work ofStuart
Peter
Manning,
Bruce
Gregg Barak, and T.R. Young, the 1990s saw the
arrival in critical
criminology theory,
prefer-ence, of social constructionist Tiff t and
off enders. on crimes
off enders by the state, left realism
constitutive
and sexual preference. Instead
and its larger
Quinney, rather than war making and fear mongering,
identity, resulting in white and heterosexual standards
in exploring
criminol-ogy
a mutualaid system of warm,living, decentralized, face-to-face
have dif-ferent anarchists, left realists focus
has also
and how the legal system
structures
deci-sions.
of resistance to
call for total
of the existing system of state-run
argued
race and by queer theorists. They
began by observing the diff erent
being imposed
which
approaches that seeks
processes of political
Anarchists
by
of harm to the powerless created by the similarly
by critical
were treated,
in
and share their
in social interaction
through
of and
be replaced
of negotiated justice participate
of critical
both its construction
emphases.
adopted
should
to relate crime as a meaningful activity
criminologists
world but
systems
be opposed
justice that incorporates the 1980s peacemaking
inequality to prevail without obvious challenge. to
system
is an integration
maintenance of
other elements of this superstructure appear as neutral
contrast
should
of justice
all members of society
elements in the power structure, allowing capitalist In
hierarchical
domination
a decentralized
configuration,
According to Ferrell, recent anarchist
mitigated in the
As a result,
whatever their
believe that
and
existing systems
religion
and the cri-ses
the long-term
system.
Jeff Ferrell in the 1990s, see all hierarchical systems
influences
including
exploitation,
these create, are controlled
Dennis Sullivan writing initially in the late 1970s and
authority many-headed
mediating influence,
worst excesses of economic
interests
to specific
of social institutions,
and education.
Structural
a dual or
whose position is supported
mechanism
a variety
and
which the state serves a
role in relation
economic interests
as crime
strategies.
conceptualizes
power structure
Marxism).
base of society
define behavior
of enforcement
Marxist criminology
from
(structural
and topology
of postmodernist
which also incorporated
influ-enced ideas
theory, chaos theory, semiotics,
theory, into an integrated
critical theory
CRITICAL
At its simplest, constitutive theory recognizes that the social structures of inequality of the
harm that is crime,
themselves
are crimes.
generated
by human
(talk). complex their
are not only the source but that
Moreover, these inequalities agents through
Once created, these socially
systems of inequality
own expansion,
are
constructed
are self-perpetuating
and are sustained
continued
investment
constantly
elaborates the inequality.
of energy into
and Japan. take into
use of dis-coursethat
their
through
Moreover, by implicitly, if
a discourse that
socialism,
character minimized
Furthermore,
of early versions
for the
of critical
criminology
these criminologists
of the crudest
of the
determin-istic
uncooperative
wholesale rejection
and their adoption principles
conditions
portions
the implicit
the self-generated
of humans. Thus,
EVALUATION
dehumanizing
as practiced in large
world, produced.
not explicitly,
early critical theorists failed to
account the known
socialism,
in the
169
rate in some very capitalistic societies like Switzerland romanticizing
the inequalities
CRIMINOLOGY
behavior
were unpre-pared
of socialist
practice
and more exploitative
and practices of capitalism.
Most recently,
critical
and radical
have been forced to acknowledge
criminologists
that other dimensions
of social inequality
such as race, gender, and sexuality
new waysto seethe world than it has at being proven
are also important.
Yet these other versions of critical
through
criminology havealso been subject to criticism. Stanley
Critical
criminology
has fared
better
empirical research findings,
social justice.
Early formulations
at
providing
or at delivering
of critical criminol-ogy
lend themselves readily to the criticism that they either
tend
toward
left idealism
romanticism,
or to the
instrumental
Marxism
as in
anarchism
dogmatic
and
doctrinal,
or
feminism.
radical
case, they embodied
an unrealistic
conspiracy
Some critics
critical
theory.
criminologys
unremarkable,
and
as in
In
either
and untestable air of have pointed
class-based revelations
merely a restatement
Cohen
are rather Robin
Hood adage that the poor steal from the rich to survive
the
late
empirical argued
1970s,
base of that
Klockars
much
radicals
as destructively class
Carl
class
divisions
can
divided,
divisions involve interest across
class
boundaries.
the
developments
capitalist
and
societies
when in
reality,
and that
many
groups that unite people The
instrumental
Marxist
view has beencriticized by outsiders and insiders alike for obscuring the diversity and conflict
turn
as
such as stable conservative
growing
awareness
ecology
of the relevance
movements, and the
Left realism contradictions
a reflection
and the
governments,
of feminism
collapse
for its central
between the call for increased
a minimalist
crime, and their
state, subject to
and
of state social-ism.
has been challenged
of the state to control
off crimes
weak
Marxist criminology
be beneficial,
reformist
powers
preferences for
public scrutiny
and ac-countability.
It has been questioned for taking the spot-light
attacked
misrepresent
realisms
tempering of their ideas in response to broader social
but also, like the rich, they steal for greed. In
left
of both the aging of radical criminologists
out that
of the old
sees
of the economically
the state, especially damning like
criticism
those
powerful
of corporations.
comes from feminist
outside
The
most
scholars
who,
Phil Scraton, have argued that the construction
the realism
or idealism
of
debate has been diversionary,
regressive, and purposefully
misrepresentative of the
advances within critical feminist criminology since the mid-1970s.
Feminists
criminology
within both
claim
that
left
realism,
like
radi-cal
generally, has remained gender blind
the state and corporate elites. Critics point out that
and assuch remains part of the male stream ignoring
not all law is designed to protect ruling capitalist
activism,
interests
but is intended
of capitalism.
Like left
to
protect the overall system
realists
such as Jock
Klockars later asserted that the state actually of oppressed
peoples rights
sham or a mystification. theorists
of ignoring
crime in socialist
class
as genuine,
empow-ers
their
not as a
these stems from
facts, such as
societies and the apparent low
crime
and theory
However, feminist
Young,
Klockars accused early critical
the contradictory
research,
drawn
from
womens
experiences.
central
own
inherent
organizing
of essentialism,
criminologist weaknesses.
the
least
have of
the very
notion that
gender is the
theme,
which some
have accused
exclusionism,
spite of recognizing
positions Not
and implicit
the socially constructed
racism.
In
nature o
170
CRIME
AND
femininity
there is a failure to refer-ence that these theorists are criticizing? The
and sexuality,
the
different cultural
patterns, criminal
BEHAVIOR
and
experiences
experience, socialization in
the labor
market and
justice system of black women.This
does not
humans locked in their local struggles will become aware that their specific issues are merely a facet of the underlying
problem
deny a gender analysis but requires that gender include
the problems
sensitivity
to
the paradox is that
sensitivity
would also need to overcome the simplistic
black and
white distinction
racial
Different cultural women, women
Asian with
ethnic
within a gender
American
disabilities,
Indian
would
analysis.
also
women,
benefit
from
identification
and
especially its
chaos theory,
questioning
concepts,
and especially through
theory,
of traditional
CA:
and
Barak,
challenge. Postmodern
by which to judge
outcomes
has faced considerable
criticism
years from
more traditional
but
from
rivals,
within
that
has
Henry,
theorists
mostimportant
that applies its critique to any criteria
while simultaneously and local features how do critical
recognizing
of any specific
criminologists
Readings in
while using diff erence to distinguish
M.J.,
Milovanovic,
Radical
diff erence, from
the necessary broader changesthat critical theories of invested
in reproducing
Criminology:
majority is
the very system
Vancouver:
Crossroads: NY:
Criminology:
UK: Sage, 1996. Groves,
W.B.,The
Critical
Willow
New
Perspectives
on
Tree Press, 2000.
and
Littlefield,
Milovanovic,
D.(Ed.)
New
NY:
Reiman,
York,
J., The
Ideology,
Rich
Crime
Allyn and Russell,
K.K.,
New York Young, J. and Realist
Press,
and
Crime.
Critically
1997.
Lanham,
MD:
1993.
Milovanovic,
Criminology.
D.(Eds.) Thinking
Collective
Masculinities
D.S. and
Classin
is the implementation in practical terms of their theo-retical
substantially
London, R.J., and
Milovanovic,
J.,
Rowman
Martin,
Moreover,
challenge. How doesone realistically bring about
Crime.
Messerschmidt,
the mainstream?Finally, perhapsthe ultimate challenge
crime imply in a society where by far the
Allyn
New York,
D., Constitutive
Michalowski,
in
about
position
themselves
at the
Crime and Justice.
Crime, Power and Identity.
the unique historical
problematize
MA:
most
over others,
diff erences.
Boston,
1998.
Primer
of diff erence that
is used by one group to privilege themselves
Maturation
Deviance. Belmont,
1999.
Criminologies,
Beyond Postmodernism.
challenge facing criti-cal
is how to develop a transcendent
Justice: The
Law, Crime and
Maher, L., Criminology
MacLean, B. D.and
devastating. The
READING
1998.
S. and
Lynch,
over the
the
in
D. and
Oxford,
more recently, been
Bacon,
Feminist
contributions
criminology
criticism
requires the very
FURTHER
West/Wadsworth,
Kathleen,
constitutive
and eff ects. Critical
Theory
G., Integrating
and
criminological the
AND
B.A., Social Justice/Criminal
ofCritical
prose, and for claiming that there are no absolute stan-dards
the
Of course,
with others humanity that is undermined
of post-modernism
have been criticized for their obscurelanguage, difficult
is
such a revelation
REFERENCES
more recent
topology
increased
it
form.
such
catastrophe theory, its influence is being felt in the
criminological
unless this is addressed
by a system based on diff erence and division.
Arrigo,
it is early to evaluate the impact
into
Such a
analysis.
on criminology, adventures
diff erences.
and that
will emerge in another
experiences, such as those of Latino
women,
a broadened feminist Though
and
hope is that
D. (Eds.)
New York,
Get
and
Gender
and
NY: Garland, 1996.
Chaos, Criminology Greenwood,
Race,
and Social Justice.
1997.
Richer
and the
Criminal
Poor
Justice.
Get
Boston,
Prison:
MA:
Bacon, 1998. The
Color
University Matthews,
Debate. London,
of
Crime.
Press,
New
York,
NY:
1998.
R., Rethinking UK: Sage
Criminology.
The
RADICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
Michael J. Lynch and
C
riminology all critical
of critical
textbooks theories
explanations
tend to lump
critical
were the same.This of crime.
theories
of crime together,
results in a superficial
To avoid this
Stretesk
examination
problem, this essay examines one
form of critical perspective, radical criminology (on other forms see Arrigo 1995; Ferrell and Sanders 1995;
Henry and
Milovanovic 1996;
Milovanovic 1994,
1995; DeKeseredy and Schwartz 1996; Schwartz and Friedrichs 1994). Radical criminology
examines how forms
of inequality,
oppression, and
conflict affect crime and law. Consequently, radicals areinterested in how struc-tural inequalities (1)
evident
participation
enforcement
of laws.
the social, economic, given society
To
(2)
answer
at a particular
general rules
in practice, radical
preference into
issues,
radicals
structures
moment in
and (3) the examine
and forms
and
of crime vary depending
which they are applied.
of inequality
relative
to
found in a
Groves 1995).
As a
primarily
of radical criminology,
historical
on modern
era
and cultural
U.S. society.
of inequalityrace,
has an impact
who holds power
even
upon the historical
Taking this
American society, three forms
out. Each form
crime
to history and culture. Thus,
are useful for describing the content
course, the nature of power, and
aff ect
making and
of inequality
history (Lynch
pay close attention
account, this essay focuses
In contemporary genderstand
these
explanations
and cultural system to
class, race, and gender structures
how crime is defined,
and political
result, radical explanations though
in a societys
in crime,
class, and
on an individuals
within society. These
life
forms
of
inequality and their impact on crime are examined below. Whenradicals speak about race, class and gender, they usethese terms dif-ferently than traditional criminologists. and gender tend to beinterpreted
For traditional
radicals, race, class, and gender are both identities race, class, and gender contain
criminologists, race, class,
as characteristics of individuals, and are used
to identify subjects of study asmiddle-class, African culturally
American, or female.
and structures.
and historically
within society, and (3) the opportunities typically
possess. Asidentities,
specific rules
concerning
the behavior
for success people from
For
As structures, that
(1) the types of power groups possess, (2) a groups social and economic
define
positions
these groups
race, class, and gender tell us about social expecta-tions of people from
diff erent groups and the
Paul
asif
ways in
171
B.
172
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
which people act to construct themselves (their identi-ties). society,the greater a problem crime becomes.Inequality For example,middle-class U.S. social structure, power
defines alocation in
which in turn
persons can access and
defines the types of
wield, their
opportuni-ties
or pathways to success, and the forms conditions
which they control
But, being middle-class and
we expect
in particular what they attend.
of oppressive
or which control
them.
middle-class
people by
American (or
white or
male) aff ects a persons access expectations
and responses. In short, a persons structural
location
carries
diff
erent
position
forms
of
access
and
success
will engage in crime or will be
as criminals.
defined positions
of inequality background view
in
U.S. society.
issues
gender,
discussion
power,
the radical
view
crime, and environmental this to
essay examines
this
the nature
Next, we examine
of the relationship
economic
examine
examine
necessary to understand
of crime. This
examination
wefirst
some
the radi-cal
is followed
by an
between
class, race,
and inequality.
We then
on street
crime,
justice. The
final
corporate section
some policy implications
their
opportunities
for
Radicals focus
to explain
on
patterns
who occupy these structurally
have similar
sets of opportunities
behave or are treated in similar
and
ways or both. Evidence
of how race, class, and gender
structure
success and
crime is examined later in this essay.
Crime
There
are
and
Inequality:
ways to
on
crime.
argue
chances
for
crime
that
An
Overview
(or
Studies
point.
coercive
form
to focus for
A few
of social
is
more likely
indicate
society and
and
are lower-class
in
engage in
and labeled illustrate
law, the
can render, minorities.
lower-class
prisons
and
to (1)
examples
classes
most tends
Policing, and
primarily
minorities.
of crime,
access to life
criminal
control
concentrated
street
defined
brief
that
influence
to
equal
behaviors
both).
communities, who
will be
on the lower
instance,
the
respect
denied
have their
as criminal
examine
With those
success
or (2)
this
of
related
two
inequality
such
as vagrancy
the
working
Harring RACE,
STRATIFICATION
AND AND
GENDER:
ECONOMIC
SOCIAL
served
INEQUALITY
and
and
similar
functions,
minor-ity
house
people
Historically,
by a conflict
between the haves
and Engels 1995, 1970). The
these conflicts relative
vary historically
nature
of
this
claim,
character-ized
and have-nots nature and form
and culturally. radicals
view
Inequality also
helps
issues
of
Despite conflict
crimes
neglecting
power
a lopsided distribution
of power.The
(Friedrichs
more unequal a
the forms of the
crimes
here.
1998). and
1996;
Simon
of inequality,
organization
helps
of
on acquiring
have
our
obtain In
power
classes of the
short,
society
while power-ful
emphasis
why people even
and conflict
American
Two
and
cultures
explain
power
powerful.
inequality
behavior
1999).
power,
laws
on control-ling
on the lower
harmful
means to
1964;
and the lower
of the
First,
Second,
wealth
control
2000).
the
equally
use illegal
focusing
emphasis
why law focuses the
(Reiman on power
1996,
to
drug
minorities
the
explain
help explain
and inequality asthe basis of mostcrime. Asa result, it
For radicals, unequal societies are characterized by
1991, and
enacted
(Chambliss
history,
used by
are important
follows that the best wayto reduce crime is to eliminate social, economic, and political inequality.
were
classes
typically
commonly
class (Brownstein
are based on unequal social relationships
loitering
lower
1983). Throughout
drugs
Radical analysis stems from the observation that societ-ies
the
success,
view.
CLASS,
(Marx
for
many people occupy
are also similar.
of crime because people
radicals
view,
Because
locations,
failure)
chances
of a persons structural
help
explain the probability that peoplelocated in diff erent
To explain this
life
race, class, and gender inequality
behavioral expectations. For radicals, these differences
labeled
to
erent
are evidence of inequality, and these inequalities structural locations
access
within society.
(or
being African
diff
more)
behave
to power and success and our behavioral
it
(or
for individuals living
meansthat some people will
success is a function
also defines behavioral
or female (or
with
less
middle-class
ways. Weidentify
Similarly,
have
and that
structural
people to
implications
within asociety. Inequality
expec-tations,similar
wear, where they live, and the schools they
Hispanic)
also hasimportant
more for that
with power
radicals, are part
can be used t
RADICAL
explain the crime of the lower classes(and
Law is an important
minorities
and women) as well asthe crimes of the upper classes.
conflicts
between
property Class
Inequality
and
Crime:
these
criminologists In
examining
crime,
the
early radicals
views
on
Marxs
on class
overview
in societya
all of this
have-nots.
societies. There,
control
that
forms
position
most
workers capital,
ability
capitalists
economic
power
this
into
occurs
contributions
the
ability
political
through
the labor to
crime
activities
such
to
that
Messerschmidt
protect,
establishing
and that
circumstances
demonstrated
to
inequality
to
keep
workers
wages, and in capitalists
capitalists
interests
general,
disadvantage
capitalists
are relatively
wages to
are
workers. powerful,
and
directly
element
around
that
advantage
Further, workers
in-creasing
of
of the
having
little
economic
processes.
workers
have struggled
power
and
wealth,
opportunities, and
health
relied
to achieve fail
these
or are closed
to legitimate
obtain
demanding
and
on strikes,
to
retirement
Sometimes,
off , they turn
and
means to success (Quinney
1996).
1993, 1997; Schwartz
Today, a radical
the important
Milovanovic
view that
eff ect each of these inadequate
1996; Lynch,
(see
Michalowski,
radical
radical
additions, theories
view
class remains of
crime.
of class is
an important
Further
presented
discussion
in
the
next
section.
RADICAL
ECONOMIC
MODEL
history, of societys
conditions, Workers
have
work stoppages
when these
to crime
in
and
employment
working
benefits.
work slowdowns, goals.
share
expanded
wages, better
of inequality
whereas
throughout their
dimensions
are relatively
over law-making
Nevertheless,
higher care
influence
by radicals (e.g.,
2000).
THE
powerless,
focus
have since incorpo-rated
has on crime is considered
Groves
were
on class and
unidimensional
Messerschmidt
Despite these
a minimum.
activities
(e.g.,
Schwartz and
wasin the capital-ists
revolve
early
of crime, especially racial and gender
Milovanovic
structures
is
profit-making.
profits
wages, and that it
best interests contrast,
to
view,
But radicals
focus
1986), and they
fails to acknowledge
set of
interest
this
powerful.
1980). This
their explanations so-cieties
as campaign
primary
conducive
that
workers
their
position.
on crime, and for focusing at-tention
other important
their
have a particular
and
distinct
the social, eco-nomic,
privileged
Employing
of the
(see Inciardi
and
capitalists
a
of society that serves
on class has, however, been addressed
from
modern
have
protecting
organization
criminology.
on crimes
of workers.
In
of capitalists
laws,
also criticized for their singular
need
translate
power.
radical
and
results
of all people
called consensus theory.
criminal
of class and inequality
of accumulating power
widely
radicals wereacknowledged for highlighting the effects
and lobbying.
Marx argued
related
economic
possess
own
and capital,
objectives
and exploit
in
capitalist
who
Traditional
reflect
As noted, this class view of crime and law is unique to
the opposition
Capitalists,
out their
also
around
laws
best interests
even
as the basis of the powerfuls
and
interested out in
of production
to control
Capitalists
of the haves
played
revolve
workers.
carry
and
interests
conflicts
machinery
to
laws,
advantage for the powerful,
is
was the history
was particularly
conflicts and
the
opposition
Marx
how these
of capitalists
of all societies
or the
But
examining
view commonly
and political history
history.
these
the defin-ing
working condi-tions
represent the interests
not always) favor the
crimi-nology,
other
that
laws
In contrast, radicals suggest that laws generally (though
emphasis
of radical
it from
wage levels, and
argue
shared values that
and
basing their
The
characteristic
A brief
Marx, the
In
class,
of capitalism.
distinguished
of class conflict,
Marx
inequality
below.
For
their
on social
analysis
criminology.
presented
between
focused
was a defining which
of
relationship
Numerous
have been passed throughout
Background
173
method of mediating classes.
rights,
CRIMINOLOGY
avenues
as an alternative 1980).
For radicals,
classes are defined
to a societys
economic system or
The
contemporary
capitalism
and is a blend of
sector production. shifted
American
from
mode of production.
economy
is
manufacturing
based
on
and service
mid-1970s, the U.S. economy
a highly concentrated
capitalism one example
In the
by how people relate
form
to service capitalism.
of a mode of production.
of
manufac-turing
Capitalism
is
Other example
174
CRIME
include
AND
BEHAVIOR
socialism,
communism,
and feudalism,
to
CLASS,
name
Each to
mode of production
production,
located
in
or
this
distinction practice,
and social
of conflicts
capitalism,
the
that
communist also
though
nations
have
determine
the
will emerge in society.
most important
conflicts
of the productive
means of production)
Radicals employ device.
power (theoretically,
Class divisions
the owners (capitalists) called the
People
more than two classes (Wright large companies, (2)
on
mass-production
to clerical to
and fast-food
has
which can
or owners of
construction
(6) groups that or the surplus populations
workers
marginalized
consist
of the
homeless,
and
2 percent;
are
criminals
In
distributed
the middle
partially
class
(whom
Marx
U.S. society, these
as follows:
capitalists,
(two,
and four),
three,
15 percent; workers, 65 percent; surplus population, 18 percent (Perlow 1988). because
it affects peoples accessto power. Researchhasshown that
being born into
impacts
a particular class significantly
a persons life chances for success and,
often than
not,
people remain
which they
are born (Frank
Americans
dont
relationship income
the review
or
define
To
make
way most Americans information
on
but rather our
think
wealth
and
discussion
as far
of a persons
relevant
to
we next
Other
of inequality.
In owns
39
In the
Faced
with
land
the
that
hand
opportunity,
Evidence
market
Edward that
Wolff (1995) 1983
holders
marketable
of the
well:
in
the
middle-income show
of wealth
and families
1988)
the
top
total 80
gain
percent trend
1992
number
of
same
savings
(Wolff
million-aires time
United
and
that
declined
1995,1995b). lines
of
in the following
at the
class
percent
(58). This to
have
Economist data show
20
of the
1989
(Wolff of
time,
wealthy did.
bottom
the
for
over
federal
is revealed
and classes in the
years (Perlow
the
retirement
a hardening
America,
invisible
1 percent
States,
in
inequality.
the
increased
that
once
between
United
1 percent
reduced
that
while only
France Sweden
workthe
percent
inequality
billionaires
home-ownership
fifty
got
Increasing
and
data
wealth,
more exaggerated
1995). as
99
in
have improved
today,
1989
of the
in
structure
they
noted and
received
population
was
otherwise:
poor less than
between
in
hard
in
1995).
argue
and
rich
picture
richest
(Wolff
systemshave
indicates
more and the
as the
a similar
wealth;
social
the
20 percent
25 percent;
the
It
In Japan, five; in
of the
things
competition
of
world.
1 percent
people
data
Development
poor
States, the
facts,
of
the
richest
wealth
by to
These
in
paint
is about
United
bottom
owned
most lopsided
Germany,
the
the
of the these
of
at
from
the
compared
nine (U.N.
18 percent
percent
wealth
of crime.
in
measures
figure
of
words, the richest
Britain,
Canada, this
owns
and
examine
has the
rates
is
other
removed
nations.
population
ratio
In
to
nation
is four;
States, this
are twice
Most
with respect to
about class, income.
more
class into
Cook 1995).
class in terms
to production, wealth.
part of the and
of inequality
is
population.
States
highest
one
1993).
and
of the
United
of the
other
the capital
holdings
population
has
wealth
For radicals, class membershipis important
the
ratio
of the
advanced
em-ployed, those work-ers,
property
of any
United
(stored-up
assess inequality
20 percent
Program
the
and
system
ratio
production, Surplus
savings
and inequal-ity
when examining
wealth
of wealththe
that
16 percent.
and
emerges
nations
20 percent
workers),
as well as migrant
career
also this
stratification
and income.
concentration
class
States our
way to
and
populations.
called the lumpenproletariat). populations
to
assets)
One
workers),
(laborers)
unemployed,
and underemployed the
(service
have no relationship or
who work
(manufacturing
or unskilled
or
such as doctors,
employees
other
indicate
workers, from those
lines
by
poorest
1978),
(4) professionals,
represented
the
managers of large businesses,
or teachers, (5)
of
forces (also
two and three comprise the petty-bourgeois small capitalists),
U.S. SOCIETY
of social
United
richest
(3) self-employed owners of small businesses(catego-ries
lawyers,
the
distribution
the
however,
(1) capitalists
in
evidence
are between
model as a heuristic
U.S. society,
be defined as follows:
Under
and workers.
a two-class
Contemporary
Decisive
degrees
does not apply to communism,
self-proclaimed
been class societies).
kinds
a class system.
classes possess diff erent
political,
IN
entails specific relations
more simply,
diff erent
of economic,
in
WEALTH, AND INCOME:
INEQUALITY
a few.
for Other
a polarization
States over the
past
Income
Inequality
Inequality
and
the
Shift
income. took
is also evident in the unequal distribution In 1994, the top 20 percent of income
home
about
20 percent
half
of
received
all income,
only
while
Bureau 1999). The super
richthe
top
Census
5 percenttook
home nearly 22 percent of all income. This of income
inequality
we consult evidence
income
income
saw
their
of
accelerated
occurred
and
Skolnick
decline
4.0 percent to 3.6 percent (19671999).
path of inequality
income for the top 1 percent morethan doubled
in the
by economic
to
United States
transformations
States began to shift
from
a
manufacturing
a decline in
high-wage
manufacturing
employment
asthese jobs
of rewards levels
associated
with
service sector and
with white-collar among
decreases in leisure
and
1995;
Wilson
work; high
minorities residing
areas; and Cook
to nations
declines in the quality and quan-tity
of unemployment
Frank
caused
or blue-collar
were shifted
wage rates; a rise in low-wage,
menial employment;
that
mid-1970s, the
a nutshell, this shift
In con-trast, urban
time
(Schor
in
1995;
1997).
To this point, we havereviewed inequality asit re-lates
during atime when medianincome wasrelatively stable and the cost of living doubled (19791989)
Manufacturing
over the past 25 years. In the
United
20 percent
income
a
Economy
to a service economy. In
has wid-ened lower
inequality
share
if
and available
In recent years, the lowest
earners
picture
more exaggerated of time,
past 50 years (Currie
1984,100107).
from
period
suggests that
over the
of
becomes
a broader
The
can be explained
bottom
3.6 percent (U.S.
175
of
earners
the
CRIMINOLOGY
from
a Service
Inequality
RADICAL
(Frank
to
income,
wealth,
and
social
class.
In
the
United
and Cook 1995, 5). Contrary to capitalist ideology,
States,inequality is also a function of gender, race, and
these facts indicate little
hope for the vast majority of
ethnicity.
people
classand
within the lower
middle classto
improve
Wealth and income,
in
their other
increasingly,
economic
the
conditions.
words, trickle
down, and
many of the wealthy are so well off that they
are referred
to as the super
top-out-of-sight
(Fussell
Increasing
inequality
rich
(Perlow
despite
1988) or the
question
the idea
Cook (1995)
harder and longer,
U.S.
workers are worse off today than 30 years ago, working longer
hours for
reduced
(Frank
and
wages, accumulating
Cook 1995;
more
Schor
1995).
In short,
the rich are getting muchricher, while most ofthe rest
despite
eliminated
Many object to this depiction of American society, citing evidence of people they know success
whomade it.
big picture, however, suggests that these kinds of stories
are
rare.
National
statistics
indicate
that
seen their
economic
Steele 1992;
Frank
were decades earlier, or have
circumstances and
Cook
and 1990s accelerated a growing that
has characterized
the past 50 years.
the
decline
1995).
(Barlett
In sum, the
and 1980s
pattern of inequality
American class system over
claims
men, and this remains true
that
discrimination
affirmative
has
1994; Lynch 1996; Lynch and Patterson 1996).
Recent
reviews of income
data have generated
concerning for example, that incomes
have
face,
this
against
action
Carnoy
gender income
increased
relative
statement
transformation
has
incomes.
not
because
decline in
relative to the shift to a menfrom
white-collar had
On
because mens
1995, 207).The
which displaced
who have traditionally
mens
more, but rather
jobs and high-paying
noting,
years womens
But it is true
mens wages can be explained
This
disparity,
to
is true.
wages have declined (Amott
service economy,
misleading con-clusions
over the past fifteen
women are being paid
many more people failed to achieve economic success, are in the same place they
gender dimen-sion.
women (see
its
of us are working harder and losing ground.
The
INEQUALITY
has an important
and political power than today
personal debt, and having less in savings and retirement benefits
ECONOMIC
Historically, women haveless accessto economic
calls into
working
AND
Economic inequality
1997).
that hard work gets you ahead. Frank and argue that
GENDER
up, not
little
eff ect
manufac-turing
employment. on
women,
been employed in low-wage
service sector jobs (Figart and Lapidus 1996, 1998). On average, women earn only 73 percent as much as men(U.S. disparity
Census Bureau 1999). This
is evident
across all forms
gender wage
of employment
176
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
and even womenin high-status positions (physicians,
financial independence and revitalize their communi-ties (Massey and Denton 1993).
lawyers, and accountants) earn significantly less than men in those fields (Ruth 1998).
Occupational
numerous
1995;
and income
adverse impacts
Figart and
gender inequality
on women, which
number
to gender inequality
Kozol
1995;Sklar
segregation
segregated
over the
economic
AND
RACISM
ECONOMIC
AND
crime policy
INEQUALITY:
which
has
in
must include
result
conditions,
minority
com-munities
Any sensible
means of dismantling and
of to
African-American
white communities.
the economic basein
more
contributed
that crime is higher in
discrimination
INEQUALITY
become
Given these poor economic
in
of
States shows that have
circumstances
than ETHNICITY,
analysis
30 years as the
racism,
it is no surprise
RACE,
United
past
Movement.
(1993)
communities
communities.
1995).
Dentons
in the
institutionalized
poor
of poverty (Messerschmidt
1995;Rotella
racial
and segrega-tion
since the Civil Rights
Massey and
is the in-creasing
households that are at or below the poverty level, a pro-cess
1986;
However,
African-American
of women who live in female-headed
called the feminization
assumed that racism
have diminished
has
may help
explain the increase in female crime over the past two decades. Contributing
It is commonly
Lapidus
insti-tutional
methods for revitalizing
minority communities.
In the United States,economic inequality hasimportant racial and ethnic
dimensions.
For example, although
women are disadvantaged relative to are equally
disadvantaged;
greater economic
are morelikely than part of the lower crime
or
To
to
be
and
Hispanics
lower
as
to
or be
to turn to
African-Americans
median family
incomes
(U.S.
Bureau
In
whites was
and
one-third
Further,
the
unemployment rate for black malesis morethan twice menare usually paid less
tor the same work, or are morelikely to berestricted to wage, poorly paid service sector jobs (Carnoy
hazardous
result
racism
has
African-Americans. meant
not only hold lower-paying segregated (Massey ensures
from
that
economic
1994, 1529).
and
African
structures
that
jobs Denton
Americans
that
force In the
that United
African-Americans
remain
Lynch
factors
would promote
their
and
and
1992b;
to
more likely
neighborhoods,
be victims that
these
general
enhanced
section
We will
such
Associated
have
hazardous
discuss
these
as
near polluting
Knox
induced 1996,
1997;
1994,
Stretesky
poor
crime.
and
persons
are
It is important
class-linked for
have less
(e.g.,
to
not least,
difficult
granted,
environmentally
of violent
How are the inequalities crime?
for
poor
DiMaggio
also
to live
Gilman
but
racial
the it
1982;
1995;
Knox and And last
are negatively
classes,
people
take
(Oilman
and
making
(DiMaggio
and to suff er from
1999).
upper
and the Internet
are
these
but rather
class
education,
affluent
that
people
eco-nomic
liabilities.
Lower-income the
and
the
remember
certain
poverty
1985).
problems
more likely
Segregation detached
quality
pollution
descend
a particular
middle
computers,
industries,
to
inad-equate
care, problems
to
we
of poor
with it
to
of lifeevident
health
as
within
things
to remember
but are also spatially 1993).
access
1998)
1992a,
States,
Bottom
difficulties,
proximity
qualities
waste sites in their
on blacks than
structural
in
to escape
access to
impact
whites (Carnoy
or living
to the
telephones, Press
access to
carries
Mohr
health
negatively impacts
working classes lost
have less
for them
over the past 20 years, these losses had a greater
powerful
the
quality
limited
living
Compared
Eventhough the
a
at
health
It is important
that
and
the
mental
are not
from
ground
is
Being
wastedeclines
context
1994).
Racism
show that
of self-esteem,
Hispanic
were about 1999).
middle and
of
illness,
housing,
indicators
disadvantaged.
while black ($25,400)
Employed African-American
of
ladder.
whites,
that for white males(U.S. Department of Labor 1996).
minimum
levels
why minorities
median family income for
Census
Disadvantages
Many indicators in
criminals.
are economically
$42,000,
($28,330)
helps explain
whites to havelower incomes,
relative
1998, for instance, nearly
women suff er
white women.The
classes, and are morelikely
be labeled
sure,
minority
disadvantages than
eff ect of race and ethnicity
The
men, not all wom-en
life-chance
minorities.
reviewed
above
explanations
in
related the
to next
RADICAL
THE
CAUSES
OF
CRIME:
A
RADICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
simple result of aberrant individual
VIEW
177
behavior; rather, it
is caused by structural circumstances, indicating that Crime
and
Social
the behavior
Structure
of individuals
kinds of societies in Radical
criminologists
within
societys
structural the
The
economic
idea
society
deserves other
that
knowing
the
systems
kinds
of laws
are in not
that and
but is also shaped which
the
law
claim
of crime
it
2000).
In
systems
society.
as
enforcing In this
of factors
that
of law
above,
and
well as the law
view,
which they live (Mills
address the
radicals
have
crime in capitalist
England,
Canada, and
criminologists As a result, inequalities
and
or come from
focus
studies of crime by Friedrich
on
States,
most radical
these countries. how the
characterized
capital-ism
wasinherited Engels (Marxs
who was himself a capitalist) Willem Bonger.
set
eff orts
societies (United
and processes that
criminologist
1959).
analyses of crime explore
produce crime. This
by the
hypothesis their
Australia),
work in radical
broader
concentrated
explaining
coauthor,
found
class, racial,
for
it
requires
society,
out
kinds
of crime crime
in that
by the forms
is
the
stratification
of economic,
result
to and
the
explaining
in that
the
society social
of
is organized,
mechanisms
operation
simply
one the
Groves
and amounts
operate
crime
a variety
amount
and
gender
kinds
of
gives rise to
way a society
kinds
with
and
society. Thus,
about
gender
type
and
from
varies
Michalowski
shapes the
within
is
gets the
racial,
causes contain
vary
crime
of a society
words, the
contains,
that
which
(Lynch,
of economic,
the
Societies
that
features
a
the
structure.
inequalities,
next.
that
locate
Rather than
is greatly influenced
from
the
friend
and
and the
Dutch
We briefly review
their
work below, updating their view where necessary. This review is cursory and omits
manysubsequent studies
by radical criminologists.
crime
cause
crime,
and the
ways in
FRIEDRICH
ENGELS
enforced.
In 1845, Engels published Macro
versus
Micro
a study of the English
class, which included
Explanations
work-ing
his observations on crime.
Whatfollows is a description of Engels observations Typically,
traditional
theories
of crime
employ
a micro-level
and some background information sense
perspective crime. to
In
contrast,
examine
level
preference
argue
that
it is
society
without
radical
analyses
and
very
why individuals employ
criminal in
for
macro-level to
examining of crime
for
the level
rates in the
the
see
with
States
(Lynch, Lynch,
one
that
class survives
labor
in and have
Groves,
sells.The lowest
maximize
profits.
the
Inequality,
and
costs
capitalists
Crime
labors.
purchase labor
The
because ap-plied class
class wants to purchase labor
at the
Historically,
waslabor-saving
the
work-ing
the capitalist
and
most important
manufacturing Structure,
that
produces the products
capitalist
reducing
Connecting
one
by selling its labor to the capitalist need to
Machinery intensifies
Groves 2000).
and
possible price, and it suppresses labor
writing, labor
Michalowski,
owns
class. Capitalists
radicals of crime
United
classes:
social,
behaviors,
predictions review,
to its
explanations,
individuals
accurate
how
Consistent
predict
make
As noted, capitalist society contains two primary
models
and
relates
structures.
possible
1994;
off ending
needed to
observations.
commit
macro-level
a society
economic
their
Lizotte
of
found
and
produced
examine radicals
rates
of crime
cultural,
and
to
of those
number
labor, of
when Engels
was
means of suppressing technologymachinery. making it workers
process. Technological
by lowering
costs to
more efficient,
required
in
the
advances benefit
the cost of doing business. In
contrast, technological advances negatively impact the Radicals extensive and than
hypothesize networks
gender)
that
of economic
inequality
more equal
societies
societies.
characterized
(class)
will have higher For radicals,
crime
working class. First, these advances decreasethe num-ber
(race
of jobs as machinelabor replaces human laborers,
of crime
generating an unemployed population that wereferred
and social levels
by
is not the
to
earlier as the surplus
or
marginal population
178
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
the
Second,
generation
increases competition contributes
for
a modern example, see OConnor 1985).The result
available jobs,
which also
is a population that does not consider how their ac-tions
wages, Engels (1973,
argued that job loss and
declining
understandable
and even employed to supplement
crime is a rational
legitimate
Richard
to
Quinney (1979,
for
words, produce egoistic people, and Bonger argued that egoism
Left
(1975)
people
suggested
that
in social
came to characterize
and that
marginalize whole groups of
people is unique in the history of economic systems,
Under
systems,
competition
is
viewed as a positive force that improves generates innovations, Engels argued,
neglected
a reduction
working-class
capitalists
number
224;
short,
that
of jobs.
result
1973,
209)
from
Competition
Consequently,
over resources
201202,
wages, and the erosion
to violate the law to
more cheaply.
(1964,
an increase in the surplus
in
solidarity
for a limited
of
competing also caused
as a cause of crime the
middle
Engels demonstrated
by the
businessman classes
(1981,
how capitalism
masses (1964,
namely, that
or working classes,
acts are not treated
as crimes
criminologists focus on
by the lower classes,radicals
by businesses and corporations that escape legal or which are defined as harms and regulatory by agencies, such Commission
and the
which
quality
polices
and safety
pollution
1999;
Michalowski, crimes
Administration
and
drugs; and the which regu-lates
laws, among
Friedrichs and
Food
which regulates
Agency (EPA),
1992;
Exchange
transactions;
safety; the
(FDA),
and environmental
Lynch, these
Health
of foods
by adminis-trative are enforced
and
stock
workplace
Protection
(see Frank and Lynch
examine
Securities
Administration
Environmental
laws
oversees
Safety and
which
Drug
laws. These
as the
(SEC)
(OSHA),
produce commodities
Engels viewed competi-tion
168173),
and the
view,
an idea that
have concentrated on equally serious acts commit-ted
the Occupational negative con-sequences,
competitions
which include: population,
products,
to the lower
street crimes committed
gener-ally
and decreases prices. This
criminology,
Even though traditional
controls,
capitalist
explains
are processed by the
upper-class individuals.
radical
many harmful
hav-ing
becausethe people who committed them are power-ful.
capitalism is seen as responsible for the resulting levels behavior.
acts without
Engels emphasized
crime is not confined
among
as criminal. This
individuals
Bonger and
Although
political strength
exploitive
justice system than
Both
enhances the probability of criminal behavior. Because
criminal
all classes.
was evenly distributed
those acts treated/labeled why morelower-class criminal
attachments and a reduced stake in conformity that
of
among
enabled them to perform
with no
marginalized
suff er a reduction
capitalisms tendency to
generates crime
Bonger believed egoism
1980)
of inequitable
capitalism.
Spitzer
populations
of
example, argued that
for survival,
crime.
marginalized
writings
response to systems
alternatives
societies, in other
all classes, he noted that the powerfuls
that characterize
may turn
turn to crime
appears in contemporary
David Gordon (1971),
distribution
why marginalized
their incomes.
theme
might harm others. Capitalism
173)
wages can explain
terms)
workers increasingly
radical criminologists. and
population
to a decline in
(in rationally
This
of a surplus
1996;
others Simon
Groves 2000).
We
below.
49). In
gener-ates CORPORATE
crime. In capitalist systems, crimes are typically
CRIME
committed to survive and enhance profit and are the by-product of intense competition and individualism.
In 1992, the Justice Department estimated that street crime costs approximately sum pales in comparison
WILLEM
BONGER
in
dividual
billion; Bonger (1916), like competitive that
capitalist
Engels, argued that
spirit
in-tense
produces crime. Bonger argued
systems socialize
as individuals
capitalisms
and to look
estimates
themselves
(for
governmental of lost
damage to
people to view them-selves billion. out for
corporate
work
buildings
$18 billion. This
to the costs of the following
crimes:
business frauds$400
frauds$164 time
billion;
due to illness,
associated
Recently, Reiman (1998)
costs of corporate
substantial
and EPA
diseases,
and
with pollution$23 estimated
crime at $1 trillion,
the total
nearly 60 time
RADICAL
the
cost
of
all
street
crimes
committed
in
the
CRIMINOLOGY
179
dismantled safety equipment designed to prevent the
United
leak of deadly gases at its production facility.
States!
Monetarily, it is clear that society
much
more than street
crimes are also and injuries the
corporate
and
Lynch
1992).
workplace injures
(Lynch,
Michalowski,
surgeries
and inadequate
and
10,000
greater
of a violent
Groves 2000).
crime
Unnecessary
(Reiman
1998,
been prevented if corporations 100,000
that
leak occurred
at that
as many as 200,000 1988).
plant, killing
1990s during testimony that to their
Nalla, and
executives
Miller
have keep secret
since 1955, and in the early
before
Congress, they argued
knowledge tobacco
1996). The
A gas
2,500 and injuring
people (Lynch,
Tobacco company
evidence of tobaccos toxicity
pharmaceutical
wassafe (Glantz
firm
Wyeth-Ayerst
et al. was one
of two companies to produce and sell FEN/PHEN, diet drug, even though indicated
pre-ventable
could
had followed
as
7880).
people die each year from
workplace accidents (injuries
while another
For example,
medical care cause twice
many deaths as homicides Approximately
deaths
are 11 times
than the odds of being the victim
costs
But corporate
more violent, causing extensive
(Frank
odds of
crime.
crime
Michalowski,
the law),
drug and its compounds
and
Groves 2000).
and chemical
people die due to preventable
30 years of re-search
severe health consequences associated
with the use of the
have
evidence from
a
companies
(Lynch,
Many pharmaceuti-cal
knowingly
sell products
diseasescontracted in the workplace(deaths that could
banned in the United States (to protect public health
have been prevented if corporations
had protected
and safety) to other countries that lack strict drug and
workers
Kramer
chemical regulations (Silverman,
from
toxic
substances;
see
1984).
Together, these deaths, which corporations allow by their inactions, arefour times higher than the number of
homicides
known
in
the
United
deaths and injuries,
by the
marketing
households pesticides,
In
addition
of unsafe foods,
and the
et
al.
to
1996;
1996;
injuries
and
of tobacco
Friedrichs
criminological now
knowingly
endanger
the
cause are accidents.
neglect of this form
1996;
chemicals to reach the should suffice to
This
corporate
products and dangerous
are
collisions
could
(Cullen,
staff at CBSs 60
unearthed
that
Ford
evidence
Mustangs produced had evidence have surfaced
the 1970s. In
of this
a similar
more reprehensible
William
1984 in
Bhopal, India,
street
ways Gibbs
1997; Simon
corporate
executives
and death
crimes
such acts
because the
Young, Ian
criminologists
Schwendinger,
Chambliss,
Paul
Taylor, and
Paul
Tony
on
the
behavior
of
the
Walton, among
of corporate
lower
crimes
criticized
classes (e.g., see Inciardi
Similar
Union
excluded
classes.
Carbide
an
discussed
this
explanation
These
the
radicals
of crime and
work,
which
reveals
Taylor,
book,The to explaining
that
above.
approach,
of the
this
of radical criticism
Traditional
arguing
crimes
of
1980). This
based upon a narrow reading
allega-tions example, in
others,
questioned
wereresponsible for redirecting attention toward the
Maakestad, and
GM produced
Quinney, Platt, Jock
definition of crime, whichthey saw asnarrowly focused
Minutesrecently plagued
including
Richard
Takagi,
perspective that
it
problem
design flaw. cars
Karliner
gain. For radicals,
than
Herman and Julia
criminologists
cause
during the 1960s, and that
concerning
1996;
that
In the early 1970s, radical
Motor Company
Cavander 1987). The
Ford
various
Friedrichs
sought to broaden our understanding
In the 1970s, executives at Ford
gas tank leaks and explosions
health in
1992;
other
corporations
place people at risk of injury
execu-tives advanced a theoretical
marketplace. A few examples
rear-end
that
purposefully
excuse
makethis point.
that
public
Lynch
for the sake of economic
kinds allowed Pintos to be produced even though they pos-sessed evidence
show
cases establish
deaths and
of violence. It is
however, that
knowingly allow faulty
that
1999). These
violence has been employed to legitimize
well established,
exist
of
scope of harm is so much greater.
we have assumed that
corporations
for corporate
cases
1995; Feagin and Lavelle 1996;
herbicides
Simon 1999; Frank and Lynch 1992). Typically,
documented
Lee, and Lydecker
1982). Thousands
drugs, cosmetics,
Feagin and Lavelle 1996;
Gibbs
Shapiro
(see Frank and
aggressive advertising 1997;
these
Weir and
others are caused
countless
chemicals, life-threatening
and alcohol (Karliner Glantz
States.
1982;
the
criticism
street crimes;
was
criminologists has
no
merit.
Walton, and Youngs (1973)
New Criminology,
that lower
was devoted almost Chambliss (1964)
For
classical wholly work o
180
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
delinquency and vagrancy included clear examples of explanations of lower-class crime; and Julia
Schwendinger
and
Richard
attention
to
(1970,
1985),
Quinney (1980) explaining
also devoted significant
lower-class
Colvin and Pauly 1983;
Herman and
Tony Platt (1978),
crimes
(see also
Greenberg 1985, 1993;
of crime, namely, how law-making
and enforcement,
which are also products of contextual factors, shape crime.
In
addition,
our
crime (for corporate 1999; Lynch,
discussion
is
limited
crime, see Friedrichs
Michalowski, and
to
street
1996; Simon
Groves 2000).
Hagan
1994). It is not possible to review each of these views here. Instead,
we present a unified radical
of crime that draws on ideas (rather contained
explanation
BACKGROUND
FACTORS
RADICAL
than specific theo-ries)
FOR
A
CONTEXTUALIZED
EXPLANATION
OF
CRIME
in the work of radical criminologists. The
United States is a capitalist
society
based on inher-ently
unequal class divisions that translate into THE A
CAUSES
UNIFIED
OF
CRIME:
RADICAL
abilities
APPROACH
to
culturally
access political
valued goods.
anomie, radicals
Crime is not caused by one factor, but rather by many forces coming together.Thus, to explain crime, theories styles capable of shifting across diff erent levels of associated
that is, theories
with
racial, and gender structures
level
Mertons theory
cultural
class,
aff ect crime rates in a given
Radicals, however, have also examined
other levels
intermediary
of analysis
(institutional)
social
and Pauly 1983), group structures Schwendinger
1985), cultural
Sanders
1995),
1998).
Contemporary
structures
(Schwendinger
conditions
and individual
level
radicals
Radicals
call
modelcontextual
this
kind
of
on
Lynch 1990).The term contextual
(Barak
each level to
one
relational
1959;
Groves and
analysis meansto
expect certain
Consequently, most Americans havesimilar life goals. to
Not all U.S. citizens,
attain
class into
culturally
however, possess the ability
prescribed
which anindividual
that
a person
and institutions
that those from courses that
goals. The
wealth, power,
as pathways to success. In the
popular
theory
of crime,
maximize success and
minimize the prob-ability
of engaging in crime and being labeled (Sampson Class
not
good education
the
sole
determinant
of
is also a means to success.
its initial
entry into the public educational system.
of a number
Americas cultural provide the crime.
and economic context
Before beginning,
statements.
of radical
broad
which
we off er the following
First, due to space limitations,
omits an important
related
system. These
against
experienced
upon
better schools
criminologists.
observations
to
condi-tions
we explain qualify-ing
are likely
outdated), worsestates
whereteachers can select assign-ments,
teachers are
with more facilities
choose assignments
in lower-class
morelikely
to choose
and are less likely to public schools.
Not
only are these schools deprived of resources and better teachers, they suff er from learning.
attending our dis-cussion
aspect of radical theories
with
Lower-class public schools havefewer resources, such
of repair. In addition,
with several
Here, too,
beginning
and libraries, and physically they are in
We begin
A
class is at a disadvantage,
of macro-intermediary, and micro-level structures and
the insights
success.
the lower
conditions.
draws
criminal
and Laub 1993). is
as computers, textbooks (that
model of crime
we can say
higher social classes have preferable life
place crime in its context, which radicals see as a mix
Our contextualized
higher the
is born, the greater likeli-hood
will have access to
acting
of another
and
mixed levels
multilevel,
analysis (Mills
and
(Ferrell
conditions
rely
of analysis to explain crime, relating another.
(Colvin
to
rewards and the attainment of socially desirable posi-tions.
terms
aff ect crime, including
of
values are widely
culturally valued goals is not. To paraphrase Merton,
Macro-level theory is an example of one kind of
of analysis.
how
macro-level theoriz-ing;
about how social, economic,
purchase
shared within a society, while the ability to achieve
analysis (Groves and Lynch 1990). Radical criminol-ogy is primarily
and to
Following
argue that
mustincorporate a wide variety of explana-tory U.S. society socializes citizens
of crime
society.
power
varying
environments
For example, evidence indicates lower-class
in school (Rusk
inconducive
that students
schools are less likely
1995).
Empirical
to
to succeed
evidence also note
RADICAL
that schools in poor neighborhoods are morelikely to
be situated
chemicals
near
known
(Lynch
the
to
waste
wealth
attend,
sites
negatively impact
and Stretesky
Parental
children
hazardous
has
their
children
schools.
attend
Across the
schools
success
that
hierarchy
have,
For ex-ample,tells resort
can opt to send them to private
that
establishes enhances
of the elite.
a life course
access
to
Entry into
and better jobs later in life. This
same kind of
characterizes
and colleges,
U.S. universities
the
the
more
than
$20,000
annual
tuition
costs
at
manystate
The
kinds
of
schools
of the
structural
society. Young children attendthat
is
children
attend
location
are
a
in
cannot choose the school they
determined
by where their
parent(s)
as
an
alternative
conditions
the
in
mid-1970s
States. This
chances
are intergenerational
circumstances
of their
Race and ethnicity life
chances
for
success.
States is characterized
depend
upon the
impact
also have important Earlier,
we noted
impacts
that
the
by a system of institutionalized whites, blacks, and
racism
limits
minorities
Hispanics. life
chances
racial
diff erences
minorities
chances
chances
can
restructuring
decades.
be traced
in the
transformation
to
United
had its
great-est
on urban minorities who, because of past wereclosely tied to entry-level
manufacturing jobs in inner cities (Frank and Cook 1995;
Wilson 1996). As the economy shifted
manufacturing to service provision and jobs
were eliminated,
minorities
manu-facturing
were most
hard hit. Further, the late 1970s and early 1980s also
marked by an economic
unemployment
power
(Box
recession
1987). That
and increased was also
toward
inflation
by a general tendency
and
Ironically,
wages (a decline in purchasing
wages; Frank and
Cook 1995). In recent
has increased,
throughout
attainment
rose,
remained
this
while
constant
in educational
were
period
but largely
sectors, and has had its greatest impact
on
United
they
mechanisms
participation.
employment discrimination,
years, employment
parents.
racism that segregates Institutionalized
and
life
to crime
goods society
market
As noted,
economic
economic
and a decline in relative
childrens
at odds
And sometimes
to
life
accompanied
Thus,
resort
also impact
minorities
a form
discrimination.
American
achieve the goals
means of obtaining
can aff ord to live or by other factors such as redlining, of housing
to
sometimes
participation.
decline
con-sequence
of children
in
for success have decreased over the past two
from
universities.
who fail
measures of success.
crime
in criminal
of life
beliefs are clearly
have excluded them from
most prestigious schools in our nation, compared
to the $3,000 to $4,000 it costs to attend
People
Economic
and only those with adequate economic resources can aff ord
to
in-stitutions The
educational
structure
by our society
us are
private
or pathway to
better
point.
as an alternative
with the schools
States, numerous
The
and its ideological
promoted
schools
options.
dissatisfied
cater to the children
these schools
the
more wealth parents
United
be successful.
on this on
181
American culture promotes the belief that any-one
can
pro-cessessociety
cognitive
eff ects
greater the choice in schooling parents
time,
contain
1999).
clear
and the
affluent
that
CRIMINOLOGY
period,
white
(Carnoy
attainment,
in low-wage
on whites.
black educational
educational
1994).
attainment
Despite this
black employment
rise
did not
for success. Proportionate to their representation in the
expand as rapidly as white employment,
population,
income fell relative to whiteincome (Carnoy 1994).
more blacks and Hispanics are poor than
whites, and fewer attend college or earn high school degrees.In addition, blacks and of institutionalized Further,
although
chances for them, minorities
Thus,
success than
lower-class have
(and fewer
classes have morelimited people from
within chances
it is not surprising
that
other for
being a member of a particular
classes above classes
success
than
as
well)
whites.
minorities are morelikely
to engage in street crimes compared to
the life chances a person
whites.
whites. In sum,
class structures
has for success.
(aff ects)
At the same
profit,
owners
of productive
in corporate downsizing, shifting
Hispanicsface forms
racism that do not impact the lower
To increase
while black forces
en-gaged
manufacturing
to foreign nations andincreasing the use oftechnology in the
manufacturing
sector.
Each of these economic
changes reduced the
number
of well-paying jobs and
elevated
unemployment.
especially in
cities
human
detrimental like
Detroit,
labor
on
of unemployment 30 percent.
These to where
automobile for
young
Crime among this
conditions
have been
African-Americans, machine
labor
assembly black
and replaced
lines,
rates
males are nearly
population
is also high
182
CRIME
In
AND
the
BEHAVIOR
modern
era,
the
contraction
of
manufactur-ing
the criminal justice system (though this cannot be done
extended unemployment until increased employ-ment without analyzing patterns of discrimination). was generated The
creation
could with
of newly
not find the
rise
in
crime
populations
employment
that
broadest
themselves
service industries.
marginalized
meaningful
1980s. In the find
by expanding
occurred
sense,
in
the
detached from
making a contribution
Spitzer (1975)
noted, these populations
conformity,
which
means
of
process impacts those
whose
makes crime
survival.
It
should
employed
economic
has
to society.
As
lack a stake in alterna-tive
noted
declined
and increased
that
this
due
to
It
bears
mention
corresponds in the
use of technology,
noted,
that
the
recent
decline
in
analysis
rates
have
misses the
increased
in
opportuni-ties In
have suggested that
United
States
since
can be illustrated environmental
Recent analysis suggests that there is little between rising rates of incarceration
The
correlation
In sum, by examining United
patterns and trends in crime
changes in the social and economic country.
Crime,
or self-reports, the
middle
whether
structure
minorities relative to
to
of the
measured by official statistics
is higher among the lower or upper
classes, and is
among
whites. Crime is also higher in and social capital,
such as school resources (Hagan evidence
demonstrates
processes that Groves, and economic crime
generate Lizotte
inequality,
trends.
that
Other
a manufacturing
indicate
related
to
(Lynch,
unemployment,
are also related that
the
shift
that
minimize
these economic
conditions
on minorities,
which
why these groups are overrepresented
in
a constant
that occur criminology and
is
widely associated
with envi-ronmentally
and is often employed
gimmick.
Framed
more broadly,
natural
resource
conservation
and
mostextreme level, being green
human
and
environmental
harms.
This
movement began to take shape in the early 1960s fol-lowing of
Rachel Carsons (1962)
book,
Silent Spring, and green
movements grew out of
general
concerns
environmental
the 1960s and 1970s. By the had
ethnicity,
been formed, connecting
in how
that
1980s, the green
environmental
racism
aff
pollution,
(toxic
the
dumps).
location
of
also
For example, examined
environmental
Vandana Shiva (1988)
role of women as activists in green
race,
that
criminologists.
Dixie, Robert Bullard (1990) ected
move-ment
theoretical
class, and gender inequalityareas
Dumping in
more
characterized
encompassing
hold concerns for radical
haz-ards
exposed the
movements.
More
recently, economist James OConnor (1998) called for of environmental
race-based (red) analysis.These
(green), class-and works signaled the
emergence of a perspective that
exposed how the
negativeimpacts of environmental pollution stem from oppressive and unequal race, class, ethnic structures
that characterize
In
years,
take
from
in
is a political commitment to clean production practices
to
to a service economy also had an im-pact
greatest negative impact
helps explain
are
of profit
and that
and poverty studies
1994). Empirical rates
high rates
1994)
on crime. Importantly, had their
crime
are
green meansshowing concern for the con-nection
urban areas, especiallyin regions marked by the great-est an integration declines in capital investment
OF
green theorizing
products
advertising
thinking
rather than
higher
by examining
friendly as an
explanations
States, we see that they correspond
crime
nature of radical
concept green
and crime (Irwin
and Austin 1994; Lynch 1999).
in the
STUDY
justice research.
publication
1972.
of
changing
human welfare. At its
crime
mark because imprisonment the
THE
JUSTICE
state of change, adapting to transformations
these declines are due to rising rates of imprisonment. This
DIRECTION:
theories
between
manufacturing and service industries. criminologists
radical
in society. The
Grovesand Lizotte 1994).
with increased employment
contrast, traditional
As
eco-nomic
contributing to conditions that could propel them to commit crime (Lynch,
NEW
workers are
be
A
ENVIRONMENTAL
and
where they
an attractive also
TOWARDS
workers as well, especially
status
transformation
1970s
marginalized
in social conditions
who
corresponds
recent
1997;
One example environmental 1999;
South
of this
U.S. society.
criminologists
green issues seriously
Cliff ord
1998;
and gender
(Frank South
have
begun
and Lynch and
concern involves
Beirne
Stretesky
and
Hogan
1998;
1992; 1998).
the study
justice (see Lynch and Stretesky Stretesky
to
of
1998, an
RADICAL
Lynch 1999). Environmental justice examines whether
CRIMINOLOGY
183
processes and to act aslobbyists and consultants on
environmental harms(e.g., pollution, toxic wastedump-ing) avoiding compliance with existing regulations. Between are distributed
evenly
among social
groups,
or
whether specific groups are overexposed to these harms. Radicals are interested relate to environmental polluters
in four
harmful
which corpo-rate
power through
production,
dangerous,
distribution,
and
corporations
engage in,
and the social control
responses (if any) these activities environmental
gender;
victimization
and (4) solutions injustice.
elicit; (3) patterns
related
to the
to
race,
class,
John
employ
industries
former
recommended
refute all studies
of and
capricious
(CPSC).
that
by CPSC
actions;
former
use legislation
the chemical
to claims
chemical industry
use
for arbitrary
and
personnel
who
made by industry;
to stall
CPSCs
progress;
CPSC hearings.
also uses lawsuits
against
industry
with its own research;
and lobbying
strategic lawsuits
Consumer
In his new role,
win over government
are already sympathetic
The
maintain their
136
head of the
Safety Commission
Byington
hired
officials (Feagin and Lavelle 1996) includ-ing
of environ-mental and hire attorneys to attend
problem
manytactics to
chemical
Byington,
Product
Weexplore these points below.
Corporations
1995,
CPSC rules to sue the government
waste disposal practices; (2) the types of environmental crimes
and
government
primary issues that
justice: (1) waysin
maintain their
environmentally
1990
(SLAPPs:
public participants)
to harass
power and protect their economic positions. Of prime
public interest groups that push for industry regulation
importance
(Rebovich 1998). In addition,
are legislative lobbying
(e.g., attempts to
derail legal protections that limit behaviors
that
aff ect the
harmful corporate
environment
and
humans)
destructive industries
and pollution
(Karliner and
harms as minimal or nonexis-tent
1997; Feagin and Lavelle 1996; Stauber
Rampton
1995).
processes.For example,in the 1970s and 1980s,
donated
nearly
candidates
companies
nine
(Feagin
million and
and their
1996,
Representative
Charles
legislation
to forbid
governments
local
pesticides. If implemented, the additional
have traditionally above and
beyond federal
Charles Stenholm,
contributions,
124).
from
regulat-ing
this legislation local
pesticide
regulations.
also a recipient
One
Hatcher, introduced
protection
applied to
employees
dollars to congressional
Lavelle
recipient,
eliminate
would
governments
Representative
of chemical industry
criminologist
David Simon (1999,
for the interests the
government
in
various
dumping)
25
million
United
poor, the
of school mentally
122): Who
speaks
minority
groups,
children, retarded,
short, for the relatively environmental
regulations
Another successful industry governmental regulatory
employees, agencies, to
powerless
where
tactic is hiring former
especially former gain insight
into
heads of regulatory
of illegal
chemical
people
EPA
estimates
market advantage
dumping
(e.g.,
midnight
waste. Combined,
dump sites place an estimated
at risk
of disease
estimated
that
contain illegally
making
Many also engaged
dispose of hazardous
and
sites) is
criminological
90 percent
dumped
death in
cost for cleaning
Superfund
is an important
of all
hazardous
the
up the
$100
mil-lion.
issue since the Superfund
sites
waste.
Our society has become so reliant on dangerous chemicals that nearly everyoneis exposed to some type of environmental hazardin his daily life.
However, mi-norities
and the poor are disproportionately
exposed
to a wider variety, and higher concentrations, of toxic hazards and
because
dump
sites
live
Moses 1993;
of
class
to the
1990;
Krieg 1995;
Medicine 1998;
and
chemical
closer
1996; Stretesky
arguments race
toxic are
(Bullard
Ringquist
are at issue?
1999).
worst of these sites (EPA
they migrant-workersin
renters,
(Simon
States.The
This
admitted
secret funds to for-eign
officials to gain a
forms to
legal and illegal
close connection between corporations and gov-ernment raises an interesting question posed byradical
payments from
over competitors
pushed legislation to allow manufactur-ers
to sue the U.S. Environmental Protection Agency
and oil companies
millions in illegal
manufacturing
for undue economic hardship caused by the agency. This
several chemical
For example, between 1979 and
1995, twelve chemical
have employed criminal tactics
to influence legislation and other environmental regu-latory
and the production of scientific evidence that depicts chemical
many environmentally
production
facilities
communities
in
Mohai and
Bryant
1992;
Pollack and
Vittas
1994;
and
Stretesky
Hogan 1998; Institute and
Lynch
are often off ered to explain this bias
which
1999).
Two
pattern
of
184
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
One argument minorities live because
suggested that in
aff ected
and attract the economically
is
Existing
explanations
are
Stretesky and argument, of
or
impoverished.
evidence
wanting.
suggests that
Radicals (Stretesky
Hogan 1998)
economic
waste
sites
characteristics
the following
off ered by Cerrell
does
of
policy for
both 1996;
have countered the choice
waste production
placing
likelihood
not
alter
an area.
the
Also,
of contracting
Because facility
with
hazardous
evenly
distributed
facili-ties
to the State of
[disposal]
their opposition [A]...
great deal of time,
resources
could
by knowing
companies
look
neighborhoods
for lower
chemicals
of injustice
found
adverse impacts
in
officials
if any, commercial
higher ... [class] neighborhoods within
the
one-mile
and
contain
placement
of
Given this advice, it should
well known
produces
activity
should
lower-class
minority communities.
how race and class waste facilities. that
Because hazardous
waste siting decisions disproportionately
injustice.
and
waste
of heavy
met-als,
impacts
on
aff ect
wastefacilities
contaminants.
to
pesticides
may explain
and homicides)
study
why rates of are higher in
of environmental
for
social
mechanism for
justice
transformation
dealing
waste is the result
produced.
none)
It is
(and lead)
minority communities.
need
of hazardous
even
will turn to crime
hazardous
In
with crime
of the
of the
many
un-derscores as
To alarge degree, the production
currently
affect the
poor, they are also likely to disproportionately
have
of hazardous substances and
which
these facilities are disproportionately found in lower-class alternative production and
also
Many hazardous
of pesticide
crime (assaults
Finally, the
radius
come as no surprise
sites
high levels
overexposure
aggression,
violent
not
that
the
hazardous
waste
that these children
also have high levels
appropriate
aff ect the
short,
can be predicted
which have detrimental
the probability
of the proposed site. (43, 117)
Cerrells siting advice illustrates
In
not
exists. Second, some of
on behavior.
as they grow up. In addition,
and
Middle and
five-mile
are
may,in turn, aff ect their progressthrough life, enhanc-ing
socioeconomic
place disposal facilities]...
fall
population.
hazardous
the unequal distribution
that are... heavily industrial-ized...
with little, [to
the
associated
States
the race and class of an area, an institu-tionalized system
the
be saved and
avoided if
United
childrens poor school performance may be a result of
middle and upper socioeconomic
and planning
the
meansthat some portion of minority and lower-class
facilities,
strata possessesbetter resource to eff ectuate
problems
to the geography
childrens learning abilities and behavior. In brief, this
All socioeconomic group[s] ... resent the
political
in
among
such as lead,
but the
diseases and illnesses.
is linked
chemicals
disposal facilities
of ...
certain
proximity
of race and class, the health consequences
consider
waste-to-energy
Associates (1996)
racial
California:
nearby siting
and disposal sites increases the
that the place-ment because adverse health consequences
off ering data demonstrating hazardous
A second
of these facilities
are important
for a number of reasons. First, proximity to hazard-ous
areas are inexpensive
holds that the placement
unplanned.
Studies of environmental justice
poor and
near hazardous waste sites by choice
properties
argument
the
an
and
and disposal way things
manufacturing
are
areas,
methods that generate less (or
toxins
that
result
from
current
pro-duction
practices already exist. But, corporations avoid these alternatives becausethey are more costly, and
minorities. Interestingly, studies funded by the toxic
show little concern for the general publics health. In
waste industry
short,
hazardous
find
no relationship
waste siting
(e.g.,
Our own independent utilizing
several
waste production; and locales United race
eff ect.
Anderton
assessments diff erent
et al. 1994).
of this relation-ship,
data sets (hazardous
waste disposal; chemical
(Tampa,
States),
between race and
accidents)
Florida; the State of Florida; the
however,
demonstrated
a consistent
the
waste
problem
production
margins.These the
human
and
is that and
profit
corporations
disposal
make
decisions
based
current
environmental
that
profit-oriented
characterizes
the
on profit
margins exclude calculations harms
these
generate. There is a clear need to de-emphasize the basis for decision
hazardous
making, a difficult social United
and States
task
economic
of
practices
profit as within the structure
RADICAL
POLICY
consistent
IMPLICATIONS
CRIMINOLOGY
185
with policies offered by both radical and
traditional criminologists for reducing crime. Radicals that
are
would
work
often reduce
radicals
to reduce
crime
for
grasp the
central
the
economic
will thus the
of these
policies
Examples
of radical
25 years,
crime
Solutions
to
crime
for
reduce
communities past.
Rather
locations
for
educated
global
(and,
that
if
sensitive
Many such as profitable
techniques
stability
to helps
communities
and
the
U.S.
and
produces
people economy,
fewer
to
coerced)
reinvest
as studies
have shown,
is
part
of the
whether or not to engagein unlawful activities.
CONCLUSION
This
chapter
one form
has reviewed
of critical
Much more could have
been
investigate
be written written
discussion. Thus,
the
central ideas
theorizing,
on
radical
on this topic, materials
behind
criminology. and
omitted
whole
from
our
for those of you who are intrigued we have presented,
radical
and critical
by
wesuggest that you
criminology
further,
di-gest
these ideas, and compare them to those off ered by
in
traditional
as
concerning the appropriateness of each of these views.
criminology
and reach your own conclusions
must be
REFERENCES
prac-tices
local
of
which
producing is the eco-city,
activity,
These
and,
environmental some
deprived
pollutants.
corpo-rate
to see these
polluting
decreases
broad social and economic
In the case of corporate crime, this strategy makessense
in
from
production
exist,
their
is
In response,
crime is to increase the penalties for these off enses.
any of the ideas
produc-tion
One example
now
waste
executives
economic
more punishment. There
changes, the only wayto protect the public from
books
communities
minimizing
1997).
to
(Roseland
to
for local
to
local
of toxic
resources
as traditional,
enhances
attach
fails,
sites
these
reorganizating
alternatives
(Roseland
which
disposal
minority
education
for
has been criti-cized
of this criticism.
without
past
by environmentalists
communities
view
to
also be connected
waste, corporate
as viable are
damages.
than
punishment
calculations corporate executives make when deciding
women.
remedy
withdrawn
radicals argue that
offered by makers.
in lower-class
corporations
have
the
among
therefore,
and
with policies
suggestion
because it argues for
Lynch,
Many,such
as well as policy
suggest equalizing
justice
1998;
commu-nities,
over
also
should
criminal
Reiman
are consistent
policy
restructuring
States
requires
toxic
communities
economic
minority
they
minority
developed
strategy forcing
and
and
production
be shown
the
(see
off enders. This
economic Economic
can
numerous
becausethe motivation for corporate off ensesis clearly
inability
follow.
that
to increase
policies
and
1997). This and
the
must,
change
the
crime.
United
has tended
in lower-class
base,
the
These
programs
reduce
jus-tice
altering
no denying the accuracy
crime.
of criminal general
policies
communities
inequalities.
are just
crime
policy
on reducing
the
of crime
During
in
minority
impact
and
off ered
Groves 2000 for review).
radicals
corporate
to
namely,
justice
eff ectiveness
lower-class
women.
occurred
aff ect
social
to
criminologists
Third,
fail
in
criminal
to significantly
impact
and
located
demonstrates
is a source
diff erentially
the
of the
changes
inequality
that
have little
to
have
crime
Michalowski, and as gun-control,
institution alter
related
traditional
institutions
criminology;
are
and that
history
policy
and
of radical crime
institutions,
changes Indeed,
that
of
radical
criminologists
initiatives
process to reduce
broad-scale
involve
would
traditional
idea
causes
First,
systemthe
criminologists
the
initiatives
with
that
justice
As a result,
that
of reasons.
changes
most traditional crime.
neglect
policy
deal
Second, radicals
off er policies
criticisms
often
criminal
to
on
a variety
economic
of the
Such
undertaken
policies
and
outside
of failing
crime.
have
criminological social
accused
of an
provides
Anderson
work.
and
are
P.
Race,
H.
Class
Collins
and
(eds.).
E.
Andy, P. Rossi, J.
Oakes,
Calabrese.
Hazardous
Environmental
unemployment,
Shortchanged:
In
Restructuring Gender.
M.
Belmont,
L.
CA:
Wadsworth.
and
communities
(1995).
Theresa.
womens
Anderton,
economic
outcomes
Amott,
Evaluation
Review,
(1994).
equity
issues
118:23140
in
M. Fraser,
E.
Weber,
waste facilities:
metropolitan
areas.
186
CRIME
Arrigo,
AND
BEHAVIOR
Bruce.
(1995).
and
criminology:
and
conceptual
The
peripheral
On
postmodern
integration.
Justice
core
of law
social
theory
Quarterly,
DeKeseredy,
DiMaggio,
12,
Gregg. (1998).
Allyn and Bartlett,
Integrating
Criminologies.
Bacon.
Went
Wrong?
Kansas
City,
America:
MO:
Andrews
and
Willem.
Conditions.
(1916).
Boston:
Stephen. London:
Criminality
Little,
(1987).
and
Engels,Fredrick.
Brown.
Recession,
and
of
random
The drug
media
and
violence.
the
Social
con-struction
Justice,
_____.
(1996). The
Rise and Fall of a Violent
Wave: Crack Cocaine and the Social Problem. _____.
NY:
The
Robert.
Little,
Harvard
Houghton Cerrell
Associates.
Class
MA:
Spring.
New
York:
Political
Conversion
Difficulties
Plant Siting.
Los
Facing Angeles:
A
sociological
analysis
of
Social Problems, 12:6777.
and
Robert
Seidman. MA:
(1982).
Law,
and
Responsibility.
Gaithersburg,
Social
Toward
Frank,
an
delinquency
MD:
A
integrated
critique
of crimi-nology:
American
Elliott
Problems.
and
(1996).
Toxic
Manipulates
Endangers
Your
Health.
Sanders
(eds.).
(1998).
(1995).
Cultural
University Will
Press.
comparative
wage discriminiation?
worth
The
Review
of
Economics. 30(3):1424.
and
Michael J. Lynch.
Corporate
Violence.
(1992).
Albany,
Corporate
NT-Harrow
and
Robert and
Friedrichs,
Phillip
Whythe
Under
Little,
Winner Take
Get So
Much
More
Restof Us. New York: Penguin. David
O. (1996).
Trusted
Criminals.
Belmont,
Wadsworth.
Fussell, Paul. (1997).
Class. New York: Ballentine. Dying From
Dioxin. Boston,
MA: South
End.
Gibbs, Lois. (1996).
Philadelphia,
Toxic
struggles: The
justice.
PA:
E.A. (1995). in
and
G. Cavander. (1987).
Attack.
Cincinatti,
OH:
Glantz,
In Forward,
theory
and practice
R. Hofrichter
(ed.).
New Society. Childhood
Britain.
Journal
cancers: ofEpidemology
Skolnick. Brown.
(1984).
Americas
Stanton, J. Slade, L.A.
Barnes. (1996). The of
and Jerome
Cook. (1995). The Few at the Top
Space-time and
distri-bution
Community
Health. 49(2):158163.
W. Maakestad,
Boston:
political
Manuscripts
Industry
Northeastern
race-based
All Society:
Journal
Anderson.
Currie,
Frank,
Gilman,
structural-Marxist
production.
90, 3:513551.
Crime
Law,
C.R.
of environmental Mark and J. Pauly. (1983).
Corporate
of
Philosophic
Lavelle.
Chemical
Boston:
Gibbs, Lois. (1995).
Addison-Wesley. Crime: Enforcement,
of Sociology,
Class in
NJ: Carol.
Nancy
CA:
Environmental
of
of a critique
Marianne
How the
Radical Political
crime,
Working
New York: International.
and J. Lapidus.
than the
Board.
(1964).
Mary. (1997).
theory
Outlines
and
and
D.M.
reduce
Westview.
Cambridge,
Aspen.
Cullen,
Jeff
Figart,
American
D. Greenberg (ed.).
of the
Economic and
Science, Bends the
Frank,
Silent
Order and Power. Reading,
Policy
CO:
Dreams.
Race,
selection.
Capitalism.
D. Struik (ed.).
Dan
Ferrell,
capital,
Heston.
of vagrancy. William
Cliff ord,
Dixie:
Boulder,
(1996).
William.
the law
in
Press.
Management
Chambliss,
Violent
Mifflin.
Chambliss,
Colvin,
of 1844.
Criminology.
Faded
(1962).
Waste-to-Energy Waste
Violence and
Justice.
University
Rachel.
Crime
Cultural
Progress.
(1964).
Secaucus,
Reality of
Dumping
Martin. (1994).
Carson,
ofa
Heston.
Brown.
(1990).
Environmental
Carnoy,
Construction
marital
Conditions
In The
Deception:
Crime
Harrow and
Social
Boston:
Bullard, and
Albany,
(2000).
Crime.
The
economy.
Feagin,
18:85103.
success.
Mayfield.
Moscow:
_____.[1844]
Henry. (1991).
school
47:189201.
(1985).
and
Crime and
Alto, CA:
England.
Punishment.
Mohr.
and
(1981). DemoralisationoftheEnglishwork-ing
_____.(1973).
Crime
Tavistock.
Brownstein,
Palo
Economic
(1996).
of Sociology. 90:12311261.
class. In
Bonger,
Review.
J.
Schwartz.
capital
attainment
Journal
What
McMeel.
Box,
P. and
educational
D. L. and J. B. Steele. (1992).
Martin
Belmont,CA:Wadsworth.
Cultural
Sociological
DiMaggio,
Boston:
and
Criminology.
P. (1982).
American
3:447472.
Barak,
Walter
Contemporary
California
Gordon, The
Bero, P. Hanauer, and
Cigarette Papers. Berkeley:
D.E.
University
Press.
David. (1971). Class
and the economics
Review of Radical Political
of crime.
Economy, 3(3):5172
RADICAL
Greenberg,
David F. (1985). Age, American Journal
_____.(1993).
Crime
Temple
and
University
Greer, Jed and
crime and social explana-tion.
Capitalism.
Philadelphia,
W., Byron
Reconciling the
Lynch,
and
structural
study
of crime.
Delinquency. Hagan, John.
Greenwash: The
Reality
and subjective
Journal
of
appoaches
Research in
to
Crime
and
and
Sidney. (1983).
Brunswick, Stuart
Henry,
and
Constitutive London: Inciardi,
Criminology:
James
(ed).
New
of
Medicine. Research,
Washington, John
and
Toward and
National
James
Criminology:
Austin.
(1994).
Policy
Needs.
Its
About
Time:
Belmont,
CA:
(1997).
Corporate
J. (1995).
Feminism. Knox,
Homeless
in
S. Ruth (ed.).
E.G.
(1996).
cancers in
Spatial
Great
Community
America.
Palo Alto, clustering
Britain.
Journal
In
CA:
Issues in
of
and
Space-time
Leukaemia
clusters
in
interaction.
Journal
of Epidemiology
Community
Great
Britain,
1: and
Leukaemia
clusters
Geographical
analysis
Epidemiology
and
in
in
Britain.
Community
childhood:
Lynch,
of
Heston.
criminology.
In
Vol. 5. F. Adler and
Groves, and
surplus
value
Alan and
examination
Lizotte.
crime:
of
and criminology.
Primer
Monsey,
Michael
(1988).
J.,
J.
A
Marxian
Crime,
of
NY:
Thinking
Albany,
Radical
Willow
Mahesh
Bhopal.
Michalowski
in
K.
Cross-cultural
Law
and
Nalla,
of
W. Byron Third
Tree. and
perceptions
Journal
and
Criminology,
Keith
Miller.
of deviance: The
Research in
Crime
and
26(l):735.
Michael
J.
and
about
race
politics
E. and and
M.J. Lynch NY:
Harrow
Patterson.
criminal
justice. The
through
Critical
(1999). Class, on
In
E. Britt
The
Patterson
the study
Criminologist,
9(1):1,
Uniting
(eds.).
Capital,
class,
46. criminology:
dislocations
Criminologist,
(1976).
with
of environmental
race, gender, and critical
Critical
Racism,
Justice
Heston.
Milovanovics
Karl. [1867]
(1996).
justice:
academia.
and and
Britt
Michael J. and Paul Stretesky. (1998).
race and criticism
Marx,
Primer in
NY: Harrow and
empircal
(2000).
of 48(4):
Albany,
Michael J., Raymond
A comment
Journal Health.
Crime,
Change. 21:1548.
Groves.
_____.
Health. 46(6):566572.
_____.(1994).
and
recon-structions.
9(3):48. Vol. I.
New York:
International.
369376.
Knox,
theory
Lynch,
Health. 48(4):369376.
_____.(1992).
any empirical
Groves. (1989).
W. Byron
economic
Prejudice.
childhood
of Epidemology
Garland.
eff ect of imprisonment?
W. Byron
rate
stereotypes,
Mayfield.
crime.
New York: Transaction.
and
Lynch,
Sierrra.
Kozol,
The
Delinquency,
Planet. San Francisco:
and
M. Schwartz
New York:
Criminological Theory
theoretical
case
Wadsworth.
Karliner, Joshua.
gender
defense of comparative
Michael J.,
Edition.
Press.
Binge.
In
Advances in
Lynch,
Environmental
race,
Criminology.
(eds.).
a deterrent
(1995).
Social
Health
Academy
Imprisonment
The
CA: Sage.
(1998).
Education
DC:
Americas
Radical
Hills,
of
of Economics
a dead horse: Is there
Michael J. and
(1994).
Postmodernism.
Journal
Law and Social Change, 38:117.
Lynch,
(1996).
interpretation
American
Class,
Beating
W.Lafuer (eds.).
Milovanovic. Beyond
(1980).
Crisis. Beverly
Justice:
Irwin,
Dragan
J. (1996).
evidence for
Press.
Sage.
Coming Institute
a Class Society.
University
Michael
187
114.
Radical Criminology.
Disrepute. Thousand
Policing in
54:
D. Milovanovic
_____.
NJ: Rutgers
Sociology,
(1999).
Lynch,
Crime
socio-historical
Race, Class, Gender and
_____.
Oaks, CA: Pine Forge. Harring,
and
In
A
waste sites. The
and
New York; Apex.
Michael J. Lynch. (1990).
27(4):348375. (1994).
Eric. (1995).
Lynch,
Bruno. (1996).
Behind Corporate Environmentalism. Groves,
PA;
Press.
Kenny
Krieg, toxic
of Sociology, 91:121.
CRIMINOLOGY
E.G.
and of
Kramer,
cancer
Journal
(1997). in
Hazard Great
of Epidemiology
prom-itities
Britain
and
Ron.
Hills,
_____.
In
from
Community
(1984). as
Corporate
Criminals.
CA: Sage.
E.
criminality. Hochstedler
In
(ed.).
[1848]
Crime
Capitalism.
and
capital
accumulation.
D. Greenberg (ed.).
Palo Alto,
Mayfield. Karl
Communist _____.
(1981).
Crime and
CA: Marx,
51:151159.
Corporations Beverly
Gilman.
childhood
19531980. Health,
E.A.
[1846]
International
and
Fredrick
Engels.
Manifesto. Arlington (1970). The
German
[1848]
(1955).
Heights, IL: Ideology.
The
Crofts. New York:
188
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Massey, Douglas
and
Apartheid.
Nancy
Denton.
Cambridge,
MA:
(1993).
American
Harvard
University
Messerschmidt,
James.
Crime. Totowa, _____.
(1986).
Masculinities
and
and
Crime.
Lanham,
Making.Thousand
Oaks, CA: Sage.
Ray. (1998). In
MD:
Gender, Race and
International
Environmental
Rusk,
environmental
Crime.
M. Cliff ord (ed.).
Law.
Sociological Imagination.
New
A Primer in the Sociology of
NY:
Harrow and
_____. (1995). Dueling
paradigms:
thought.
Humanity
racism:
Reviewing
Confronting Boston:
Marion.
Boston:
Modernist vs. postmod-ernist
(1992).
evidence.
Pp.
Racism,
R.
Farmworkers
Environmental
South
16178
in
Bullard
(ed.).
and
Racism.
pesticides.
In
R. Bullard
(ed.).
Accumulation
Crisis.
New York:
Natural Causes: Essaysin Ecological
York:
Perlow,
Marxism.
Super
Profits and
Crises.
New York:
Street
crime:
A view from
the left.
Philip
Boston:
(1994).
pollution? Florida. Quinney, MA:
and
Little,
Little,
Vittas.
(1979).
bears the
Race, ethnicity,
burdens
of environmental
(1979).
Brown.
and environmental
Criminology.
Quinney,
equity
in
new
(1998).
Environmental
Crime.
Richard.
Prison. Boston:
Palo Alto, CA:
and
Martin
Race,
Class, State,
crime
we should
M. Cliff ord (ed.).
University
Life.
Press.
American.
David
O.
New York:
understanding
(1994).
Friedrichs.
and criminological
B. and
Gender
(1985).
CA:
discontent:
violence.
A
Criminology,
Dragan
and
Class
Milovanovic
in
(eds.).
(1996).
Criminology.
New
York:
Subcultures
of
Delinquency.
Beverly
Hills,
Sage.
Herman
Defenders
of
and Julia
order
Berkeley:
Staying
Atlantic
Milton,
of
(1970).
human
rights?
5:113126.
Shiva, Vandana. (1988).
Silverman,
Schwendinger.
or guardians
Criminology,
P.
Lee,
University
Alive:
Women, Ecology, and
Highlands,
of
NJ: Zed.
and
Profit: The
David. (1999).
Sklar,
Holly. (1995). In
South,
re-search:
go. In
Gaithersburg,
Race, (eds.).
Nigel.
S.
Lydecker.
(1982).
Drugging of the Third
California
Elite
Rich Get Richer and the Poor Get
The
World.
Press.
Deviance.
Boston:
for
upper class and
Class
and
Belmont,
(1998).
Allyn
and
a
A
Gender. CA:
green
perspective.
mothers in the
M.
Anderson
and
Wadsworth. field
for
criminology:
Theoretical
A
Criminology,
2:211234.
South, to
Nigel and Piers Beirne. (1998). special issue:
Criminology,
Allyn and Bacon.
Crime in the
Points Through
Garland.
proposal
Environmental
Laub. (1993). Turning
Overworked
thought
metaphor for
P. Collins
Boston, (1980).
Aspen.
Reiman, Jeff rey. (1998). The
Washington,
32:221246.
hood.
New York: Longman.
Donald,
Palo
Bacon.
Social Science Quarterly, 76:294310.
Richard.
American
Press.
Issues in Feminism.
Harvard
Martin
Simon,
Where we have been, where
MD:
Criminology.
Brown.
Who
and Crime. Rebovich,
Elliot
the
S. Ruth (ed.).
Basic.
Prescription for
Crime and Social Justice, 9:2634. Pollock,
Gabriola
Without Suburbs. Center
and
MA:
Development.
International.
Tony. (1978).
Cities
Pathways
Issues in
Guilford.
Victor. (1988).
and
Feminism.
Robert J. and John
Schwendinger,
(1998).
of Social
Dimensions.
Women
Wilson
Cambridge,
_____.
End.
James. (1985).
distribution facilities.
Mayfield.
Postmodern
Blackwell.
New
_____.
Sampson,
Schwartz,
(1993).
(1995).
Shelia. (ed). (1995).
Schwartz,
Environmental
End.
Confronting
OConnor,
the
Eco-City
Schor, Juliet. (1995). The
Heston.
and Society, 19(l):l22.
Bryant.
Environmental South
Moses,
Basil
Bunyan
TRI
Mayfield.
Dragan. (1994).
Mohai, Paul and
(1997).
Woodrow
Making:
Albany,
of
78:811829.
David. (1995).
Ruth,
and the
case
In Issues in
CA:
DC:
Equity
The
New Society.
Elyce.
Alto,
Oxford.
Milovanovic,
Mark.
BC:
Rotella,
MD: Aspen.
Mills, C. Wright. (1959). The
Platt,
Roseland,
economy. Action:
Gaithersburg,
York:
and
risk:
Quarterly,
Island,
Crime as Structured
Classin the Michalowski,
Patriarchy
and Littlefield.
Littlefield.
(1997).
problems.
Capitalism,
NJ: Rowman
(1993).
Rowman
_____.
Evan. (1996).
environmental Science
Press.
_____.
Ringquist,
Spitzer,
For a green criminology.
introduction Theoretical
2:147148.
Steven. (1975). Social
Editors
Problems,
Toward 22:638651
a
Marxian theory
of devi-ance.
RADICAL
Stauber, John is
and
Sheldon
Good For You!
Stretesky,
Paul
Pathology,
Stretesky,
2(3):
(1995).
ME: Common
Toxic Sludge
Environmental
Equity?
Social
chemical
and
Hogan. (1998).
of superfund
sites in
Florida.
the
predictions in
of
Social
Environmental
distance
Hillsborough
to
County,
The
accidental Florida.
Criminology.
London:
Routledge
and
The
Keegan Paul.
New
of the States,
1998.
of
Wright,
http://
Human
Nations.
Wealth and Income
in the
www.census.gov.
Labor.
(1996).
Employment
and
U.S. http://www.dol.gov. Circle of Poison. San Francisco:
Institute.
Erik
London:
189
(1993).
United
(1999).
Shapiro. (1982).
Food
Program.
New York:
Census.
Unemployment in the
Wolff,
Walton and J. Young. (1973).
Development Reprot.
Department
Weir, and
Michael J. Lynch. (1999).
releases
I.P.
Bureau
U.S.
Environmental
Social Science Quarterly, 80:830843. Taylor, Ian,
U.S.
United
Michael
Paul and
Nations
Development
45:268287.
justice
United
Courage.
293298.
An analysis
Problems,
Stretesky,
B. (1996).
Paul and
justice:
Rampton.
Monroe,
CRIMINOLOGY
Olin. (1978). New
Edward
Class,
Crisis
and the
State.
Left.
N. (1995).
Increasing
Inequality
Twentieth
Century
of Fund
Top
Heavy:
Wealth in Press
A Study
America.
of the
New York:
CHAPTER IX
Feminist
and
Gender
Theorie
FEMINIST
CRIMINOLOGY
Susan F. Sharp
C
riminology
has traditionally fields
and theory
been one of the
of study in the social sciences. The
have been based on the study of
system responses to
maleoff enders.
to adhere to traditional
majority of the research
male criminality
and criminal
justice
ways, with a focus on their failure
models of appropriate female behavior, as in
research,
using official records
failure to consider important
bringing
criminologists
national
justice seek to
Feminist
used in feminist
of feminist
has been a
criminology
of both
place gender at the center the
criminology;
criminological
both in scholarship
result
pathways into
crime,
seeks to
male and female
system responses to their crimes. of the
discourse,
world into the scholarship
on crime,
and responses to crime. In the following
the emergence
surveys. The
male and female
our understanding
womens ways of understanding
criminality,
hasfocused on objective empirical
and punishments.
by enhancing
off ending as well as criminal Feminist
and large
diff erences in
of crime, victimization,
address this limitation
the range
research;
and the
sections, the focus of perspectives maturing
will be on
and
of feminist
methods criminol-ogy,
and in visibility.
THE
SCOPE
It is readily apparent that those deemedimportant
OF
FEMINIST
CRIMINOLOGY
malesdo indeed commit far
more offenses, especially
to criminology, than females do (see Daly & Chesney-Lind
1988).This focus has beenin part dueto the relationship of criminology legislative
and corrections
understanding
of
commit
crimes that
systems. The
why people commit
to reduce those crimes.
Thus,
W.I.
(1923) paternalistic view of women. Furthermore, in its quest to be
recognized as a scholarly field, criminology
types
(male-centered)
Women, when considered at all, have been
represented in negative and stereotypical Thomass
most androcentric
field crimes
developed in so that
part to
are of less interest
women werelargely ignored
help improve
policies could
Not only do women commit fewer crimes, to those concerned
about
with
be enacted
but also they public safety.
until the 1970s.
19
194
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Additionally, the
Weberianvalue-free approach to
the study of criminology the experiences and formulate This
their
data and theories
an unreflective
about boys and
to girls and have assumed that generic study
themselves
own approaches
has resulted in
in crime
has failed to recognize that
of the researchers
women.
in research
supposition
justice
male crime women
were more of an aberration
to be studied in and of itself. approach to criminology
was the
who engaged
than
a subject
Ultimately, the feminist
emerged from the critique
It
on girls,
women, crime,
Many scholars
primary
explanations
criminological
in criminology. criminology is somewhat
into
a recognized
to the war
reforms
on
of the 1980s
of the large increase in
scholarship.
and federal
reforms increase
in
However, the roots
feminism
1960s per-spective
Clearly, the
are the the
behind the
incarceration
of
the
women.
criminology
are instead found
as well as in the radical
and
war on drugs
driving forces
of feminist
these changes. They
has developed
and the criminal
point
and the federal sentencing
as the
leading to a surge
female prisoners as well as of the emergence of feminist
of
has been only in the last 30 years that feminist
by males. However,
were skyrocketing,
system.
tremendous
this practice.
criminology
rates
to their research. that
wascommitted
bythe last two decades of the 20th century, female in-carceration
drugs men would be gener-alizable
of
of crime and that
most crime
shape
Researchers and theorists
the study
that
predate
in second-wave
criminology
of the
1970s.
However, the term feminist misleading;it
might perhaps
The
Gender
Equality
Argument
be better to speak of feminist criminologies. Feminist criminology
encompasses a wide range of theoretical
perspectives and in
methodologies that place the
which gender
shapes experience
scholarly inquiry. related
to
It focuses
women and
explanations
of crime,
programming
in
the field prisoners.
Feminist
focus
thought
for
of womens oppression, male domination
of
theoretical
is
women as workers in
not
the liberal
a homogeneous feminist
women, the
focus
on
Marxist feminist as the source
socialist feminists
blending
of
with political and economic structures and the radical
feminist focus on patriarchal domination of women,to name
the
feminist
most
well-known
branches.
However,
these
approaches havein common their focus on
the waysin which the gendered structure of society is related
to
the
1960s,
were ignored This
to
crime.
scholars
ignored,
1969,
and the
other
explain
the
lacking
in
led
than
to
from
equality:
Simons
focused
OF FEMINIST
CRIMINOLOGY
in
two
more
as
with the focus response Until the latter half of the 20th century, most crimi-nological
workfocused on maleoffenders and criminal justice system responses to
malecrime. The lack of
attention to female offending stemmed from the fact
and
less
Both attention
crime.
to
a result
on equal
female
of
female
early
movement and
on
Crime and
Although and
they
reached
argued
that
changed
perceptions
the both
of female
central
thesis
women
would
engage
womens
liberation.
treatment,
off ending
the
Two
1970s,
focus
Sisters in Crime.
both
cen-tury
off enders.
the
of the issue
Indeed,
was that
were sorely
feminisms
(1975)
in crime
works
crime
in
liberal
aspects
could
mid-20th
female
published
womens
participation
participation
of the
in
more
that
well explain
conclusions,
mid-20th-century female
been largely
but that
Women and
diff erent
According
had
crime
Adlers
on diff erent
somewhat
these EMERGENCE
(1)
(1975)
(see
males committed
equally
second-wave
United
1968).
developed
interest
were
the
Great Britain
been
feminism
books
derived
gender
gap in
women
and research.
gender
that
able to
a renewed
important
of
had
second-wave
that
within
and
Heidensohn role
noting
gender being
argue
theorizing
Canada
theories
The
to
not from
from
scholars,
crime. Thus,
(2)
come
but instead
these
began
in criminological
early interest
States
crime.
and capitalism
as the source of inequality,
In
Bertrand
off ending,
and the special needs of women
on class relations
in society
crime, including
responses to female
approach; it incorporates equal opportunities
at the center
on a broad range of issues
womens prisons,
of corrections,
ways
the would
of in
Also,
criminal
justice
become
harsher
chivalrous.
books to
were important
female
crime
and
in the
bringing criminal
more justic
FEMINIST
systems response to female crime, but the focus on increased criminal out of the feminist
opportunities for
push for
equality
criminologists.
broad
themes
Among the
emerged.
whether lower-class
First,
female
off enders with
whether increases in female crime of poverty,
families in
poverty
female-headed
pointed to
by two
In
more traditional
addition,
these
scholars
views
of
compete
with
Radical
men in the
& Chesney-Lind 1988). Second,
that the gap between maleand female offending was narrowing (Steff ensmeier & Allan 1996).The focus of began shifting to the
which social and economic
structures
participation
and
the
shaped
in crime.
early
1970s,
labored
such
Influence
of
of
blamed
works
second
Critical
major factor
Criminology
during
the
criminologies, the
study
in the
1970s
or the of crime.
and
Marxist
theory,
as the
result
of
and
class
feminist
political, United
socially
much
was an era of rapid
social
ideologies
and
and social anti-war womens
by
and
development Susan
movement,
somewhat overly
(1975)
analysis
of the
crime
of rape.
Similarly,
for
their
the
feminist
civil
The
viewed
the
two
In
world,
political
the
were chal-lenged, laws the
and the
quickly
public
The
state
new warrior (Young
as
the
criminology engaged 1979)
in
a
also
laws
against
scrutiny.
placed
could
perspective enacted
past sexual
of the
for
approach victim, barred
into
to
women
from of rape
Proof
of
had resisted
as
Also, the
victims
as evidence rape
and ultimately
evidence
rape
victims
themselves.
introduction
mat-ter
and
victims
victim
to
eff ect
a
battered
the
the
de-velopment
for
community
protect
be introduced
behavior
and
the
became
mid-1970s,
that
that
to
able
country,
evidence.
feminist
with
the
on trial
evidence
conduct
were
to the
how the
to
were
Shelters
Until
argued
is important
women
throughout
were essentially
sexual
feminism
scholars
were reformulated
undue
defense. The
approach
radical
concern.
emerging
only
women.
collaboration
Violence
well as corroborating
became
was perceived
in
in cri-tiqued
victimization Smart
contributed
criminology
feminist
change.
of began
First,
radical
social
this
unrest.
including
male-centered
as a noble
powerful
reasons.
activists,
highly
1970s.
of
of feminist
criminology
movement,
what
still
criminology.
a
contribution
rape required
with
and
off ender
with
of
was
not
to recognize
victimization
gender,
Will
a gendered
that
failed
shaped
structures
rights
theories
the
(1976)
through
all victims.
in
and
emerged,
for
Our
Smart
assumption
grounded
the
in
thought.
theories,
at crime
their
victimiza-tion of feminist
male dominance
criminological
experience
mainstream
of
of society
during
criminologists
disenchanted idealistic
of the
struggle
power
also for
were
influential
Carol
structure
radical
and
but
the
Against
role
to
seminal
criminological
patriarchal
Western
change
extremely
a searing
was a similar
Prior
victims
brought
to look
to
Two
the forefront
the
failure
rape
men into
feminist
and
response
violence.
mid-1970s
to
movement.
of critical/radical view
the
intimate and laws,
were
of
scholars
public
victimization.
Brownmillers
that
of the new
especially
1960s of
movements
liberation
However,
the
Both
conscious
crimi-nology
perspectives
emerged
and
Existing
these
oppression.
criminological
feminist
approaches
roots
oppression,
criminology
States
conflict
With intellectual
crime
and
of feminist
was the emergence
conflict
race,
rise
radical,
with
contrib-uted
Criminology
the
and
their
the
women
criminology
radical
policies for
during of
lens The
feminism,
of patriarchy,
Feminist
reform
as rape
revision
often
to
mainstream The
Radical
body of feminist
Feminism
the
crimes
careful analysis of datafailed to support the contention
womens lives, as well astheir
women.
society
scholarship.
activists
off enders
ways in
of
on the consequences
During
female off enders tended
feminist criminological thought
abuse
which a patriarchal
by
question the idea that these
realm of crime (Daly
the
ways in
to the burgeoning
of
dominated
and stereotypical
to
beganinstead
on the
might be due to the
womens roles, calling into were trying
violence and rape. Feminist criminology focusing
out
because the composition
households.
end intimate
enabled
male off enders or
195
working to
its focus
questioned
were acting
became increasingly
out that lower-income
have
criticisms,
scholars
of a desire to achieve equality
feminization
women coming
has been critiqued
angered radical feminists
CRIMINOLOGY
past by the
incorporated rape shield of the
vic-tims
196
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Second, the feminist scholarship on rape and inti-mate to theoretical explanations of crime and criminality. violence impacted
mainstreamcriminology. This
has led to a revised understanding of victimization. that
Statistics
womens
fundamentally
close to them. this
is
the
support
victimization
because
perspective,
of
Much like
and
norms
FROM
As suggested
facilitate
feminist
scholarship
criminological
partners.
A
on sexual
research
of violence
has helped
work using the
on
Conflict
approach
Tactics Scale developed by Straus and Gelles(1986).
the
chapter,
is not limited
criminologists
feminist
PERSPECTIVE
earlier in this
perspectives, the
within the home
Much of the early research
violence stems from
Feminist
THEORIES
FEMINIST
theorizing
reshape our understanding and between
CRIMINOLOGICAL
women.
the
violence, feminist
scholarship.
of men. For example,
From the radical feminist institutions
feminist
and
by someone
social
This is followed by a summary of the subject matter of
posi-tion
morelikely to be victimized
victimization
intimate
the feminist is intrinsically
diff erent than that
women are far
of the complexities
many diff erent
of which are a femi-nist
mainstream
criminological
pathways theory, socialist feminist
most recent
development:
intersectionality
crimi-nological
one approach.
have adopted
most noteworthy
to
feminist
to
multiple
theory,
theory, and marginalities/
theories.
Feminist scholars have pointed out that although this scale measuresthe incidence of a widerange of aggressive
Mainstream
Theories
and
Feminist
Criminology
tactics, it fails to placethem in context. Stankos (1990) examination
of everyday violence provided evidence
that
womens victimization
Thus,
research conducted
conjunction
criminologists,
in
with activism, impacted
not only laws
but
Victimization
Eventually, the
Survey
passed.
funding
Federal
Violence
Against
for research
prosecution
programs
By
Against
and
More recently, Women
Act has
carried this focus on the rights of womento safety into the
international
A
major thrust of the
based
on research
and
stir
been
of
only
if
criminal
females,
than
criminality
research. in
take
are
this
approach
issue.
First
males are far criminal
which
tacit
more likely
behavior,
through
this
about
assumptions feminist
than
of
inher-ent
criminologists
that,
females
to
are somehow
mainstream
more
this type
assumption
females
Second,
Although
no information
unspoken
with
has
males are indeed
virtually
is the
women
criminology
variable.
that
two
theories
add
at all, has frequently
can be garnered
There
to the field.
mainstream
mainstream
as a control
confirmation
has been the
men.The
considered
has provided
female
of
with boys and
gender,
used
criminology
development
approach
meant that
because engage
in
unimportant
criminology
assumes
arena. that
In summary, feminist criminological thought gained prominence during the highly political era of the 1960s and 1970s. At first, the field focused on the information
on girls
scholarship.
As the field
include
of feminist
critique
were
was pursued,
became available.
Violence
2000).
Women Act was
and intervention
aggressive
the International
to address the
Questions about rape
in the home (Britton
Prevention
developed,
victims.
Crime
were added, as were questions about
victimization
1994, the
National
wasreformulated
of female
and sexual assault violent
unreported.
by feminist
also police practices.
experiences
wasfrequently
and
women in
shifted
explain
explain
missing
criminological
grew, the focus
to
males
In theory
to
for
their
and
females
are
alike
male criminality
female
and
will
that
work
what
equally
works
well to
criminality.
particular,
theories
like
have been criticized focus
Mertons
by feminist
on economic
goals
(1938)
strain
criminologists
and their
failure
to
violence against
women as well as the develop-ment consider how personal relationships may contribute to of feminist criminological theories and feminist criminality. Merton argued that crime was largely the ways of approaching existing theories. A broad base of result of having the American dream as a goal but lack-ing
scholarship
has been amassed from the
movement,
The
following
critical
theories,
section focuses
and
womens libera-tion
radical
on feminist
feminism.
approaches
opportunities manner. theory
Feminist
to
achieve
this
criminologists
was obviously
not equally
goal in argued
a legitimate
that
applicable
Mertons to
women
FEMINIST
They
pointed out that, although women werecertainly
more financially
blocked than
far less crime (Belknap social learning
and
with their focus been
criticized
gendered
nature
& Holsinger, 2006). diff erential
the
failure
take
into
linked
to
have
account
of peer relationships.
is strongly
delinquent
to
the
Whereas male
having
initiation
peers
Actually, females
with older delinquent to crime and rather than
by their
peers.
not an exhaustive list of by feminist
Although
it
approach
taken
critiqued
by
vice
versa.
In
a broad
determines
the
women, it
may be
likelihood
may be important the birth
life
that
someone
case
However, for
to examine other reasons. may provide sufficient
motivation for a woman engaging in criminal to a noncriminal
Overall, the gendered is not particularly
course
will cease. In the
of a child
to change her trajectory
to
of an event or
marriage or career.
men, this
occur-rences
criminal
sense,
behavior
use of
well received
behaviors
one.
mainstream theories
by feminist
criminolo-gists.
Many argue that these theories fail to explore in
of the
detail the waysin
purportedly
which the experiences of girls and
womenshape their lives. In contrast, feminist pathways
However,other feminist criminologists mainstreamtheories
haveargued
maystill be usedif they are
theory focuses explicitly
more sensitive to the predictors
of crime in both
Agnews (1992)
theory attempts to be gender sensitive.
on the relationship
between
life experiences and future criminality, arguing that one mustconsider the role, of patriarchal society if onetruly
restructured and operationalized in a mannerthat is and women. In particular,
examine
of
gender-neutral theories. that
that
this is certainly
does give an idea
or
in-volvedIn particular,
partners
mainstream theories
criminologists,
male-dominated
by these intimate
also
engaging in criminal
males may beintroduced
delinquency
but
suggest that it is the salience
reason
with
who are intimately
behavior
may change the pathways from
noncriminal,
theories
behaviors and attitudes, this is far less true
for females.
of criminal
that
theories,
and behaviors,
197
These theories not onlylook at factors important in the
Likewise,
association
on peer attitudes
for
delinquency
men,they committed
CRIMINOLOGY
wishes to understand
men
female crime and criminality.
general strain
Byincorporating
Feminist
Pathways
Theory
a broader range of sources of strain in the theory, he has attempted In
to address the concerns voiced by feminists.
his theory,
strains
he has explicitly
focused
as well as on negative life
which are important
predictors
Also, he has pointed
out that
have diff erent emotional
experiences, of female
of off enses (Broidy
operationalization
both of
men and women tend to
reactions to strain,
feminist
& Agnew 1997).
how
Afeminist
of general strain theory
could
pathways
which
criminal
lifestyles.
per se but rather negative emotional responsesto strain that lead to crime. Again, a thoughtful
and gendered
analysis would focus on how emotional responses and coping
resources
are gendered
and how this
help explicate the diff erent relationships experiences
would
between life
2004)
has laid
of males and females and their subsequent
participation lends itself not all, of the
in
crime.
Indeed,
more to a gendered
for a gendered exploration
ultimately
She argues
that,
with the juvenile of status sexual
immoral
girls
and
have historically
analysis than
in
most, if
theories.
may off er an opportu-nity of womens criminality.
in
behaviors
often
boys
or girls
been
and
into
criminal
girls
initial
system
double
most
engaging
standard
and
women
for mildly
engaging
frowned
on
of sexual misconduct
more in
result
are seen as
Girls
girls suspected treated
the
or engaging
behaviors
of correction.
were at the
lifestyles.
away
patriarchal in these
a patri-archal
encounters
are largely
as running
Pasko
opportunities
them
faced institutionalization
males. Indeed,
have
the
on them
&
abuse
shape
life
and books,
boys,
need
that
leads
articles
forcing
The
the
focuses
unlike
engaging
in
society
childhood
justice
activity.
means that
in
to
Chesney-Lind
system
off enses, such
general strain theory
mainstream criminological
Likewise, life course theories
of girls,
how
theory
numerous
(see
justice
this
place
In
crimino-logical
means of the
linked
girls,
womens
out
juvenile
in
and
Chesney-Lind
examine the role of abuse histories in predicting female crime. Agnew has argued that it is not strain
women
by
eff ort to demonstrate
is inextricably
ways in
Meda
ex-plicitly
of
in feminist
has come
model. In the
crime
experiences
into
breakthrough
and research
female
possess dif-ferent the diff erent
greatest
theory
delinquency.
coping skills and resources, and commit types
Perhaps the
on relationship
criminal
harshly
than
activity.
It
either is thi
198
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
patriarchal, paternalistic approach to the social control of the behavior of females that contact there
with the juvenile
frequently
of gender relations in society tends to relegate
Furthermore,
to recognize that
as well as running
early sexual
away from
of intervening
in the lives
of abused girls, society
with a double standard
as incorrigible girls for
and/or
(e.g., running society identifying
away from
them
By punishing
may actually
limiting
these
then life
as delinquents. This
In
homes),
chances
perspective
against
by also
women,
and
capitalism
order
to
patterns
in
women.
off ense leading
of theories
imprisonment.
womens
Substance abuse is seen as a coping
mechanism.
Girls
and
women
often
use
alcohol
and
point, because the
abuse problems.
majority of these off enders sexual, or emotional seeks
to
illuminate
abuse. Feminist the
connections
that
relations
structure
the
and exploitation
of young females and their subsequent
off ending.
arguably
It is
contemporary
feminist
Socialist
the
dominant
approach
most criminology
the feminist
would
be
criminology
to
criminology and
gender is intrinsically
Feminist
Criminology
exclude to
As discussed
Feminist
As
(1986)
of both
focused
capitalism
Helaid
one cannot
gender
minority
of
part
in
many
of
a clearer
ways in
crimes
suggests
in that
that
of various either any true
and
explanation
crimes
lower
both argued or
of crime. class and
because
of
crimi-nology
how gender
illustrates
cognizant
and
the
of
that
both
mens how
has
that
of their
have in of
by the
individuals. not simply lesbian,
of
argue that
for
women
its
race critique to the
The
the in-tertwined iden-tity.
of feminist
feminist
critique
charge is that
feminist
ways essentialized that
all
intersectionality
structure
gender
and in
the
women
and
race, class, and
multiple
turn
impact
Furthermore,
these
impacts
interact.
being
African
American,
or being
cumulative.
evolves
from
the
poor that Instead,
intersection
matters;
there
is
neither
an interaction
of statuses.
Ones
are
are each
being female,
eff ects
as-sumption
are similar.
acknowledges
assuming
social
feminist
race, class, and sexual
many
women,
early
criticized
of all
has been similar
Proponents
impacted
been
critical
criminology.
Marginalities
sciences,
scholarship
criminologists
marginality
Multiple
social
ways, the
mainstream
alike.
males and
structures
many
experiences
patriarchal
types
economic
marginalized
males engage in street
of the
seeks to explain
of feminist ignores
the experiences to
criminology
has led
of both
of higher level which are com-mitted
related to crime.
eff ects of gender,
Messerschmidt which
experiences
has led
In
examination
understanding
males and females.
the
This
feminist
scholarship
blending
seeking to illuminate
scholarship
that
masculinity
ungendered
masterful
as well as theories
His theory
is
Criminology
feminist
how feminist
of the
is the
ignore
relationships
His theory
of
earlier,
out a theory
male and female that
on
examination
on the
structures
females.
treatise
criminological
eff orts to incorporate
experiences
any
a discussion
of criminology
of crime. to
in
has led
crime.
critique
remiss
crime.
approach
criminological
It
a
against
in
criminology.
Feminist
family
male violence
development
and womens experiences,
abuse
between
because he directly addresses the feminist criticism
pathways theory
links
in
by males. His work is extremely
of physical,
between
of
male privilege
to the
Likewise, the
have histories
drew
male-dominated
he provided
primarily important
desperate
exploitation
white-collar and corporate crimes,
majority of incarcerated girls and
women have substance
he
and
about
to
about capitalism in his examination
drugs to self-medicate their trauma that has resulted from abusethey haveexperienced.This is an important
women in
submit
his discussion
Finally,
also explored
how both patriarchy
addition,
inequality
between abuse and substance to
In
on crimes
of women in the sex trade in
place these
survive.
economic
focus
(1986)
showing
where they
abuse, the
one
Messerschmidt
world countries,
examines the relationship number
with the feminist
the sexual exploitation third
womens
larceny and fraud.
keeping
situations
be self-preserving
abusive or neglectful
may be further
has
that labels these girls
immoral.
behaviors that
crime to low-level
home, are
the result of abuse within the home. Instead
reacted
capitalistic society. In contrast, the structure
pushes them into
justice system.
has been a failure
behaviors,
blocked opportunities and their roles as malesin a pa-triarchal
It is be-ing
are the that action
FEMINIST
and opportunities
are structured
by ones placement
FEMINIST
CRIMINOLOGY
CRIMINOLOGICAL
199
SCHOLARSHIP
along each of these dimensions.Thus, the experiences of, for
example,
those
of
Hispanic
Hispanic
American
women are diff erent from
men as well as white or
women (Burgess-Proctor
The
African
subject
discipline
2006).
of
topics.
to
criminological
focus. METHODOLOGY
IN
FEMINIST
CRIMINOLOGY
is
Not only does feminist but it
their
mainstream use both
quantitative
to
explore
feminist
and
official
them
off enders;
Like
also
draw
On the quantitative
between
may be colored
by gender.
range of methodologies. In particular, focus groups, in-depth interviews,
or official qualitatively statistics
and
(see
qualitative
Owen
One final research
should
perspective, is that
to
research
the
number Changes
surveys
be explored
informing
the
lower
scholarship
We have
places emphasis
seen
that
and main-stream
than
on the researcher himself
matter of the research.
or herself
From the femi-nist
however, this is an impossibility.
The
we are never free of our own beliefs
criminological
are evident
for praxis or participatory action research.In contrast to
have consistently
women in science re-search,
participatory action research and praxis-driven methodologies stress the importance
of research that
is geared toward social change. In feminist criminol-ogy, this policies,
has meant working toward and prisons.
most areas of feminism, intrinsically
intertwined.
In feminist activism
changes in laws, criminology,
and scholarship
However, female
the
second
that
as in are
this
the
because life
and types not
women
to
women,
of 2007,
research
(see
that
felony
the
arrest,
have focused
2003).
Two
the treatment
as
the criminal
of girls and
with
behavior.
pointing
but instead
Feminist men
scholars
criminal
end
scholars
have
justice the
point
to out
diff er-ent for
system same
out
leads
essentially
motivations
women
ma-jor
scholar-ship
First, feminist
then
on
programs
criminological
crime
well
of female
and the
Sharp
not
and
on
also
prisons
into
treat
more
for
incarceration
does
as
of crime,
be designed
end
for
aggressive
has impacted
helps shape
experiences
of indeter-minate sentences
day.
and
characteristic:
the
prisons.
were incarcerated
argued
focus
in
particular,
By the
of feminist
pathways
guidelines
increases
mandatory
in the research.
society
on the
and federal
In
of
off ending.
sentencing
off enses
inmates
characteristics
off ending
the inequities in
womens
to female
women
has focused
criminologists
in
of
criminological
to female
state
extensive
Feminist
approach suggests the need
the value-neutral approach of muchsocial
to
conviction,
conditions
available
to
the
the
massive
of color.
women
has led
both
of feminist
response
on any given
off enders. the
on
in
drug
100,000
This
eff ects
off enders.
of
prosecution,
the
to reduce
women
convictions
explored
resulted
female
prosecution
and values, that those shape our research. In addition, the feminist
level
mother-hood
have
mid-1980s
sent
designed
the
to
abuse
numerous
and the federal
sentencing
or
and
has examined
the
women
quite likely abuse
account,
bulk
resulted
of
are
and
2003).
systems
1980s
especially
a value-free stance, detaching
argument
from
questions
of feminist
be addressed.
from the subject
Often, a
1998).
aspect
criminology taking
and offending.
used, with information
data suggesting
of relation-ships
since justice
war on drugs
and life histories provide infor-mation
between victimization is
The of
to help tease out the complexity combination
criminal
recognizes
of victims
Furthermore,
incarceration
girls. The
women
into
(Sharp
research
and
scholarship
In qualitative research, feminist scholars use a broad
1996).
female
Extensive women
criminology
off enders
be taken
children
against
of childhood
criminologists
and their
womens
female
must
an important
dichotomy
whether
the
range
approaches
been
violence
Feminist
(Belknap
large-scale
surveys
that
as in a broad
feminist
have
not a clear-cut
instead,
feminist
side, they
puzzle.
includes
earlier,
evident
victims,
role
off ending and official responses
women and how those
be
as adults
on
is
is
criminology,
overall,
theorizing
of the
there
methods, to
data and use large-scale
and their
many
criminolo-gists
qualitative
both the relationships
experiences to
encompass methodologies.
or combining
of each.
may examine
many
counterparts,
often triangulating the strengths
criminology
also uses
of feminist
As described
Also, it
part
that
topics,
matter
of criminology
crime
should as
men
200
CRIME
Thus,
AND
BEHAVIOR
considerable recent scholarship has focused on
both the problems ofincarcerated
women and difficul-ties
with how the system is serving them. gone as far as to challenge corrections
approach equity,
designed for
a sort
equality.
that
a detailed
see Chesney-Lind
menis a form
by feminist bylooking
Eventually, she
drugs, and
of vengeful
of this
argument,
criminologists
may be
at an example.
Perhaps a
or sexually
may run
away,
may engage in sexual
abused in the may start
behaviors,
money or drugs in order to survive.
in
prison, she finds
using
perhaps
She is eventu-ally
caught and remanded back to the custody of her parents. As a result of her behavior, conditions in the
victimization training, into
arrested for drug possessionthis time. the location, family,
she
deemed incorrigible. abuse.
a juvenile
finds that she is now labeled behind academically
society
she quickly
is further
foster
as a bad
in school; she
drugs. They
may be old enough that
crowd.
She
who seems to
eventually
and she becomes pregnant.
her as a runaway.
and she
become
By this time, she
her parents no longer
She drops out of school
herself in
that
sent
her parole is revoked,
prison
again.
Her situation
by the fact that
she is a single
may be with her family,
or social
and placed the child in
When men go to
prison, the
childrens
with the children,
but
when
women areincarcerated, the majority of the time there is no father present to care for the children, creating for
the
child
as well as the
mother.
Because
womens prisons are often in remote areas,sheis rarely if ever able to see her child. If the child is with family members, he or she
may be abused, just
as the
pris-oner
was as a child. If the child is in state custody, parental rights
may be terminated.
more depressed
The
and feels like
cycle then
interventions
that
and resulting she
will remain
on
continues.
can
help
release,
mother-hood.
eff ective
with past traumas
off drugs is low.
network,
there
is
that
Without assistance
and job skills, and finding
small
her
woman is at
Without
her deal
her educational
a healthy support live
Now the
she has failed
mental health issues, the likelihood
in improving
chance
building
a safe place to she
will
be suc-cessful
when released again. This
scenario
interwoven
or choice. Nowshe is a poorly educated single mother,
that
probably with a drug problem.
She is rearrested,
may have intervened
child.The boyfriend leaves, whether through boredom with low self-worth,
reintegrate
behaviors
care.
report
and hasthe
job
once she is released,
the same
mother usually remains
girl. She may be
male, several years older,
have ready access to
she
may have difficulty
begins hanging out with an older, tougher
intimate,
more
education,
falls into
Her child
services
programs
needs: drug abuse,
self-esteem,
how to successfully
complicated
mother.
Onceshe ar-rives
are few
on her release. Thus,
and she finds
and
to her community
peers with whom she can spend time;
meets a young
of her
facility
While there, she experience
Upon release, returning
finding
Depending on
her status, and perceived resources may be placed into
issues, low
and planning
hardship home maybecome worse, with moreabuse or unrea-sonable
rules. She again runs away, perhaps getting
that there
there to help her with her greatest
her to prison.
1999, cited in Sharp 2003.)
emphasis
better understood
for
of the
the puni-tive
women demanding
discussion
young girl is being physically home.
equity
to hold a job and to pay fees
makes her a noncompliant probationer.
Some have
applying
of backlash against
(For
This
the gender
systems, arguing
as well as her inability
illustrates
nature of feminist
illuminate
the
the
complexity
and
criminology. Theories
victimization
and
experiences
of women may help explain their criminal
behavior
She has difficulty finding and holding ajob. She may
where mainstream theories cannot. Also, the plights
steal to support
of the hypothetical
herself, her child, and her drug use.
Eventually, she mayfind her.This
relationship
another
is likely
becomes even lower, and eventually to
prison.
treatment child,
to be abusive.
may or
with felonies
may not
been on probation,
have been limited. but her inability
and sent
have sought
prior to incarceration.
her options
drug
With a dependent She
like
her, have driven feminist
the criminal Her self-esteem
her drug use progresses,
she is charged
She
maleto help support
may have
to stay off drugs
Awareness
womanjust described, and thou-sands
justice of
to the need for
criminologists
system to examine
womens
pathways
into
prisons and prison
geared to the
needs of female
prison system
and programming
have become
major foci
into
its structure. crime
points
programs that
off enders. Thus, in
womens
of feminist
research as well. Because the correctional
are the
prisons
criminological system aros
FEMINIST
in response to of
women
maleoff ending, the needs and abilities
are
often
criminologists
not
demonstrate,
the characteristics programs
taken
into
account.
through
of female
as which ones Even
on
what types
would be most beneficial for
abuse
and therapy
women as well
treatment,
in
vocational
prisons
are viewed through
1990s, the therapeutic
communities
boot camp
program
these
of rehabilitation
programs
and females.
fact
in
positively
to confrontation,
programs
(Marcus-Mendoza,
have
This
males
of both types
Klein-Saff ran,
was
not
even
to
this As
is
smaller,
the
justice
social
field
moved
women
emerging
The
entire
system
need for
more
criminals
were
feminist
and in
field
of
by
men, in
been dominated men.
of
workers
scholarship
have
prisoners, there is a burgeoning
the taken
part because
most
criminologists
body of
the
there
crime
at
the
meetings
until
has also
been
been
In
issue
peer-reviewed
treatment
Sage
of
to
on feminist victimization
in
publish
a wide range justice
Publications
intro-duced
the official
This
Crime
journal
scholarship,
articles
girls
violence
criminal
Criminology.
on feminist
women
Then,
Women and
off ending, of
system.
Criminology,
on
of
and
1990s, and
of Feminist
Society
publication
gender-based
early
2006,
jour-nals. Justice
womens
waslaunched
crime,
Division
a broad focus
female
justice
on
women,
of the
criminology & Criminal
of
Women
was relegated
to the
aspects
criminal
published.
American
journals
Since the
about
of has
publishing
criminological
theo-ries,
of women,
and girls in the justice
and the
systems.
work by
that takes a gendered ap-proach FEMINIST
to studying policing, corrections, and the law. This
marginaliza-tion
and
devoted
Against
the first
has
of female
dis-interest.
getting
Indeed,
Society
Women
scholarship
publication
justice
and
women
prestigious,
on all
victims.
books
corrections
criminal
with
well as
scholarship
specifically
Violence
have
working in law the
simply
difficulty
as
on
not very
in
and female
began
prisoners
or
theories mainstream
has been published.
the journal
peer-reviewed
With the rapid increase in both
criminological
feminist
criminal
within that
of women
as attorneys,
the
women, scholarship
of female
to an increase
enforcement, industry.
number
on
disdain
criminology
research
involvement 1995,
a focus
as well. Both the
contributed
long
into
working
and the increasing
and
was launched,
issue.
system and its response to
related to
apparent
the
much feminist
1989,
Withtwo thirds of female pris-onersscholarly
minor children, it is readily
a serious
challenging
Criminology
in
and
In
of successful reentry, motherhood must
mothers to that
dominated
mainstream
considerable
a session
Given the
has been
published
American
crimino-logical
task.
wed to
with
to
work that
Publication
demanding activities (Sharp, 2003). Finally, to increase betaken into account.
CENTURY
1975.
& Lutze
that maypreclude their participation in physically
met
scholarship
annual
of
more
has led
of the
1998). Also,female prisoners tend to have health prob-lems difficult,
the likelihood
21ST
of feminist
of criminology
approaches
perspective
women respond less
a staple
THE
acceptance
who are
research,
However,
well suited to
Among other issues,
IN
has been a daunting
the field
became com-mon feminist
US. prisons.
are not equally
that
reha-bilitation, and
During the
and
widespread scholarship
by scholars
a gendered lens.
forms
Gaining
of
might not be eff ective.
substance
CRIMINOLOGY
201
Feminist
their research
prisoners,
FEMINIST
CRIMINOLOGY
approach has primarily focused on two aspects
FROM
A
CRIMINOLOGY GLOBAL
PERSPECTIVE
of the gendered nature of criminal justice employ-ment. First,
in the asks
the
looks
practices
at
how
women
of then jobs.
what characteristics
justice work.
it
and
Feminist
women
men
criminology
working in criminal
bring to their jobs and how these impact Second,
ways in
corrections, inequality
some
feminist
scholars
which the structure and courts
(Britton
continues
2000).
diff er
have
of law
their
examined
enforcement,
to lead to
gender
Feminist
criminology
outside
of
because
of the focus
is
a
the
has arguably
hallmark
recognized focused
and
and
States
the
India,
female
abuse
female
than
on violence
of feminist problem
on
in
United
had
more impact
within.
against
criminology
women
as
in
Muslim
to
name
that
well as a ha
countries
circumcision/genital
infanticide,
is
Research
internationally. of
This
women
mutila-tion, a few
topics.
202
CRIME
Because
AND
BEHAVIOR
international
attention
has
been
drawn
to
the plight of women and girls in various parts of the world,
research
that
victimization At the
has
takes
a feminist
been
international
welcomed
level,
sex industry.
study the policies around
particular
some viewed
and
in regard
because they
feminist
criminolo-gists justice
traditional
gender
to sexuality.
For example, in
off enders
instead
of
as
have violated the expectations
American Society of Criminology. criminological
building
violence
scholarship
and theory testing,
against
women;
includes
as well as research
womens
crime;
and
women in the criminal justice system, both as off enders and
workers. The
criminology
norms,
women who are raped
as
on
women, sanc-tioningaff ect
may victimize
violating
treated
has
of women and girls in the
addition,
Muslim countries,
theory
2006).
attention
as Fellows by the Current feminist
womens
which laws and criminal
the world
them for in
In
waysin
on
(Maidment,
considerable
been paid to the exploitation global
slant
a century, and feminist scholars have been recognized
defining
characteristics
of feminist
are the emphasis on how social structures
men and
women diff erently, the relationship
research
and
activism,
between victimization
and
the
be-tween
interrelatedness
and off ending among
women.
may be victims
REFERENCES
regarding
AND
FURTHER
READINGS
womens sexuality.
Some feminist criminologists
haverecently argued
Adler, F. (1975).
that there has been a global backlash against feminist attempts to improve the situations of girls and women,
criminal.
Agnew,
not only in third world countries but alsoin the indus-trialized West. A 2008 issue of Feminist Criminology was
devoted
to
initiatives
articles
on
byfeminists
how
crime
and
victimization
York:
R. (1992).
Foundation
J. (1996).
Belknap,
a general theory
CA:
for
of crime
30, 4787.
invisible
woman:
Gender,
crime
and
Wadsworth.
& Holsinger,
of risk factors
for
Criminology, The
Belmont, J.,
rise of the new female
McGraw-Hill.
and delinquency.
Belknap,
justice.
have led to a countermovement.
Sisters in crime: The
New
K. (2006).The
delinquency.
gendered
Feminist
nature
Criminology,
1,
4871.
CONCLUSION
Bertrand,
M. A. (1969).
Self-image
to the study
Although
progress in the publication
has been made,it remains in the overall discipline. journals
publish
also textbooks
somewhat
only limited
feminist
mainstream
scholarship,
to feminist
new generations
and yet given little
schol-arship
marginal-ized
Not only do
give scant attention
theory. Thus, are educated
of feminist
if
but
image.
D.
L.
general
any information
Crime
receiving scant education on
strain
and
well.
The
of the largest Criminology, series focusing continue Crime, in the
to
feminist
and
Division
on
sections several
Women
of the major
remains and
American publishers
Crime
alive is
one
Society have
of
book
on women and crime, and new scholars emerge. The
which started mid-1980s,
Division
on
with a small group
Women and of scholars
has now existed almost a quarter
of
Feminism
in
Annals ofthe
rape.
R. (1997).
criminology:
American
Academy
Delinquency,
New
York:
Chesney-Lind,
34,
Journal
Simon
Research in
will:
Men, women and
& Schuster.
Intersections
Future
directions
Criminology,
M.(1986).
of
A
275306.
Against our
A. (2006).
gender, and crime:
Gender and crime:
perspective.
S. (1975).
Feminist
criminology
(2000).
theory
Burgess-Proctor,
feminist criminology (Renzetti 1993). However,
womens
2, 71144.
the outlaw.
M., & Agnew,
about feminist criminology. This is reflected in their re-searchBrownmiller,
with new criminologists
and
Acon-tribution
of Political and Social Science, 571, 5776.
of criminologists
as well asin their teaching and mentoring of new
M.
Engendering
crimino-logical Broidy,
scholars.The cycle therefore remains self-perpetuating,
of female criminality
Acta Criminologia,
Britton,
and delinquency:
of race,
for feminist
class, crimi-nology.
1, 2747.
Women
and crime: The
female
off ender. Signs, 12, 7896. Chesney-Lind, Girls,
women
M., & Pasko, L. (2004). The and crime
(2nd
female off ender:
ed.). Thousand
Oaks,
CA:
Sage. Chesney-Lind,
M., & Shelden,
and juvenile justice.
R. G. (1992).
Belmont,
CA:
Girls, delin-quency
Wadsworth
FEMINIST
Daly, K., & Chesney-Lind,
M.(1988),
Justice Quarterly, Flavin,
J. (2001).
and crimi-nology. Renzetti,
Feminism
Feminism
for
An invitation.
the
Journal
of
mainstream Criminal
crimi-nologist:
Justice,
29,
271285.
Goodstein, justice 3,
Feminist
perspectives
and the criminal
Journal
of Criminal
Justice Education,
F.
critique
(1968).
The
and an enquiry.
deviance
of
British Journal
women:
A
of Sociology, 19,
M.(2006).
perspectives
in
Transgressing
criminology.
B. Perry (Eds.),
In
Advancing
and application
boundaries:
criminology:
&
Sharp,
S. F. (2003). The
Prentice
Simon,
MD: Lexington
Smart,
S., Klein-Saff ran, J., &. Lutze, F. (1998).
Smart,
(pp.
4362).
Lanham,
Afeminist
examination
women.
Merton, R. K.(1938). Sociological
J.
Toward
Rowman
a socialist
and anomie.
In
womans prison.
American
feminist
patriarchy
criminology.
and
Totowa,
NJ:
partner
and criminology.
N.
the
thats
Routledge.
woman:
Rehabilitative
Upper Saddle
River,
NJ:
how it looks
is a mans world ...
in the journals.
Critical
15, 318. Women and crime.
Lexington,
MA:
Books.
C. (1976).
Women, crime and criminology:
Boston:
Routledge and
C. (1997).
concerning
Afeminist
Kegan Paul.
Criminological
E. (1990).
Everyday
Toward
D.,
&
Allan,
a gendered
Struggle and survival
State
An argument
University
of
in
a
New York
for black feminist
womens experience
using an integrated
criminol-ogy:
with intimate
approach.
Feminist
1, 106124. Partial justice:
Boston:
M. A.,
Its
theory: women.
violence.
ideology
British Journal
London:
theory
E. (1996).
Gender
of female
& Gelles, R.J. (1986).
change in family
mix:
American
H.(1985).
18001935.
gendered entrap-ment
New York:
womens prisons.
R. J. (1975).
Steff ensmeier,
Straus,
Philadelphia:
Press.
Albany:
abuse
Criminology,
in
women.
incarcerated
S. F., & Hefley, K. (2006). This
Stanko,
by two
of
Pandora
and
crime:
off ending.
Annual
Northeastern
Womenin state prisons, University
Press.
violence from
national
surveys.
Societal
change and
1975 to 1985 as revealed
Journal
of
Marriage and the
Family, 48, 465479. Thomas,
African
Justice
Review of Sociology, 22, 459488.
Press.
H. (2006).
Criminal
Press.
Capitalism,
Feminism
B. (1998).
of
analyses
Sociology, 28, 89100
& Littlefield.
University
Journal
Compelled to crime: The
and implications
programs
3, 672682.
W. (1986).
N.(1996).
Temple
prison
21, 173185.
Social structure
Review,
Messerschmidt, crime:
of boot camp
Women &.Therapy,
malestream
Feminist
Hail.
critique.
Marcus-Mendoza,
Rafter,
B. (1996).
Sharp,
margins of the do they?):
education.
Richie,
Lexington
Theory
Books.
Potter,
justice
Criminology,
Feminist
W. S. DeKeseredy
critical
get it,
203
4, 219234.
or at least
160176.
Maidment,
Owen,
criminal
Education,
On the
dont
programming
165181.
Naffire,
in
M. (1993). still
of black battered
L. (1992). curriculum.
Heidensohn,
for
C.
(or, they
5, 497538.
CRIMINOLOGY
W. I. (1923). The
unadjusted
girl.
Boston:
Little,
Brown.
Young, J. (1979). Hutchinson.
Capitalism
and the rule
of law.
London:
CHAPTER X
Postmodern Culture
and Theorie
Critical
POSTMODERNISM AND CONSTITUTIVE
THEORIES
OF CRIMINAL BEHAVIOR
Stuart and
P
ostmodernism
is skeptical progress.
is a movement among social theorists of science
Postmodernism
and the scientific transcends
and philosophers
method and its
disciplinary
and indeed
began
in the arts and the humanities before arriving in the social sciences. It did not reach criminology
until the late 1980s.The basic position of those termed post-modernist
is found in a cluster of ideas, which include the following: unknowable; rational thought is merelyone way of thinking,
truth is
and not necessarily
a superior way;rational thought is aform of power; knowledge is not cumulative; facts are merely social constructions that
constitute
a discourse
assumes an alternative which is the
truth
knowledge
by revealing
of postmodernist
alternative
version,
of postmodernism In
other
and should
continuous
this cluster
that are supported
or way of talking
the
to
assumptions ideas
on
it through
is no more truthful,
attended
diff erent
or deconstruc-tion,
of the social
also implies
An
reconstruction.
through
discourse.
discourse, it is
Such reconstruction
and no less contingent,
world could
of
based. In criminology, but too skeptical.
to in such a waythat the consequences for those investing
in the construction
nature
accepted the basic tenets
constructed
possible to reconstruct
and criticism
constructed
which it is
deconstruction
was socially
replacement
discourse
by critique
expose the
postmodernism
but argued that world
phenomena;
was seen as valuable
called affirmative
words, if the
be replaced
attempt
by various claims to truth
about
be less harmful
or
but can be their
energy
and less painful.
Suchreconstruction implies a continuous ongoing societal process of struggle to replace harmful social constructions
withless harmful ones.
The affirmative postmodern position in criminology strands of social theory including Garnnkels Berger
ethnomethodology,
and Thomas
structuration
theory,
Paulo
and it also incorporates Mandlebrot, as well as topology theorists
introducing
Michel
Luckmanns
draws on several other
Ferdinand de Saussures semiotics, Jacques
Lacans psychoanalysis, Alfred Schutzs sociological Foucaults
social
Freire
and
poststructuralism,
constructionism, Henry
the diverse ideas from theory
phenomenology,
A. the
aspects of postmodernist
theory into
L.
Giddens
critical
mathematics
and chaos and catastrophe
Harold Peter
Anthony Girouxs
peda-gogy,
of Benoit
theory. Leading
criminology
Dragan
that
promise to deliver
boundaries,
Henry
include
207
Milovanovi
208
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Bruce Arrigo, Lippens,
Gregg Barak, Stuart
Dragan
Henry, Ronnie
only shape their social world, but are also shaped byit.
Manning, Rob
They are coproducers and coproductions of their own
Milovanovic, Peter
develop-ment and others
Schehr, and T. R. Young, however, the fullest of these ideas into an integrated is
with Stuart
Henry and
how some of this per-spective
theoretical
Dragan
agency.
Milovanovics
as the
humans
impaired,
Constitutive Criminology.
CONSTITUTIVE
CRIMINOLOGY
criminology, roots,
cannot
be
cultural,
viewed
that
separately
and social contexts Constitutive
and
from
rejects
the
historical,
the
arguments
in
mainstream criminology that see crime and off enders
be
harmed,
process and
by
by each
argue that the coproduction
occurs through
criminologists
psychosocial-cultural
societys structure by human actions.
look at what it is about the
matrix that
provides the
medium
meaningful
harms
which humans construct
to others. They
find that this
medium is to befound in
relations of inequality and power. Constitutive criminologists
as disconnected from the wider society or the result of individuals
can
process: ultimately
as these are energized
Constitutive
control
which it is gener-ated. through
within
theory
its
order, as well
it,
by both the
theorists
relations
and culture, post-modernist
with its
crime
is about
humans.
Constitutive
consistent
believes
constructed
during that
as fellow
criminology
within
and destroyed
of harmful Constitutive
socially
constituted
what is built other
Constitutive
argue that relation-ships
of inequality established throughout
acting independently from the context
the whole
of which they are a part. Constitutive criminologists
of society and reflected in its
argue that it is relationships
cultural arrangements translate into specific harmful
by humans through
their
of power, constructed
discourse, that
provide the
motivation, the scripts, and the props for the play that creates
they
the
harms
that
are
labeled
crime.
argue, are active coconstructors
They
construct
surroundings discourse
their
worlds
through
humans identify
these social constructions
language
of their
categories,
of reality
we also coproduce
harmful
also provide
for
produced
humans
act.
by our collec-tive
the harm in our
world.
Thus constitutive criminology shifts the criminological
outcomes,
but they
how all relationships
criminologist,
operate.
human relationships
a blueprint
To the constitutive in hierarchically
or-dered
societies as diff erent asthose in the U.S., Europe, China, or India power
power that
be formal
and
corporations, family. This part
are first
and foremost
and relationships
The
world that gives
that
and the powerless.
not only produce directly
and sym-bols
chaotic states. It is toward
as our world is socially
actions,
their
between the powerful
and
Social processes of inequality
not least via
diff erences, construct
order to otherwise
worlds.
by transforming
use.Through
and share a belief in the reality
Insofar
of their
social interaction,
or language
apparent
Humans,
relationships
organizational
about
frames
stabilized
power
of a historical
social
institutions,
agencies,
cultural
may
such
as
marriage, and the
may be traditionally and
of
power.
human relationships
in
government
relationships
established
context,
as
as in relations
between diff erent races, ethnicities, and genders.It may
focus away from narrow dichotomized issues focusing
beinformal
either
or within interpersonal relationships among otherwise
on
the
individual
off ender
or
on
the
social
envi-ronment.
Crimeis not parasitic behavior on our social uncontrollable
forces
Rather it is an integral the
world
we
and society
social
similar individuals. In any of these frames of power, is
environment.
part of our relationships
with
so
either
criminology
that
thus
constructed
process categories
a
holistic
mutuality
of investing
of order, humans
dormant
Thus,
crime
the waysin
of all three, harm
outcome.
by inequality
of inequality.
Harm
is
not
as it is embedded rather
than
in
identifying
criminology
seeks
which harm is the frequent
of unequal power relationships the
in not
or
specific causes of crime, constitutive
outcome and inter-relationship. energy
manifest
to demonstrate
between the individual
examines their the
takes
a
much caused
relations
of the relationship
In socially
our
create.
Constitutive conception
of
asin subcultural groups
nor is it the re-sult and particularly in the interrelations
world perpetrated by evil individuals, of
and fluctuating,
, and to dem-onstrate
waysthat some of this harm is labeled
as
POSTMODERNISM
AND
CONSTITUTIVE
THEORIES
OF
of humans investing energy in harm producing, socially
diff erence that themselves limit
constructed
the same.
constructed less than
of power, based on inequalities
around
diff erences.
to
do
with denying
or preventing
fully social beings. to
the
world,
and together
us from
to
act
on it,
to transform
than
human;
to interact
with
criminologists their
harmed.
define crime as the
ability to
criminology
is that
of
constitutes
what
diff erence
power to deny oth-ers
it is to
paradox the
the
a diff
erence
constitutes
the
Constitutive criminology types: crimes
of reduction
Crimes of reduction
that
and crimes
have property
in hate crime. experience from
Crimes of repression
a limit,
achieving
an accomplishment Considered
number
or repression
of
In
constructed
Western
harms cluster
constructed
preventing
them
or standing
diff
may be based on an infinite
around familiar
such
socially
crimes
or
differences: economic (class, property),
political (power, corruption),
(racism,
hate),
morality, human rights,
social position (status or prestige, inequality), state (security, or actualization, the
they they from
biological
construction,
actions
integrity, harms
move an off ended away from currently occupying
a position
considered
of
However, harms
which actions
Whatever
a position
occupy, or because they
the achievement another.
etc. either
or state that
of repression
processes
harmful
al-ways
which or
of
off ender, and
crime
more
victim
causation.
To
the
crime is not so much caused through
human processes of
However, there is something
about
in the
an excessive
those
power on
designated
to impose
others. The
investor
in
Excessive investors magnifying
This
uniquely
as criminals.
crime
to
the
potentialities.
others
freedom.
process,
the
victim
or the ability to
investor
is thus
viewed
oth-ers.
creating
and
and others. disables, and
The
investors
crime
is
domination some
that
such
of their
hu-manity,
make a diff erence or to be dif-ferent.
this and
rendered
less complete
loses
as
dominate
Their
others as objects for
Victims, from
crime
to
disadvantages,
human
limit
they act toward
excessive
power
discursive
is
put energy into
of energy
others
is
order (i.e., off ender
diff erences between themselves
investment
destroys
perspective, suff
er loss.
are disabled Victims
suff
own humanity. The
a nonperson,
by
er the
victim
a nonhuman,
of or a
being.
Constitutive
criminology
justice, as it is traditionally
envisions
criminal
practiced, as part of the
very problem it claims to control. Its
practitioners
crime and crime control asif they werereal. Criminal justice is an exercise in the investment perpetuates
or state
excessive
desire,
does not deny or deprive and
manner in
or less
of crime, notion
criminologist
because
prevent them they
also
psy-chological act toward the discursively constructed categories of
well-being), self-realization are
erent
constructions)
the
and discursively
gender (sexism), race and ethnicity
extent
but the more
pain of being denied their
societies
some
Whether single human beings or human groups,
crimes
erences.
industrial
diff
or real-izing that, in the
of deprivation,
be
to
constitutive criminology seessuch people asexcessive
as occurs in sexism or racism.
along a continuum
of reduction
from them as
occur when people
or restriction,
a desired position
present
stolen from them,
but they could also have dignity stripped
a
which it is one.
off ended expe-rience
relative to their
can
reconception
to
investors
crime.
of repression.
occur when those
could
is
divides crime into two
a loss of some quality standing. They
harm
of repression,
concentrated
use
of diff erenceto deny others the right to be different and make
is
as discursively constructed
of
making
be human,
leads
constitutive
constitutive
although
control
achieved
This
and our-selves.
make a diff erence. The
constitutive
is
to others, then the
might be more correctly
or less justified.
others,
we become
Thus
Such
a crime control
makea
others attempts to do
are themselves limiting of these attempts
control.
becoming
the environment
we are
called
make a diff er-ence
If this process is prevented or limited less
repression
ways, but all have
Whatis human is to
209
Where attempts to achieve a desired position
or standing
Crimes are nothing
people being disrespected for being diff erent.
People are disrespected in numerous
BEHAVIOR
attempts by some person or social process to
Constitutive criminology seescrime asthe outcome relations
CRIMINAL
are
when they limit
further
investor
harm. in
of the victimized thus feed crime. notions
harm.
of law
the
institutions
Criminal justice Both
the
and the system
and criminal
of criminal
as indicated
justice, the
of society,
is a
discursive
Both fuel the energies that
of crime. Indeed,
not
of energy that
fear
justice
drive our
above, agencies
official social
are themselves
major
control
organization
210
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Given the
that exercise power (and, therefore, harm). Agencies
continuous
of justice and law not only accomplish both crimes of
and its compounding
reduction
and the
(of liberty,
of property,
(incapacitation), labeling
of power relationships
ascrime,
ornot
control,
crime.
harmful
subject to justices are amplification,
leaving
for harm.
Contributing harm
documentaries,
very relations
of power that
can be done? crime
Constitutive
process, and that
to
provide the linguistic
The
results
crime
crime
invest-ment resistance, the concept
crime
news,
crime
books,
crime
of reality
and as
medium by
can take
of replacement
unofficial,
displace
of power
which
place. Beyond discourse off ers
crime
a celebration
films,
ignored knowledge through its discursive diversity. In
dramas,
of
mayappear.
are designed to exercise
off er an alternative
the crime
discourses that
materials out of which new con-ceptualizations
multiple
shows,
discursive
must take place.The
replacement
moments in the
control. They
what
suggests that
as an ongoing
new constructions as
of the
their reality,
of being human in society
these emerge
excessive
affirm
reconstruction
on creating
become
multiple layering
reproduction
criminology
must be deconstructed
emphasis is
of crime,
by the criminal justice process,
mass medias discursive
social constructions
further are
they
relations. The and
and from
who produce
justice;
own powerful
possibilities
other harmful
and those
concentration,
relations
by
behavior
were acceptable, legal,
by criminal
of powerful
harmful
In this process of societal so-cial
behavior
it become colonized
in
only some
unlabeled, as though it
legitimate,
and repres-sion
they also deepen the problem
and categorizing
behavior
of life)
coproduction
informal,
discounted,
and
crime precautions, agencies of criminal justice, lawyers,
terms of diminishing the harm experienced from all
and academic criminologists.
types of crime (street, corporate, state, hate, etc.), con-stitutive
continuous coproduction relations of
crime
of power
Each contributes to the
and by perpetuating
the discourse
discourses
Language is a key ingredient of power that
discourse (language
our
of powerful
(harm)
suggests alternative is crime
that
seek
discourse
deal
this,
criminology
with the harm that
on the central role
of language.
economies
simultaneously
materialistic
changes; one
Replacement
through
attempts
reconstruct through
by constitutive
engaging
newsmaking
in
what
reorganization comesfrom a deconstruction of the lan-guage ordiscourse
of power. To help bring about such
reorganization and social change, constitutive suggest developing replacement These that
are alternative do not
existing
nor create new relations relationships
founded
relations
than
action
in
the
minimizing
harm.
can
also
Doan (1994)
to
mass media has called be induced
call narrative
developed as part of fam-ily
therapy to enable offenders (excessive investors in
power) to construct
moreliberating life narratives and
EVALUATION
of power,
of power, but help constitute
for inequality.
discourses
reconstruction
criminologists
world
on human interconnectedness.
a foundation
such replacement
implemented
through these reconstitute themselves. crimi-nologists
Here diff erence is the basis for greater understanding rather
be
discourses.
ways of describing the
perpetuate
practices
other renders
Barak (1998) It
Narrative therapy
minimize
pre-vailing
as well as
of crime in the
criminology.
what Parry and
to
can
popular images
therapy.
society
the
criminology
without the
discourse
through
reorganizing
Constitutive
argues for ideological
the
involves
both
and the associated
harm that is based on diff erences of power. Part of this
This
replacement
of
change only in part.
social change, changes and, through
transformation
of crime and social control. thus
we conceive
Constitutive
ways to
build
use) that
relations
reduction.
of
harm. It is through
world.Therefore,
major means of achieving
crime
in the coproduction
produce
and symbol
of and act to produce
in structures
that
political
(domination).
the relations
is a
criminology talks of liberating
of crime by exploiting the
of
Developing
will be a key practical human
relations
toward
Constitutive
criminology
recent literature
has raised
and several arguments
against it, although
must be confronted
have been lev-ied
most share Thomsons
view that this theory is stimulating,
and
much discussion in
raising
(1997)
issues that
by scholars in the empirical,
Marxist traditions
of
ro-mantic,
modern theorizing.
POSTMODERNISM
Several of the criticisms of constitutive
criminology
relate to its postmodernist leanings. For example, a central
theme
is
that
prose is excessively Constitutive
complex,
theorists
because of the
postmodern
narrow range
criminologists
are exposed to.
artificial integration
methodology.
positions or
such as
idealism
and
believe that
modernism
these
Constitutive
positions
much
will
versus
of
modernisms
determinism,
and the
conflict
such
versus
as
cynicism,
nave in believing
211
power structures.
Some point the idea
to
about
that limits
harm reducing
Indeed,
indicate
be harm
that
constructions to
consensus
its strategic
use
Nor is
of one particular
even some sympathetic
replacement
producing,
discourse
objectives.
discourse the prerogative
persuasion.
supporters itself
and
for be-ing
out that there is nothing
of replacement
of reconstruction
progressive
Others
criminology
changes in discourse can change
a means of resistance it
free
and conservatism.
sacrosanct
political
one over the other.
dualisms
nihilism,
replacement
theorists
are interrelated,
mistake is to separate and prioritize Unlike
theoreti-cal
and postmodernism
materialism.
BEHAVIOR
Herecritics often feel
challenge the policy of constitutive
as aform
theorizing
of incompatible
CRIMINAL
that they havethe last word against constitutive crimi-nology,
main-stream
A second issue is
general charge here is that constitutive
attempts
OF
also led to significant reaction.
toward
and esoteric.
of discourse that
THEORIES
claiming that such theorizing can too easily lead
that it is only difficult
to challenge the value of using integrative The
CONSTITUTIVE
or constitutive
difficult
counter
AND
discourse
and that
may
while aff ording
can also allow
new negative
occur. Finally, there are critics
who
versus chaos, constitutive theory seesthat
believe that the constitutive approach to social change
each of these is operative. Indeed, according to the
implies a vanguard of intellectuals rather than workers,
insights generated by chaos theory, wecan have order
which they claim, embodies a pacifism that is likely to
and order
be ineff ective against the powerful excessiveinvestors.
and disorder in the same system. Third,
some critics
embrace assume that
disparage constitutive
of social constructionist
because of constitutive
that crime is socially constructed, crime
concepts. They
criminologys
theorists
believe
people acting toward
realities,
asis clearly
crimes committed Fourth,
others
claim
advocates also believe
does not have any real consequences.
constitutive
from
criminol-ogys
that
real
constructions
demonstrated
However,
harm
comes
asif they are
in the example
of
in the name of religion. have criticized
the
constitutive
redefi-nition
of crime as harm, saying that this expands crime beyond its real scope, but constitutive the arbitrary
theorists
point to
nature defining only some harm as crime.
Fifth, questions have been raised over whether a set of causal assumptions still really underlie the
The
problem
for
to remove that
constitutive
theorists,
existing institutional
reproduce
the
however,
is
diff erences
whose
investment
how to cease our nonreflexive
rebuilding
and structures
energy in alternative,
connective, interrelational
forms. They
suggest that structures
sensitive
their
environment
and consequently still
providing
action
undergo
provisionally
may become the
social policy.
while reinvesting
that
continuous
perturbations
change
horizons
basis of political
while
for social action
Whether these reconstructed
orders will be able to replace existing
social
are extremely
and its
stable
with
Instead, the
of these social forms
to
not
and social structures
power results in oppression and inequality. problem
is
and
contingent
more harmful
onesis the challenge to constitutive criminology.
analysis, and if so whether this can be measured. For example, critiques havebeenlevied against constitutive criminologys
use of chaos theory analysis.
Leading
rather
than
mainstream
Ron Akers complain
conventional
causal
modernist theorists
like
that constitutive
not yet off ered a testable criminal
FURTHER
use of nonlinear logic, especially the
explanation
criminology
has
of either crime or
justice. of repressive practices
of what to do about crime that
we address above through
replacement
discourse
has
G. (1998).
Integrating
Criminologies,
Boston,
MA,
Allyn and Bacon. Henry, S. & Milovanovic, at
Sixth, given the various forms in society, the question
Barak,
READING
SUNY
D. (1999).
Work: Applications to
Constitutive
Crime and Justice,
Criminology Albany,
NY,
Press.
Henry, S. & Milovanovic, Beyond Postmodernism,
D.(1996). London,
Constitutive Sage
Criminology:
212
CRIME
AND
Milovanovic, Justice,
D. Ed., (1996a). Westport,
Milovanovic, New
Parry,
BEHAVIOR
D. York,
and Social
Praeger.
(1998).
in the
Postmodern
Criminology,
Postmodern
Princeton,
A. (1997).
Story Re-Visions: World,
New York,
Narrative Guilford
of
Postmodernism
NJ, Princeton
University
and the Social Sciences, Press.
presented
Socialist
available Journal
M.(1992).
of Postmodern
Thomson, Paper
R. E. (1994).
Publications.
Rosenau, P.
The Journal
Criminology.
Red Feather Institute
website.
Garland.
A. & Doan,
Therapy
CT,
Chaos, Criminology
at:
Post-Modernism at the
Annual
and Meeting
Studies,
St. Johns,
Ashorter
version is published
of Sociology, 23, 109113
Social of the
Society
Newfoundland.
(1998)
in
Justice,
Also
Canadian
CULTURAL CRIMINOLOGY
Jeff Ferrell
O
ver the past two perspective
criminology
decades, cultural
criminology
on crime and crime control.
emphasizes
the role
of culturethat
has emerged as a distinc-tive Asthe name suggests, cultural
is, shared styles and symbols,
subcultures of crime, mass media dynamics, and related factorsin nature of criminals, criminal actions, and even criminal justice. contend that these factors
shaping the Cultural crimi-nologists
must be considered if we are to understand
crime in any of its forms: as a moment of victimization
in the street or in the
home, as a collective or group activity, or as asocial issue of concern to politicians or the public. Cultural criminologists, recruit
and retain
styles of clothing,
members through
and exclusive
police officers display their language
and the
in the court
for example, study the waysin
or the prison.
and the
secretive shared experiences,
ways of talking. They
power and authority
waysin
through
which the authority
Cultural criminologists
communicate
particular
than
which politicians
and lawmakers
broad focus
on culture
distinctive which
and spe-cial
justice is symbolized
often focus on media technol-ogy
images of them.
shows,
popular films,
of crime, criminals,
as more important
in laws and enforcement
and communication,
and
Similarly, they look at the
define some crimes
others and then encode these definitions
subcul-tures
waysin
police uniforms
of criminal
criminal justice and so aff ect public perceptions
This
examine the
mass media and the process by which television
and newspaper reports
ways in
which criminal
cultural
criminologists
policies. argue,
allows scholars, students, and the public to develop a deeper and more critical understanding of crime and criminal justice. From this view,the subject matter of criminology cannot simply becriminals and whatthey do;instead, it the waysin which crime is perceivedby others; the particular
mustinclude
meaningsthat crime
comes to havefor criminals, victims, crime control agents, and everyday citizens; and the consequences crime control
also intend
meanings and perceptions for criminal
policies, and even the politics of contemporary
It is significant the subject
of these
that
cultural
criminologists
matter and analytic approach for cultural
criminology
criminology
to
intend
this
society. perspective to expand
of conventional
criminologybut
provide a distinct
alternative
and at times to directly confront
activities,
they to conven-tional
what they see as its current
21
214
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
weaknessesand limitations.
As already suggested,this
divergence between cultural criminology conventional subject
forms
of criminology
is
and
partly
more one of
matter; over the past few decades, conventional
criminology
has largely
very components
of social lifemedia,
meaningthat essential
for
dismissed from
cultural
a fully
analysis the style, symbol-ism,
criminologists
developed
argue are
criminology.
criminologists
elementsor,
as discussed in this chapter, reincorpo-rate
theminto we
will
also
criminology
perspectives
runs
the
deeper than
tension
subject
with social class, investigated subcultures
criminological
more
theories
are
inadequate for explaining crime precisely becausethey and meaning. They likewise argue that the most widely designed in such a way that they inevitably
And they
of crime, culture,
point out that
are the result
many of these current
of conventional
with criminal governmental
cultural
justice,
failings
and its overreliance definitions
criminology
on
of crime.
is designed not only
some of the
and criminal
deviance (Becker
to anindividual
primary theoretical
orientations,
British, the other primarily
one largely
American. In the 1970s,
scholars associated with the Birmingham cultural studies, the and the new 1972;
criminology
Taylor,
the distinctive
National in
Deviancy Conference,
Great Britain (S.
cultural
was exercised
and
dynamics through maintained.
crime controlthat
is, the
waysin
often tapped into
they linked
In this
dimensions
which power context
which crime issues
larger
political
all of this to emerging
murder, self-defense, politicians
Killing another per-son,
heroism,
or insanity.
or police officers or the family
can subsequently
make the
harms engendered
a symbol
of
morality, the dangers of
guns, or the need for stronger laws. The about it,
Likewise,
of the victim
killing into
else: the decline in
crimefears
social reality
models for confronting
of
it, social
by it, even the visceral experience or victimis
in
Great Britain,
and labeling
crime, culture,
therefore
and political
seen to be process. Like
American symbolic
theorists
were beginning to
and power. Significantly,
to
document
they
these linkages
were
through
ethnographic research inside the worlds of drug users, pool hustlers, and other outsiders
(Becker 1963),
producing a series of case studies that revealed how criminals
and
anti-crime
crusaders
alike
constructed
meaningand negotiated symbolic communication. In the following co-evolved,
with
criminologists
decades, these two British
American
inspiration
cultural
providing theoretical
and
two agen-dasand
patterns
were not inherent
for example,can mean manythings to manypeople:
they
of crime and
scholars argued that the
of crime
is, by others perceptions and bythe meaningsthey
Cohen
Walton, & Young 1973) began to explore
also examined the ideological
and concerns
School of
of crime and
criminal act; instead, they werelargely
also beginning
of two
sociologists interactionist
theory in their study
attributed to the act orindividual.
link
has developed from a synthesis
this crimi-nology
determined by others reactions to an act or personthat
interactionists
Cultural criminology
between
During roughly
American
1963). These
their counterparts THEORY
way they be-gan
point for cultural
among
part of an ongoing cultural
criminology.
and ideologies
manylinks
processes.
nature and consequences
these
worlds and illicit
who used symbolic
and labeling
it,
defiance to authority,
mediated campaigns
to study crime, but to study and critique the taken-for-granted of it as perpetrator practices of contemporary
leisure
same time, a second starting
overiden-tificationsomething
criminologys
grants and legalistic
In this sense, cultural
ignore the
and social life.
to
practices associated
of stylized
to conceptualize
usedresearch methodsin conventional criminology are features
the
Reconceptualizing
resistance
essential to social and legal control. In this
exclude any understanding of culture, communication,
mostimportant
as sites
and recorded
theory
matter.
many of the
and
the cultural
and criminologists
between
criminological
simply
contend that
contemporary
control
was emerging see,
and conventional
Cultural criminologists
popular
these
of social
documented
criminology.
as
cultural
push to incorporate
nature
scholars
In this
sense, cultural
But,
of social and economic inequality. the
to
orientations
critiques
of ideological off ering
scholars. In the
were synthesized
into a distinct cultural
and
American scholars
interactionists British
orientations
theorists
criminology
new
with so-phisticated control
ethnographic mid-1990s, the
for the first (Ferrell
time
& Sander
CULTURAL
1995) that,
while building
primarily
on these twin
CRIMINOLOGY
215
risk, aggressive law enforcement strategies designed
to stop illegal edgework often serve only to heighten foundations, alsointegrated the work of subcultural re-searchers, postmodern and
progressive
the
symbolic
theorists,
political
theorists.
components
criminology waysin
cultural
components
(2) the
ways in
especially
which criminal
which cultural
moral entrepreneurs
(Becker
to integrate
1963).
scholarly
such as art
Honoring the this
has also contin-ued
work from the
United States,
and so to force the
skillsthereby
development
the
very
seek and legal authorities
Two other cultural address the links
has in
through
a theory
of dangerous excess, ridicule, was ritualized,
and places, it
emotion,
percep-tion,
crimes such as drug taking,
many human societies
yet since it
that
Mike Presdee (2000)
arson, and joyriding
be understood
experience
theories likewise
among experience,
posited that contemporary gang rituals,
of further
seek to prevent.
criminological
and larger social conditions.
periods
and beyond.
amplifying
participants
and
co-evolution,
criminology
the risk
dynamics:
by legal authorities
of trans-Atlantic cultural
Great Britain,
cul-tural
incorporate
enterprises
and
moreformalized
further new
on two
enterprises
music are often criminalized
history
this
of style, dress, and language
and
informal
geographers,
Exploring
of crime,
focused
(1) the
cultural
in stolen
cars can
of carnival.
Carnival
historically
been a time
and ritualized
and so confined
vulgarity;
to particular
also served to contain
dangerous
Cultural criminologists today usea variety of theo-reticaldesires,to serve asasort of temporary emotional safety modelsthat incorporate intellectual
orientations.
and expand on these
Among the
moreinfluential
of these is the concept of edgework, as developed by
valve after which normalcy wasrestored.
Now, Presdee
argued, carnival has beenfor the most part destroyed, outlawed in some societies and converted into legally
Steve Lyng (1990, 2005), Jeff Ferrell (1996), and oth-ers regulated and commercialized spectacles in others. As (Ferrell,
Milovanovic,
argue that
& Lyng 2001). These
takinggraffiti
writing, street racing,
antenna, span, earth) jumping object best
understood
not
self-destruction reclaim
as
off a fixed
cliff s or buildingscan
moments
but as situations
a sense of self through
risk and skill. This
risk
BASE (building,
(i.e., jumping
with a parachute) from
be
theo-rists
acts of extreme and often illegal
in
of
sold,
some remnants
and
consumed
pornography
because
which participants mix of
allows participants
the
now
cut
as crime,
loose
from
contemporary
defined
by the increasing
of large
portions
work, and it forces them to test these skills in situations
that
matter profoundly. This
meaning-ful mix of skill
mainstream
containment
economic
of the
after all, the more polished ones skills as a street racer
manyinner cities, the
or graffiti writer, the morerisk one can takeand
United Statesall poor, ethnic
and
population loss of
seductions of crimethat
is, inside its experiential
this
edgework
experience
as a response to larger,
social forces. The helps explain and criminal seductive
another, ironic justice.
adrenalin
also seeing
edgework dynamic
Given that
concept
rush as participants
of the
culturally
of
generates a mix skill and
lifestyle
resentment,
through
mass advertising,
retaliation
insecurity,
with them, and frustration
middle
groups tend to the
levels
and humiliation
Young pointed
power
of
of frus-tration, are the
out, crimes
as well. Echoing
be
they learn
goods and symbols
success as do others. Increasing
resultand
of jobs, the
mainstream society. Yet
included;
mass media and
to want the same consumer de-humanizing also
between crime
edgework
increasingly
from respectable, millions
minorities, and even the formerly
at the same time, these and other
meaning and allure for participantswhile
society is
and legal exclusion
massincarceration rates in the
go inside
called the immedi-ate
of
serve to exclude many among the
class from the comforts
Katz (1988)
dynamics
His theory
work, the economic decay of
become.In this way,cultural criminologists attempt to what Jack
but
within
cultural
to criminality.
society. The
prevalence of low-wage
morerisk onetakes, the morepolished those skills must
shows,
more dangerous
notes that contemporary
and risk in turn spirals participants closer to the edge; the
all the their
economic
exclusion/ inclusion
daily
sadomasochistic
widened this focus in address-ing
connections
often absent from
of daily life and
are now bought, of
ritual.
Jock Young (1999)
and their
form
or degrading reality television
to develop the sort of finely crafted skills that are today the tedium
of carnival
in
others are enacted
a community
out-of-control
an exhilarating
sort of edgework
a result,
Robert
of K
216
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Mertons (1938) famous formulation
symbolism in shaping perceptions of crime and crimi-nals.
of adaptations to
To conduct research that is informed
socially induced strain, Young argued that this height-ened strain
between
inclusion
economic
exclusion
helps us understand
all
and
manner of crimes,
from those of passion to those of economic A final theoretical interplay
of the
contemporary (2008)
media, crime,
theory
we are now
media loops and spirals
media report
cause copycat
and
on crime or
crimes.
media images that
criminologists
justice in Youngs
argues that
whether
Instead,
they
a clear distinction
are confronted
mass media and that
loops
and spirals
Whengang membersstage violent assaults so
as to record them and post them on the
Web, when
assaults and arrest,
when police officers alter their
strategies
because of their
regularly
and
media have become inherently
Moreover, these loops time,
spawning
justice,
and
example, which
often reproduce
an ongoing
spiral
media. Videotapes
entangled.
themselves
images
covered
in local
of criminality
legal evidence,
of police activities, for
news reporting.
or
national
cases,
media;
often function
Because of this, cultural
adopt alternative
that
the re-search
used by criminologists criminologists
methods of research. criminology,
for example,
analysis of survey re-sultsthe
most widely used methodsin conventional engagement with
by their very design any deep meaning, emotion, and the social
processes by which meaning and emotion are gener-ated. Such methodsforce the complexities of human experience
and emotion
into
simplistic
choices prear-ranged
by the researcher and so reduce research partici-pants to carefully cross-tabulation.
from
controlled Such
categories
methods
of counting
remove
the
and
researcher
the people and situations
to be studied,
creating
a sort of abstract, long-distance
research that
excludes
essential
dynamics
of crime
surprise, angerfrom (Kane
2004).
argue, such
and justiceambiguity,
the process of criminological Worse yet, cultural
do produce safe findings
criminologists
the service of political
and abstract statistics in
agencies or criminal
thereby forfeiting
crime and
re-search
criminologists
methods are often used precisely because
they
violence mustalso be a cultural criminology of media
and of the
crime and its image.
argue, though,
to this task, and so cultural
and fodder for
of day-to-day
situations
media technology
entangle
criminologypreclude
simi-larly,
over time as
marketed entertainment,
argue, any useful criminology
over
of crime, criminal
of
From the view of cultural
own po-lice
often become the basis for later court
are then
criminal
methods
can catch something
survey research and the statistical
car cameras or the presence of news cameras, then crime
by these
need
also need methods that
methods conventionally are ill-suited
reality television shows entrap their participants in ac-tual street enforcement
that
criminologists
effect in
which crime and the image of crime circle back on one another.
particular
can penetrate the dynamics the
between
exists, and so
by a looping
criminologists
meaning, and symbolism. They
media argued,
with media technol-ogy
mediated image seldom
cultural
can get them inside
Cultural of how ac-curately
questions
everyday life is today so saturated
an event and its
on the
Hayward, and
well beyond simple
the images
of
and criminal
Ferrell,
that
then,
and experiences and that can attune them to emotion,
gain.
model focuses especially
society.
theories,
cultural
justice
or-ganizations,
the critical, independent
scholarship that cultural criminologists
see as neces-sary
for good criminological research and analysis.
and representation.
Instead of relying on such methods,then, cultural criminologists METHODS
Cultural Cultural
criminologys
with its cultural on the
theoretical
and its
various
theories
experiences
and
more generally;
that
and on the role of
animate
crime
focus
in particular
on the emotions and criminal
mediated representation
and
justice;
and cultural
criminologists of criminals,
who are deeply immersed crime
victims,
or police of-ficers
can become part of the process by which such
As already seen,
meaning of crime, as constructed
situations
inter-twine in the lives
orientations
methods of research.
criminology
often turn to ethnography: long-term,
in-depth field research with the people to bestudied.
people
make meaning and can
which they symbolic them their
make sense of their
codes
and
situations
witness the experiences
shared language. and experiences,
to their tragedies and triumphs,
cultural
ways in through
Sharing
with
and vulnerable criminologist
CULTURAL
participant. This
likewise learn something of the emotions that course through their experiences of crime, victimization, criminal
For cultural
criminologists,
in the concept
Max
actions
understanding lives.
Notice
criminology
and
for
that
here
deeply
fully the
criminology.
methods
of preset surveys
Instead
text,
of
analysis
event or elicit information of its
the
patterns,
meanings. not as
cultural
process
and
content
cultural
analysis,
then,
and analyze
but it also taps into the fluid, looping define crime and justice.
approach
goes a step further
returns
us to ethnography:
criminal
justice
their
researcher
media text
media, political,
Like conventional
interacting
producing assumed, it
the
of the text and its
various
alternative
cultural
field
workers,
with the
work
A sec-ond
and in fact
with criminals,
or others as they
go about
mass media, developing images of
own lives, or even inventing
their
own alternative
media(Snyder 2009).
is in fact emotional subjectivity that ensures accuracy in research; without it, the researcher
that
as an emergent
media that increasingly
methods of
as is commonly
such
method allows researchers to identify
textual
felt
of the objectivity
and statistical
accurate research results,
this
comprehending
in fact oppose and reverse the
conventional
dynamics.
of verstehen
understanding
motivationsa
but
incorporating
verstehen. As developed
or appreciative
essential
a single entity
is embodied
Weber, the concept
denotes the subjective
their
the
It is also designed to approach
goal of gaining
knowledge
of criminological
by sociologist
others
this
and emotional
217
method is designed to produce deep
with
develops a deep account
justice.
deep cultural
of
and
involvement
CRIMINOLOGY
mayobserve an
but will gain little
under-standing APPLICATIONS
meaning or consequencesfor the actors
involved. A similar
diff
erence
approach criminologists using the
to
cultural
quantitative
textual
categories
media texts.
justice
cannot
of textual
missthe larger
analysis is regularly
of
the
meaning.
real
nature
representation
of
a crime
of itbut
issue
and
this approach
be
within
Moreover, of
media
missesthe
multiplicity of audiences and interpretations
will confound crime
issue
In
runs
the real and the representational its
criminologists first is
of
the
best-known
has used ethnographic
and the
between researcher
justice
media.This
to confront
and research
to particular
cultural justice
sub-cultural
criminologists stereotypes
and to deepen scholarly
of
knowledge
of them. Ferrell (1996, 2001, 2006), for example, has conducted long-term
participatory
ethnographies of
three urban subcultures: (1) hip hop graffiti writers, (2) street-level political activists, and (3) trash scroungers. have served to humanize
members of the subcultures,
campaigns (1997, various
against them.
2002) long-term subcultures
terrorism
to reveal the
meaningful collective
cul-tural to challenge the validity
such
criminol-ogy
with legal authorities
close attention has allowed
media and criminal
these subcultures
cultural
methods to explore illicit
the
meaning and a process of intel-lectual
in
and their interactions
as a
methods. The
conceptualizes
and criminal
work
In each case, his findings
method of ethnographic
content analysis, an approach that
give-and-take
analysis, then,
use two alternative
David Altheides (1987)
analysis as a search for
Some
which they engage in content
haveinvestigated
meaning, and representa-tion
of criminal
that
course.
place of traditional
a variety
has been ap-plied
within criminology;
criminologists
of symbolism,
dynamics
morecomplex dynamic of medialoops and spirals and the
amid
structural
a biased
perspective areas
situations.
objectively proving the degree of divergence between the
put diff erently, cultural the dynamics
word
used with the intent
criminological
to a range of subject
of dis-crete subcultures
aesthetic
and ignore
cultural
Cultural interplay
Numeric summaries
frames that shape a texts flow
by
measuring of
summaries
which a text takes shape
The
Conventional
that the fluid
and criminal
or source type.
crimi-nologists
media and crime
within
argue, though,
in
content
in
media research.
categories
media, crime,
captured
seen
most often study
criminologists
frequency
be
method of content analysisthe
static content
among
can
action, and
of aggressive criminal Alternatively, ethnographic
associated
Mark
justice Hamms
research among
with extremist,
has revealed hidden dimensions
strategies and ideologies
waysin
right-wing of their
and so has helped strengthe
218
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
legal eff orts to contain them. From the perspective of cultural criminologists, of a subcultures more appropriate whether
other
or
responses
eventually
more condemnatory.
researchers
perspectives illegal
practices can help shape
public and legal responses to them,
those
tolerant
then, a deep understanding
values and
communities,
As Ferrells three suggest,
In a similar
have used cultural
in the in-depth,
to
subcultures,
images,
fashion,
brawlers,
study
models have
applicable
and interactions
life and urban criminality.
policing.
also explored
especially
to the swirl that
Keith
animate
ur-ban
Hayward (2004)
by the theory
cultural
boundaries
crime,
of the
waysin
and criminal Cultural
in
on the
of
media
criminologists
have
outside
mediated representa-tion,
subcultures
are increasingly
criminologists
have, for example,
symbolism
of the shrines
memory of the September
11, 2001 at-tacks
United States and the symbolic
off ered by roadside tragedy. They
shrines
the
mass media, focusing
which
studied the cultural
constructed
on prisons
media and representation
on the
interwoven.
of
and films
As suggested
loops and spirals, though,
police officers,
criminological
be especially
and
Scene Investigation]),
of urban subcul-tures carefully
ethnographies
heavy metal music, bluegrass music,
cartoons and comic books, television shows (e.g., CSI [Crime
conventional of
drug users, and youth gangs.
cultural
been found
more
criminological
ethnographic
street racers, youthful
immigrant
become
forms, including
to victims
have also documented
reminders
of automotive
the waysin
which
in particular has developed a comprehensive cultural
graffiti, corporate advertising, and political
criminological analysis of urban crime and urban social
are confused within shared urban spaces and the ways
control in the context of consumer culture.
in which criminal subcultures areincreasingly defined
theory and urban scholarship, revealed the
many ways in
has come to
penetrate
intertwining
Hayward has
which consumer
urban life
and
criminologists
and symbolic
interaction,
eye for
situated
COMPARISONS
of urban
planners
economies
A variety
the
rational-ized
spontaneous
and illicit
of cultural
the interplay
meaning
and legal authorities,
on the other hand, the ambiguous, underground
With
within large
urban areas: on the one hand, the regulated,
explored
culture
he has also documented
existence of two diff erent sorts of city life
and city of
As already their
studies
noted,
conventional of it.
cultural
work as a distinct
Given this built-in
approaches,
to
criminologists
alternative
criminology,
exists in contrast
sense that cultural
two comparisons
and some of the
have
Many of these studies have investigated the
pose of
criminology
more mainstream criminological are especially between cultural
more conventional
media, and represen-tation. perspectives and (2) the comparison
of crime,
often
to the practice
and even as a direct critique
(1) the comparison
urban subcultures.
criminological
mediaand so to
urban spaces,
many ways defining the city itself.
the cultural
own
communicate beyond any onelocality.
with the practice of both legal control and
crime and in
city
Drawing
by their ability to invent their of crimi-nological
on and revitalizing long-standing traditions
messages
worth ex-ploring: criminol-ogy
criminological between cultural
criminology and other alternative approaches that, like
complex dynamics by which the mass mediaconstruct
cultural criminology, seek to distinguish themselves
a particular crime concern or criminal justice issue
from
and the waysin intertwine for example, strikes
way,cultural
has already been noted: the distinction between
of child
drug use,female criminals, Cultural
three
movements, and they have
media representations
controversies.
have studied,
conventional
though,
music
perspectives
have also been applied to a wide range of popular
media
The
and statistical
choice of
derives from
use of survey
based on a general external
research
research
methods such
analysis and cultural
methods of ethnography
field research. This
sexual abuse,
and popular
criminological
criminological
as survey research
policy and reform-mindedcriminological
out sentencing
get smart on crime
regional
criminologists
mass media campaigns surrounding
and youre
analyzed
Regarding the first of these comparisons, one as-pect
which these media dynamics in turn
with public perceptions and criminal justice
policy. In this
mainstreamcriminology.
and in-depth
methodological a still
deeper
and statistical
assumption
that there
orienta-tions, diff erence. analysis is exists
and objective social reality to be studied;
an thi
CULTURAL
CRIMINOLOGY
219
objective reality can therefore betapped into through
themselves. Becauseof this, another key differencearises:
survey questions, and its
Instead of relying on governmental statistics asthe basis
through
statistical
meaning can be deduced
analysis and comparison.
victimization
their frequency
exist
can be ascertained
responses or noting statistical act
and
another.
From
though,
the
the reality
of being constructed,
view
world;
meaning for
by compiling
of
survey
between one
cultural
ongoing.
the subject
matter of criminology
theory,
For cultural
this
process
criminologists,
then,
is not the objective,
and measurablereality of crime or criminal
argue that these statistics should
can tell
be studied
researchthat
is, should
by criminologistsfor
us about criminal
justice
what they
and its
political
and
legal limitations. issue
of gangs and gang crime provides
instructive anti-gang
example.
policy
Department
and contestedand,
of labeling
themselves
is
but always in the process
is inevitably
research into crime or victimization,
be a focus of criminological
The
criminolo-gists,
of crime and victimization
interpreted,
the insights
obvious,
social
correlations
never objective or self-evident
following
in the
can be measured, and then
those involved
for criminological
cultural criminologists rates of crime com-mission
to this view, for example, particular or crime
According
and the war
of Justice
Delinquency
on gangs,
the
U.S.
Office of Juvenile Justice and
Prevention
Gang Survey so asto gang
a par-ticularly
As part of governmental
conducts
a
National
Youth
measurethe number of gangs and
members in the
United States, as well as trends in
gang membership and activities.The survey seemingly
justice but rather the complex cultural process by which
produces precise measurementsof gangs numbers and
this reality is constructed and made meaningful. In this
gang membersbut
in fact the survey, which self-admittedly
sense,for example, the rate of domestic violence is not
provides no guidelines or definitions asto
an objective fact that can be measured but instead a
what might constitute a gang member or a gang crime,
shifting
reality aff ected by how domestic couples define
violence and how they choose to report it to the police, police officers subsequent domestic
domestic of
discretion
in responding
violence calls, varying legal statutes violence, the
domestic
violence
the interaction
among
this, cultural
greater
the
or lesser
all these factors.
content
news reporters
collectively
It is significant
that
and/or
argue that
gain this
knowledge
analysis that process by
2003)but
anti-crime
its
where it is
unknown
official
mix
records.
Cultural
objective
or nothing
of
about gangs
ethnography
is
needed to
Brotherton,
& Barrios,
us much about the inadequate
biased foundations
for
governmental
policy.
Cultural criminologys and
assumptions
an
such supposedly
(Kontos,
they do tell
and inherently
agencies,
of
research procedures tell uslittle
police officers, and
diff erent
recollections
criminologists
basis
Because of
make sense of crime. these
personal
enforcement
on the
culturescareful
them in ongoing, interactional and crime victims,
completed
and their
must have methods such
or ethnographic
which criminals
visibility
then
moreover,
mediaand,
criminologists
as ethnography can immerse
in
to
regard-ing
is sent only to law
perspective
methods, in this
on
preferred research
methods,
more
research
conventional
way bolster its critical
approach
to
about the nature of social reality show up not only
both
in the original research that criminologists
system. Asimilar sort of critical stance becomesappar-ent
but also in their approach to information
undertake
Many mainstreamcriminologists rely on governmental agency statistics of objectively of
crime
as a relatively
prevalence
areas. Cultural hand,
increases
or
decreases
of particular
criminologists
morelikely to see such statistics
the objective, external reality
with some
in
crimes in are, on the as reflecting
crime
not
generally focus on
animate
and
crime,
agencies
shape the
widely used in
crime
theories
on the subtleties the
shared
on the
in
mainstream
of symbolism
human
powerful
meaning and importance
contrast, for example, rational
of crime, but rather the in-ternal denies or ignores
workings and biases of the governmental
more popular
Recall that cultural criminological theo-ries
representation,
par-ticularthat other
of the
criminology.
measurement
knowable facts, such as the distribution
occurrences,
rates, or the
accurate
whencultural criminological theories are compared
produced by
governmental agencies or the criminal justice system.
mainstream criminology and the criminal justice
emotions
cultural
forces
of crime.
choice theory,
mainstream criminology,
and that
In
which is
systematically
these factors in its attempts to explain
and criminality.
According
to
rational
choic
220
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
theory, criminal events unfold along alinear sequence
simply assumesthe
of rational decision making, with criminal perpetrators
and imputes the nature of public perception instead
inevitably
of actually
to
seeking through maximize their
theorists
further
this rational
own
benefits.
target selection,
even if the perpetrator
that
Rational choice
modelignores
is drunk,
ignores the ambiguous,
drugged, or in a
criminologists
contentious
society.
Given this, cultural
rational
choice
theory
for
cultural
criminologists
for
being
particular
complex
process by
crime
in
also critique
more a simplistic control
campaigns
(e.g.,target hardening, increasing security for a specific
theorists
symbols, for example, they
most politically
and widely applied in criminal justicealso dramatically The
with cultural
broken
of crime broken
windows
causation
criminological
model (Wilson and crime
windows,
graffiti,
of neglected
property
as invitations
to further
contrasts orientations.
& Kelling 2003)
prevention
and similar
and
petty
popular
posits that
public
criminality
criminality.
displays operate
According to the
extent
that
building
baseballs from
failure
of local
code
of the
nearby
homeless.
intergenerational
the
bro-ken
any
as
manner
depending
on
resistance to
personal grudge,
Little
enforcement,
broken
function
community
a long-standing
errant
have shown, graffiti ap-proachin
mainstream criminological
fact, one of the
the
more crimi-nality
that
may symbolize
and the context:
absentee ownership,
are far
to further
of activities to any number of audiences,
location or target) than an explanatory theory of crime, Another popular
To
windows in a neighborhood
the situation
own ethno-graphic
social control
assume.
As
meanings of phenomena
windows and street graffiti
markers of failed
windows
them.
have found in their
than the simple invitations
or
events and that it also
which crime comes to have meaning and significance
or understanding
research, the symbolic
counter that this
the highly charged emotions
often explode in criminal
justification
cultural
investigating
and escape remains ra-tional such as broken
panic. Cultural criminologists
theoretical
mak-ing
argue that this sequence of choices as
to preparation,
hurried
decision
meaning of everyday symbolism
League games, the or the
Likewise,
illicit
as field
accom-modation
researchers
maysymbolize a neighborhoods
history, suggest changing patterns of
ethnic occupation or conflict, or even enforce a degree of community
self-policing.
Cultural
argue that the job of the criminologist these
urban
environments
and
to
explore
meanings and not, as with the broken to impose
assumed
perceptions
the service of a particular
criminologists is to investigate these
various
windows
model,
and consequences in
political
and criminal
justice
model, such displays suggest to the public and to po-tentialagenda. criminals
alack
of social control; up hope, criminals
the public begins to give
see signs of encouragement
crime, and so a downward and accelerated criminality politicians
In
of public concern and a failure
consequently,
and criminal
spiral of further
ensues.
justice
for fur-ther neglect
Widely adopted
by
officials, the logic of the
this
contrasts
approaches,
variety The
first
both
such as graffiti
crimes,
marginalized urban
populations, such asthe homeless. Cultural that
criminologists,
although
the
a convenient justice
campaigns, it is
of crimeand directly
broken
scholarly
from
criminological
on the windows
its
model
pretext for
of
notions such as symbolism
From this critical
as a theory
its inadequacy
misunderstanding
view, the broken
may of-fer
such criminal
wholly inadequate
moreover, that
hand, argue
stems
windows
criminology
also reveals
similarities
criminological
criminologists
and
criminologi-cal with
a
perspectives. widely used by
mainstream
crimi-nologists.
subcultural theory argues in general that criminolo-gists must understand manycases of criminal behavior as being rooted in the collective reality of a criminal Because
explore that of
the
particular
subculturecodes dress,
in turn
(if
shared
of
this,
cultural
criminologists
define
of speech and conduct,
styles
the
dynamics
common
waysin
may off er subcultural
imperfect)
subcultural to cultural
must
that
emotions,
must investigate
criminality
mean-ing. This model
cultural mainstream
As developed by Cohen (1955) and others,
key cultural and
more
of these, subcultural theory, is
subculture.
other
critique,
but it
cultural
writing and panhandling, and police
enforcement strategies that target
of with
of other alternative
broken windows model has spawned aggressive police campaigns against small-scale quality-of-life
sort
clearly
which subcultural members a collec-tive
solution
to their
approach
clearly
criminology;
problemsand
shared
off ers
it likewise
problems.
many simi-larities suggests
CULTURAL
similar critique
of criminological
modelsthat
would
expeditionseven
CRIMINOLOGY
221
women who hone their skills so as
ignore, or simply assume, the subtleties of meaning,
to push the dangerous, outer boundaries of anorexia
symbolism,
and bulimia.
and style that shape criminal
Other
criminological
share cultural mainstream
their
and
primarily
system; it
justice.
from
into
media stereotypes
& Ross 2001).
this
Feminist
international
criminologists
Finland,
in
the
the culture
support
criminology
it
shares with cultural criminology an analysis of the
Britainand
is
widening.
of
for
from now
Cultural
example, illegal
immigration
cultures
Netherlands,
violence
and
against
Australia, crime discourse in Japan,
Russian prisons,
and the international
of urban street gangs.
Cultural
criminologists
methodologies
are also
designed to
particular
like-wise
Great
are now studying,
law
mainstream
and
in
women in
has from
in equal part scholarship
racing
poli-cies affiliations
criminology
sensibility
Filipino
cultural
cultural
States
criminal
justice
that
United
of the
a critical,
the criminal
have produced it, and the sorts of
prison research and
the
research
a critique
other approaches to construct
(Richards
who
Similarly,
its origins incorporated both
Convict
scholars
uses ethnographic
analysis of massincarceration, that
stance toward
and who have trans-formedstreet
once imprisoned
own incarceration
justice
more explic-itly
critical
and criminal
has emerged
were themselves
criminal
approaches
criminologys
criminology
criminology
subcultures.
theoretical
developing
mirror cultural
orientations
new
criminol-ogys
and to resonate
with the particular nature of contemporary social and
sorts of cultural assumptions that tilt both criminology
cultural life. For example, ethnographic research and
and criminal justice toward privileged groups, as wellas
the questfor criminological verstehenhavetraditionally
a critique of media distortions offemale criminals and
been defined bythe researchers long-term
crime victims (Chesney-Lind
with the individuals
generally,
cultural
and feminist that
large
critical
criminology,
criminology subfield
of the
ground
generally
approach
oriented
many waysin
shape crime, victimization,
More
that the
criminology,
common
of criminology
critical investigation
2008).
convict
all find
criminologyan
and inequality
& Irwin
in
its cultural
labeled
toward
a
which power
the
dynamics.
and
cultureas
DIRECTIONS
in
virtual
news
and
employmenthave
theoretical
crime
Among the current
criminology
the substantive
are
criminological analysis, especially in the direction of greater diversity and inclusivity.
for
Originally, for
the experiences and ethnographic
research of malescholars involved in predominantly masculine forms
of illicit
the concept is increasingly of
ways in high-risk
womens
which
of
on
women experience
and
with
Recent research
has investigated
underground,
search-and-rescue
Now, though,
being explored in the con-text a focus
activities.
male scholars jumping
lives,
risk taking.
distinctive
make sense of by female
women who lead
women teams
the
or
who are whitewater
and BASE
members rafting
et
al.
Consequently,
notion
2008)a
re-search.
and the seductions on the immedi-ate,
cultural
experiences
criminologists
of instant
researchers
deepimmersion in fleeting transgressionand
and
ethnographic
dynamics that shape criminal
have developed the
(Ferrell ex-ample,
the cultural criminological concept of edgework developed from
situated
range of cul-tural and emotions.
com-munications,
models have suggested this as
well; concepts such as edgework
trends in cultural
are expanding
and
suggested to cultural
of crime, for example, focus attention
those that
still crime
entertainment,
new possibilities
Their
a group
pace of contemporary
embodied
criminologists
spends inside
Although this can certainly
instant
short-term
FUTURE
a researcher
more deeply he or she can understand
be the case, the rapid-fire
and criminal
justice.
being studied, on the assumption
more time
or situation,
participation
ethnography
immediate
and
moments of criminality
have begun to usethe
or
methodin
studying BASE jumpers and other groups. The al. 2008)
new notion
has developed from
ethnographic focused occupies
of liquid
research.
a similar
Ethnography
(Ferrell
a distinct
location
new locations
global economies
of has that
as well. Today, though,
are often on the or
et
rethinking typically
on a single, definable group or subculture
groups and subcultures into
ethnography
mixing
and global
move, migrat-ing
with new groups as
migration
blur
distinc
222
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
boundaries and identities. with the concept of groups
are today
more likely
own image,
come to shape the
among alternative Liquid
ethnography
attuned
it is ethnography
of images;
then, is a type
to the dynamics
which
scholarship
gangs
Aware of this
nature
example, the
of this
off -putting
and
potential contribution with criminologists
on the sidelines
problem,
response increasingly
and
of public
for students,
ways
and sensitive to issues
cultural
criminologists
experimenting
and alternative
with the intention
criminologists
move beyond
often left
and impenetrable
debate and eff orts at social progress.
scholarship
to explore, for
urban street
society is lost,
style and representation,
social life.
are now beginning
to the larger
of transi-tory
shifting
As a result
style, criminologys
their
dry and confusing lan-guage,
concepts,
exclusionary
is,
in the ongoing interplay
Using this sort of approach, cultural
in
of
to these circumstancesthat
immersed
needlessly abstract
graphs and tables.
of
and to flow
mass media, and other
and aware of the ambiguous,
of contemporary
other, and they do so through
be con-founded
as representations
ethnography,
sensitive
communities;
to
group itself
media, the
institutions.
too often, criminologists talk and write only for each
medialoops and spirals, social
more and
with their the group
Moreover, as already seen
of
with new styles of
modes of communication,
making criminology
policymakers,
more engag-ing
and the public. In place
oflengthy reports, they at times issue
crime to
of
are in
manifestosshort,
political resistance, community empower-ment,sharply written texts that can communicate succinctly
intermingle
key ideas and issues. Instead of relying on traditional
and religious practice in their shifting collective et
forms of academic writing, they on occasion write short
al. 2003) are also finding that global forces regularly
stories that embody cultural criminological themes, or
intersect
craft true fi ctionthat
identities. These
cultural
and
actual, existing to the eff ects of im-migration
responding
mediated communication,
alliances
cultural
(Kontos
with local dynamics, with gangs embodying
multiethnic identities,
global
criminologists
with other
criminologists
Likewise,
are now conducting
with prostitutes, and others
groups.
and forming
immigrants,
British
is
crime issues into
awash in
media images, they
asylum seek-ers, they produce their
sites as a way of
alternative
this
media, such as art, photography,
& Scoular
(ONeill, 2007).
Campbell,
Such research
to collaborate and contingent
allows
with even the
communities
and identity,
developing
and street
Hubbard, cultural
to
in defining their
making criminology
conversant
with
CONCLUSION
meaning criminology
emphasizes
the essential role
of
symbolism, meaning,and emotion in shaping the com-plex
criminologists
violence, and criminal
justice lie at the very
criminologists scholarship,
debate, and so help to
work toward
just society. Yet conventional,
must find
contribute
to
a safer and
and ways public more
mainstream criminology,
they contend, is poorly equipped to
way designed to operate as a double challenge: to sim-plistic public
issues
society and its challenges
because of this, their
argue that
criminals, victims, crime control agents, politicians, the
mat-ter, media,and the public. Cultural criminology is in this
methodology but on representation
Cultural
disseminate
Web
reality of crime and crime control for all involved:
heart of contemporary that
col-lections,
2005), and
world.
the verstehen of shared emo-tional Cultural
final trajectory focuses not so much on subject
of crime,
photographic
crimi-nologists
Appropriately enough for cultural criminology, a
and style.
to and
(Redmon
most transitory
of social justice.
or
turn
documents,
Pitcher,
knowledge, and working toward a holistic sense
theory,
also increasingly as visual
films
that
Responding to a world
own photographs,
documentary
margins of
the global economy, and in this research they are using
performance
a narrative form
more appealing to the reader.
the analysis of these images eth-nographies
liquid
who are pushed to the legal
is, stories that blend a number of
meetthis challenge;
justice
and to the theories
criminology Today there
assumptions
that
more than
exclude
about and
and criminal
methods of
analysis
ever, cultural
can be no useful study
the study of culture
crime
mainstream
of cultural
criminologists
forces. argue,
of crime that is not also
CULTURAL
REFERENCES
AND
FURTHER
READINGS
Hayward,
K., & Young, J. (2004b).
Some Altheide,
(1987).
D.
Qualitative Becker,
content
analysis.
New
Outsiders: Studies in the sociology of devi-ance.
York:
Chesney-Lind,
Free
M.,
New York:
K. (2008).
Beyond
bad
girls.
Delinquent
boys.
New
York:
Free
Press.
S. (1972).
MacGibbon
Cultural
Folk devils and
and
moral panics.
J. (1996).
Team:
Crimes of style.
J. (1999).
Cultural
J. (2001).
University
Boston:
Seductions
of cultural
8, 303321.
of crime.
New
J.,
&
Press of
New England.
criminology.
Annual
95,
York:
Basic
Review of
down
the
streets.
New York:
edge.
(Eds.).
M. (Eds.).
Boston:
Glasshouse/
Theoretical
W.,
&
Presdee,
M.
and
& Sanders,
the
S. (2001).
convict
elongation
Edgework, of
meaning.
5, 177202.
C.(Eds.).
Northeastern
(1995).
Cultural
University
Press/University
Northeastern
University
in
Oklahoma.
Muncie,
Press/University
Press
of
M.(2002).
University Hayward,
In bad company.
Press/University
K. (2004). the
Routledge.
urban
(pp.
City limits: experience.
Boston:
Press of
Northeastern
New England.
Crime, consumer London:
culture
GlassHouse/
Young,
(2005). picture].
of
Mardi
Gras:
New
York:
new school
of
Social Justice, 28, 177190. Graffiti
lives.
Harper
New
York:
New York
neighborhood
published The
Thousand
new criminol-ogy.
& Row.
G.(2003).
Broken
safety. In
& G. Hughes (Eds.),
J. (1999).
Sage
and the carnival
Films.
& Kelling,
400411).
work
New England. Hamm,
L,
of toler-ance.
Press.
New York:
Boston:
degrees
& sex
7393.
Walton, P., & Young, J. (1973). The
police and
Apocalypse
4,
[Motion
criminology.
L,
Wilson,
New England.
M. (1997).
China
University
criminol-ogy.
and
Culture,
J.,
Street
Routledge.
G. (2009).
Taylor,
P., Pitcher Other:
the
S. C., & Ross, J. I. (2001). The
Snyder,
American
with
D. (Producer/Director).
Cultural crimi-nology: Richards,
Routledge.
Hubbard,
Cultural criminology
London:
Carnivalesque
D., & Lyng,
of Sociology,
and anomie.
communities Media,
M.(2000).
Redmon,
R., Living
contingent
Presdee,
New York:
Social structure
J. (2007).
Made in
Oaks, CA: Sage.
analysis
Review, 3, 672682.
Crime,
unleashed. London:
psychological
American Journal
Edgework.
M., Campbell,
Scoular,
crime.
Morrison,
Thousand
Criminology,
Boston:
Hamm,
Press/
A social
risk taking.
R. (1938).
at
England.
K., & Young, J. (2008).
practices,
Press of
Ethnography
Routledge.
Milovanovic,
Ferrell, J.,
New York
University
Cultural criminology
Aninvitation.
media
New K.,
Hayward,
Ferrell, J.,
(1998).
Northeastern
of
Hayward,
(2004).
Ferrell, J.,
New York:
(2003).
New York:
Press.
Edgework:
(2005).
Sociological
work,
Press
J.,
Lyng, S. (Ed.).
ONeill,
Empire of scrounge.
L. (Eds.).
perspectives.
851886.
Merton,
Tearing
Hamm,
D., & Barrios, Alternative
University
S. (1990).
of voluntary
Northeastern
Press.
University
and
Cultural
Criminology,
methods
Criminology,
L., Brotherton,
Columbia
http://www.culturalcrimi-nology.org
Press/University
Ferrell, J. (2006).
Ferrell,
(2004a).
unconventional
Gangs and society:
Palgrave/MacMillan.
the
J. (Eds.).
issue]. Theoretical
Theoretical
Katz, J. (1988).
Kontos,
London:
Sociology, 25, 395418.
Ferrell,
& Young,
[Special
Kane, S. (2004). The
Kee.
Criminology
University
Ferrell,
K. J.,
criminology
Lyng,
Ferrell,
8,
Books.
Cohen,
Ferrell,
criminology: Criminology,
259273.
criminology.
Routledge.
A. (1955).
Cultural
on the script. Theoretical
223
8(3).
Press.
& Irwin,
notes
Hayward,
Sociology, 10, 6577.
H.(1963).
Cohen,
Ethnographic
CRIMINOLOGY
E.
windows: The McLaughlin,
Criminological Oaks,
CA:
J.
perspectives
Sage. (Original
1982) exclusive
society. Thousand
Oaks,
CA:
ADVANCING
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY THROUGH ANTHROPOLOGY
Avi
Since its genesis, critical domination to include
criminology
has been committed to a critique
of
and to developing and exploring broader conceptions ofcrime harms
that
are not necessarily proscribed by law.
Without
diminishing the contributions of early or current critical criminologists, this article suggeststhat critical criminology can further its goals bylooking to anthropology. Such a recommendation is not without risk. Early criminal anthropology regarded criminality asinherited and contendedthat indi-viduals could beborn criminal (e.g., Fletcher 1891). Subsequentanthro-pological investigations
of crime
were and have continued to be sporadic,
and the disciplines approach to crime has not been particularly (Anthropology
has often considered crime
unified.
within broader explorations
law, for example, or through related, albeit diff erent, examinations and witchcraft.) presents three
Despitethese limitations
waysin
critical criminologys
which anthropology insistence
the boundaries imposed of domination
or shortcomings, this article
can speak to, and engage with,
that criminological
by legalistic
(Michalowksi
definitions
1996:11):
inquiry
move beyond
of crime
and its critique
1) anthropology
can help reveal
processes of domination that are pervasive; 2) anthropology can remind that
what constitutes crime
is culturally specific and temporal;
to be not just critical,
us
and 3) an-thropology
can help provide paradigms for better livingallowing criminologists
of
of sor-cery
critical
not just prescriptive, but aspirational.
A widerange of ethnographic accountsis considered.
INTRODUCTION
A
s a subject, crime cultural
review
essay there,
anthropology
has not generated
anthropology.1
significant
While one could
one would be hard-pressed
has approached
to support
crime in a coherent,
that it has even generated substantial,
ongoing
interest
in the field
point to an anthology
unified,
the contention or sustained
debates about crime.2
of
here or a that
wayor Most
often
225
Brisman
226
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
crime appears in the context of some other inquiry,
3) relatively few ethnographies of crime existthick
such as disorder
accounts (in the
(Comaroffand
violence (e.g., witchcraft 1997), the
Betzig et al. 1988;
law
relationship
(Driberg
between
or labor,
law
and
employment,
Phillips
1999;
Sullivan
1989),
its own and as the primary
subject
attention
Kane
(see
Schneider
Parnell
and
crime, of being a victim,
(Collier
because
Bourgois
rather
than
on
last
point
and
shaped our
may be due, in
hegemony
(before criminology
over all
part, to sociol-ogys
depending on ones perspective).3
1985;
cul-tural
anthropologys lack of attention to crime mayalso be attributed, at least in part, to the regrettable subfield
I do not
have not employed
methods in their of crime
study
of crime.
have improved
of the convergence
and of cul-tural
processes in various societies
Becker
1963;
Humphreys
Ferrell
1993;
1975).
have been written
or sub-discipline, But
researchers
understanding
Hamm 1998;
matters crime-related
became its own discipline
Adler
that
community
merits some clarification.
field
(e.g.,
Ferrell
and
But only asmall
by anthropologists
his famous
address to the
Washington,
yields to temptation
(Rafter
study
such
who,
hereditary
of vice, poverty, and ill example, and
eff orts
2007:808)
in
Society of
of the being
of physical conformation,
or surroundings
Although
Anthropological
defined as the
in consequence taint,
which Fletcher (1891:204),
an anthropological perspective (e.g., Malinowski 1959; Merry 1981).
Whileethnography does not and should
not reside solely under the dominion of anthropology this
biologize
has been increasingly research
were later
discredited
see also
Brennan
(Cullen
et al. 1995:65;
experience
may have left
venture
the
into
and
world
Such unwillingness
of
Agnew 2006:22;
Raine
2002:43),
anthropology
the
reluctant
to
a number
of
Polsky 1969; Groves
is unfortunate
for
a
on
how
propensity
need
(Ferrell for
more
studies of crime (see gener-ally Burawoy et al. 1991;
Hagedorn
Maanen 1995; and
Sampson
1989).
Furthermore,
either
survey
analysis
tremendous
Van
while sociology
social structures (and
is often focused
while criminology
individual
characteristics
on
tends to focus influence
actors
for aggression, violence, and crime based on
biological
crime.4
is
Betzig et al. 1988;
because of concerns for their racist and eugeni-cist policy implications
there
by shallow
statistical
anthropologically-oriented
aban-doned and
and
dominated
and abstract
1999:402),6
1990;
law-breaking
with
methodology and the fact that the study of crime
begins a career of crime.
to
per-centage
or with
of criminal anthropology (also known as anthropo-logical(see Kratz 2007), given anthropologys strength criminology),
of
rate.
mean to suggest that ethnographic
of residing in a community
crime
and criminal
phenomenon near
low
in a subculture
migrating to a particular
Many fine ethnographies
of anthropological Schneider
or of
of its
This
stratification,
2008).
This
or participating
fears crime,
of
(e.g.,
2003;
Geertzian sense) of the experience of
crimes
Geschiere
conflict
social
committing
nature
1980;
1928), the
and the eff ects of deindustrialization 1996;
2006),
Knauft et al. 1991),
and sorcery (Favret-Saada
primitive
1975),
Comaroff2004,
or social psychological in relation
antecedents,
or on in-dividuals
to their larger social environments,
very basicreasons: 1) anthropology sharessociologys and
such as schools, neighborhoods, and nation states
criminologys forefathers (e.g., Durkheim, Marx, Weber)
(Griffiths,
and canonical figures (e.g., Foucault)individuals
Yule, and Gartner 2011), anthropology ap-preciates these structures, characteristics, and environ-ments,
who
contemplated issues of conflict and cooperation, power
but
realizes
that
much
of
what
and punishment, whichlie at the heart of or areintegral
human
lies
to understandings
In other
words, because anthropology
proscribed
of crime;5 2) while all cultures
behaviors, crime
is still
and peoples diff er (over time)
possess
culturally-specific
than its sister
and
Wilson
1891:204; longitudinal
Cullen and
1997:53;
Ellis
and
Agnew 2006:26667; Walsh
1997:230;
Daly Fletcher
Herrnstein 1995:40), rendering crime ideal for and comparative
anthropological
study; and
cultural
ideation
discipline,
(Donovan
humans
2008:xiv).
casts a wider net
sociologybecause
anthro-pology
extends beyond society and social structuresbe-cause
over what behavior is to
anthropology
be condemned and condoned (see, e.g., Betzig et al. 1988; Brisman 2006;
in
makes
considers elements of culture, such
as beliefs, ideas, symbols, and other internal of group living can provide crime
(Donovan
further
is, has been, or
dimensions
2008:xviii)anthropology
avenues for
understanding
how
might be defined, prevented, an
ADVANCING
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
THROUGH
ANTHROPOLOGY
227
These categories or types of intersections
controlled, as wellasits meaningfor offenders, victims,
between
cultural groups, and society, more generally. Assuch,
anthropology and critical criminology are but the tip
anthropology
of the iceberg. The
of, and
should
be more heavily invested in issues
matters pertaining
contribute
to criminologists
study
Despite anthropologys singular
subject
sporadic interest
is
as a whole could gain from anthropological on crime.
anthropological Quinneys maystill
support
(1969,
much that
for
both labeling
will prompt
criminological becomes both
crimi-nology
an exhaustive
inquiries. further
My hope
investigations
which, anthropological-critical
linkages existso
that the typol-ogy
more elaborate and more robust.
of
theory
ANTHROPOLOGY
anthropology
OF
and
CAN
HELP
DOMINATION
REVEAL
THAT
ARE
PROCESSES
PERVASIVE
There
between criminology
biological and evolutionary
article
into the nature of, and extent to
provides
Marxist criminology.
linkages
as a
anthropological
and perspectives
Collier (1975:125)
1974)
be fruitful
crime
of relevant this
anthropologys
a consideration
approaches, insights,
For example,
is that
to
at least,
in crimethere
account
suggests,
of crime.
inattention
matteror,
off ers repre-sentative
examples for each, rather than
to, crime and criminology,
or can, at the very least, and as this article
discussion that follows
and
European
anthropologists
in the
early twentieth
were morelikely to be complicit in, rather than
(see, e.g.,
challengers of, processes of domination. example: anthro-pologists,
Brisman 2010c). To offer a third
cen-tury
and ethnography at this time
becauseof the time spent in the field, and the
Muchfield-work
was undertaken
scope of their inquiries, can consider the distinctions
by anthropologists at the behest of, and with funding
and relationships
between norms
from, European powers with colonialist and imperial-ist
legal
and legal
formalities
behaviors
(Donovan
which could
anthropology reasons
realities,
2008:14,
have bearing
and explorations.
In this
and institutions, 18,
on criminological
three
waysin
to, and engage that
criminologists
might look
critique
criminologys
inquiry
of
definitions
dominationfor
embracing a commitment
can speak insistence
move beyond the
by legalistic
bound-aries
of crime
1996:11,
externally
Africa
imposed
tribals
deficiencies
as Bodley were quick
of tribal
political of this
for implicitly
foreign
knowledge
Asiaand,
cultures
change or a rejection
be granted
been criticized British
and
anthropologists
social anthropologists
policy,
& Murphy 2003;
utilized indirect
for
British
particular,
and explicitly
which
to
of proposals
autonomy.
era, in
to govern through
have
supporting ethnographic
rule (Erickson
Kottak 2008).
Nineteenth-century
American
anthropology
should also be considered in aless-than-positive such as Samuel
racism, sex-ism,
working class oppression and USneo-colonialism (Michalowksi
in
explains,
stress the presumed
and
unapologetically
to confronting
(2008:21)
that to
More specifically,
which anthropology
with, critical
criminological imposed
its
studies ways that
can help or advance critical criminologyor why critical
objectives
and of
article, I consider
some of the work of anthropologists. I identify
and rules 2324)all
George
lightindividuals
Morton and Josiah
Clark Nott promoted racial polygenism (the doctrine that races are immutable, separately created species),
12):
which was used to defend slavery in the ante-bellum 1.
Anthropology can help reveal processesof domi-nationAmerican South (see Erickson & Murphy 2003). But many American anthropologists in the early twentieth
that are pervasive. 2.
Anthropology crime alluded
3.
can remind
is culturally
usthat
what constitutes
specific and temporal
Anthropology
can
of help
provide
critical
paradigms
criminologists
for to be
not just critical, not just prescriptive, but aspirational.
operated in
today.
(a point
to above).
better livingallowing
century
Franz
American
polygenism
Benedict,
anthropology,
argued that
by environment, Boas student,
for the
of critical
Boas, often considered
cultural
and
influenced
the spirit
the father
rejected
cultural
rather than
racial
diff erences are heredity.
Ruth
worked with other anthropolo-gists
United States Office of
promote cultural
criminolo-gists
relativism,
WarInformation
combat ethnocentrism
to an
228
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
racism, and help defeat Nazism and the Axis powers (see Erickson and Murphy 2003).7 Thus,
while
anthropology
early
and
anthropology
American
findingsand
onward
to be,instrumental attention planet
the
acknowledges
that
nineteenth-century
seeking to generate
on the
capacious view,
[a]nthropologists exposing
Bodley
who
the
ethnocentrism
often
industrialization
(2008:21,
well-founded
anthropological have
and
economic
knowledge
will
continue
which is and should criminological To take that be,to
contest
persist in
close to
routine
[from
I get a shock. my definition
different.
of
violence
with its
pay, and
of
Instead
of
...
the
violence
unemployment,
humiliating
working
violence of the economy
violence,
political
which in turn
and
gives wayto
and numbness punctuated
Taussigs treatment
frequently
Knauft
by panic.
is, or should
human inequality
of unemployment,
and disastrous can
bolster
critical that
that
asserts North
of violence
also
Colombia il-lustrates
occurs
Western Europe, and
Taussig could
as violence
broad conception
his example is from
this type
America,
underpay-ment,
working conditions criminologists
usual loci for criminological
position that is very
outside
of
Australiathe
research.
prove
helpful for
critical
Michalowskis description of, and prescrip-tion criminologists interested in state crimespecifically
for, critical criminology above. WhatI would like to suggest in this section is that critical criminology might further domination I
diaries
gives way to the blatantly
of violence;
(1996:50)a
more
writing,
endeavor.
expose, analyze, and critique
quite
... The
criminal
inatten-tion
being vital to the criti-cal
one of the goals of anthropology
and domination
...
ethnocentrism,
matters one step further,
my
all that
class
miserable
Bodleys
development
and insights to
for their
knives and guns and corpses
another
conditions
that
and commercial-lization
concerns about anthropological
to ethnocentric
support
Taussig (2005:13435),
19701972,
of
is
at
of the economy
poverty,
Notwithstanding
24).8
criminologists,
alongside the roads just outside of town, I see
attributed to [small-scale cultures]
accompany
for
in-your-face
that
health, and
look
see first
violence
the ethnocen-trism
may be related to the inequalities
I
Colombia] I
but heis less
on economic developmentwriting ill
of violence (i.e., those Critical
might turn to
[W]hen
of
who described indigenous
of starvation,
desire
may justifi-ably
that ... commonly occurred in the professional
which actually
by an indi-vidual
writes:
Donovan. Bodley points out that until
the conditions
additional
worlds
writers
often mistakenly
statute).
extant
recently, anthropologists overlook[ed] literature
by criminal
to the
2008:198).
behavior
or causes physical, sexual, or psy-chological
beyond legal definitions
bringing
peoples as badly in need of improvement,
eff usive than
to look
of cultures
(Donovan
credit for
the
to
frequently
harm and resist critical criminologists
govern-ments from
of violence
that threatens
have con-tinued defined
were, and
in
wide variety
we all share
take
of colonial
mainstream criminologists
their study
goals or
2008:1)anthropologists
mid-twentieth-century
limit
anthropology)
occurrences.
For example,
social
most laudatory
were often agents
(Bodley
(British
cultural
may not have possessed the
which they arerampant and raging, rather than unique or isolated
achieve its (shared) goal of critiquing
through
anthropology.
wish to propose that
accounts, critical locate instances our day-to-day
by looking
criminologists of domination
of domination
are
at anthropological
might be able to better that
lives (either in the
and to discover the extent to
More specifically,
we may not see in U.S. or elsewhere),
which particular instances
more widespread
the
extent to
extra-judicial between
domination and violenceand
various
economic
interests
and violence. Criminologists often and
study
political
manipulation associated
institutional terrorism, criminality
of health
racism); torture,
(i.e.,
of the electoral
at the social and
crime
corruption
process); criminal-ity
and corporate
activities
and safety regulations);
and cultural genocide,
and other security
(McLaughlin
linkages state
whoresearch state crime9
criminality
with economic
(such as violations criminality
and
2001).
levels (such ethnic
as
cleansing,
or police force
While anthropolog
ADVANCING
has the potential to contribute to critical criminologi-cal discourse on all of these categories of state crime.10 I will confine If
mycomments
Vincent (1989:156)
the hands of interests, in the
here to the fourth
contends that lawmaking
members of the ruling
hands
of
paramilitaries
(limpieza)
wing of the
function
army and police,
Colombian
by the
critical
armed forces
Scheper-Hughes
(1992,
have all extensively
and the restric-tions
2006),
Linger (2003),
and
documented
the
Pinheiro waysin
229
and profound
of
social in-equalities civil soci-ety
of, and necessaryfor, a democratic
words, anthropology
criminologys
study
can contribute
of state crime
to
by off ering
within the above-mentioned
Work like that
on its aid to the
(2005:xii).
other
examples that fall
as a clandestine
U.S. government
ANTHROPOLOGY
and that a democratic
is both a product
class serves Colombian
discrimination,
(2000:139),
in
catego-ries.
of Pinheiro can help uncover vari-ous
processes, trends,
meaning that they lie
beyond the reach of law, human rights, imposed
slavery, racial
state. In
members of the ruling
THROUGH
the elites and the general population, the longevity
lawbreaking
Taussig describes how the
CRIMINOLOGY
that violence is deeply rooted in the wide gap between
class serves their
Taussig and others show that
their interests.
category.
CRITICAL
and features
of civil society that
may play a role in, or exacerbate, state crime, thereby aff ording
critical
expand their
criminologists
critique
and off er
for reform
(2000)
Aside from
which and
the
a
opportunity
more holistic
to
recom-mendations
and change. more capacious
conception
of
the potential reasons why acts of abduction, torture,
violence and more pervasive examples of extrajudicial
and
violence and state crime,
murder have continued
to
occur throughout
Brazil, in spite of democratic governance and long after the formal
end of authoritarian
(2006:157) in
northeastern
describes how the
Brazil
critical criminology
relations rule. Scheper-Hughes
are complicit
of power
unleashing
through
Pinheiro
records a
other
continuation
repressive
practices that
organizations
during
dictatorship
and
police tend to see the rule
of law
prevailed
explains that [t]he
the
and
as an obstacle rather than as an eff ective guarantee public security
(2000:121,
police violence (including
127). Pinheiro torture
classeswho
defender of rights
place both
directed toward
do not view the state as a/the
or protector
While Pinheiros
details how
and taking
in prisons and on the streets) is largely dangerous
of
of security
account, like that
in
and
historical
which state authorities,
discourse
(which
phenomena)
may or
define
criminal,
with
ignor[ing]
or
of criminal-ization
perspective, an-thropology
who
and forms
in
and
others
such
state-level
and
criminologists examples
of
interdisciplinary
of such institutionalized
might consider
1995:174)11
(1989:201)
activities
(Schneider
Critical
who are seeking
(Ortner
illegal
352).
examples
power
Colliers
some
prosecuting
cross-national of
groups and practices as
consequencesselectively
sponsor[ing]
are interested
domination
(2000:126).
particular
2008:351,
media, and citizen
may not be separate entities/
prejudicial
while vigorously Schneider
of Linger and
Scheper-Hughes, and that of Taussigin Colombiaas
processes
has exposed processes of criminalizationways
of the death squads
clandestine
maintains that crime stems from and selective
a comparative
death squads to sweep the streets of ... social garbage.
and
how
(Chadwick and Scraton 2001). Similarly, albeit
middle class
in
we might consider
broad
observations
about
the
well asthose of state crime critical criminologists, illus-trates relationship between the forms that laws take and the how contempt for the penal code by state-level or quasi-state-level authorities
maystill exist in countries
impact of laws at the local level. Orthey Borneman (1997:25),
might review
discussedin greater detail below,
with democratic governance, whatis particularly com-pellingwho asks(in the context of formerly communist states about
his work is that
law is far from certain
he posits that the rule
being eff ectively
established
of
because a
tolerance for violence continues in government
organizations Essentially,
and in society in while
state institutions constitutional
Pinheiro (and
calls for, among
amendments
system and the institution
general
(2000:136).
places the larger
onus on
other things,
to reform the judicial
court
of the police), he recognizes
attempting which
to transition
to
crimes are the states
what are the justifications Others
might find
her description to criminalize subjects, harm
democratic
governance):
business to
punish?
Merry (1998;
2000) instructive
of how European colonizers the everyday
applying
to society
the
And
for these criminalizations?
practices
unfamiliar
as distinct
for
attempted
of their
colonial
legal framework
from
harm to
specifi
of
230
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
others punishable through compensation, and for her illustration to
the
of severe
a shift
from
the
interdiction
criminalization
of work
violations
as
seeking
find
Sharff
waysin
a
more contemporary
(1987:47)
which the
early-to-mid
useful for
domination
British
and U.S. planters set up the sugar economy in Those
Hawaii.
example
might
description
of the
War on Drugs was carried out in the
1980s in
critiques of dominationI
1986;
is or can be resisted (see, e.g., Abu-Lughod
Ong 1987; see also Abu-Lughod
Ortner
significant
attention
literature,
has
military-type the
campaign
neighborhood
agents. They police as
police and
were supported
well as
by
perspectives (1984)
and
anthropological
of inquiry
and repre-sentation
of contention,
and
critical
the state of the
and approaches
and
concern
attention
discipline
of an-thropology
between theoretical
since the 1960s, about
to,
debates.
Ortner
the growing
domination
in
inter-est
the
of
anthropology.
into the workings of asymmetrical social relations is
neighborhood, of whom the
to penetrate to the heart of much of what is going on
majority were
are
so
fact
that
overcrowded
prisoners
means
cannot
rehabilitative prisons
these
in any given system,
be reached
programs. The
with its chicanery
most
of
by training
few lucky
and
from
existing
And
the
theoretical
refinements
justice,
remain, raising children
Selecting (February
Whilethere have been numerous critiques of the War on Drugs (see, e.g., Austin, et al.
2001;
Ferrell
2002;
2008;
Preson
and
instance
Robinson
2001;
Roots 2004), of
what
has
see
Sharffs been
also
off ers
criminalized
and
the ongoing those
support
to research
eff ects of such military-type arrested
Before turning
and
from
their
the
campaigns
waysin
passing (1996:729).
can help reveal processes of domination pervasiveand
the
ways in
assist critical criminology
in
that
which anthropology
are can
makingits claims about and
in the study of the
trans-gression,
Ethnologist
one finds that
or internal others
perhaps
of social life.
American
subheads
of
mention it in
Brown decries [t]he
of resistance almost everywhere,
discovery
worrying that an-thropologys
with multiplelayers of resistance
[can] blind usto certain features of the story that are potentially of great interest is not to disparage but
rather
to
more to interlocutors resisting
which anthropol-ogy
myriad
assubversion,
more or less at random,
concern
1996:729).
has become a central,
theme
appears in the title
on
families.12
(Brown
half the essays off ered; still
intention who have been the objects of such processes of crimi-nalization, and lends further
1994)
Merolla
account
of the
to the
as well asits
(such
a recent issue
resistance
and hoping.
about
militaristic
an
Patterns
constitute
had shifted
of resistance
and so forth),
to
concern
mutations
even a dominant,
women
are certain
stay hooked up to the system. The
one-sided.
Brown [r]esistance, and
programs.
men, once caught in the
wheels of criminal
hegemony
According to
very
men will profit
educational
most of the
is
and solidarity
Ten years later, the
and debasement
persistent
by itself,
reciprocity,
arguing that such
other side of the coin of social being (1984:157).
or
stressful life in
of every detail of daily life ensures that
taken
cooperation,
the
penetrate
Ortner voiced her unease with
centrality of domination,
enterprise,
institutions
that
Whileacknowledging that to
field
over 17,000 young men werearrested in the
The
both
been
helicopter units. During the next two years,
in city jails, state prisons and federal peni-tentiaries. the
on
has
with these anthropological
expressed
in,
street dealers. Many of them now languish
another
in
and the relationships
mounted
canine,
matter
there
seeking to undertake studies of resistance
be familiar
housing, undercover
motorcycle,
a
1990:53 n.1 and
while
as a subject
been
Writing about
on drug dealing in
with regular,
and transportation
should
a massive,
said,
to resistance
resistance
New York City:
1984, the city launched
That
1995:183).13
criminologists Early in
would like to offer onefinal
comment and caveat. Anthropology can help reveal how
of vice
that Brown
blind
the struggles of the down-trodden,
make
the
us to
myopic focus zones
there
is
often
concludes
on resistance
of complicity
matter, of sui generis creativity (1996:734)
case
social life than just resistance/
and that [a]
can easily
(1996:730, 731). Browns
...
and, for
(1996:730,
733).
ADVANCING
subordination,
which
hierarchy intrinsic socialization
mirror
to the family
process itself.
forms
studies
the
... that
Resistance to
architecture
of
of our
as they
anthropology
as it always has been, to illuminate beings usetheir aesthetic,
and
emotional,
material
to
thrive
things,
than
as fully
of the forms
of resis-tance
to consider
of resistance
for
the
our theories
calls for a small shift in the
of power
identify
more concerned resistance
scholars
at resistance
as adiagnostic
in
Domination
of studies Abu-Lughod
way welook
how hu-man
intellectual,
resources
a range of social settings. subordination
of power,
remains,
the
it seems
do not explore
might the implications
many to
political,
and explaining
Urging
of
contribution
of the
power, they
locate.
231
sophistication
are ultimately
resistors
implications task of cultural
ANTHROPOLOGY
their
definition
with examining
trees.
and
because they
they
The
THROUGH
resistance
with finding
myriad
of culture than gravity can explain the
varied
of
widening
and to the
such power can no more explain the
CRIMINOLOGY
the considerable theoretical
All social life entails degrees of dominance and
CRITICAL
so that
resistance is
so that it can, among
historical
used other
shifts in configurations
or
methods of power (1990:42).
and
Focusing
are, of course, key elements of
on the
Awlad Ali
Bedouins
in
Egypt,
Abu-Lughod endeavors to describe not only the rich
this process. But so are reciprocity, altruism, and the creative power of the imagination,
and sometimes contradictory
details of resistance, but
forces that serve to remind us that society
also how such details can revealthe complex workings
cannot berelegated to the conceptual status
of social power (1990:42).
Essentially, Abu-Lughod
usesresistance as a lens: contemplating various forms of a penal colony without impoverishing an-thropological theory
of resistance in
and, worse still, violat-ing
defiances
the complex and creative understandings of those for
of
Abu-Lughods
than
that
way in
perspective
interest of
in
Brown.
which
resistance
resistance,
subversions
overthrow
or local
of systems
a shift
of
that
of
collec-tive not
the
men and
tied
midst of ordinary subversive the
focus
such minor on
as signs and
of the ineff ectiveness
of the
resilience
spirit
in its refusal
42).
Put
to
diff erently,
most interesting resistance is
thing
and
forms
of
of systems
creativity
be dominated Abu-Lughod to come
of domination,
to
her to
relations
poems/
public in the
and that
enables power
(1990:4248).
structures
of power
of the
human
(1990:41, states
out of the
that
43, the
work on of the
but that [d]espite
of
in of
(1990:53).
resistance
a greater sense of the complexity
nature and forms
and
function
as
bring to light are historically
But her larger
pointand
criminologistsis
that
resistances the existence of arange of specific strategies and
resistance
critical
read
jokes,
we should learn to read in various local and everyday
resistance
to
which
marriage; making fun
previously devalued
has been undertaken at the expense of an analysis resistance,
as
of
matters,
one that is relevant for critical
of power, and fears that there is now atendency romanticize
minor
are recited in conversations
discourse)
ways in
transformed
such
manhood; folktales,
songsghinnawasthat
what
forms
in the hiding
to (arranged)
discourse,
minor
male elders,
While she seems to
of resistanceto
asserts
in the
or even to ideologies
value the attention paid to such defiancesshe
irreverent
resistances
(1990:41).
or neglected forms
in secret; resistance
sexually
rather than large-scale
small
of emancipation
smoking
with unlikely
womens by
covering for each other in
more nuanced
anthropologys
has been studied:
now is a concern
to the
is
She recognizes
one finds
insurrections,
on
resistance
enforced
such as secrets and silences, collusion
whom we presume to speak.
knowledge,
heightened
Bedouin society (e.g.,
restrictions
particular
partial
Attention
societies
may essentialize
In Resistance
in
help
theories
forms
of
us become of
Abu-Lughod
or idealizing
power
suggests,
and the
resistance).
Problem
expresses
studies of resistance, exhibiting
domination
the
power (in as much as it runs the risk
Ortner (1995)
criticism
to
can
or reductionist
To do otherwise,
of oversimplifying
Refusal,
power.
that
she
her
1984
showed
article,
her
of
Ethnographic
displeasure
with
much of the same tren-chant in
her
discussed
comments
above.
about
Ortne
232
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
begins by discussing various waysin which resistance
in the oppressor-resistor relationship and have neglected
has been conceptualized. She explains that resistance
to scrutinize the politics in the relationships of resistors
was initially
a
relatively
of the seemingly resistance.
simple
binary,
category,
domination
of power; resistance
opposition
half
was essentially
to power institutionalized
in this
She then
acknowledges
success in shifting
attention
to less institutionalized,
Scotts (1985)
and quotidian
illumination
and persistent
forms
Foucaults
(i.e.,
of power, and
In
of resistance.14
whether an act can be deemed one
objective to resist), before stating that while resistance may be ambiguous and
the
may present problems as a
becauseit highlights the presence and play of power in
and
With this
box
called
backdrop,
concernresistance
resistance
Ortner refers to this as the problem refusala
refusal
or density
of
thickness,
which itself
presents a number ethnographic
(1995:174).
domination
First,
of
are doing
more than
and that ignoring
Ortner claims
simply
opposing
the dynamics, tensions,
and conflicts among subalterns produces aromanticized picture of the resistorsa makes to stresses
that
which
I
point Abu-Lughod (1990)
alluded
individual
above. acts
of
Ortner
as
well
as
large-scale resistance movements,are often themselves conflicted,
internally
ambivalent,
in large part due to these internal
complexities,
contradictory,
an adequate examination
In
affectively political
and she emphasizes that in order to con-duct of resistance, one
observe the prior and ongoing politics groups.
and
other
words,
studies have devoted too
must
within resistance
Ortner feels that much attention
resistors
resistance
to the politics
resistance
(1995:183).
behind
specific
Ortner cultural
to cultural
may reveal some resistance
will help avoid the
movements,
depiction
of resistors
as ad hoc and springing
situations
or instances
maintains that recognizing
a subaltern
processes, practices, and features
of order, justice, and meaningand
solely
of domination. groups
will also help
show the depth and range of the groups
own notions
the basisfor and
vision of their world without the oppressors. Finally, Ortner reminds usthat subaltern monolithic
identity and consciousness (1995:183). the poststructuralist
(1995:185, subjects
186)and
they
portraits
I
of subjects in
and enact. For it is in
and enactment
or transform
(1995:187).
Doing so also uncovers
of those
become and transform
(1995:187).
they
better representation
(1995:187).
that they sustain
ethnographic
voicesthat
disappear
of providing
projects that they construct
universe
that
powerful
not representationally
both
of the subject
argues
need to retain
the formulation
Shecriti-cizes
move ... to de-essentialize
the de(con)struction
and of themselves the
is not a
category ... whois presumed to havea uni-tary
projects that
who they
are, and
their social and cultural
would
add
that
while
retain-ing
and representing the subject can help scholars to depict the internal
politics and cultural complexity of
the resistorsissues
(1995:179)
resistance,
the
of subjects is to create better
Ortner asserts
of the resistors.
of
values
Part of the purpose
holism
do not contain enough analysis
politics
and
which
should
of ethnographic
a failure
may take various formsand
that studies of resistance
that resistors
thinness.
of issues that arise as a result of this
refusal
of the internal
with her key
ethnographic
alleges that
as religionwhich
the subjector
(1995:175).
Ortner proceeds
studies
richness
beliefs
from
to decide once and for all whether any given a fixed
cultural
Ortner
do not attend to, or even recognize,
Here, Ortner urges scholars to pay attention
mostforms of relationship and activity. ... [W]e are not into
vein,
dynamicssuch
category, it is still a reasonably useful category, if only
act fits
a similar
responses to domination more en-veloping
of less organized, everyday forms
of resistance if the actor does not possess the conscious
required
other.
of the
Ortner notes how some have addressed the question of intentionality
each
versus
way (1995:174).
more omnipresent
to
studies frequently was a relatively fixed and insti-tutionalized
Domination form
organized
unambiguous
alluded to abovean
adequate
treatment of the individual subject can also reveal how domination and resistance is experienced personally (as well as collectively), in consciousness, To
instances
domination
processes. Anthropology for the study
as reflections
(however
criminologys
political
can
help of
models
conceived).
anti-positivism
perspectives
expose
widespread
can also provide some
of resistance
because of critical the left-leaning
awareness, and identity.
anthropology
conclude,
of
and can disclose transforma-tions
But and
of its adherents
ADVANCING
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
THROUGH
ANTHROPOLOGY
233
critical criminologists should be aware of, contemplate,
the behavior of middle-or upper-class persons are not
and engage the anthropological
likely to be enforced (1971:475).
studies
and
accounts
of
debates surrounding
resistance
so
as
not
to
Chambliss reworks
roman-ticize
article
it.
and
many of hisideas from
his 1971 book in
Radical Criminology,
his chapter, Toward
in the first
edition
of Law: A Progressive Critiquea ANTHROPOLOGY WHAT
CAN
CONSTITUTES
REMIND
CRIME
SPECIFIC
AND
US
IS
THAT
CULTURALLY
TEMPORAL
In A
Sociological
William J. of sociological between
Analysis of the
Chambliss laments relevant
and part of both the anthropology
critical
criminology
particular
laws
which these laws
form
(1964:67).
Law of Vagrancy,
social
setting
are interpreted,
jurisprudence,
support for the
Weberian contention that
groups determine the content of the law citing Rheinstein 1954)a the perspective that
citing
Chambliss further
the
books
co-author, order
the
Friedmann
develops
between the law in
Law,
Order,
Robert
and
rules
determine
the
whether
the
formal rules
agencies
a self-serving
privilege (1971:4).
and
have
been
his
maintain
Chambliss
wake
acts
come
to
be
defined
of power
position,
leaders
suggests that
as a constant and
as criminal
and
political
because
struggles
(1982:23031).
of
analyses
[have]
insti-tutions
creation
of criminal
down
theft
and
power and
arose to
property
of and
law.
...
protect
of
England among feudal
[T]he
law
the of
and
against the in-terests workers; vagrancy
the tensions
and the emergent
the
behind
the interests
mercantilists property
laws reflected
revealed
forces
in
precapitalist
landlords
capitalist
peasants,
class in the cit-ies;
machine smashing in rural England was a rational response to
defy the trend toward boring, monotonous
of law. Towards
the end of their treatise, in a chapter on poverty and
industrial
workers seeking to
production,
but the state came
the criminal process, Chambliss and Seidman set forth
down on the side of the capitalist class and
a number
criminalized
decision to
enforce the laws against certain
persons and not against
others. Two of the propositions
are asfollows:
societies,
political
position. Therefore, types are
of behavior morelikely
to
In
com-plex
power is closely tied to social
those laws popular
which prohibit
among lower-class
be enforced,
this
states:
criminal law, and the implementation
the
the
reflecting
To support
the creation of formal rules of law, general principles of
regarding
the
are some acts defined
Chambliss (1982:233)
Historical
Chambliss and Seidman examine
of propositions
of
War
while others are not? (1982:230).
and economic
which enforce the lawis
system to
the
crime
(1982:233). The latter question recognizes that many
which
breached,
In
by political
is Why
political
the tribu-nals,
informal,
criminology
anti-Vietnam
criminality
question
and
in
legal
State lay
of officials and citizens,
unofficial,
bureaucratic
in fact
that is the
of law
of his earlier
takes the definition of behavior by the state asa given
interplay
the
he and
which the various law-making
in the bureaucracy
and
about
and the law where
blatant
economic conditions
B. Seidman, argue that [t]he
for the governance official
Power,
with
of public
his ideas
(1982:230).
demonstrations,
by law as criminal
1959).
in action
not?
The former question treats crime
status
position inconsistent
and
more salient
(1964:77,
the law is a reflection
(1964:77,
disparities
finds
do
legal
some people commit
and giant corporations,
in
and take
Chambliss
others
protests,
Examining the law of vagrancy in
Anglo-American
opinion
while
is it that
1960s civil rights
shortage
of the relationship
and the
emerge,
canons. In the spirit
a
Politics
work ofcritical
work, Chambliss asserts that traditionally,
the severe
analyses
ofThe
theory
has asked Why
his 1964
certain persons
while laws restricting
such acts; rights of rural village
dwellers to hunt, fish, and gather wood were retracted
and
criminality of
the
landed
states
such
activities
punishable
on
gentry in opposition
population;
acts
of
by death as a result
intervention
values, and interests rural
became
of the
the
side
of
the
to the customs, majority
indeed, even
of the
murder cam
234
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
to be defined as an act against the state (that
posesto their
is, as a crime) as a result of political and
to examine the legal
economic
struggles in
which the
of the people were simply their
violations laws
at law.
of personal freedom
and
found,
economic
of political
Crime,
and
that
defined
history
forces
as criminal
can reveal the
behind
the
changes
political
creation
law. Chambliss contends that
of
and
when one adopts this
crime rates frequently
distort
or
waves
off enses, criminology
cannot
as usual
Chambliss
revolutionone
criminology question
should of why
while others do not
understand
defines crime not as
(1982:239).
According to
Chambliss
(1982:239):
as a category,
that
we are
now
back
Although Chambliss illustrate
We mustunderstand the political, economic, and social forces leading to differences in
an
diff erences
in the same
period.
between
diff erences between crime in capitalist socialist at
the
societies. historical
the legislative that
define
acts
We must look
roots
of
criminal
and appellate court as
criminal
to
the and
carefully laws
and
processes
understand
of
to
business
as
Nader
applied
expressed in law
in Indonesia
among the
in the
and
how
to social
(2003:57).
Drawing
natural resource
Papua
of
the
to
crime
in relation
plun-dering
New Guinea, to toxic
United States, to her own research
Zapotec on the seriousness
interests
accepts
and attempts
examination
arbitrarily
appears
usual.
anthropologist,
cross-cultural
explains. So
CommonsNader
wetake for granted in
of endangering illustrates
how
andcriminal
Westernlaw and that
that more or
less help to circumscribe the field of criminology (ef-forts of critical criminologists
notwithstanding)
either
do not exist or exist in very diff erent configurations in
countries
We must explore
edition
she laments. It
challenge for criminology via
tort litigation
crime rates in different historical periods as
and the
Nader explains,
Nader (2003:57)
on a range of examplesfrom
the
well
United
and Punishment in
the very distinctions betweencivil
as
the
third
in 1998),
muchfor paradigm revolutions,
try to
and explain the entire range of phenom-ena
called crime
chapter
in
United States. Curries chapters pay little attention to
configurations
people commit instead
Curries
details the growth of incarceration in the
not try to answer the
and should
Politics of
Elliott
United States: Myths, Realities and Possibilities,
is a category
some
revolution
of new and old prisons.The
Chambliss
phenomenon.
Laura
ofThe
with
updated chapter by Currie,Crime
and calls for
or as a social-psychological
as a cultural
argues that
of
with business
describes
that
problem
impossible crime
continue
anthropologist
1990, eight years after
chapter
Politics of Law (published
misrep-resentcrime
the actual danger of crime and the seriousness
problembut
not.
also omits Chambliss chapter and includes instead an
criminal
1960s and 1970s, as wellasfindings that crime
justice
prosecuted,
are
years later,
a conservative
privatization The
that further
a criminal
not;
marked by a rapid rise in incarceration
the
aparadigm
others
are
Justice, and the Social Environmenta
perspective and considers revelations of white-collar,
(1982:234).
while
Chambliss
discusses
corporate, governmental and organized crime in the and soaring
others
describes how in
Law replaced
values and to
as a result
what is
and
and
Chambliss chapter, the second edition
on closer scrutiny,
forces.
Essentially,
sentenced,
Nader (2003)
States
over time
process to see why
enforced
Writing twenty
and security
to be based on contradictory have emerged
are
why some people are arrested,
Laws that
murder, rape, vandalism,
and theftwere
laws
by everyone as serious
prohibiting
economic
some
powerless to have
views represented
were acknowledged
majority
well-being. We mustcontinue
the
larger issues and enlighten the public asto ex-actly what crime is and what kind of threat it
many of the study.
non-Western
According to
Nader (2003:58),
native categories forces categories
of
go elsewhere to
work.
we cannot
simply
question
of
powerful
and criminalthat
part of our cultural
anthropologists
the
usto address the two
Western lawcivil
are ipso facto
when
places that anthropologists
baggage when
we
As Nader (2003:58)
explains,
work in
contexts
accept
the
non-Western categories
civil
an
ADVANCING
criminal
as given. In
CRITICAL
She continues:
Although
from the
Western perspective, are violations
violations
of the law from
are not necessarily crimes. The an idea
related
becomes
to
(2003:59).
to
perspec-tive
concept
when applied
Following
Chambliss
and
why some acts are defined
toward
the current
heresy,
blasphemy
disappeared
have
Fletcher
practically
as
while
(1934)
an
world
discipline crime
and
descriptive,
against
Despiteits omission from subsequent editions of
crime
from
of anthropologyOberg
wide social in
milieu.
Tlingit
individual
of
is purely
or theoretical.
Oberg (1934:146) did
His account
Society
rather than comparative when
on and pre-scription
as merely one issue among
Punishment
an individual
a somewhat
as a reflection
for the
adher-ence instance,
(2003:71).
about
leveli.e.,
many in a cultures Crime
paradigm
rather than rigid
writes
approaches
his
inquiries
civil and the criminal
Whereas
meta-analytical
extending
by law as criminal
consequence thinking
to categories
changes. Sorcery, sacrilege,
(1891:204).
history,
others are not, and suggests that such examinations mightshift
235
of crime,
cross-culturally
Nader calls for continued
ANTHROPOLOGY
from the penal codes of the civilized
of the law,
Western jurisprudential
problematic
line of thinking,
crimes,
the cross-cultural
THROUGH
maydisappear altogether as public opinion
developing nation states they
are clearly cultural constructs, the legacy of a specific Western tradition.
CRIMINOLOGY
For
states that crime
not exist. The
loss
of an
by murder,the loss of property by theft, or
shame brought to a member of a clan, wereclan losses The Politics of Law, Chambliss chapter remains an im-portant tract for both legal anthropologists and critical criminologists. as relevant
that
As wellit should.
now
as in
1982
(or
matter), and perhaps
commended for
for
persuasively
in
1971
more so.
responding arguing
Chambliss appeal is
to
to cross-cultural anthropology
illustrating of)
that
(and
proscribed
time)
condoned,
historical)
particularly
over
examination. to
is still
For example,
is to
be condemned
Fletcher, his ideas regarding
(noted
the
more generally. statements
relation
the critical economic
diff er and
criminal
at the outset of this article)
individual
He is not interested
wish to
who reads Obergs finding
depends largely
in
interested power
Tlingit
U.S. society.
Oberg today
and
what
constitutes
crime.
True,
the
crime is to be punished
upon the rank of the criminal.
Men of
a payment
of goods (1934:152). In
her review, Law eighty
and
years after
Anthropology, Fletcher
written
and thirty-five
Oberg, Moore explains that anthropolo-gists
is
which is a crime under one govern-ment not so regarded
Duelling,
for
example,
punished
as
murder in
is
not cognizable
by law
under which, if
has been fairly
So, also,
was formerly
crime
becomes diminished
is
many countries, at all in
the encounter what
another. fatal,
of its
others if
in its gravity
context,
and
that
breaches of legal rules not named
as a or
categories
(1969:289, legal
like
while
outside
most (if
all formalize
felony
not
266)categories
but that
are hardly as fixed be and
to
that in
contexts.
(1997), in his study of transitional East
Germany (with
have tremendous U.S. jurisprudence,
as we sometimes
which carry little
in cross-cultural
these into
and misdemeanor
and practical importance
them
conducted.
regarded
social
all) peoples distinguish between serious and trivial
criminal
law of every country answers the question; but that
of pun-ishment
might be interested
believe that law is incomprehensible of deciding
But
the relationship
high rank could often escape death through
years after
we are met with the difficulty
clan
making larger
to enforcement
that [h]ow
the
on crime in
to crime in
political
to
approaches to crime,
comment
criminologist and
almost not-withstanding,
comments that:
of the
about anthropological
does he
culturally-specific in
people(s)
and how weshould respond to the former.
anthropology
illuminate
when sub-jected society in relationship
well-suited
and that
what behavior
to
possess (some form
behaviors, crime
and location-specific, (over
moorings
while all cultures
be
plea and
does so for purposes of using crime and punishment
nor is a culturally-constructed
that crime
is
for
Nader should
Chambliss
category that loses its
Indeed,
or 1964,
and the clan demanded an equivalent in revenge, he
currency Similarly,
imagine qua cat-egories Borneman
justice in the former
some select comparisons
with
236
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
other formerly communist statesin Europe), addresses
prohibition
to the notion of the impermanence of criminal law,
the question of how societies deal with the abuses of power, crimes, and
human rights
previous regime. In so doing, how taken-for-granted
Borneman
and vindication)
socially
(1997:62).
Borneman,
and
like
to
of
prohibited.
of crime vary by place and is not to suggest that
Moore
and
Nader (or
interested
statute
homosexual for critical
or
although
Borneman states that
both criminals and victims are culturally
and historically of intensive
variable categories ...
who in
change can easily switch
places, it
nonetheless
be necessary in a legal regime
of law
to reaffirm
two
type
(1997:144).
are
In
other
and injustices.
specific
(established
democracies.
is conceptualized
substantial
and,
to
more notably,
state-level
be, consistent
of)
how harm
with
the
crime is, critical
support
the
proposition
that crime is culturally, temporally, and geographically specific, but do so almost in passing or in the context of a broader
inquiry.
Greenhouse
example,
notes that associating
the town
of
woman
Hopewell [GA]
was a capital
Greenhouses focus is structure
in the town
meaning of conflict than
on capital
crimes
(1986:165),
in the
nighttime
with [ones]
development
of
Hopewell,
for
Hopewell
before the
in
negro slave
off ense in the 1860s. on the
for
13th
in informal
means
anthropology
can
provide
broad
for the notion that crime
incomprehensible
and
is a cul-tural
outside of its social,
inquiry
unto
can offer useful examplesfor critical crimi-nologists interested in investigating such mattersas: 1) while
others are not (Chamblisss and Naders question); 2) the
relationship
of economic
and
punishment
and
political
(noted
above
of
Oberg); 3) why some crimes
and
others misdemeanors Moore);
(noted
4) how to respond
state crimes committed above in the context of race and Greenhouse).
crime
asking
the
en-forcement
context
are labeled felonies above in the
to and
(noted
context
make amends
and
above in
Nader (and
goal of considering
in
to
for
by oppressive regimes (noted
of Borneman);
For
power
for
5) the relation-ship the
context
Chambliss),
crime as a cultural
construct
why some acts are defined by law
of
the real
and
ascriminal
while others are not, is to help shift our analyses to the consequences
of various acts and omissions,
however
they
maybe categorized (e.g.,civil
orcriminal).
I
would take the additional
step of proposing
that contemplating of
various
criminal, critical
acts
and
and exposing the consequences omissions
whether legal criminologists
harmsharms
to
(whether
or illegal)
push for regulation
that are not (necessarily)
law, but that
civil
or
could enable of social
proscribed
are nonetheless injuriousas
by
well asfor
Although
the decriminalization
of certain types of behavior that
of social
cause little
or may actually
Georgia, and the residents,
interested
adult
as well as
why some acts are defined by law ascriminal
criminological endeavor. Other anthropologists
laws
consensual, sodomy),
and geographic contextan
itselfand
is that
to (the legitimacy
to and rectify
continue
abuses
retributive
But his concern for
classifying as illegal
support
temporal,
cat-egories of
what
various
argument
and perpetrated,
how states respond should
such
in part through
is of central importance
emerging
because
is the response to
Bornemans
accountability
and
words,
between the
marriage), in
Lawrence v. Texas (which
Texass law
sum,
will
of the rule
distinction
malleable, ductile, and impermanent,
becomes imperative
justice)
the
periods
down a
resolution.
or diminish violence and atrocities by quibbling over To the contrary,
struck
between anti-miscegenation
intercourse
construct
meaningless. Nor does Borneman wish to downplay
criminologists
interracial
prior to
criminologists
conflict
situationally-constructed,
that he also regards such categories asinsignificant
terminology.
prohibiting
laws
invalidated
In
critical
Loving v. Virginia (which
and sodomy
Fletcher
for
in the range and scope of anti-miscegenation
before
Virginia
be-causeof
matter), views categories such as
be culturally-or
prove insightful
drawing comparisons con-structed:
category
of and legally
This
Oberg, for that
crime
reconcili-ation
and politically
constructed
but could
laws
deeds; such acts are by definition
disapproved
Needless to say, definitions over time
demonstrates
and victim,
are socially
is a socially
wrong and unjust both
of the
categories (such as criminality
and the rule of law, perpetrator
Crime
violations
of slavery, her account not only adds sup-port
rather
Amendments
detriment
Brisman 2010e). In other a lens
with
have delineated
which
to
permissible
be beneficial (see
words, anthropology
can pro-vide
examine
cultures
and
how
other
proscribed
behaviors
ADVANCING
turning
criminologists
to anthropological
ethnological
study)
of the crime
might help to reduce the supremacy weconsider the eff ects of
a wider range of acts and omissions (however rather than confining the crime
our study to that
grouping.
behaviors,
and practices on the corporate-and to
environmental
destruction and
degradation
Act to include
devices (or
of
patterns,
natural
resource
Resource Conservation E-waste
parts of electronic
hazardous
to
Renteln
2005),
required
for
behaviors (e.g., possession have a disproportionate
on certain groups of people (e.g., sentencing
that
the
defense
apply
this
arenaan
critical
criminologists
has explained, received
of
impact disparities
off er
examples
criminologists is culturally
that
of
position specific and
number (that
the
defendant
property
vitsa) and that secretiveness a long-established
criminal
has been a challenge for Michalowski
have been politically invitations
the
to
sit
the
diff
involving
erences
child
(parent-child
have
involved
been
and
who
have
often
homicide
syndromes,21
testimony
from
involving
cultural
witnesses in cases involving
cultural
discussion is
Sutherland
1994).
occasionally
construct
in
defensecharacterized
guilt
that
diff ers
consider
relevant
features
anthropologists
have
the culture
extensive
treat
to
dismiss,
them
condemn,
of domination, in
of
charged
the
that
defendants
when
cultural
as-certaining
on context,
is a
circum-stance,
might be willing and In
if they have
addition,
own cultural or
criminalize
even
because
assump-tionsto
natural
others
and
cultural
who, as noted above, are committed
critique
claim
and
2010b).
accept that crime based
fieldwork.
as normal
in cases
beliefs and practices (see Donovan 2008:225)critical criminologists,
to
a
Brisman
able to serve in this capacityespecially
a penalty the court should
as
or setting
diff erences (e.g.,
cases involving
capacity,22
of anthropologists
geography, and time, they
have served as expert
To explicate,
testified
might examine the
cultural
cases
defenses based
diminished
diff erences (see
legal systems tend to reify their
which anthropologists
in
anthropologists).24
suggest that ways in
stake
not all of these cases have
conducted
criminologists
at
cases involving
outside the scope of this article, I would also like to critical
is
and marriage-by-capture,20
that is akin to that of
encountered
Although an in-depth
people by tradi-tion)
Essentially, I could envision a role for critical crimi-nologists
obstacles to achieving progressive reform, let alone social justice.
to
marriage,17 polygamy,18 oyako-shinju
government or to dine at the trough of government-fundedBecausecritical criminologists research,
intent
Gypsies who have been
also
suicide),19
as well as in
(2010:5)
councils
the
persecuted around the world for centuries (1994:75).16
marginalized, at
lacked
of their kin group (or
of
on culture-bound
in
of his five-year-old
and concealing identity
pattern
and provocation23 (although
who, as
with using
numbers because they consider
might also off er a paradigm
issue that
few
man was charged
knowledge
anthropology
how to
justice
have
crime
Gypsies which a
frequently borrow each others American names
Cultural
can
to critical
what constitutes
temporal, for
anthropology
support
with
in a case in
defraud because Gypsies (nomadic
for crack and powder cocaine). Finally, if
or
nephew) to obtain credit to purchase a car. Shetestified
them ascorporate
and lend
in the group an anthropologist
a false social security
push for the repeal of statutes
certain
for commit-ting
extensive fieldwork
Gypsy
negated
and anthropolo-gists
Sutherland,
United States, participated
nineteen-year-old
asserted
heritage or tradition
membership
For example,
who has conducted in the
have
properly
1994:143)
and to the individuals culture.
animals, at-tire,
defendants
to the cultural
critical criminologists or laws that
the
cases,
and death/the
background
(Goldstein
have testified
and social security
criminalize
such
to be held responsible
consequences of various acts and omissions could help
marijuana)
In
drugs, homicide,
cultural
a crime
a cultural construct and shifting our analyses to the
that
2008:217).
237
devices)that
). Conversely,treating crime as
waste15
ANTHROPOLOGY
materialelec-tronic
are currently exempt under the legislations definition of
(see
the intent
state-level that lead and
(e.g., amending the
Recovery
dead
that their their
which falls with-in
push for regulation
of) activities,
(Donovan
and children
For example, such an endeavor
could help critical criminologists (or better regulation
defined)
THROUGH
which have ranged from those involving
notwithstanding),
examples (and engaging in
category so that
CRIMINOLOGY
background
Given that criminology reifies the category of crime (eff orts of critical
CRITICAL
assist
the
defense
to a
might embrace the opportunity of
with a crime and
an
individual
who
whose non-dominant
has
been
cultur
238
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
of capitalist society; (2) that the
is, effectively, on trial. That said, critical criminologists would
need
culture
to
be careful
that
their
of various cultural
229),
position
practices that
who has argued that
not reflect multicultural racist,
sexist,
and
Notwithstanding
are themselves
of capitalist
the culture
sensitivity,
colonialist
defense
of knowledge.25
such concerns, critical
might agree with Starr and
in
from
all strata of society
Rentelns (2005)
be treated
that the
equally under the law [they
diff erentlysomething
that
the
arena [for]
to
must be] treated
the culture
justice
of the
powerless.26
defense has
class structure
labeling
to the
with a critique
the
arrangements
of
ascausal forces in the and have linked
in the political-economic
of
(1996:12)
havefram[ed]
and the institutional capitalism
protect
disadvantage
Michalowski
of crime and criminals
con-tradictions
(3) that
system generally
powerful Similarly,
constructionism
of domination framework
social as mani-fest
of the nation
and the world. At its best, this analysis helped reveal the subtle dynamics of race, class, and gender oppression in the
making of laws and the administration
Because critical
the potential to off er and which critical criminologists
critical
might provide.
social organization;
explicates that critical criminologists
and find inspira-tion
reasoning that for litigants
and the criminal
20th century corporate
criminologists
Collier (1989:7)
system does not provide an impartial
contestants
does
but rather sustains
forms
laws
the interests
taken by Koptiuch (1996:228,
majority of crime in
capitalist societies is the result of the inherent
of the
defense does not result in support for or accep-tance
oppressivea
legal
endorsement
criminology
of justice.
has been both
of the discipline of criminology
and critical
of capitalism as an economic system,27 one might be inclined, then, to view critical criminology in purely ANTHROPOLOGY PARADIGMS
CAN
FOR
CRITICAL
BETTER
HELP
oppositional termsas
LIVINGALLOWING
CRIMINOLOGISTS
CRITICAL,
PROVIDE
concepts,
TO BE NOT JUST
NOT JUST PRESCRIPTIVE (IN
in
THE
ASPIRATIONAL (HOW
ONE
economic,
OUGHT
Critical
criminology of
challenges
orthodox
academic
contests this administrative crime
as a value
accepts the the interest
in
free
prevailing
problem
of crime,
the
the
assumptions
or traditional
structural
criminology, concept
definitions and forces
and
criminology.
It
which treats non-reflectively
of
what constitutes
and
social
and
of
economic
added).
Likewise,
harsher
and crime
justice
power
are integral has
and racial, as well as gender) to
understanding
maintained
system,
which defends the existing social order,
interests
of the capitalist
criminal
and protects the
class. As Maguire (1988:134)
explains, critical criminology domination
in society
the
and
and
reflects the power structure
that
crime
control,
and repression
contends (1)
that conflict,
are characteristic
elements
138)
hold fast to the
makes sense only in the and that criminal
asserts: The
more prisons,
sentences,
somethingsocial
(economic
criminologists
Young (1985:552)
orthodox or traditional of inequality
Maguire (1988:134,
justice
[to crime] is
radical policy is
criminology,
public and
need to be married to social justice
justice. Thus,
oradministrative
and that frame the
Similarly,
critical
confronting the goals, knowledge base,and theories of has also assertedthat the concepts
with the political, definition
larger context of social justice,
trials,
states that
forces that shape the
of crime,
causes of crime (see Presdee 2004). In the process of
critical criminology
are concerned
notion that criminal
solution
(1996:9)
discourse about how we might achieve justice
observes that
reforms
and
which possesses a lack
Michalowski
and cultural
(emphasis
content
But
and character
TO BEHAVE)
approaches,
orders, and systems, rather than for anything
particular.
critical criminologists
SENSE OF OFFERING RECOMMENDATIONS), BUT
against certain
and
closer
justice reforms.
conservative
more police, faster surveillance.
The
more social justice and less criminal critical
criminologists
justiceand
do stand for
havetaken additional
stepsto propose and promote specific policy proposals. This
is, by no means, a new development.
it is a critique Class,
State,
for popular conflicts
and
of advanced capitalist and
Crime
justicewhere
between
state
a
society,
in
their
[o]utside
own
call
to resolve
communities
the legal institutions
(1977:16263).
presents an agenda
Quinneys
Marxist-based
people attempt
themselves
workplaces [and]
of the capitalist 56774)
contains
In as much as
for critical
Young (1985: criminology
ADVANCING
to transform criminal justice into social justice, and to movefrom production
for profit to production
human need, for community, survey
of radical
found
that
and for praxis.
criminologists,
for radical
opportunities
health
income
care
and
the
arrangements
distribution
behavior.
respondents a number
in
1986:1604)
and
and
dispute resolution,
current
criminal
increased
police training
and
and job rotation and officers
and humanizing
wrongs that harm),
to
thereby
in
us/them
Crime
Reports,
combat equal
overhaul
the
FBIs
crime);
(e.g.,
legal insurance);
and the
community-based
retrospective
the establishment for criminal
public
than
murder
disposition
of
many, if
of communities
(1969,
1980,
to
be
2003;
more serious
Nader
criminologists
description
of the Philippines,
of
to the ability (2006)
most,
fines
(1992)
interested
promulgated is unattainable
in this era
of
programs
by critical
to use
based
about on
courts issuing
Finally,
income.28
of Yanomami
for the type
of characteristics
cross-fertilization
to accrue ... knowledge for its own sake, hoping instead
kind
to be able to use these insights
bring
all persons and cultures that if their
critical
methodology
and informants)critical
(Donovan
criminologists
the condi-tions
2008:xi)a likely
does not involve criminologists
if
not
ethnography might build future
a
and qualities
would need to
raids on theories and
together
and
citing
accounts.
has its own and tension
and children,
the
between
seniors
Comaroff
they 1982).
will need to
peoples
described
As Ortner reminds
politicse.g.,
what
of history
criminologists
not to romanticize
anthropological group
what kind
(1992:261,
More on point, critical
friction
conducting interdisciplinary
should be wary of precisely
of anthropology
careful per-spective
share (even
upon and expand their ideas for an imagined
who must be
theoreticians run significant risks, Laveand Fernandez caution, and individuals
informants,
who
possess.
Of course critical criminologists
becausemost anthropologists today arerarely satisfied to improve
Chagnons
village headmen,
our leaders and public figures should
I wishto take the more modeststep of suggesting that
ethnographic
consult
was organized accord-ing
Scandinavian
ones
be careful. Cross-disciplinary proposed programs and recom-mendations
is outside the scope of this article. Instead,
of the original
pro-gressive, penal-ize
of fines among the Ifugao
whose system
description
paradigm
Ortners (1995:176) phrase. Even a cursory overview of critical criminologists
in
more generous than any other villager, could provide and re-commendations
criminologists
of interdisciplinarity,
Todd
that
mustlead by example and persuasion, and examination
and
of each class to pay, as well as Rosens
comments
traffic
off enses).
An in-depth
Horizon
more heavily than the poormight
Bartons (1919)
tribu-nals
not
and other
Deepwater
Naders study of the Zapotec, whocon-sidered
critical
the rich
of
justice (e.g.,
of neighborhood
dignity
penalties for en-vironmental
rather than regressive finesones
national
development
victims
When proposing
Commons (e.g., the
health
1978). Those
Uniform
the guarantee
representation
that
(agreed-upon
pollution of the water supply and endangering the
or an increase in funds to
corporate legal
of
of justice
moral injuries
oil spill in the Gulf of Mexico?),critical criminologists
the
of laws and legal procedure to an
a form
do not necessarily result in specific
1997:7).
mightlook to
reflect asocial harms standard (e.g.,the com-mission of
for greater/
accountability
crimes, such as water pollution
police
terms]);
and for victims for
crimi-nology
world (and
and the imagined
helping to reestablish
damage to the
plans [reduce police burn-out
think
formulation
paradigms)
(and corporate)
1997:16)
of
work (e.g., sabbaticals
mitigate the tendency for
can help critical
models and arguments
seeks to compensate
(Borneman the professionalization
accounts of
and the like.
justice
governmental
(Borneman
239
(Cover
narrow the gap between the existing
survey identified recommendations:
ANTHROPOLOGY
or world-that-might-be
For example, anthropology
macro-emphasis,
Maguires (1988:145)
of specific criminal justice
wealth
THROUGH
1984:181) bylooking to anthropological justice,
of
have an influence
Beyond this
CRIMINOLOGY
Work edu-cation, world by providing
of
are social justice foci that ...
on criminal
etiology
and constraints.
the
(Cover
Maguire (1988:145)
criminologists,
crime has to do with social structural institutional
for
And in his
CRITICAL
local
be in
us, every
categories
of
men and women, parents
and juniors;
conflicts
amon
240
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
brothers over inheritance;
struggles for supremacy
between religious sects (1995:177). societies, she continues, be as complex
contain
of capitalism
1995:179). Thus,
mindful of the context in
and the like
critical
study the circumstances cultures we do
or ignore
models of
appear.
While
can provide some ideas, before importing
rules or penalties,
particular
(Ortner
will need to be
which appealing
justice,
may
that
will need to
have taken
place in those
have given rise to such ideas
not romanticize
instances
there). That
models, perspectives,
criminologists
that
these
of oppression
(Michalowski
cultures
and
and/
domination
1996:11,
12). I do not
to ignore the early calls for trans-societal
bit as oppres-sive, (Young
every
any broad or specific approaches,
(so that
that
and colonialism
critical criminologists
dispute resolution, anthropology
Even the simplest
a politics
and sometimes
as those
racism, sexism, working class oppression and US neo-colonialism
1985:567)
(however the
diff
of anti-social
defined
erent
comparisons
behavior
and crime
by diff erent societies)as
contexts
and
social
well as
formations
in
which
such behavior and crime appears and the responses to them.
Nor do I intend
to
work of comparative
disregard the
criminologists,
more recent
who have urged
criminologists,
in general, to engage in the systematic
and theoretical
comparison
and
crime
Barak
that
control
2000a,
in
of crime, crime prevention,
two
2000b),
or
more cultural
and
professors introduce
their teachings.
who
have
comparative
states
recommended
criminology
AsJohnson (2009:15)
that criminology
as a field
by the influence
[g]iven the chance, manystudents getinter-ested in comparative criminology
has always been shaped
of, and borrowings from,
many
it
scratches
their
itch
to
know
because
about
other
peoples and cultures and becauseit reveals
criminologists
assumptions
disciplines
have been open to influence
from
other
and have been willing to poach theories
approaches from
other fields,
pay attention
provided
to context
and history, there is little
not look to anthropology
critical
that
and
reason they
for prescription,
but that
crimi-nologists
and raises questions about pat-terns
are taken for granted in do not get
the preoccupation
and circumstances,
important
should
is distinctive
and
and punishment CONCLUSION
I
wish to conclude
a
word
this
caution
as
article
I look
with three
ahead
the intersections
to
future
points and
at
the
outset
critical criminology of
domination
of
this
of crime
are not necessarily
proscribed
Advancing
Anthropology,
I
do not
who have admirably
beyond legalistic
stressed
wish to
undertaken the
definitions
by law.
By titling
diminish
critical (and
boundaries of crime
of comparative
problematic
that
this
crimi-nology of what
about
crime
in ones own country.
is a vibrant and
division/perspective
comparative
criminological
have become increasingly criminology
more popular;
nor comparative
criminol-ogy
Mygoal in this
article has been to generate further avenues of inquiry for current and future critical criminologistsinqui-ries that
will also benefit the discipline of anthropol-ogyrather than to find fault
or identify
the con-tributions
to the field
succeeded in)
and criminality.
unit
criminology
In
of study
of this article,
and sociological
of criminology
and sociology their
beginning
anthropological
criminologists
of criminology
with critical
a deficiency.
Second, at the
through
andconfronting
One
can be considered flailing, stagnant or in need of
harms that
Criminology
or current
the task of expanding
undertakings
when
United States.
resuscitation from another discipline. I
to include
Critical
of early
criminology,
developing and exploring
broader conceptions
article,
article,
has been committed to a critique
and to
criminology
within
and exchanges between
critical criminology and anthropology. First,
Critical
neither critical
endeavors
much attention
is the
purpose
America
is to deepen understanding
inspiration,
and aspiration.
involving
into
explains,
other academic disciplines. In other words, given that
of
(see
said, whereassome disciplinary divisions
are tenaciously sustained, South (2010:228) suggests
politics
want
contributions
and to the study
particular,
I noted that
share common and history
I distin-guished
of crime
anthropol-ogy
ancestors,
but that
with respect to crime
ADVANCING
CRITICAL
CRIMINOLOGY
criminality, and criminology has been different. I made
disciplinary
only passingreference to the issue of methodology and
insularitythis
then
critical criminology
proceeded to focus
anthropology
(see
on the results
Donovan 2008:vii),
process by which anthropologists It bears
generated
by
mention that the reason that I have neglected
a consideration
of the
general) and critical benefit from
waysin
anthropological
methods is that I firmly 1999;
(in
particular)
insights
into
believe that
Ferrell
1993,
1989)
have persuasively
ethnographic
which criminology
criminology
Ferrell
and
Hamm
argued
1998;
for
use of
is attuned to this debate, even if its researchers and scholars
they
have not responded
as enthusiastically
as
this article hasfocused on the waysin which
anthropology of
can help critical
crimethat
culturally
present
what
specific
endeavored
to
criminology
expose
for
article
anthropology,
this
to the
ways in
through
critical
benefits that
criminology article
repeated
(to
elsewhere
criminological
need to
or cross-fertilization
mix biological
with
metaphors).
thereby
outside
of the
that
are
major loci
and are pervasive, and
of
while
can off er paradigms for better living,
who fights
into
(i.e.,
attention)
be careful.
As
with
Nietzsche famously
monsters should
we
warned:
be careful lest he
become a monster. And if thou gazelong enough
an abyss, the abyss will gaze into thee (1886:52).
sexism, misogyny, homophobia, xenophobia, working class oppression, environmental degradation and natu-ral resource destruction, economic exploitation,
anthropology
The
might advance
might provide for
which at its
promotion
for critical discourse 2011b;
criminology,
of human
each
of the 2011a,
domineering.
Merry 2006; further
Riles
develop its
But in the process, weshould
be
monsters ourselves; regardless of we should
domination,
be
mindful
that
we, ourselves, do not become
For example,
one of the
waysin
which
the British justified their own dominance in colonial
India was to point to than a com-mensalist
where anthropology is neither
Merry 2007;
and influences,
in critiquing
and its
prove instruc-tive
and its examination
in this regard.
interests
of ethno-centrism
xenophobia,
should
2006) can help critical criminology
our
and
rights (see, e.g., Brisman
Goodale and
careful not to become
and critical
rejection
racism
relativism
U.S.
And anthropology
worst, can lead to genocide)
of cultural
critical
criminology in a mutualistic relationshipwhere relationship
and
underpins
thinking
has little to off er to anthropol-ogy.
provides benefits to the otherrather
(which
on the
as an indication
I see anthropology
and imperialism.
can be helpful in these fightsits
has stressed the
emphasis
not be interpreted
To the contrary,
prescrip-tive,
can advance through
which anthropology
that critical criminology
critical
not just
neo-colonialism
can
has devoted less attention
criminology.
should
is
has also
better livingallowing
While this article
which critical
crime
how anthropology
to be not just critical,
but aspirational.
criminology
constitutes
and temporal. This demonstrate
paradigms
criminologists
waysin
is, or would be, unaff ected
can help expose processes of domination
processesof domination and illuminate the contingent nature
as a sug-gestion
Critical criminologists should battle monstersracism,
might.
Third,
and
Finally, while this article has argued that anthropol-ogy
of crimi-nology He
methods and that the discipline
parochialism
not be understood
anthropology
anthropology
Sullivan
greater
should
critical criminology
(in
qualitative
241
articles emphasis on the benefits to
or harmed by collaboration
could
many others (e.g.,
ANTHROPOLOGY
and subdisciplinary
that
rather than the
have arrived at them.
THROUGH
what they considered barbaric
practices, such as sati (widow
burning), and to claim
helped nor harmed.29 And this article has proposed
they (the British) wereengagedin a civilizing
that anthropology could profit from
that would saveIndian womenfrom these practices(see
comprehensive implied
that
ethnographic there is
gain from the theoretical
study
much that
critical
of crime and has
anthropology
orientations
While I leave for another examination
(for diff erent
could
example,
ethnography
into
regions)or
anthropology
and critical criminology
might learn from how to
Ortner
1987;
1995:178;
see
Mani 1987)a
crimi-nology.described as one in
of critical
day a morein-depth
of what anthropologists
criminologists
more direct or
expand
how
both
might overcome
women from
brown
critical criminologists imperialists. can (and with
also
Jain,
situation
Misra,
that
and
Srivastava
Spivak (1988:296)
which white
men are saving brown
men.This
is not to suggest that
have become British colonialists/
But a critique
or challenge to domination
often does) result in replacing old
new ones (Omi
mission
and
Winant
prejudices
1994:198n.9)on
242
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
form of domination with another. In as muchas we need
as new
to critique domination,
approaches
over
our
critique
cautious
we need to exercise vigilance
(Rosse
discernment
198485:196).
1993:290)or
among
employ
commitments
Anthropology
a
have
(Cover
history, and context to help
to
code,
or
of a state, (see
but
I specify been
cultural from
evolutionary a
anthropology
explored
anthropological
more substantive
is
perspective.
the
anthropology
and
burned,
human cases
Kottak
or
are
worth
well noting
way.
process,
Schneider
some
patches,
there
would
mid-1980s,
ever actually
Note,
and small
a period
she in
the
however,
practices
that
too
no single criminology
that
studies
quarter
to
Barak
are
too
diverse,
and its
discipline
collapse
of the
20th
Henry
classic/legalistic
witches
or
cannot
pursuing
self-contained this
fact
to state
in
(2003:218), wide
and
has
own
rise right
the Lanier definitions
the law product
(2001)
of states for
of crime,
and
a presenta-tion as
well
it
to
5.
the
Ortner of such
are interested
for in
in the shared
could) for
to
con-template
prevention, and society, that
the
focused
societies in
(and
promot-ing
explain/understand
made it
more difficult
regrettable
endeavor
for of
criminology
move past the shortcomings
of crime
(1984) figures
to
slow
suggest
sociology to
or per-ceived
inquiry
traditionally protostate
as While
real
at least, of
victims,
would
models
may have
theories
the
(or,
anthropology/anthropological
See, e.g., impact
I
than
overcome
was for sociology
of positivist
makes pun-ishableis
or
phenomena)
criminal
the
than that
theories
anthropolo-gists
definition,
anthropology and
classical
nation-states
has been its
interested
were
organization.
subject
addition,
moral
or chiefdoms
(and
to off enders,
non-state
less
anthropology
century.
and
been
social
to
of cultural during
In
cultural
grand
monopo-lize
had appeared
that
as
As a result,
should
(including meaning
toward a
norms
close
within
political
state)
as
the
or punished
tribes,
anthropology
on small-scale,
ranging,
too interdepen-dent,
meteoric
their
fact
exist
appropriate
crime control,
is
organization
of the an
anthropologists, was
of
until
had
of
as
crime.
control.
forms
make crime
this
bands,
political
presence
that
violators
studying
investigate
of
and
and
Indeed,
was oriented deviance
entities
practices
anthropologists
explain,
which
But
all political
and
had
compliance,
up for retribution,
came to
have
norms.
(2008:354)
sorcerers.
and are subject
that
a single
been able to
Sociology
and the
act or omission
(see
theories
has ever
quintessentially state law
held
of shreds
anthropology
interests
and criminologies
Crimean
status,
Today,
of identifiable
of adopting
legal
crime,
all
classical
research
ridiculed,
anthropologists
were a few large
according
successfully.
do so until its
than
influence
a discussion).
law,
cultural
in
borders
notstudy
ensure
some
societies
state
beliefs
norms,
Schneider
more generally).
criminologys
of
claimed
a set
sense
as
cultural
acknowledged
when there
denied
is
mainly to them-selves
Ortner
affiliation,
it
(1984:126).
because
and
societ-ies
the
for
had
controli.e.,
from
tended
and state law.
have
anthropological
rather
a unified
coteries
and talking
Although
unified
in
had become a thing
of individuals
or schools,
article,
on states
maintain
and a judiciary
within
could
societies
deviation
small-scale
of (see
whether
Ortner
the
of theoretical
paradigm
ask
in
was at least
camps
of this
anything
investigations
categories
scope
to
study
1950s,
have
stages
unrecognizable
has ever approached
(1984:126).
last
the
of anthropology
disjunctive
4.
physical
remains
advanced
otherwise
outside that
Writing
the field
its
the
all
a formal
and protostate
1971
notor
conflictand
did
shamed,
anthropology
3.
to the legal
where the victims are in
of
did
societies
possessing
very limited
Seidman
of social
operate
regulate
anthro-pology
2008).
Although
and
science
not
form
that
a cultural
forensic
osteology
mutilated,
decomposition,
has been from
of the
some
arguably
to
and
all
anthropologists
non-state
was contingent
While
and
point in
Indeed,
application
usually in criminal
2.
it
which
has
anthropological
vantage
way than
anthropological
been
because crime
a biological
of
technically
subject
they
and integrating Not
mechanism,
in
peoples
Chambliss
Accordingly, 1.
sense
classical
fieldwork
among
crime
of crime).
the
indeed,
to conduct
ENDNOTES
defining
study
an enforcement
systemand,
mitigate such risks.
in
the
had lawin
legal
can provide the theory,
directions
(e.g.,
Lombroso). of the role
and
anthropology.
a discussion
Readers
who
epistemological
foundation
ADVANCING
and complementary
objectives
might
Levi-Strauss
Sahlins 6.
consult
(1981),
Writing ten the shift
years earlier,
in research
studies
toward
aggregate
that
bears
mention
to
social
people
Where
the
(Bodley
Bodley
further
8.
in
the
1960s
with
irrelevant
indicts
to
explicitly
citing
Bodley
mention
hold
to legal me
I
of
scholars.
crime.
state
crime
14.
is a subject
that
perspectives,
I thank
L. Rothe for
Dawn
not
wish to imply critical been
deficient
Fredrichs
(1998),
and
See
breadth
and
state
improve
criminology the range
anthropological
I leave for criminologists
in its
(2010)
depth
crime. to
day
a few
a
family
examples
positions
of its examples)
anthropological
of
17.
18.
19.
by looking
2009b,
wish to this
see, e.g., 2009c,
suggestas articlethat
positions
examples) and
(and
by look-ing
perspectives
on
of
binary
relations,
Axelrod
(2010)
explains,
by
of a relative, tradition
v.
legal
people
see
for
Benu,
87
Crim.Ct.
People v. Ezeonu,
to remain society
issue in
virtually
factor
using
defendant
with fixed
who consider
defining
the
non-Gypsy
serious
ties the
People
a
no
was anony-mous
and that
a bureaucratic abodes
meaning
descent
the
and
and for
a
the
extended
for identification.
Misc.2d
139,
385
N.Y.S.2d
222
1976). 155
Misc.2d
344,
588
N.Y.S.2d
116
Ct. 1992).
People v. Kimura,
Review
81)
from
of
No. A-091133
Ct. Nov. 21, 1985); how critical
and
time-honored separate
Gypsies
(N.Y.Sup.
(and
examples
criminology
regard;
its
and
on resistance
2009a,
of its
scholars back
in this
of postcolonial
languagehas
(N.Y.City
and perspectives.
a consideration
might explore
written
has
number
composed
nomadic
paperthat
its
society
(2009),
this
strengthen
work
2001;
domination-resistance
(1994:75,
security
of state
suggestas
the
McGarrell,
[i]dentificationa
has
criminology
1993, that
critical
accounts
that
As Sutherland
following
gen-eral,
wish to
do throughout
accounts
another
which
merely
detail
Rothe
are but
with
I
could and
investigations
has been defied,
and
strengthen
detail
To the
(1992).
Gibbs,
social
reminding
in
and
somehow
toggled
do throughout
do and
discussion.
16.
as well as
particularly,
range
I
or cultural
Ferrell
own
merely
an understanding
Mbembe
has
who do
criminology, more
Ross (2000),
Mullins
have endeavored
critical
here that
criminology,
I
could
For an argument obscures
of
by the
to criminologists
criminological
and
Rothe
of the
to
were unaff ected
Rather,
anthropological
and
considered
11.
attitudes
the
to
15.
and is of interest
critical
somehow
I
that
improve
power
2008b,
to
has
already
(My
2008a,
n.10,
in general,
resistance.
According
the
2009).
criminology
supra
want to insinuate
have not
have endeavored
this.
do
and
2010f.)
critical
to
brain surgeons
that
Norton-Hawk
critical
e.g.,
been cross-disciplinary
2010d,
in
how
anthropology
Kane
2007,
of social
Niehoff1964).
appears
United
of resistance.
(see,
Nor do I
Brisman
I
writers
underdevelop-ment
agents to
reformers
It
writers
of the medicine
and
[i]t
of ethnocentrism.
not
to economic
Arensberg
(2008:25),
appeal
has also
another
development
e.g.,
crime,
working
resistance between
(see,
peoples indiscriminately
change
modern cultural
bears
upon
of the
particularly,
examined
2009).
forth
becomes
and takes such
speaking
discovery
broad
10.
tribal
peoples,
and comparing
some
9.
economic
for lumping
as asickness,
(2008:25,
standards
impact
investigations
and subverted
Snyder
problem-aticand
it
have closely
studying
(Kottak
2008:21).
for referring
change,
when
more everyday
criminology,
more
in its
criminologists
opposed,
community,
becomes
deadlyis
underdeveloped
task
and
243
1995:175).
see, e.g.,
of state
here that
criminology,
veins
to the integ-rity
tradition
abroad,
my discussion
contrary,
the
and contributes
value
ethnocentrism
basis for forcing
culture
of
a cultural
and
(Ortner
gendered
Drugs
wish to imply
critical
do not portray
vital
2008:21)
a sense
As with not
in
of the
War on
been lacking
cultureis
(Bodley
potentially
13.
well.
who share
2008:196).
data and of
belief
la Foucault
For a discussion
unemployment,
methods
very
ones own
society
on
more pervasive,
of power
States
ANTHROPOLOGY
(2010).
ethnographic
survey
on crime
12.
THROUGH
institutionalized,
forms
lamented
from
ethnocentrismthe
solidarity,
among
(1989:67)
CRIMINOLOGY
less
his-tory
(1968),
Worsley (1968).
of self-report
that
of
of any
Sullivan
statistics
processes
superiority
and
away
and
Lewis
(1962),
such quantitative
... local-level It
(1963),
methods
analyses
social
claiming
7.
Schapera
of anthropology
CRITICAL
(1986);
Woo (1989)
see also
Pound
(Santa
Monica
Bryant (1990);
(1985);
Rosen
Harvard
(2006:17175);
Super. Law
244
CRIME
20.
AND
BEHAVIOR
People v.
Moua,
No. 3159720
(Fresno
County
criminology
Super.
and the
Ct. Feb. 7, 1985). 21.
State
v.
Ganal,
81
Hawaii
358,
917
P.2d
438,
103
370
and public
People v. Poddar, (Cal.App.
23.
24.
It
v. Aphaylath,
N.Y.S.2d
bears
that
and
violence
ordinarily
redefined
science
Rosen (1991);
term,
among
others.
that
there
exist
as feminism,
and
postmodemism,
critical
such
as
as
criminology,
anarchist
criminology,
criminology,
peacemaking
criminology,
criminology.
In this
radical the
criminology criminology
context
of
(or radical
discussing
consistency
with
Maguire
(1988:146)
attempting
to
paper, I primarily (or critical
his
the label
perspec-tives, also notes
distinct
hybrid
constitutive
and left employ
criminologist)
and
that reshape
in
$20
million
hour
(fifty-seven
the fifty-mile-an-hour (Huffington
any intimate
members
of two
mutualism,
Post
one
parasitism,
or
to
between
benefits in
more species.
benefits
association
which
relationship
where diff erent
provide
species
each other,
two
and the
which
other is adversely
Poetry
to
the
realist
other
diff
erent
is
unaf-fected,
one organism
benefits
aff ected.
Lila.
Tracing
Patricia
A. of
maintain
to of
of
of
1985. an
of
and of
Resistance:
Power through
Ethnologist
Conrad
Bedouin
17:4155.
Wheeling Upper-Level New
M. and
Social
and
Dealing:
An
Drug
Dealing
and
York:
Columbia
Use
and of
Deviance.
A.
Bruce,
Stephen
Incarceration
Criminology
Howard
A
Manual
Leo C.
in
Niehoff . for
1964.
Americans
Carroll,
Patricia
Richards.
2001.
the
United
States.
10(1):1741
S. 1963. New
H.
Aldine.
Marino
McCall,
Arthur
Change:
Chicago:
James,
The
Romance
Community.
Overseas.
Becker,
Honor University
Press.
Introducing
only in
Sentiments: Berkeley:
1990. The
American
Smuggling
L.
Veiled Society.
Transformations
Women.
Austin,
1986.
Bedouin
Press.
Abu-Lughod,
using
field
a
California
Arensberg,
the term,
addition
Lila.
in
University
newsmaking
order
and the
Critical
explains
in
to
association an
Ethnography
writing.
influence
species
Adler,
theories
criminologist),
Maguire in
includes
in close
commensalism,
and that
criminology,
cultural
critical
the
social
own
than
fined
REFERENCES
poststructuralism
well as its
over
limit
refers
between
concept
Abu-Lughod, employs
criminologies
political-economy,
symbiosis
(1991);
that
broad
only
accord-ing
a Swiss court of
mil-lionaire, bears
not the fined
miles an
faster
a
a
Sheybani
(1996:14)
encompasses
are
wealth
hour)
to It
been
2010,
thirty-five
an
gave
(1994);
and Marxist
Michalowski
biology,
living
de-bates
Volpp (1994).
but indicates
driving
$216,900
have
In January
police
defense
(1986);
(1988:134)
critical,
multiple
such
theories
and
income.
and
the
Rimonte
Sherman
Maguire
criminology
in
culture
system,
information.
countries
enders
with an estimated
The
the
science
Gallin
(1993);
criminology, conflict,
interested
off
for
anthropological
of the
of tax
Scandinavian traffic
or association
gender
U.S. legal
Choi (1990);
Renteln
that
defense,
of
Readers
(1985);
mention
by
and cons
Sams (1986);
radical
culture
justice
2010).
about
within
crimi-nologists
administra-tors,
Finnish
amount
his income
$290,000
In
29.
colonial
exuberance
authority
example,
encompasses
critical
27.
pros
Thompson
It bears
unacknowledged
the
216).
for
track[s]
the
that
a speeder
ap-plicability
critical
criminal
(eighty-kilometer-an-hour)
of recent
Koptiuch
uncritical
[i]n
(1991);
groups
that
kilometers
over the
of multiculturalism
by
the
might consult,
(1987);
diaspora,
in
defendant.
debate
in on
which
to their
allowed
resulted
notes
ticket
in
testimony. have
to select
ones
society,
opinion.
based
not
in
representatives,
in the
(2006:192)
998,
have
always
for the
criminalized
(1996:217,
Magnarella
law
of the
as ritual
regarding
courts
cultural
haunts
that
courts
not
mitigation
potential
argues
N.E.2d
cultural
where
of the
darkly
Rosen
mention
have
genealogy
the liberatory
26.
cases
Americas
historical
502
cases,
disallowed
U.S. criminal in
shadow
is
or
or sentencing
immigrants
945,
these
testimony
of
law,
N.Y.2d
in
her examination
the
28.
84
1986).
that
those
cultural
acquittal In
68
permitted
Furthermore,
25.
Cal.Rptr.
speeding
83 (N.Y.
mention
uniformly
such
Cal.App.3d
1 Dist. 1972).
People 510
26
elected
and functionaries
(Haw.
1996). 22.
powerful
also target
York:
Outsiders: Free
Studies Press.
in the
Sociology
ADVANCING
Barak,
Gregg. 2000a. Comparative
View. The Barak,
Critical
Gregg
Global
Barak,
(ed.).
View.
R.
Needs-Based
F.
University
1919
A
Justice.
of
Laura,
Contemporary
Simple
Ifugao
Brisman,
Law.
1988. On
Bruce
M. Knauft,
MD:
Reconsidering
Societies.
Current
Violence
Anthropology
at
Victims of
Progress 5/e.
Lanham,
and
John.
Princeton
1997.
Settling
Philippe.
Selling
1995.
San
El Barrio.
Biomedical
,
2nd
of
the
Mednick,
Factors
ICS
edition.
Respect:
in
Q.
and Jan
Crime.
pp.
Volavka. 6590
Wilson and Joan
in
Petersilia.
2010b.
Jurisprudence
of
at
the
Avi.
on the
Tyranny
of the
Brisman,
Notes on
Culture-Drug/Drug-Crime
North
Dakota
Law
Review
Edge:
Paper
Transgression
Criminal
Justice
University Aug.
Paper
at
and The
Dangerous
Conference.
John
and The
New York
College
Center,
City
New York,
NY,
2008a.
Issues
the
Docile
of
Time,
Withdrawal
Paper
presented
Western February Avi.
Society
of
Bodies
or
Power,
and
Death
at
the
35th
of
Criminology,
Rebellious
Spectacle
Penalty Annual
Appeals. Conference,
Sacramento,
CA,
2008b.
Fair
Fare?:
and Jails.
Food
Terrain in
U.S. Prisons
on Poverty
Law and Policy 15(1):4993.
as
Contested
Georgetown Journal
CA,
Comparative
and
Paper
the
presented
Annual
Nov. 20.
All
at the of
of
Criminology
Over Again:
Reconceptualizing
Society
and
Center-City
Criminology
of
vu
pre-sented
26.
M. Cover.
Francisco,
Preliminary
Evolution 37th
and
Annual
Criminology,
Crime.
Conference, Honolulu,
HI,
5.
Avi. 2010d. Creative
Analogy. Brisman,
Crime
Avi.
The
of Environmentally in
Global
Crime and the Phytological
Media Culture 6(2):205225.
2010e.
Indiscriminate
Beneficial
Criminalisation
Activities.
Environmental
Harm:
by Rob
White.
Pp. 16192 Criminological
Devon,
UK:
Willan
Publishing. Brisman,
Avi.
2010f.
Death
Penalty
Acts.
Western
Brisman,
Critical at the
The
What
Critical
the
Kinds Not
in the
Parameters
of Critical
Domination Paper
and Justice
by the
of
11(2):2741.
Critique?
Criminology
Program
of
Withdrawal Communicative
Review
Avi. 2011a. Probing
Criminology
and
as Extreme
Criminology
hosted Studies
Waiver
Appeals
Criminology:
16.
Department
and
Graduate
Graduate
Society
presented
Brisman,
Other:
Jay
Graduate
(CUNY),
On the
Feb.
Paper
Interdisciplinary
Robert
Perspectives, edited Avi.
Spirits?:
Brisman,
presented
and
10.
Brisman,
in
of
Interventionism,
Sabotage,
Disruption.
An Interdisciplinary of
San
Free Speech,
Ideology,
NY, Feb.
Avi. 2010c. Dj
University,
Aesthetics,
Appreciative
American
Western
2007.
Art of
the
Cross
Criminology.
The
New York,
Avi.
Media,
A
State
Cruelty,
Annual
New York,
Crime,
7.
Critical
of
Meeting,
Chic and the
Relationships.
of
presented
Conference:
Poetics of Pain:
University
82(4):12731396. Brisman,
Parameters
Brisman,
Valparaiso
Paper
Indiana
October
Conference,
Press.
Reflections
International
Studies
Student
Cambridge:
Rebellious
Waiver and
Appeals.
Annual
IN,
atThe
Annual
or
Speed.
Avi. 2010a. Animal
Literature,
A.
Avi. 2006. Meth
Immediate:
Search
In
Press.
by James
Francisco:
Brisman,
Princeton:
Penalty
Culture
Representation,
[2003].
A., Sarnoff
Crime, edited
Violence, Justice,
Europe.
Bodies
Exploration,
Haute,
Criminology
5, 2009).
Review 43(2):459512.
First
Popular
Terre
Press.
University
Patricia
Accounts:
Postsocialist
1996
Crack in
Cambridge Brennan,
in
University
Bourgois,
the
and
presented
Power in the
Avi. 2009c. Resisting
Brisman,
Accountability
Death
Law
of
Time and
of
for
Paper
PA (Nov. Docile
of
Art:
Communiqu
Liberation.
Society
2009b.
Issues
Disciplinary
H. 2008.
AltaMira.
Borneman,
Avi.
Brisman,
29(4):624636. Bodley, John
American
University
Dentan,
Animal
245
as Conceptual
Role of the
Philadelphia,
Withdrawal
Berkeley:
Press.
Know
Human
2009
ANTHROPOLOGY
Action
of the
and
Meeting,
Spirits:
California
Robert
Eco-Defense
Visionary
THROUGH
Avi. 2009a. Direct
at the
Press.
History,
[1969].
Keith F. Otterbein. in
Criminology:
Greenwood
and
Brisman,
CRIMINOLOGY
An Examination
Review 6(3):217225.
Barton,
Betzig,
CT:
Revisionist
A Global
10(2):810.
Comparative
2003.
Criminology, Justice
2000b. Westport,
Gregg.
Criminology:
Criminologist
CRITICAL
Studies
Criminology
Department
Should presented
of
Mini-Conference,
and Justice Sociology
a
246
CRIME
AND
California
BEHAVIOR
State
with the Public
Aff airs,
Aff airs B.C.
Brisman,
and
the
Marcos, in conjunc-tion
State
University
School
of
of
School
Urban
and
Texas-Arlington,
of
Public
Journal
Avi.
2011b.
Probing
Criminology:
Society
at the of
Michael
38th
F.
Annual
1996.
Taimie.
1990.
,
Jean
On
and
30(Summer):80024.
Resisting
in
Press.
Robert
Shinju:
Death
at
the
Michael, J.
Alice
Leslie
Hurst,
Charles
Josepha
Schiff
man, and
Unbound:
Power
Metropolis.
Ann
Arnett
Gamson,
Cover,
Kurzman, Shiori
Robert.
and
Resistance
Berkeley:
in
University
the
Daly,
Modern
1986.
Kathryn,
Criminology, Muncie.
and
edited
London:
Chagnon,
Kinship.
by Eugene
William
New York:
William
Criminology.
Chambliss,
in
Criminal
Journal Collier, Labor
Harcourt
Pp. 23041
in The
edited
by
Robert
Reading,
of
Politics
Law:
A
Pantheon.
B. Seidman.
1971.
of a Cultural
Proceedings.
UCLA
Pacific
Law,
Law
8(1/2):8090.
George
in
The
Power in the
Study of
Anthropology,
edited
Ithaca, Collier, Jane
NY: Cornell 1975. Legal
Anthropology
Impact
Spain.
4:12144.
of
Second
Pp. 20122
Law:
by June University
New
in
Lee
of
and
Legal
Starr and Jane F. Collier.
Ferrell,
Annual
Review
Yale
Law
Criminological
Los
Angeles,
CA:
1982. Homicide
and
84(2):372378.
of
Authority.
Law:
The
Cardozo
Legal
Lanham,
MD:
AltaMira.
1928.
Primitive
Anthony
Walsh.
Theories
Paul
A. and
Anthropological
Mystical
Law
Review
Anthropology:
An
Law in
East
in
1997.
Gene-Based
Criminology.
Criminology
Liam
Theory
Jeanne. 1980.
Jeff . 1993. of
Review
of
Murphy.
2003.
2nd edition.
A History
Orchard
Park,
Deadly
Words:
Cambridge
Crimes of Style:
Criminality.
Jeff . 1999.
Witchcraft in the
Univ. Press.
Urban
Boston,
Graffiti
MA:
and the
Northeastern
Cultural
Anarchy.
Jeff .
Criminology.
Annual
Review
25:395418.
Jeff. 2001.
Urban
UK:
Press.
of Sociology
Ferrell,
D.
Broadview.
Politics
Ferrell,
Press.
Processes.
Wilson.
M. 2008.
and
Favret-Saada
Ferrell,
Republic History
Directions in
of Justice: Law
Africa 1: 6372.
University
A. 1989.
Reforms
Agnew. 2006.
Force
Bocage. Cambridge,
Defense Basin
of
Word.
Herbert.
Evolutionary
NY:
MA: Addison-Wesley.
1990. Application
Jack
Erickson,
Radical
of
Univerity
35(2):229276.
12(1):6777.
New York:
of
Africa. Ellis,
a
and
Folktales
Anthropologist
1990.
James
Donovan,
The
Analysis
Toward
Law
University
and the
Robert
American
Introduction.
Brace.
Sociological
1982.
William J. and
Carolyn.
of
and John
Yanomamo:
Social Problems J.
Critique,
Order, and Power. Choi,
Critical
Dictionary
McLaughlin
[1983].
J. 1964. A
Law of Vagrancy.
Progressive
2001.
Sage
Violence
Margo
Jacques.
Driberg,
A. 1992
Fierce People 4/e.
Chambliss,
Scraton.
in The
Inquiry
11:9191046.
Sage.
Napoleon
Chambliss,
Phil
Pp. 7072
The
Present. 3rd edition.
Martin and
Foundation
Criminology.
Chicago:
Capital
T. and
Past to
Derrida,
California
Press.
Chadwick,
Critical
Roxbury.
Salzinger, Ethnography
of
Policing,
95:160129.
Theory:
Gartrell,
Leslie
Ui. 1991.
Criminal
Comaroff , eds. 2006.
M. 198485.
Cullen, Francis
Ferguson,
Nadine
2004.
14:179203.
Pacific Basin Law Journal
Burton,
Fox, Joshua
.
Disorder.
Postcolony.
and
of theory.
Postcoloniality,
of
Tales of Jurisdiction.
Journal
Kathryn
the
history
8:14372.
Comaroff
Foucault:
and John
Chicago
systems, and questions
Studies
John
Metaphysics
Disorder
Cover,
Resistance.
98(4):72935.
UCLA
the
Comaroff , Jean
Western
8(1):131. Burawoy,
and
of
B.C., Feb. 4.
of study African
After
of
Paper
Conference,
Oya-ko
Heart.
Critique
Itself?
Vancouver,
Anthropologist
Center of the
Parameters
Does the
Domination
Criminology,
American
the
When
Become
presented
units
of Southern
Comaroff
Vancouver,
L. 1982. Dialectical
anthropology:
Obsessions,
Domination
the
Comaroff , John
3.
Critical
Bryant,
San
Diego
University
Feb.
Brown,
University
San
2002.
11(3):185198
Tearing
Down the Streets:
New York: Palgrave Speed
Kills.
Adventures in
Macmillan.
Critical
Criminology
ADVANCING
Ferrell, Jeff and the
Mark S. Hamm eds. 1998.
Edge: Crime,
Northeastern
Fletcher,
Deviance, and Field
Univ. Robert.
Criminal
Ethnography
at
1891.
New
School
American
1978.
R. Hurley, trans. David
Aldershot,
of
Friedmann,
California
of
Press.
Policies
Gaston.
1959.
Los
vols
1 and
Domestic
University
of
Undermining
Violence.
Boston
the
Politics,
and
the
Carole,
Occult
F.
from
Criminology
and
Law
Public
American
Recognize
Review
Goodale,
the
of
Global
and
University
Press.
Greenhouse,
Carol
Order, and NY: Cornell Griffiths,
Criminology
edited Harvard
1990.
the
in
Huff.
Criminal
Is
Stuart, Crime?
and
an
System
Law
for
Knauft,
and
Millionaire (http://
Public
Misra; and
1975.
Places.
Kavita
Womens
Tearoom New
York:
Srivastava.
Protest
in
1987.
Rajasthan.
Weekly, XXII:45(November
in
Rosemary
in
the
7):
1986.
again:
Park, The
gang
Law
M. Lanier,
eds.
M.,Thomas Boehm,
over the
Nature of
Crime
S.
wa-terscapes
John
and
Comments
Present
Laura
Knox
Keith F. Otterbein, Violence
the
Abler,
Robert
in
Betzig,
Dentan, Thomas Paddock,
Sociality
and
and
in
Lars
Human
Replies].
Current
32(4):391428.
Kristin.
Cultural
1996.
Defense
Displacements:
(Trans)Nation
in
Pp.21533
in
Swedenburg.
the
and
Gender,
Race,
Legal
Surveillance
Displacement,
Diaspora,
edited
by Smadar
Durham,
Concise
New
Phillip.
NC:
What and
2008.
Introduction
York,
NY:
Corinne Dec.
99
Conrad
Laview
Duke
of and
and
University
to
Window
on
Anthropology
Humanity: 3rd
edition.
McGraw-Hill. A.
2007.
Personal
communication.
7.
Lave, Jean,
Paul
Duguid,
Axel. 1992. Coming 2001.
urban Argentina.
for
[and
Kratz, Defense
Review
in
Rosario,
Routledge.
1991.
A
re-search
America,
Culture
graffiti
and
Press.
CA: Sage.
Harvard
Criminologist
New York:
Rodseth.
Ted
Explaining
Gangs in
Teaching
5:928.
Geographies of Identity,
Altercations.
in
Tip:
The
Aires
Culture
Evolution
and
Gartner.
field
Buenos
Criminological
Faith,
Town. Ithaca,
Things:
Teaching
Genealogies
Anthropology
Cambridge
Violent
2009.
M. 1996.
Bruce
U.S.
Trivial
T.
Anthropology.
Christopher
Between
Justice:
American
Yule, and
Newbury
Controversies
Wilson
7, 2010
Rainwater.
C. 2009. Stencil
Bruce
Kottak,
Mark
Q.
Press.
January
Criminology.
Media
Cultural
Dickinson
(April):12931311. Henry,
Nirja
David
Crime
Press.
Law.
ICS
Fines Speeding
Lee
Episode:
of
Merry, eds. 2007. The
Pp. 24059
Review.
Court
Sex in
Comparative
Court:
Justice Defense?
Praying
in
Back
nineties.
Law
de Gruyter.
risk:
49(1):6194.
by CR
Impersonal
Aldine
Knauft,
Cambridge:
Contention
J.M. in the
Traits.
by James
Retrieved
Trade:
Johnson,
waste.
Conflicts
Local.
Over
of
and
Criminogenic
edited
and
Kane, Stephanie
Axelrod. and
electronic
Tracking
Carlyn
Rowman
34(6):1516.
9(3):54360.
Engle
1986.
Fighting
Issue
Hagedorn,
in
Rights:
University
MD:
San Francisco:
Laud
Koptiuch, J.
Elizabeth,
2011. the
Mark
crime
Criminal
Sally
Community
Crime,
2010.
M. Kiefer,
the
1995.
Economic and Political
Africa.
Press.
and
a Culture
Human
J.
Post. Swiss
Sharada;
99:14168.
Mark, and
Practice
trade
Policy
Witchcraft:
Postcolonial
F. 1994. Cultural
the
Formally
global
of
Virginia
white-collar
the
Taryn
Should
in of
McGarrell,
Transnational
Goldstein,
Modernity
Univiversity
Edmund
Lanham,
18911894.
1997. The
Charlottesville:
Lessons
in
Petersilia.
Deorala
College
Review 35(3):72345. Peter.
It.
247
2.
Law in a Changing
Angeles:
Defense:
about
ANTHROPOLOGY
www.huffingtonpost.com/2010/01/07/swiss-court-fines-speedin_n_414644.html).
Crime,
Jain,
Against
2010.
3963
Humphreys,
and
THROUGH
Richard
$290,000.
Sexuality,
Pantheon. State
Alice. 1994. Cultural
Gibbs,
History
1998.
Wolfgang Berkeley
in
The
New York:
O. ed.
Society.
Law
Pp.
Joan
Anthropologist
Gower.
Geschiere,
Do
Huffington
Michel.
Gallin,
What to
Herrnstein, The
4(3):20136.
Fredrichs,
CRIMINOLOGY
Littlefield.
Research. Boston:
Press.
Anthropology.
Foucault,
CRITICAL
Studies Review of
and
Nadine
Fernandez,
Age in
Birmingham:
Cultural
Subjectivity.
Annual
of
Conceptions
Anthropology
of
21:257282
and
Erik
248
CRIME
AND
Levi-Strauss,
BEHAVIOR
Claude.
Anthropology. Claude
Levi-Strass,
Grundfest
Lewis,
1963.
trans.
Schoepf.
I.M.
Introduction:
History
in
Anthropology.
Pp.328
by
Claire Jacobson
Garden
ed. 1968.
Structural
City,
History
NY:
and
and
Anchor
Social
and
an
Intellectual
Michalowski,
Brooke
Brazil.
T. 2003.
Pp. 99124
the Ethnography Stephanie
Wild
in
Power
edited
Cultural
Palgrave
on
and
C. Parnell and
Journal
Brendan.
Radical
1988. The
Criminology:
Criminologists. Malinowski,
Sociological
Society. Totowa,
1959.
on Sati in
and the Parnell
Colonial
Co. The
1992.
Aesthetics
Roitman, McLaughlin, The
of
trans.
Cultural
Critique
Vulgarity
Public
Dictionary
McLaughlin
Pp. 140
in
the
Power
Crime.
Muncie.
perspective.
Critical
Sally
Neighborhood University
Life.
Trouble Engel,
Sally
Power
1998.
Danger:
Life in
Philadelphia:
The
Pp. 1440
Cases, edited V.
Northwestern Merry,
Strangers.
by
Hans,
S.
Engle.
2000.
Law.
Everyday
A. Sarat,
Temple
of
Practices
and
M. Constable,
Lawrence.
Evanston,
IL:
Colonizing
Hawaii:
The
Princeton
and
Engle.
Anthropologist Michalowski, and
the
2006. Transnational
Activism:
Mapping the
Human Middle.
Critique
J. 1996.
Kalervo.
1990s. Ong,
of
Domination:
Rights
American
Criminology The
Anthropologists by
Philip
New York:
Story
Process: Law in Harry
(1997).
C.
Palgrave
Ten Societies,
F. Todd.
Beyond
of the Dover
Impact
New
York:
Good and
Future.
Helen
Publications,
2010. of the
Evil:
Zimmern,
Inc.
Exporting U.S.
Women.
1934. Crime
American
Gender
War on
Critical
in
State
Howard
the
United
2nd edition.
Aihwa.
1987.
Drugs
Criminology
Sixties.
Punishment
Factory of
From
Racial
1960s
to
the
Routledge.
Women in
and
Malaysia.
Capitalist
Albany,
NY:
Press.
B. 1984. Theory Comparative
the
Resistance
New York
Tlingit
1994.
Winant.
States:
of
in
36(2):14556.
New York: Spirits
University Sherry
and
Anthropologist
and
Discipline:
of
Sherry
in
Studies
B. 1995. Resistance
Ethnographic and Parnell,
Critical
and
Anthropology in
Society
and
since History
26(1):12666.
108 (1):3851.
Raymond
N.Y.:
The
Michael
Ortner,
Local
Press.
Press.
1886
Ecuadorian
Omi,
the
Cultural University
Press.
Merry, Sally
Academic
Kane.
and
Maureen.
Society.
Ortner,
Press.
Princeton:
System, ed-ited
18(2):133146.
a
Criminalization
in
University
of
University
Formation
Engle.
Everyday
D.
of
Urban
No Accessto
Crime, edited C.
Nader
Mineola,
on
gender Sociology
Press.
Sally
Merry,
1981.
in
Judicial
Crimes Power:
Disputing
Laura
Norton-Hawk,
Oberg, Engle.
Culture and Society,
Harry F. Todd, Jr. 1978. Introduction.
inThe
Injustice:
Sage.
34(2):255270. Merry,
of
Stephanie
Friedrich.
trans.
in
by Eugene
war on drugs and the
a critical
make
as a CategoryDomestic
Ethnography
by
Nietzsche,
Janet
Pp. 28990
London:
To
Aldine.
New York:
Prelude to a Philosophy
edited
Law in
American
in
Columbia
and
Postcolony.
of Criminology,
and John
arrests;
of
Culture 4(2):130.
David. 2008. The
gap in
Banality
Eugene. 2001. State
Sage
Merolla,
The
Nader.
Biennial
procedure:
Pp. xv-xix
to the
Pp. 5576
and
edited
Achille.
Western
Anthropology.
Chicago:
2003. Crime
Nader, Laura and
7(Fall):11956. Mbembe,
Age.
Macmillan.
Traditions:
India.
in
Nader.
1980. Preface.
Globalized.
8:133151.
Address:
Global
and
Pp.6991
Alternatives
Nader, Laura.
Radical
Adams and
Contentious
of
a
of court
by Laura
Custom in Savage
Spectrum Crime and
NJ: Littlefield,
1987.
Debate
Dimension
A Survey of Prominent
Bronislaw.
Lata.
Applied
for
1969. Styles
by Laura
Ethnic Studies 19(3):6584. Maguire,
Criminology
Keynote
6:252300.
balance.
Law:
of
2010.
Anthropology
Nader, Laura.
Pluralistic
Trial.
the
J.
F. 1969. Law
Nader, Laura.
edited
Macmillan.
in a Culturally
Defense
Critical
Review 11(1):310.
Review of
Post-Military
by Philip
New York:
Paul. 1991. Justice
Society: The
in
Crimes Power: Anthropologists
ofCrime,
C. Kane.
Magnarella,
the
Criminology
Criminology Moore, Sally
Daniel
Mani,
Raymond
Critical
Books.
Anthropology.
London.
Linger,
Movement.
7(1):916.
Refusal.
and the
Comparative
Problem
of
Studies in
Society
C. Kane (eds.).
2003.
History 37(1):173193. Philip
C. and
Crimes
Power:
Crime.
New York:
Stephanie
Anthropologists Palgrave
and the Macmillan
Ethnography
of
ADVANCING
Phillips, in
Susan L.A.
A. 1999.
Chicago:
Pinheiro,
Paulo
WallbanginGraffiti
University
Srgio.
Violence,
and
of
2000.
the
and
Chicago
Law.
Rose,
Daedalus
N. 1969.
NY:
Hustlers,
Beats, and
Others.
Garden
City,
Pound,
Leslie.
Cultural 30,
1985.
Mothers
Gap. Chicago
2011
Tragic
Crime
Exposes
a
Tribune. June 10. Retrieved July
Mike.
Cultural
2004.
winding
road.
criminology:
Theoretical
American Rosen,
1991.
Behavioral
Lawrence.
Crimes.
W., and
Roots,
R. I.
2004.
Law
American
and
its
Behavioral
un-intended
Scientist
Richard.
Boston:
Little,
A Critical
ed.
David
Criminal
Class,
of
Justice
in
Little,
State,
Pp. 4374
in
Crime:
Justice.
On the
New York:
Oakland:
Q.
Crime.
Wilson and
Dundes.
A
Justification
Partial
Excuse.
2005. The
University
Max. 1954.
of
Southern
Max
Cambridge,
Defense.
Knowledge:
Weber on Law in Harvard
of
Human
Culture in the Iron
Economy University
Rights,
and
Cage.
American
Culture:
Cultural
Violence
Community
Question Against
and the
Review 43(6):131127.
of
Women in the
Cultural
2nd edi-tion.
The
Crime of
All
W. Mullins (eds.).
Perspectives.
2010.
New Brunswick,
NJ:
Politics
of Aging:
of
Youth
Globalization
and
Childhood.
35:35173. 1981.
Realities.
Michigan
Historical
Ann
Metaphors
Arbor,
MI:
and
University
of
Press.
Sampson,
Robert
J.
and
W. Byron
Structure
Julia
and
Groves.
Crime:
1989.
Testing
American Journal
P. 1986. The
Defense
as
an
Georgia Journal
Schapera,
Availability
Excuse
for
Social-Disorganization
ofSociology
of the Cultural Criminal
of International
1962.
Isaac.
Historians?
and
Behavior.
Comparative
Law
Pacific-Asian
Defense. Stanford
Anthropologists
the
Nancy. 1992.
Violence
Berkeley:
of
Everyday
University
Scheper-Hughes, in
Royal
of
Jane,
be
Anthropological
Anthropology
2006.
squads
Pp. 15088
Comaroff .
and
in
Law edited
Chicago:
Press. Peter
of Crime
Anthropology
Brazil.
Press
An Introduction,
L.
Weeping:
Northeast
Death
Brazil.
and John
and
Without
Life in
Postcolony:
Chicago
Death
California
Northeast in the
Comaroff
Review of
of
Nancy.
Disorder
by Jean
Schneider,
of
92(2):14356.
Scheper-Hughes,
and
Should
Journal
University
108(1):5265. 1991. A
Crime
Press.
Restructuring
democracy
Nilda.
Current
Marshall.
The
Press.
MA:
State
Publishers.
Christopher
Sue. 2003. The the
Institute Cultural
2006. Anthropology,
Anthropologist
Law
An Invitation.
16(Spring):33554.
Press.
1993. as
of
Review of Law 2(2):437526.
Oxford
Approval
Cultures.
94(4):774802.
Knowledge.
Basis
by James
ICS
Dundes.
Alison
Annelise.
Rimonte,
and
Sams, Biological
Defense
Society.
Legal
Culture:
Controlling
Theory.
Press.
Riles,
of
34(5):594617.
as
State Criminality:
University
Antimodernism,
Criminological
Crime, edited
Alison
Rheinstein,
of
2002. The
Cultural
Oxford:
Rutgers
Mythical
45(4):805833.
Joan Petersilia.
California
State Crime:
Sahlins,
America:
Brown.
and
Criminal
Somatotyping,
Production
Adrian.
Renteln,
Law
Transaction
L. 2009.
Community
2007.
Criminology
and
Society.
McKay.
and the
the
and Justice in
Boston:
1977.
Practice
Nicole.
Renteln,
and
Lexington.
Antipode
1974.
Understanding.
and
Rafter,
Crime
Brown.
Richard.
Theory
Raine,
ed. 1969.
Richard.
Quinney,
and
Economy
Integrity
Scientist.
2000.
Dawn L., and
Ruddick,
47(11):13711376.
Quinney,
Critical
Authority,
Liberalism.
The
2006.
York:
Dawn
Rother,
consequences.
Quinney,
Justice?
Discipline.
Government,
Advanced
Lawrence.
Rothe,
The
Criminology
8(3):27585. F.
Criminal
Reformed
(http://articles.chicagotribune.com/1985-06-10/features/8502060678_1_first-degree-murder-suicide-fumiko-kimura). Princeton: Princeton University Press.
and
Preston,
249
Society. 22(3):283299.
New
long
a
1993.
in
Ross, Jeff rey Ian.
Presdee,
ANTHROPOLOGY
B. 2001. Wither for
Nikolas.
Rosen,
Anchor.
THROUGH
10(2):97106.
Expertise
129(2):11943. Polsky,
Matthew Argument
Criminology
Governance,
of
CRIMINOLOGY
Robinson, An
Press.
Democratic
(Un)Rule
Gangs
CRITICAL
and
Schneider. Criminalization.
37:35173
2008.
The
Annual
250
CRIME
AND
Scott, James Forms
C. 1985.
of
Weapons of the
Peasant
University
Resistance.
Haven:
Vincent, Joan. in
Yale
1987. The
Underground
Neighborhood.
Pp. 1950
States: Studies in
Leith
Mullings.
Urban
Columbia
edited
and
Legal
Volpp,
University
Powr in
Leti.
Sherman,
Spencer.
California Sheybani,
Lawyer
When
6(1):3336,
Malek-Mithra.
Persons
Cultures
Culture
1987. Cultural
is
Anothers
Angeles International
and
Defense:
Crime.
Loyola
Comparative
Law
One of
Journal
Gregory J. 2009.
New Yorks
Urban
University
South,
Graffiti
Underground.
ecocidal
transnational rights.
Harm:
Spivak,
Pp.
22847
Speak?
in
Devon,
Chakravorty.
Pp. 271316
Cultures,
Urbana, IL: Sullivan,
Peter.
and Jane
Culture:
Defense.
F.
Press.
(Mis)identifying
Asian
Harvard
People v. Fumiko
International
1968. The
T.R. 1985. Social
Agenda for
Critical
and Social
New York
by
University
Mercer
Womens
Journal
Kimura:
But
of the Sociology of
Trumpet
Shall
Sound.
New
Justice
vs. Criminal
Criminology.
Justice:
Journal
An
of Sociology
Welfare 12:55275.
Environmental edited
UK:
mo-dernity:
by
C.
Nelson
of Illinois
Subaltern
L.
Paid:
City. Ithaca:
Cornell
Crime
University
539
2d
1010
388
68
123
S.
Ct.
2472,
U.S. 1, 87 S. Ct. 1817,
N.Y.2d 945, 502
83 (N.Y.
Benu,
(N.Y.City People v.
558,
156
L.
18 L. Ed.
(1967).
N.Y.S.2d
v.
U.S.
(2003).
v. Virginia,
People Youth
Texas,
508
People v. Aphaylath,
Grossberg.
Press.
Getting
v.
Ed. 2d
Loving
the
and
Lawrence
Rob
Willan. Can
Cases
victims
Marxism and the Interpretation
L. 1989.
Work in the Inner
of late
exclusion,
Global
1988.
in
edited
tendencies social
Perspectives,
Cullompton,
Gayatri
and
crime,
Criminological
White.
Starr
University
Directions
York.
Beyond the Tag in
New York:
by June
New
in
Press.
Nigel. 2010. The
and
Lives:
Law:
Law
15367
17:40328.
Young,
9(3):75183. Snyder,
Law
Worsley,
Los
Agrarian
Pp.
of
edited
1989. The
Which People?
6061.
Change:
17: 57101.
Woo, Deborah.
Collide.
Study
the Cultural
Law Journal 1986.
the
NY: Cornell
1994. and
of
18951962.
Anthropology,
Women
Press.
of
Uganda,
Collier. Ithaca,
Cities of the
Anthropology,
New York:
in
Economy
in
1989. Contours
Colonial History
Wojcicka.
of a Poor United
Weak: Everyday
New
Press.
Sharff , Jagna
by
BEHAVIOR
998, 510
1986).
87
Misc.2d
Crim.Ct. Ezeonu,
N.E.2d
139,
385
N.Y.S.2d
222
N.Y.S.2d
116
1976).
155
Misc.2d
344,
588
Press.
(N.Y.Sup.
Sutherland,
Anne.
Social Taussig,
Security.
1994. PoLAR
Michael. 2005.
Limpieza
in
Gypsy
Identity,
Names
Chicago:
Lawyer Van
University
Diary of a
People v.
of Chicago
Feb.
People v. Mark. 1985. The
Cultural
Defense.
Student
14(1):2429.
Maanen, John.
Thousand
v.
Ct.
Press.
Thompson,
People
17(2):7583.
Law in a Lawless Land:
Colombia.
and
Oaks,
Representation
CA: Sage.
in
Ethnography.
Kimura, Nov.
v. 1996)
No.
A-091133
(Santa
Monica
Super.
21, 1985).
Moua, No. 3159720
(Fresno
County
Super.
Ct.
7, 1985).
Poddar,
(Cal.App. State
1995.
Ct. 1992).
Ganal,
26
Cal.App.3d
438,
103
Cal.Rptr.
1 Dist. 1972). 81
Hawaii
358,
917
P.2d
370
(Haw.
84
CHAPTER XI
Anarchist,
Peacemaking,
Restorative
Justice
and
Theorie
PEACEMAKING
CRIMINOLOGY
Michael John
M
ajor
wisdom traditions
the principles peacemaking
and religions
of the
world
of peace, love, and social justice
perspective is first
and foremost
in the heart of the individual. This
into
a personal
their
messages.The
philosophy
that starts
and the cultural context. It
is argued that for the peacemaking perspective to be effective, we need an over-arching philosophy that allows individual
goodness andintegrity to be carried on
in collective actions, and gives us hopethat our institutions transformed
and come to a point
crime, the criminal starting
point.
Personal change, however,
transformation Fortunately,
we do not have to fashion is a rich
history
of society. In this chapter,
of
is the necessary
must lead to social and institutional
institutional
we will review
Central to our investigation who have addressed the
perspective, particularly
and that
and critical
of crime and social justice.
of the individual
transformation
perspective
peacemaking
and
asit applies to
here is the eff orts of feminists
Chapter 2, we hope to show how the peacemaking tradition,
social change at all levels
some of these ideas and theories
problems
these two types of voices to that
rich, and productive
and societal change from
of attempts to induce
suggest how they relate to the peacemaking
theorists
individual
to achieve our goals of peace and social justice.
a vacuum. There
corrections.
and society can be
of more eff ectively addressing the problems
justice system, and corrections. The
By add-ing
outlined
has along,
can be a lens through
in
diverse, which
the corrections system can be viewed in a newlight. The religious and humanist, feminist,
There
and
conflict
traditions
need
are scholars and practitioners
not
how each contributes
in isolation
who incorporate
traditions and would feel constrained if only one tradition.
be viewed
from
each
other.
more than one of these
we wereto label them as subscribing to
Nevertheless,for our purposes here, it is useful to consider to the peacemaking
Fuller,
have incorporated
chapter, however, extends the peacemaking
perspective beyond the individual to the institutional
Braswell,
perspective.
25
Bo Lozoff f
and
254
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
FEMINIST
men. Therefore,
TRADITIONS
our comments here needto be quali-fied
as only suggestive of the impact of gender roles. A At first to
glance it
may seem
discuss feminism. however,
to include
because
status that
be politically,
come
to
way to in
have
their recognize
rewards
costs
much men, and women,
everyone.
more
lives
demands
idea
equally
that by
implications
United
other
for
how
justice
into
very
the examine
In
of
fabric
women
at the
world.
It
that
transcend
is
simple
beliefsthat
all
cannot
and
be linked a
deep
social
the relationships
can
East
to
the
systems between
than
the
personal
Feminism,
theme,
but rather, between
context
systems. The is linked
as
and felicity
power
and
political
not
and
are
possession,
...1
across
all
to
have shaped and
at the rela-tions
those
way those relations
political
relations
and political are envisioned
that is adopted. The
of feminism
are significant,
are key tenets that cut
variations.
diff
erentiate
between
many ways. One
the
variations
look at the 12 types of feminism identified
is
to
by Lorber.2
Eachtype presents questions,issues, and concerns that developmental
how
as
Feminism can be envisioned in method
a
of social, economic,
exact
the
simply
men
to the type of feminism
the
peacemak-ing
women
value
a new way of looking
women
guide its underlying
change.
of
erences.
have
is the
is
therefore,
his-tory
grasping
of social
appreciation
It is China
consider
without
has on eff orts
without
economic,
to
States
and that
harmony
American
in
diff
people
but, as Harris points out, there
and recent
problematic
the
diff erences between types
religion.
be
for grant-ing
are a number of varying strands
with ideas
Middle
should
merely as a prescription
values
exist in the more en-trenched
are treated
the ancient
United
in
are embedded
the
Feminism
a way of
far-reaching
It is impossible
in
beliefs,
consciousness,
human beings, that
at this issue
of the Islamic
for
in the
feminism
treated
of values,
Among the keytenets offeminism arethree
are
engaged
the
roles
M. Kay
within feminist thought, but there aresome core
globe.
perspective
of cultures. are
capitalism
and constrained
at the
There
of
be contrasted
simply
way women
country.
women
perspective
cultural,
than
life-changing
rights to women, but as afar broader vi-sion.
should
the
is concerned
Gender
an appreciation
impact short,
context
an understanding
of that role
off ers and is a set
seen not
and
has
are
a historical
peacemaking
social
to look
without
the
and
women
Looking
schools of thought
fundamental
For example, in defining feminism
looking
contemporary
struggles
we must expand
to realize that
and experiencesa
to
unrealistic
can
feminism,
require
Feminism
to
and
an arena
and
more space than
Harris argues:
is harmful
around
been
equity
system.
how
without
societies
more deadly.
have a broader
futile
those
institutions,
where the
a cross-cultural
criminal
to
gender
often
demonstrate that
challenges.
are, obvi-ously,
families,
and
societys
has long
cultures
and from
sometimes
well
oppression
of the
men
for
States
struggle
with
men as
than
by the
way of thinking
but that
are susceptible
their
our can
more important
simple
treated
the
from
In order to understand
a fairer
society
lives,
takes
men have
women
the
it
of feminism
issues.
role.
This
The
deny
shorter
unhealthy
masculine
be
want to
alienated
While
because
other
to
made dysfunctional
oftentimes
idea
severe
a way of organizing
are
equal.
are costs to
and
is
should
opportunities,
of patriarchy
Men live
stress,
living
and
more extensive
but such
socially this
is
understanding
available for our present purposes of simply identifying the
not an
only is feminism
there
we do not
is
women
of dominance,
society,
as women. The
and
not
human
Feminism
men and
embraced
that,
distribute
a patriarchal
to
not
source
be fully
females.
men
trepida-tion,
Feminism
to
that
economically,
men
challenges
argues
without
to
perspective. only
for three
step
we believe
available
a philosophy
many
Wetake this
the feminist
ascribed
presumptuous
full
feminist
feminism
of women in
philosophy.
is concerned
developing
countries,
many ways diff erent than those in the
For example, with the prob-lems which are in United States.
Lorber suggests: For developmental feminism, on universal
the theoretical
empha-sis
human rights is reflected in developing
countries in political
pressure for the education
of girls
PEACEMAKING
maternity and child health care, and economic resourc-es for women who contribute heavily to the support of their families. calls for to
However, when feminist
frequently
autonomy,
has to confront
and practices that and
developmental
wives.
The
cultural
give men power over their
womens
is community
traditional
own
organizing
solution
to
this
around their family
Clearly, when it comes to feminism, not fit
all. The
the religious the family,
state of development
context
values
a university
She
women
whose
work
professor
M. Kay Harris is
who has had extensive experience crime control
policies.
daughters A feminist
dilemma
orientation
leads
to
greater
awareness of the role and responsibility
roles.3
society,
in the
of conflict. This
suggests that
groups,
and societies
accept greater responsibility
of education
and reducing
and daughter all
of
not just the individual,
individuals,
structures
for
produce
need to
preventing
those conditions,
that
de-velopment
values, and
violence and strife.
Removing the idea of power from its cen-tral
are the conscious
position is key here, and this requires
decisions women makein deciding to becomeinvolved in conventional society.These types of feminism arguethat
continually
conformity is too high a priceto be paidfor fundamental
and assumptions that glorify power, control,
particularly
the least
or moral systems of those In this light, tradition
the
power
the fight
which
against
peacemaking
deny equality
society
paternalism
war on crime.
caught speaks to
to individuals,
are suggested
of feminism
both
policies that
it is only reasonable for
In that complaint,
ways of relationships
is
up in
and such policies as the
When the state sanctions
citizens to complain.
forms
criminology
dominant
alternatives.4
Another
can be seen as a natural
concern for the individual of the
felicitous
above the religious
who happen to bein power.
feminism
from
derived. The
put the welfare of all citi-zens,
of those,
challenging actions, practices,
and domination, as well as developing more
human rights.There should betolerance for diversity in societies that arejust, and that
by both the
and peacemaking
feminist
peacemaking McDermott
who
criminologist argues that
personal life
is
at the
are
in
her
a
McDermott. between ones
and responsibility.
personal level should
criminology
criminology.
many
Ethical concerns and priorities as peacemaking
For
feminist
ethics,
of criminol-ogy
are similar
and
these
to those of
include
...
:
We
are all tied to other human beings and also
criminal justice system, and treatment of sex offend-ers.
the environment.
problems such as the international
justice,
individuals.
both feminists
love
for
cornerstones
both
nonviolence
of feminism
Using domination oxymoron. for
criminologists. and social justice
and
peacemaking
to eliminate
The are
criminol-ogy.
domination
is an
Its like the old 1960s saying about fighting
peace. Feminism
based on cooperation
argues for instead
be said for peacemaking
and
service,
Wealso need equality. From compassion
flow
and justice. The
assumes that emotion
To achieve peace and
we needloving and compassionate
trafficking in women and girls have been addressed by concern
and
work:
violence, gender discrimination in employment in the
and peacemaking
be
and global levels. The
of both peacemaking seen
considered
M. Joan
there is a link
to the institutional
connectedness feminism
be
and social awareness
To her, peacemaking extended
can
however, new
instance, they converge onissues such asrape, domestic
Additionally,
in
writes:
and roles that are
aff orded women. Equally important
of
values and practices.
of the country,
wife and father
of opportunities
number
working in agencies that form
one size does
diff erences in the level
between husband and
a
to feminist
of the culture, the social status of
and the
mediate the types
women
feminism
are
255
peacemaking criminology flows from their commit-ment
gender politics
wives and husbands to be equal, and for
have sexual
There
CRIMINOLOGY
as
understanding, nonviolent
human action is well
as reason,
is both rational
and
ethic
motivated by that
knowl-edge
and emotional.5
new ways of knowing
of conflict. The
criminology.
same can
Peacemaking
criminology
perspectives,
and
shares
practitioners
many of its values, with
the
feminis
256
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
perspective. Many would hesitateto makea distinction
the interests of some individuals
others,is at the heart of the critical intellectual
between them and would object to being identified as one and not the other. They points
of view. In
are not mutually exclusive
many ways, peacemaking
can be expressed as feminism problem
while they
share
and feminism criminology mimic
it.
from
many characteristics,
secular
criminology
draws
and humanist
Peacemaking looks
traditions
to
religious
and
for inspiration
Marxism as a social
Peacemaking
in
addition
humanist
critical
criminology
in his book.
While peacemaking
is not as indebted it
detail just
is a
does
owe
by Pepinsky and
to
Marxism as other
some
of its
criminology
understand
the individual.
Before
how funda-mental of how crime
are problems located rather than
we
is related to
just
Marxism is to the understanding
society and institutions
orientation
crime and conflict.
how peacemaking
and social control
criminol-ogy
of all 11 variations
Marxism, it is useful to
intellec-tual
Marx. father
way of analyzing
to
and guidance. There
Karl
is the intellectual
traditions,
to this
evolution
works of
philosophy of critical
other intellectual
third intellectual tradition identified
of critical
in the
criminology
of its
criminology,
Arrigo situates the emergence
Peacemaking but does not
traditions.
also includes ideas from
traditions. feminism,
much
But
in criminology.
peacemaking
includes ideas from feminism, feminism
criminol-ogy
justice system.
are not the same concept.
In fact,
tradition
that is applied to the
of crime and the criminal
while selectively op-pressing
at the level
of
only at the level
of
For example, David Greenburg writes:
Quinney that gives life to peacemaking criminology: the
critical
intellectual
Tostudy crime in relation to the waysocieties
tradition.6
organize their economic and political institu-tions is to ask different sorts of questions CRITICAL
TRADITIONS
about crime than in
The
critical intellectual criminology
tradition
that informs
of readings titled,
does an excellent job
showing the relationships of critical
theory
recognizing
and
deviance.7
book
details
anarchism,
for
understanding
criminal
justice,
shaped
by larger
do
processes
may have some crime
and
but they try to see these as social structures.
these
structures,
And in they
particular attention to the organization
give of eco-nomic
activity, without neglecting the political
of critical
and ideological
and
the
peacemaking,
postmodern
Marxists
social-psychological
characterizing
While
12 important
Marxism, social feminism,
criticism,
but of
between, the various strains
in law, crime,
Arrigos
distinct types: prophetic
not only of listing,
that there are countless variations
criminology,
importance
essay of his book
Social Justice, Criminal Justice, Bruce
been asked
criminology.
and face-to-face interactions
covers a wide range of issues, theories,
and perspectives. In the introductory
Arrigo
not deny that
peacemak-ing
have typically
non-Marxist
dimensions
Marxist perspective directs criminological
theory outward
feminism,
of society. Thus
rather than inward.8
semiotics, constitutive criminology, critical race theory, Critical criminology asit follows its
chaos, catastrophe/topology, and queertheory.
Marxist heritage
Each of these critical perspectives examines waysin
willlook at how the economic arrangements and social
whichindividuals are oppressed by society and howthis
organizations of a society will contribute to its crime
oppression is related to the problems of crime. Critical
problems.
criminology
of capitalism
is
very
much a
societys contribution problem
to the formulation
and just as importantly,
how society responds system is atool crime
macro-level
to crime.
of the powerful
control
of repression. The uses the criminal
can
be looked
critical justice
analysis
of the crime
of the implications As the criminal to
of
of
justice
maintain their inter-ests, at
analysis
those
Marx wasinterested in the contradictions and
how the
who owned
many contemporary an
unexamined
criminologist
the
workers
means of
assumption,
as an instrument
of how the state
to society. Peacemaking criminology
system to selectively
protect
the
economic
that
dimension
mediates
as
how
much
by While
take capitalism
will examine the economic
structural
feature
production.
criminologists
background
were exploited
the
the
critical
system
individual
as
as a
relates
does not emphasize as
some
of
the
othe
PEACEMAKING
CRIMINOLOGY
257
variations of critical criminology, but viewsit asa genuine
economic systems are not only inferior,
concern. Peacemaking criminologists are interested in
people who choose those systems are somehow bad
the causes of suff ering and in
people.
ways of relieving the pain
of both victims and off enders, and the economic system is an important
variable that
and possibilities For
peacemaking
can shed light
change.
Arrigo points out the distinction structural
Marxism.
the economy
as the primary
Marxists
do
see
factor in the development
perspectives such asleft realists, social feminists, and
postmodern
emphasis On the
criminologists
on the economy
other
hand,
are influenced
of instrumental
structural
the problems
Marxists
see
by the Marxism.
other
forces
debate about
socialism, and commu-nism,
of crime and the criminal
be incomplete
economic
without
organization
of crime
looks
at capitalism,
the and from
playing football
maytackle the quarterback.
to crime.
including
perspectives,
that
To exclude capitalism
at the contradictions
system that contribute
look
recognizing
would be like
saying that no one
justice system
of a society is a legitimate
area to study.
the study
Critical crimi-nology thought
of crime and societys response to crime.
merits of capitalism,
important
between instrumental
Instrumental
an extended
we would like to suggest that a critical analysis of
however, the eco-nomic would
criminology,
system is just one factor in the struggle for justice.
and
the relative
on the con-straints
of social and individual
Without getting into
but that the
and
Marxist
in the capitalist Critical criminology
peacemaking
criminology,
as well as a host of other features
of society, in their attempts to understand crime and
such as politics, education, personal beliefs, and moral-ity formulate criminal justice policy. Anintellectually to be underlying structures that influence
football player musttackle anyone who hasthe ball,
how a
society develops definitions about crime, deviance, and
hon-est
evenif it is sometimes his own quarterback.
law. Here,according to Arrigo, peacemaking criminol-ogy shares its heritage
with other critical
such as critical race theory Peacemaking for drawing
criminology
is
sometimes
some of its heritage from
associated
with
The
revolution.9
perspectives A
and anarchist criminology.
can peacemaking criminology
confusion
arises from traditions
question is asked, how arise out of a perspective
of violence
as a justified
peacemaking Martin Luther
Just
because
some
ideas
be constructed. that
not supported Gandhi
metviolence
by and of a
with nonviolence.
derived
from
Marxism
doesnt meanthat all of Marxismappliesto peacemaking criminology. The
Marxisttradition is just one areafrom
which peacemaking criminology drawsinspiration, and there
are
other
intellectual
and feminist
that
the efficacy of violent
traditions
such
as the
off er diff erent proscriptions
behavior.
One should
Marxism with peacemaking criminology
reli-gious
on
not confuse
simply because
For
some
students,
the
term
negative connotations. communism, capitalistic
which state
Marxism
PERSPECTIVE
issues.
has
associated
ex-tremely
many ways that
examine the issues system, so too,
peacemaking
criminology
here is just
us. As peacemaking
of crime, it is still
one way
evolving.
of peacemaking
of one
way of looking
criminology
We do
We present here the structure
criminology
is
only
at the important
of peacemak-ing
used by Fuller in his book, Criminal
Justice: A PeacemakingPerspective.10 In alater chapter we will apply this perspectiveto the field of corrections. Fuller envisioned peacemaking criminology pyramid
of ideas.
Pyramid
Paradigm.
foundation
of
Tolstoy,
He calls this
model the
At the base of the
nonviolence. Gandhi, and
as a
Peacemaking pyramid is the
Following
the ideas
Martin Luther
of
King, Jr.,
and other saints and sages, any proposal that advocates or tolerates
violence as a response to infractions
law cannot
be considered
other
can
is relatively
with
to believe that
are
what we present here will be definitive.
Our conception suggestive
are
we have been taught is evil. In our
we are socialized
It is
new to the study not claim that
justice
What we present
makes sense to
Christ,
they sometimes travel on the same road.
can be used to
many ways that
how
For example,
are
there
there
and the criminal
idea
King, Jr., were both revolutionaries
sort, but they stubbornly
Marxist thought of crime
about
action is
criminology.
Just as we have seen that
peacemaking. The
a misunderstanding influence
CRIMINOLOGY
faulted
Marxism that is
that advocates violence as a way of seeking justice? This
intellectual
PEACEMAKING
State violence
such
a peacemaking
as excessive
of the
perspective.
use of police force
258
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Categorical Imperative
Ascertainable Criteria
Correct
Means
Inclusion
Social
Justice
Nonviolence
Figure
capital idea
punishment, that
the
engaged
models the
for
all
as a social
doomed
be
of
in a vicious,
suff ering and
can
bounds
state that
is
corporal
citizens
outside
17.1
Peacemaking
punishment, punished
or any
into
violence
criminal
to
A is
of pain and
Violence
begets
violence
justice
policy,
violence
to failure
and
carries
with it
nonviolence,
the
next criteria
peacemaking are
perspective,
resolved
in
social justice solution
the not
that
cant
underlying
example,
in
his classmates, the
young
would bully
must
it
to
system
that
gave rise
of a juvenile
would
his victims.
how
his behavior
have
their
not
another
repairing
and
the
the The
concerns
remains,
Peacemaking
to
be enough
to
the
strives
classroom.
conflict.
causes suff ering,
For bullies
move
Peacemaking between
must learn
to
principle All
not
under-stand
act
such
who are
agents for eligible
In
the
an
family
change in the
needs
benefit
the
dividends
the
process.
to
accrued Fuller
off enders
to
his
or
her
concept
from
be
officials.
life should
out
From
a
into
the sen-tence.
more than
voice
heard.
of inclusion
simple
There
and
that
participation
way:11
involvement
in
peacemaking of
the
the
process
perspective, off ender
and
can
much
do
be
case.This
and rehabilitate,
community
puts it this
aff ected
of the
help transform
have
off ender,
or are significant
have some input
the sentence
of this
the
or school
in the resolution
and for it to
off ender
victim(s),
violation
should
justice
making. This
more tangentially
by the
order for
added
but the
perspective
in its
off enders
off ender
in the
by a criminal
as the
means the
rug. This
movement.
harmed
inclusion
vic-tims.
through
the
peacemaking
and even some
positive
problem
under
be included
state,
weaker
as demonstrated
who are aff ected
for
punishment,
the
it
justice
of the
should
and
the
and the victims and
All
solve
sweep
being expanded
decision
parties,
younger
to
and community
the community,
is a resolve
to simply
relationship
addressed
with should
who continually
bully
when
keeping
attempts
a
under-lying
Peacemaking
that
for
Even if
be in
peacekeeping. concept
man to
entail
justice.
gave rise to the problem
with
case
necessary
manner,
perspective.
issues the
social
be considered
peacemaking be confused
is
a nonviolent
more comprehensive the
restorative
other
not simply
idea is currently
is inclusion.
far-reaching
on
means not just the
After
the
social justice,
A third
consequences.
cases
behaviors Peacemaking
is
prevent
cycle
bullying
such
criminology.
it is trying
concerned.
Paradigm
conformity
peacemaking
self-perpetuating
and
Pyramid
this the
vic-tims
towar
is
is
in
PEACEMAKING
who are not professional in the waythey administer
Whenthe vic-tim
justice,
and the off ender are pawns in the games played by the courtroom
work group they
that
become disenfranchised.
When mandatory
rights
sentences the
are
decided
criminal
become
justice
also
become
system
we
have
from also
the criminal
removed
bond individuals
the
to
court
from
system,
attachments
the
to
violate
the legal,
of citizens. The
of the procedural law
and
arrest
sometimes
of Rodney
fifth
step
in
the
Peacemaking
a useful book on negotiating One of the
Yes.12
dispute
about the
appraisal
perspective,
what is needed is a wayto bring people back
principles
can
Paradigm,
Los
conflict of the
Pyramid
idea is taken titled
Getting
book is that
o
means that if there is a
price of a house, an independent
can be conducted
everyone
into the system.
human,
King in
means.
criteria. This
using objective criteria. This
that
process and the
outcomes. From a peacemaking
may be so negligent
Paradigm is ascertainable
alienat-ed
from the process. In our rush to remove discretion
they
The
practitioners and
but
Angeles is a good example of incorrect
by the legislature,
distanced
259
conscientious professionals.There are, however, some
revitalizing the trust citizens havein their ability to govern themselves.
CRIMINOLOGY
In
agree.
ascertainable
to fix a price upon the
Peacemaking
criteria
expands
which
Pyramid
on this idea
by ensuring the meansof justice are not only objective, The
but are actually understood by all concerned.The legal
next step on the pyramid is the concept of
correct
means. This
idea is found in
many religious
jargon of the criminal justice system is not understood
traditions and argues that the end, however desirable,
by many.Individuals are processedthrough the system
does not justify immoral
with little understanding of how or when they agreed
justice include
system, this idea
the principle
constitutional should how they means
means. Applied to the crimi-nal
and human rights.
the
idea
process should Gandhi
that
means and supported
our
the
world.This
off enders.
determination
be a
Correct
model of the
out-comes
themselves. desired
the idea that
we must become
is no less true for the criminal means requires
the criminal
criteria
to committing their other crimes, it is believed by some that trickery
and subterfuge are acceptable meansto
use in the criminal
justice
system. The
that dictates how law enforcement is crafted to prevent abuse of the The tying
law is sometimes
all citizens from dealing fairly challenging
and justly
officers do their jobs means of enforcement.
viewed asgetting
the hands of the police. The overzealous
procedural law
in the
way or
and
would not be a problem. In the criminal
justice
however,
system,
most of the off enders do not
what is happening,
and it is
desirable to
educate them to the process so they can feel they
have
been treated fairly. Finally, the Peacemaking the Simply action
Kantian concept
Pyramid
Paradigm advo-cates
of the categorical imperative.
put, the categorical imperative should
be
considered
as
a difficult concept for some criminal justice practitio-ners a universal law. In other to accept. Because offenders often lie in addition
who do
means.If all
off enders were lawyers, the use of highly technical
justice
system to be the paragon of fairness and virtue.This is
parlance.Those
cannot object to incorrect
legal language
and
justice
and unintelligible
not understand
out-come. understand
of the notion ofcorrect
we want to see in our community
Correct
system as well as other professions, to employ compli-cated
of-ficers
dictates
of
as the outcomes
was a champion
the change that
system.
Law enforcement
detect crime and arrest
entails
to give up legal rights. It is useful to the criminal justice
means would
adhere to the procedural law that
is as important The
of correct
that the off enders be given their
to have something
if
says that
it
would
become
words, I cannot be willing
done to you that I
willing to have done to
every
myself.This
would not be would ensure a
certain consistency to how our laws are enforced and give individuals of
a clear idea
appropriate
Additionally,
behavior the
are
categorical
to the peacemaking
of
where the boundaries drawn
and
imperative
perspective
enforced.
can
be ap-plied
according to the
procedural law pro-tects following: police officers.
with criminals
is a difficult
While and
task, the vast majority of police officers are
From a peacemaking that solutions
perspective, this
to particular
criminal
means justice
260
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
problems should entail
underlying
reasoning so that the solution applicable in other times categorical imperative principles
that
circumstances
problem is their feelings of shame.
would be
I have yet to see a serious act of violence that
attempts to establish the
individual
serve as guides to
was not provoked
particular
cases
and
shamed
can
As can be seen, the Peacemaking to include
a number
and organize them in a way that a comprehensive criminal
justice system. There
of conceptualizing
be applied to the criminal
other
philosophy
justice
if
system,
it
death.
did
say they
ways
live
we
without
kill or
mutilated
even
misunderstand
we do not
meanit literally
or
attempt
punishment,
For
would rather
be killed
wefind
not
of faceno
men at our own peril, if
realize that they
that can
but
and that
of feel-ing
disrespected
or undo this loss
includes
these
peace in the
are certainly
a peacemaking
prin-ciples
demonstrates
process of envisioning
humiliated,
matter how severe the
Pyramid Paradigm
of peacemaking
prevent
by the experience
and
and ridiculed,
moral behavior.13
to
attempts
with violent inmates that an underlying
and places. Kants
transcend of
extensively
moral
when they mutilate oth-ers,
themselves,
than
pride, dignity, and self-respect. 14
They literally prefer death to dishonor.
the Peacemaking Pyramid Paradigm sufficient for our needs to explore how peacemaking can be applied to corrections.
In
fact,
corrections
is
one
of the
areas
This intrapersonal dimension is a key and a possible
of
the justice system that has tremendous potential for
starting point to the understanding of how we mightap-proach the rehabilitation of offenders. Whilesome critics
adopting the peacemaking perspective. of the
peacemaking
should LEVELS
OF
PEACEMAKING
perspective
might contend that
we
not care if off enders see potential value or worth
in themselves
or not, but that
we should
only
worry
about their behavior, the peacemaking perspective argues One of the
strengths
of the
lies in its applicability levels
of analysis. The
be envisioned
at
While
three
our
peacemaking
the intrapersonal,
institutional/societal, levels.
peacemaking
and focus
on
the
peacemaking
as we consider
how
to
corrections
perspective
can
interpersonal,
is
on
the
that
how
proactively
individuals
feel
others is a primary The
interpersonal
perspective harmony,
first
to
correct problems with other countries and how other
stranger,
the
themselves
deals
to
with
how peace-making
here as a guide for
and intimacy.
coworker,
peacemaking
your interactions
relation
our daily lives. The
has relevance
child,
in
of their behavior.15
dimension
togetherness,
is a spouse,
level
respond
about
determinant
we relate to each other in
an opportunity
to the international/global weshould
many
international/global
of these levels, there is certainly
to link
perspec-tive
and integration
fellow
Whether
inmate,
perspective
it
or total
suggests that
be based on trust, fairness,
kindness,
and compassion. For too many of us,the pressures of
countries choose to deal with offenders. Briefly, the
competition in a perceived zero-sum game prevent us
levels of analysis of the peacemaking perspective are
from interacting in a positive and co-operational
important
because of the
way they form a seamless
web of thought and action for the problems of crime, The
of
intrapersonal
individuals
who they
think
is
themselves.
are is a powerful
behavior. Thoreau desperation.
dimension about
said, most
concerned Their
contributor menlead lives
with sense
to their of quiet
For some off enders, their lives are not so
quiet and are punctuated It is the opinion
by acts of extreme
The institutional/societal
of one psychiatrist
of potential
who has worked
to
invite
such
racism
many other arenas
as the family,
way westructure
can have profound we allow
justice system and, of
It also includes
conflict
workplace. The
level of the peacemaking
the criminal
course, corrections.
violence.
way
others.
perspective includes
social order, and justice.
how
with
school,
our social institutions
eff ects on how people behave. or sexual
be tolerated
reactions that
in
our
(or
and
other
schools
may be violent.
kinds and
of)
When harass-ment
businesses,
we
When we do no
PEACEMAKING
allow equal opportunity
and social justice,
and
staff alike,
conflict
for
off enders
when we allow inmates
and
paradigm of how peace principles can be ap-plied at manylevels
correctional
to be brutalized
by
This
perspective,
of analysis has also been outlined.
while just
correctional
officers and each other.
We model killing
peacemaking
for society
when we employ
punishment.
system, hasthe advantage
changing the
capital
way we operate our institutions,
began to have a more positive impact to each other. It is a reciprocal
and
is a
armed
major concern for
Nations. of
of
organizations
While some
wars in
the
world,
preven-tion
international
like
the
United
might claim there are still it
seems
clear
that
there
our thinking through
conflicts
plenty
could
be
of illustrating
we would suggest that
is increasingly
peacemaking
has a well-recognized tradition. The resolution
way to envision
on the criminal
how
justice
how intercon-nected
are.
Finally,
level the
one
can be focused
the personal and political realms of life actually
we can
on how werelate
process.
At the international/global perspective
By
261
A peacemaking perspectivethat presents a compre-hensive
weinvite
fraud and deceit. In the corrections system, weinvite violence
CRIMINOLOGY
about
crime.
is
criminals,
how
dispute resolu-tion
peacemaking criminol-ogy
more than just an academic curiosity. of crime,
crimi-nology
We will demonstrate
processes such as alternative
and restorative justice, that
world
peacemaking
becoming a major perspective in
In the real
and societys
response
to
issues of social control, the peacemaking perspective is even more but for the eff orts of organizations and indi-viduals whoactively workto resolve conflicts.The
Camp
a viable and powerful choice.
David Accord is an example of peacemakingthat has maintainedthe peacebetweenIsrael and Egyptfor many years.The international/global
perspective can also be applied to the environment can the in
other levels).
harmony
Human beings
with the environment
survival. There
are concerns by
is being destroyed in the results
(as
must learn to live
1.
for their long-term
and
many parts of the world with
there are longer-term,
complex
such as global warming and the destruction such
as the
Amazon
rain
forest
problems
have
M.
a Feminist
Richard
pp.
2.
Fuller
or regional impact.
and
how interdependent
social
we all have become.
CRIME
AND
4.
Harris,
p. 93.
5.
McDermott,
two intellectual
traditions
perspective critical
from
draws inspiration.
traditions
in
challenge
the
which the peacemak-ing The
feminist
power structures
very
society.
much about
Crime and criminal
how power is distributed
in this society, as we will demonstrate chapter.
justice
are
and used
in a following
Press,
Feminist
Roxbury types
Publishing of feminism:
developmental,
radical,
standpoint,
multiracial,
postmodern
and queer
Joan.
Change?
From
a
Change
More
No.
(eds.)
In
John
(1999).
Boston,
Harold
Arrigo,
mens, theory.
Peacemaking
R.
Important Fuller
Controversial
MA:
Allyn
and Issues
and
Bacon,
A. (1999). of
Belmont,
Greenburg,
Mayfield
Richard
Quinney
(eds.)
(1991).
IN:
Indiana
Bloominton,
Press.
Maturation
Readings
and
as Peacemaking.
Bruce
Deviance.
8.
University
as
119126.
Pepinsky,
The
12
Personal
Hickey
University
of 7.
contemporary
W.
Criminology
and
Pepinsky
Criminology
Inequality:
Angeles:
socialist,
and
Criminology.
pp.
6.
and
Is
Social
Eric
We have done this by outlining
Los
M.
Perspective, Than
criminal justice system.
Millennium:
Harold
Indiana
identifies
construction, p. 16.
of the peacemaking perspective to the
In
Gender
psychoanalytic,
Lorber,
It has beenour intention in this chapter to demonstrate the applicability
Politics Lorber
3.
PEACE
New
(1991).
IN:
(1998).
Marxist
lesbian,
who coined the term spaceship earth to illustrate
the
of Justice. (eds.)
Bloomington,
Company.
It was Buckminster
Vision
Quinney
Judith
Theories
more
into
8397.
Lorber,
liberal,
than just alocal
Kay Moving
Peacemaking.
of important
that
Harris, Toward
manythat the environ-ment
being unsafe air, water, and scarcity of food.
Additionally,
resources
NOTES
level of the peacemaking
David in
CA:
in
Criminal
Justice:
Law,
Crime,
and
and
Capitalism:
West/Wadsworth.
F. (1981).
Marxist
Publishing,
Social Justice,
Critical Theory
Crime
Criminology. p. 18
Palo
Alto,
CA:
262
CRIME
9.
AND
Akers,
BEHAVIOR
Ronald
Angeles, 10.
CA:
Fuller, John Perspective.
11.
Fuller,
12.
Fisher,
L.
and
Introduction
(1997).
Roxbury
Second
Publishing
R. (1998). Boston,
Criminal MA:
Theories: Edition.
Los
Company. Justice:
Allyn and
A Peacemaking
Bacon.
Roger,
13. 14.
Fuller,
James
National
Epidemic
15. These
Be William
Ury and Edition.
Bruce New York,
p. 57.
Gilligan,
critics
Patton
Done.
(1996).
Violence:
New York,
include,
Rehabilitation:
p. 121.
Getting to Yes, Second Books.
Criminological
Evaluation,
Gendreau,
What
Criminal
We
Justice
Reflections
NY: Vintage Paul (1996).
Know
and
and
What
Behavior,
on
a
Books. Off
ender
Needs
to
23:144161.
(1995).
NY: Penguin
Ross,
R. and
Treatment.
Gendreau,
Toronto,
CN:
P. (1980). Butterworth
Effective
Correctional
RESPONSIBILITY AND
RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
John and
R
estorative justice appeal,
getting
owes part of its growth in popularity
off ering something
to
politicians
off enders to take responsibility
of varying stripes.
for their
actions
political appeal of restorative justice. So hasgetting for their kids. restorative justice
Whileit
to its broad political In
particular,
has been part of the
families to take responsibil-ity
mayseem appropriate to exploit such political appeal,
must havea more meaningful sense of responsibility than this.
Restorativejustice cannot sell itself in these terms yet simultaneously distanceit-self from similar sounding neoconservative ideas of responsibility, articulating
its own conception
of responsibility political
Right, and they
(OMalley
1994:22).
are ...
only a punitive
is afundamental
response
first find
of responsibility
might be conceived asthat form
of responsibility
off enders,
a useful distinction
of ajurisprudence
and
communities.
Given
between active responsibility
weshow how that distinction
deterrence, rehabilitation,
part of any
restorative justice.
hypothesis, let
victims,
of the
to off ending
and contestable
As a starting
restorationof
says, Discourses
not possessions
purpose of this chapter is to explore the concept
restorative justice framework.
Then
As OMalley
prevention
do not imply
Responsibility
scheme of justice, including The
of responsibility.
for crime and crime
without clearly
and incapacitation.
us see if restorative re-sponsibility mostlikely to promote that
framework,
we will
and passive responsibility.
mapsonto distinctions
of active responsibility.
within a
between active and passive
Wethen seek to develop the rudiments
Finally, weconsider some worries about the
restorative conception ofresponsibility we havedeveloped.
ACTIVE
Carol the
Heimer (1999:18)
AND
PASSIVE
makes a distinction
RESPONSIBILITY
between
wrong one has done in the past and taking
Bovens (1998:27)
makes a similar
and active responsibility. mostly concerned
distinction
Twentieth-century
with passive responsibility.
shifts the balance toward
being held accountable for
responsibility between
for the future.
Mark
passive responsibility
Western retributive Restorative justice,
justice
has been
we will argue,
active responsibility.
263
Braithwaite Declan
Roch
264
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Bovens says that in the case of passive respon-sibility(1) an adequate perception of threatened violations of one is called to account after the event and either
held responsible
or
not. It is
who bears the responsibility The
central
(Bovens
1998:27).
as requiring
transgression
and sometimes toward The
the
a special
1997; Thomas
about
Bovenss conception not
here.
While
discuss
as our
code(Bovens positivist
responsibility
doubts
interest
is
to
it
however,
justice cannot responsibility. is
must
after
the event, in
the
Bovens terms)
of guilt
bears responsibility).
and in light
Furthermore,
least in its early stages,
but that
to create a forum
justice in
a crime
Those
of the admis-sion in the
determines
at
asking the is
can
restorative
nurture
active
dialogue
without
when people claim that restor-ative
not
priority the
can
active
Bovens? He sees active responsibility
according to as a virtue, the
when something needs
making a claim
hurt
concerned
with
priority is to be just
wrongdoers. The
shift in the
occurs because the
proponents is to be just in
heal. clear that
theory concerned
are
because their
of restorative justice
While it is
such
a backward-looking, as retributivism
de-ontological
is
clearly
more with passive than active responsibil-ity,
the influence
of passive responsibility
forward-looking, Utilitarians equally
active responsibility,
retribution
active responsibility
waythat they
then, is about shifting toward
favor
way that they
passive responsibility,
which active responsibility
virtue of taking responsibility
who
balance toward
who
a conference,
passive responsibility
what is
and consistent
norms.
passive responsibility
(after
responsibility.
So
families
through
their
along the lines
preoccupied
also per-meates
consequentialist of Jeremy
with hurting
theories. Bentham
rather than
and with passiverather than active responsibility. will argue that utilitarians deterrence, rehabilitation,
prevention to that of restorative justice theorists.
events ... The done?
central
(Bovens
repair
here is: what
and
is to
to
be
in a restorative
especially
with passive responsibility responsibility.2 restorative
justice frame, active
entails seeking to take responsibility
harm, and
According
question
situations
1998:27).
To interpolate responsibility
of unwanted
to restore
to
relationships.
Bovens, active responsibility
requires:
maps onto
First,
we
alternative, passive
is the utilitarians
while
deterrence,
maps onto active deterrenceand powerful. Then and incapacitation
show
how
At
obsession
to the exclusion will
of
and crime
the root of this inferiority
present, on the prevention
We
have an inferior theory incapacitation,
[T]he
much more on action in the
are
healing,
to be done to deal with a problem or put things right: emphasis lies
as
about whatis accomplished by active responsibility.
con-ference
uses passive responsibility
Restorative justice,
the balance from
justice
Our argument
justice abandons
restorative
active
seems to be an excessively
court sentencing,1 they are impliedly
restorative
will often involve
why he or she did it.
be fostered.
of
by the off ender (which
that restorative
that
a restorative
commission
of
justice offers better responsibility than traditional
said
do without some concept of passive For example,
held
off ender
be
based on a verifiable
1998:36). This
responsibility, so that
of his concept of active responsibility. First,
virtue
Staff en (1998:369)
Weargue that restorative justice reconceptualizes
move
on to the special appeal for restorative justice theory
and
value, seems
of other people that inspires
requirement;
codifying
Bovens
Heimer
1995), and
Bovens also sees active responsibility
requiring conduct
have
is a central
cultivate
As
responsibility.
example,
some
listening
to
Restorative
problem rather than the person
put it, it is the humanity
of obligation
of passive responsibility,
them,
well designed
seriously.
of the circle (Melton,
which respectful
We will not add to
we
obligations
which the
responsibility.
1998:2831).
(see, for
1998).
debates
will
in
of debates about the best way to
those
we
relationship
harmed (Bovens
is full
and (4) taking
is put in the center
do it?
of a norm, a causal connec-tion
of passive responsibility
Mulgan
did you
and damage, blameworthiness,
person(s)
literature
conceive
is: Why
Bovens sees passive responsibility
between conduct
a norm, (2) consideration of consequences, (3) auton-omy,
of
a given state of af-fairs. dialogue, in
for
question
a question
of active under
the
passive responsibility active responsibility the latter
is
more
we will do the same for rehabilitation
RESPONSIBILITY AND
Passive
and
Active
In
fact, to
not an objective
make deterrence
would destroy restorative that
making shaming
Pranis (1998:45) add
deter] is
of restorative
justice.
wrongdoing
a value
of
a value would destroy it.
puts it, An
intention
them in taking full responsibility
to
help a
for that
harm is
However, this is not to deny that theories
justice
that
that the severity level of punishment significant
deterrent eff ect.
First, the regulator
the
do better than with some
webs of complex
restorative
Australian
approach
business regula-tion.
meets with the agents in the
who seem along
most passively responsible
for
with some victims
ap-propriate).
Because the corporate
indicates
rarely has a
theory
Let us illustrate
Consider
the lawbreaking,
processes. in criminology
justice
has been developing in
po-tentialcorporation
more preventive
than retributive/deterrent
Deterrence
analogies to active
interdependence.
restorative
Most deterrence literature
and
deterrence theory?
why
might have
Justice
How could restorative legal
of shame and deterrence can help us understand processes
to be passively optimal.
As Kay
to shame [we
An intention
about certain response with
calibrated
Restorative
the harm they caused and to sup-port restorative
person understand
respectful.3
punishments
justice for the same reason
not respectful.
265
International relations theory has escapedthe shackles
Deterrence
of Benthamite thinking Deterrence is
RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
(where
actors
most directly
responsible havethe mostto lose from a criminal con-viction ofthe corporation, they will be hard targets, dif-ficult
While a criminal justice
to deter.They arelikely to fight passivedeterrence
system with no passive deterrence would clearly be one with alot of crime, the data give utilitarians reason to
by denial of responsibility.
be discouraged that increasing the quantum of passive
crime fighters, that is the end of the storyanother
deterrence
will reduce crime (or that reducing
deterrence
will
increase
crime).
Active
passive
deterrence,
we
contested court case that they to fight,
that
deterrence
compared
to
theory
(1992:1953) in
seeks
to
deter
have argued
criminology
deterrence theory
a form
is
X will be Y, if they
United
behavior,
punishment
do 2X, it
will be 2Y,
and so on with a passive deterrence tariff . Instead, its deterrence
strategy is active in two important
First, the
United
States
uses its
power to
senses.
some reason (for
example,
trade)
to
the
philosophers
Whatis being mobilized
Braithwaite
States strategic
deterrence is active in the sense of be-ing
dynamic rather than does not just sit there
passive.The
deterrent threat
as a passive promise
of punish-ment;
pyramid in response to the level
of cooperative
made by the rogue state.
widening
conference to agent of the
When that fails, her
out to
we convene
boss.
Fisse
have described
and
one restor-ative
which the process led right
up
to the Chief Executive Officer, who wasthe toughest of them all. After that, though, the Australian
Trade
Practices
include
the
Commission
Chair
of the
widened
Board,
who
the
circle
was shocked
to
at this
unwillingness to restore the victims losses the corporations
Chair actually fired
the
compliance
CEO. (Not
systems. The
very restorative!
A
case of active deterrence leading to passive deterrence.) In
deterrence is escalated up and down an enforce-ment theory
response and the concessions
another
invite
(1993:230232)
and reform
United
and
justice experience in
interdependency
Second, the
overdetermined.
Often the boss will turn
as well.
conference
recalcitrant
1984).
1986),
crime is, as
move up the organization,
is invited.
be a hard target another
by this kind of active deterrence is a web of complex (Keohane
say (Lewis
which the boss of the passively responsible corporation
who con-trol
However, what we know is that
the circle of dialogue, convening
nut
intervene
(actively) to persuade the rogue state that it should refrain from the rogue action.
power.
causal and preventive power over corporate
persuade
other states on whom the rogue state is dependent for
do not have the resources
defeat at the hands of those
rela-tions So what we do is
Whenthe
of international
it does not announce in advance that the if states do
primitive
in international
because it is excessively passive. States
another
corporate
will suggest, is a diff erent story. Ayres and Braithwaite
For Benthamite corporate
other
more
extended
of restorative justice,
has argued that common
treatments
Braithwaite
of the
deterrence
(1997a,
1999)
corporate
crime is not diff erent from
crime in that it is
mostly a collective, or at leas
266
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
THE RESTORATIVE JUSTICE PROCESS AND
a socially embedded, phenomenon, in which there are manyactors with preventive capabilities. For example, one interpretation anti-bullying
for
success
programs in reducing
percent (Olweus fourth
the
whole-school
bullying
1993) is in these terms.
grader is bullying
another child,
in the school (particularly
from
in a position to intervene a deterrence theory anti-bullying
of
50
grade up) are
to prevent the bullying.
perspective, therefore,
programs
up to
Whenever a many children
the fifth
From
whole-school
work because the deterrence tar-get
shifts from the bully (a hard target to deter passively) to active deterrence of responsible One reason that of restorative take
justice is that it
Conferences nurture
the
people to
active responsibility
environmentally
conscious citizen
of the corpora-tion
though she has no passiveresponsibility for causing it.
punitive
Aschool friend intervenes to stop bullying eventhough for it.
design of restorative institutions spaces for the nurturing among citizens, In
the
and
justice seriously,
violence
more likely
to be attempted,
to
of
restorative
deterrence
advocate
basis of threat.
that
which the
justice
couple
This
powerful
when deterrence is threaten-ing
foreground (for the theory, see Ayres and Braithwaite 1992:4751).
The
an ever-present
idea is not that
passive threat
it is democratically dialogue fails this,
there
is
need
to
is counterproductive. to
is there
an appearance in court, to passive responsibility.
Becauseeveryone
make threats;
So an offender
participate in a conference
as
but that everyone knows
available as an active possibility
or is spurned. no
deterrence
In
indeed,
if
knows
off ender
that
to
do so
who chooses not
knows the alternative
is
where he or she will be subject
shattered display
not have the
that
her stoic
from harm, the
school the off ender,
help them small
and the
with tasks
it
loss
couple
that
was one that
steps to resume
pur-sue
choose
of this married
young the
person car the
of dollars to
man explained
that,
had been privately
car that
he had hoped to
since the
off ense, he did
over. She also explained
of the
car
helped
stages
of
only
difficult
to
grandchildren Yet, despite the
physical outcome
him (in this
his education).
that
of a difficult
made it their
shopping.
off ers the
the
damage to the car, prob-ably
advanced
grocery
declined
insisting
to
they
was explained
as collecting
and doing
to So
repair
husband
that
such
usually 1993).
meet the
beyond
of the
was in the
is
Morris opportunity
After the
heart to start
daughter
it is rarely
years and thousands
at car showsand
pregnancy
to
conference,
the loss
overturn
A middle-aged
damaged
it.
about
court-room
to
by one of the authors
realizing
his wife shared
as as
expect.
he had done great
without
help
might
three
the
not not
it
and
example.
and
had spent
restoring.
their
an
are
be, and
responsibility,
came to the conference
who had stolen
criminals are morelikely to succumb to the entreaties in the background instead of threatened in the
we
also
conferences,
have the
convened
provides
husband
on
than
A conference
upshot will
less
justice
citizens
instead,
passive
part
of adversarial
(Maxwell
and
that
of restorative
do intervene
punitive;
while people
do so far
chapter
transacted
Rather it is to say that
of restorative justice
less
know
deterrence.
would
justice
punishment
punitiveness
within
other
they
even
greater
restorative
are in the context
make them
the
passive
When courts
confronting
we
usually
does
Moreover,
grueling
experience
and
of restorative
increase
re-storative to
conferences
and incapacitation.
restorative
to
taken
work, if it is located strategy in
decisions
women,
have argued
is
as they justice.
of
because
is
empirical
victims
justice
are often
1979),
we expected
it seems that
against
Daly (1994)
failure
be escalation
the
of
enforcement
of repeated
not to
young and old.
and to actually
a dynamic
is
of the virtue of active responsi-bility
context
Braithwaite
An ideal of the
is to create democratic
that as
wrongdoer.
2000).
processes
of process-related the
the
restorative
and
(Feeley
However, is
a wrong,
(Daly
all systems
of punishment
punitive
citizens
put right
own families
in
alot
empower
against
justice
to
you
that
off enders,
process
opportunities
how to
punitively
suggests
restorative
justice
If
decide
of retribution
and their
delivers
intervenes to stop the environmental crime even
she bears no passive responsibility
Daly
hardened
delivers, among other things, active deterrence.The
to
do so
a deal
victims
provide
responsibility.
to
Kathleen
because
circles
society
choose
deliver
for
encourages
active
many
is a central
value
and
in a punitive
peers of the bully.
empowerment
active responsibilityand
RESPONSIBILITY
In
labor
from
that
would
case, taking
Bovens terms
RESPONSIBILITY AND
the couple wasconcerned that the young person exercise
rehabilitation
his active responsibility in respect to this incident in a
1999). There
way that nurtured him
for
the
the virtue of active responsibility
in
A process that
allows victims to
and his or her family
meet the off ender
often generates compassion for the
off ender and a better understanding
of his or her actions.
Compassion contributes to the pursuit of restoration active responsibility punishment.
way of delivering
more than it does to the pursuit
of
to
there
often
is
retribution.
How
can
model of justice if citizens often choose
deter or seek revenge?
One response is to
what is
most empowering
restorative
by Burford deal
draw an
explain
by a plurality
civil society,
private
with
anti-democratic
Whatis happening there is that
values.
we honor the institu-tion
(democracy) that conduces to a shift to democratic values rather than honoring the values themselves. To manifestanti-democratic values would be not only
perverse but a prescription democracy. that put limits
on anti-democratic restorative
Likewise,
anti-democratic
own
any incarcerative
aims
allow.4
restorative
to
We think
the
limits
which would beimposed
by a
to
options
available.
of rehabilitative
services
of service
enterprise,
providers
from
and the state.
More
we know are outcomes are:
of that choice in networks
1994) rather than choice
of social support
byisolated individu-als.
Wesuspect that the reason for active rehabilitation
being superior to passive rehabilitation documented
communities
with good professional
advice
superior
This
choices from
options, they
and social support. of care empowered
will actually
maketech-nically
among a smorgasbord
because of the richer
plausible in a world in
psychotherapy
often seems to
of
contextual
have of the case (Bazemore,
is particularly
example,
goes beyond the
eff ects of commitment
Wealso suspect that
knowledge and any pun-ishment
court for the same wrongdoing.6
the conference
interventions.
any punish-ment rehabilitative
punishment,
sub-jected
(1) active choice as opposed to passive receipt, and (2)
extent
these
or humiliating,5
in excess of that
of
pursue
not
but are empowered
associated with superior rehabilitative
justice conferences against
or corporal
that is degrading
pursuit
are
The two variables in play here that
(Cullen,
they insist)
anti-restorative
which those systems
should constrain
rehabilitative
must be constitu-tionalized
are placed on the
which
help for communities of care to craft and operate their
embedding
action.
people can (if or
unsustainable
write constitutions
justice
so that limits deterrence. Thus,
to
for historically
What we do instead is
the
radically, resourcing can be available for professional
take democracy awayfrom people as soon asthey chose to
care
of rehabilitative
are replaced
candidates
In
violence, the victims, of
State monopolies of provision
criminals
Pennell (1996),
Experts come into
the range
often
for
and
the
programs, such as
prescription
analogy to democracy. If you set up a democracy, citizens vote
justice
communities
to rehabilitative
1998, eff ective
benevolence.
with family
their
267
programs is for
of that
one described
and
Braithwaite the least
best and to require
is designed to off enders,
see that
rehabilitation
with knowledge.
this
detail,
be passive recipients
However, there is not always compassion in and
be an alternative to
and
more
much evidence
state to decide
future.
conferences
(for is
RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
1999).
which, for work but in
which there is no consistent evidence showing that one Active
and
Passive
school of psychotherapy works better than another.
Rehabilitation
The hopeis that contextually informed community-of-care Support moral support
without
accountability
weakness. is a form
leads
Accountability
choices (assisted by professional choice brokers)
to
will be better on average than individual
without
choices
of cruelty. Harriet The
United
Book of Methodist
Jane
Olsen,
Discipline
of the
Active
Having passive
how to
apply
outlined
in some
deterrence, the
same
detail
we hope principles
1998).
and
Passive
Incapacitation
Church (1996) In
and
(Braithwaite
or state
the
story
we can to
active
state passive
and
pyramid,
of active
briefly and
Braithwaite
are in fact include
Dalys (1994) most of the
more incapacitative
options
like a
relative
family options than
or other
violence for
en-forcement
escalation
deterrent. supporter
They of th
268
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
woman movinginto the household, the to a friends
household, and imprisonment.
move beyond which is
a passive conception
statically
prisons,
man moving
linked
to
theoretically
equivalent
confinement
Hence, in
a family
violence
in
of victims
to incapacitation
or funding
for
her disposal (victim equivalent
alternative
the
state
of off enders.
enforcement
a bank at
can be functionally
offender from
the
home
Court-ordered eff ective
than
incapacitation
it
to perpetrate
would
is
seem.
notoriously
Violent
assault and rape in
men
prison.
Judgesincapacitate drunk drivers by canceling their
cases than units.
here, but
them is that they are concerned
with the
way restorative justice
the virtue
of active responsibility.
deliberation
nurtures
Active responsibility
does not come naturally in response to a plea to attend Neighborhood
Watch meeting. It comes
in reply to a plea from of crime to support
a neighbor
who has been a
health and safety
workplace proclaiming Reporting
everyonesresponsibility
more natu-rally
them in a conference/circle.
Similarly, an occupational
the
continue to entice vulnerable young people.
when coupled
of criminal
We will not reiterate the four sets of arguments
victim
Drug dealers
processing
one way of summarizing
less
continue
have more momentum
mainstream
on
when ghettoized into specialized crime prevention
a
(off ender incapacitation).
Motivation, resources, and follow-through
crime prevention to the
pyramid,
accommodation
capacitation)
to removing
programs.
can be
giving a victim the capacity to leave by putting account
those four reasonsfor the failure of crime prevention
Once we
of incapacitation,
we can see that capacitation
prevention deliberation in the community can help rem-edy
poster in
(accidents) is
does not foster asense of active
licenses only to find that a majority of them continue to
responsibility in the waythat conferences heldto discuss
drive
specific workplaceinjuries do.
(Barnes
1999).
By contrast, the active intervention of care evokes alternative
modalities
with a grace that
of incapacitation.
If the problem is that it is only on Friday and Saturday nights that the off ender gets out on the town, Harry can take
responsibility
for
holding
to the car on Friday and Saturday
can volunteer
drinking
intervene
the
to call a taxi every time.
Or the
where the off ender to
so
off ender
the
owner
someone
home.
We
active incapacitation
else
have
seen
negotiated
the
in
the
all
these
or club the staff
bar
of
drunk
driving conferences. All of them require cultivation of the virtue of active responsibility.
and
care.
his
Wenever seethem
transforms
Desmond
Truth
and
to confront evil
human lives to
Tutu
would
Reconciliation
want
us
paths of to
Commission
of how it prevents crimes of violence and
terms
of how its healing lays the foundation
humane
South
While
we can to
community
building,
If
never
be the
expect
morein
of a more
we believe that
Madikizela-Mandela
and
of
part in the
that is the indispens-able development.
reintegrative
with the
justice
institutions
can play their
of community
to deal
restorative
most important they
of active responsibility
is required
in
Africa.
institutions
nurturing
evalu-ate less
terms
ingredient
drives
forms
at restorative
love
Or the
driver agreement
of the pub
drinks can agree to train
that
keys
Alternatively,
matescan sign a designated
at the conference.
Uncle
nights and ensur-ing
that the car stays in the garage. girlfriend
Serious crime is an opportunity
of communities
shaming
wrongdoing
a P.W.
Botha
is
of a
alike,7
what Winnie
no
one
is
required to take active responsibility for saying shame
in drunk driving court cases, which last an average of
on you for the killings and the racism under an evil
seven minutesin Canberra, compared with 90 minutes
regime.The testimony
for
conferences
(Barnes
sufficient Active
Crime
Prevention,
Active
(1998,
programs motivation, deliberation, that
1999)
has argued
mostly fail for
(2) lack
four
of resources,
and (4) lack
making restorative
crime
reasons:
through.
conferences
preven-tion
(1) lack
(3) insufficiently
of follow
justice
that
to accomplish
evil of violence.
Grace
citizens Braithwaite
of the victims and the apolo-gies
(when they occur, as they often enough do) are
1999).
of
plural He argued
a site of crime
the necessary shaming
However, there can never be enough
active in the reintegration
shaming. If is true that reintegrative crime,
of the
part of reintegrative shaming
prevents
and if it is true that it is the reintegration
part
that is always in short supply, then the particular, if lim-ited, kind of integration
into communities
of care tha
RESPONSIBILITY AND
humanitarian significance.
with
the
victim
the victim that A JURISPRUDENCE OF
ACTIVE
essential element for securing restoration.
there is risk requirement
without
of injustice.
honor,
At the same
for the
that
For example, a minimum
term
causal responsibil-ity
this picture
is not only a
Fisses (1983)
developed in
theory
Fisse and
is
done.
enormously
The
from
balance
of reac-tive
at the
causal end
(such as that even
in
the
the
of the
West, reactive
with hit-and-run
as
also
two
in
to
that the
understood
the
airport,
result
in
illustrate
wrote
to
the
her viola-tion
none of the excuses
would not normally
and
because
apologized; felt it
proceed
in
of a bald
face
In a case
merit prosecution,
went forward
Department
she
the
U.S.
was obliged to admission
of
guilt. (emphasis in original)
that
sentence
the
reductions.
Braithwaite extremes
In
Crime,
(1989:165) in
the
told
cultural
bal-ancing
Wagatsuma and
Haley Rosett
These
are
stories
about
while the Japanese justice (1983) of
would
advocates
two
accused of raping
American
servicemen
a Japanese
woman.
criminal
fault.
United
States
In
assault
fault its
requires as the
most
radical
it.
core
Fisse criteri-on
version,
this
mean in a case of assault, the alleged assailant a restorative
basis of admitting On
the
system
reactive
the basis of an admission of
how
justice system creates disincentives for reactive fault,
would go into
is
she
After the
available to her, apologizing
prosecution
the
that which
driving, the running is the greater
the second from
first
doubt form
declaration.
Justice
domi-nates
(1986:486):
The
the
Service acknowledging
has confessed
end.
of causal and reactive fault, the first from (1982:272),
was
profusely, and seeking forgiveness.
Western criminal
intuition
left
was no sugges-tion
there
the currency
or explanations
varies
sometimes
and there
of the law, raising
United States) are
our
had
Customs
Asian systems
fault
evidenced
Shame and Reintegration, stories
of
which she had not ac-curately
Second,
woman
while
evil than the hitting. Early guilty pleasin court and remorse
U.S. with a large amount
activities,
woman
one reacts after
between
of the continuum;
fault,
not suspended.
of cash which is the proceeds
this.
required
Braithwaite
of Japan) tend to be at the reactive
causal
the
and reactive fault.
system to system.
systems (such as that
two
of illicit
here. All criminal justice systems of causal fault
justice
Yet,
importation
but also of the normative
reactive fault is about how responsibly harm
maximum
declared on the entry form. It was
matter of the
Causal fault is about being causally responsible,
the
the repentant
prosecuted.The law is intended to catch the
Brent
notions
him
second story is of a Japanese woman
of
1993) for key insights incorporate
might not adopt
to
not the sort of casethat would normally be
of restoration
to
your
Japanese lawyer
were sentenced to the
American currency
of justice.
(further
had
are not guilty,
on which
on active responsibility
We turn
and
depends.That is, the emphasis
a morejust notion of criminal liability,
fault
say. We
arriving in the
by arguing that
while passive responsibility remains indispensable to
theory
compensated
Americans completely.
of imprisonment,
justice in this way,restorative justice propels usto de-velop
jurisprudence
stating
had not even occurred
they
The
passive responsibility
in the court
they replied. Their
role. They
wrong.
Now we will complicate
to
cringed; it
passive responsibil-ity
to demonstrate
from
and asked the soldiers if they
anything
as the
for punishing an offender for doing wrong
would be an inquiry
a letter
After hearing the evidence, the judge leaned
of active responsibility
we have argued that
was tabled
she had been fully
forward
time,
was secured;
that she absolved the
RESPONSIBILITY
Sofar, we have conceived
269
Japaneselegal advice, private reconciliation
is transacted in restorative justice rituals has a special
TOWARD
RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
(I
was the
justice
conference
of criminal
guilt
responsibility one
who
not on
but on the
for the actus reus of an punched
her).8
Whethe
270
CRIME
the
AND
BEHAVIOR
mental element required for crime
was present
that
wecannot guarantee that this will occur is deeply
troubling. would be decided reactively, on the basis of the con-structiveness and
restorativeness
to the problem If
the
of
were
restorative,
would be removed;
remain.
However,
if
reactive
the
a conviction;
element
the
mental
would
before
or during
would
commit
more
with two
who
offenders
who
exactly the same off ense: one apologizes
and
heals a victim who grants him mercy;the other refuses to participate in a circle and is punished severely by a
court.
The
answer
is
that
while
the
two
off
formal
of proving that sexual not relevant
processes that
to
does not occur in criminal lawyers and treatment
who have acted in ... sexually
ways (1998:65).
normal
of guilt. In any case, it is hard to
have often been derisory in their
complainants
as-sault
are not concerned
As Hogg and Brown put it, Police,
trials.13
guar-antees
Most of these, however,
argue that victim-vilification
judges
of penalty than causal fault.
is the justice
justice
might further
do incorporate
play at the level
with the adjudication
its
be a
trials
processes
occurredguarantees
would
gives us an answer to the retributivist
says: Where
come into
restorative
for
crime
legal
against victim-blaming.
were found
the
fault
protest that criminal
criminal
be insufficient
for
reactive
determinant
This
would
be demonstrated However,
important
1998).
of
fault
Defenders of formal
reaction
only civil liability
that
commission.10
her
risk
criminal
by a court to be present,9
have to
or
caused by the act (Braithwaite
reaction
liability
also
his
Indeed,
argue that the problem
restorative
of
provocative
justice
with the criminal
advocates
trial is that it
creates incentives for the prosecution to vilify defence witnesses,and vice versa.This is what puts the vulner-able mostat risk of stigmatization. The problems that
enders
are equal in causal fault, they are quite unequal in
formal legal guarantees against victim-blaming
reactive fault.
to redress are in part problems created by the formal
they
Viewedin terms of passiveresponsibility,
might be equal; in terms
though,
adversarial
of active responsibility,
process.
In terms
they are not.11
of the impact
of victim-blaming
adversarial justice, The
Major
Worry
about
Active
Responsibility
examination
to trials
suggests that of unreported
say they are responsible for their own victimization
(and
or others blame them for it. This
victim-blaming)
victims
blame themselves
through
for leaving
which the
burglar
can be a good thing if it in target
hardening
fight
to
may reflect
open the
entered;
protect
them
a victim
on the provocation
from
if a girl
who is a victim
wearing a short skirt. this type
freedom,
a repeat
of the
off ender
matter, though,
Whatis the diff erence? It is that
of young
is connected
much exacerbated
Ngaire
are much
our
Naffine
on the extent active resistance
we would suggest, rapes involving
out of the criminal
other types
less likely to find their
justice system (Naffine
Hence, it is clear that
of way
victim-blaming
of by
victim-blaming.
1992:761).
is a problem
at
every level.
that
while
the
criminal
trial
of restorative assembles
those capable of inflicting
in
justice is one
room
maximum damage on the
other side, the restorative justice conference assembles in the room those capable of offering
to a history
women, and the denial
which has been
without
What can be said in favor
of sexual assault is blamed for
of victim-blaming
of subordination their
it
to invest
of a schoolyard
that led to the assault. It is a diff erent
not confine
of the statistics
rapes, rapes
on tra-ditional
win-dow into a court of law ... (and) are morelikely to befiltered
indeed,
motivates victims
Similarly,
victimization.12
when
we should
and sentencing.
in light
In restorative justice conferences, sometimes victims is not a worry
seek
to their own sidebe side.
It is
in
this
structural
diff erence,
of care and active responsibility restorative
justice
places
maximum sup-port
it the victim or the off ender
its
and
in
the
ethic
that it engenders, that hope
against
victim
Restorativejustice implies a grave risk ofthe occur-rencevilification. of oppressive victim-blaming. The
hope is that
It
whenit occurs, participants in the circle will speak up in defense and support of the victimthat
there will
be reintegrative
The
shaming
of victim-blaming.
fact
will be a hope that from
higher
time
priorities
to improve
the
for
will continue
to time, research
micro-design
to
we fear. There and
be disap-pointed are few
development
than
of conferences/circles
RESPONSIBILITY AND
Videos shown to participants before they go into their
contrasted
citizens
within them,
against
victim-blaming
speak
out
against
but perhaps they could also warn and
both
should
court
urge a responsibility
victim-blaming
Training for convenors For
can be actively responsible
should
which procedures
it
occur.
also address this risk.
and conference
be able to test a variety
to discover
should
to
processes, research
of innovations
in order
best protect victims from
(Garland
responsibility that
JusticeBeyond
Responsibilization
At least
its
traditional
tended to contrast,
criminological objectify
forms,
and infantilize
community
policing
as involving
a new form
and responsibilization Garland 1997; identifies
OMalley
a new
characterizes
1992).
through
been suffered
as a result
is needed to elicit responsibility.
involves the
central
government
that
crime,
which he
strategy:
justice
There
This
functions
which once belonged to the institu-tions with its own
of control
over
recurring
messageof this approach, as Garland puts it, is that the
preventing
and controlling
crime
be, responsible
(Garland
1996).
of restorative
justice in this frame. There
however.
are
some
that
must
strategies
work is the theoretical
influence
literature.
becomeresponsible homo
for it.
be drawn,
justice
their
underlying
1997:191)
to
the
context
a criminal
asks)
should
to
assume
not
of
a
are legal
duties
of
restorative
off ense, though,
a
be viewed
as a breach
any
works because people are an active
when they beyond
responsibility
have a personal
allocated
(enforced
collective and
restricted
crime
responsibility)
that
prevention
allocating cannot.
or
moral re-sponsibility.
often involves
responsibility
to
(par-ticularly
involvement)
passive legal
Active responsibility assumed
prudens.
is
parents as having
In
for
than
attend.16
bytech-niquesrestoration
interpretation
as gifts rather
of any duty.15 No one,including the offender, hasa duty even
courts
Foucauldian
most depends
put the claim formally. The
children.
conference
of the self for cultivating a security-conscious This
participationall
decision by parents to refuse to attend (or do anything the
the to
of
not as legal duties. They
recognizes
conference
be held legally
justice
be conceived
supererogatory,14 to
to
and
on which restorative
system rightly
makeit
Active responsibility
love,
moral duties, and certainly
prepared
Foucaults
Subjects are taught
(Garland
must
off ers of help and support, forgive-ness,
care, compassion,
care
should
for crime should
morally responsible
vary in their
approaches to achieving responsibility.
capability
who are passively responsible
Restorative justice distinctions
Responsibilization
responsibilization
justice
(causally responsible)
for success, should
Clearly, it is possible to read our account
this natural
which restorative justice
actors
that having
for
a regulatory
clear that
of restorative
only individual
predicament
state alone is not, and cannot eff ectively
a
theory
the things
1996:449). The
is itself
of
normative
Garland says that this is a response to the
deliver the expected levels
we must
institution
for the delinquencies of their children.The
1996:452).
conduct(Garland
within it,
in laws that hold parents legally liable
part of non-state agencies and organizations (Garland
to
however
are many unattractive features of responsi-bilization
all kinds, including
criminal
of active
though,
the
conference
trends from
by acting indirectly, seeking to activate action on the
inability
of
have
is all that
proffering
dialogue
to cultivate
(police, courts, prisons, social work, etc.) but instead
of civil society, the state is now faced
the
that
wrongdoing
for responsibility.
or
and responsibilities
process of human
consequences of
creation
crime not in a direct fashion through state agencies
over control
the
spontaneous
the
1997;
seeking to act upon
taken
of restorative
for responsibility.
At the same time,
and unforced
and
Garland, for example,
as a responsibilization
as-sumed
of sub-jectification keepits distance. Weseethe worst manifestation of re-sponsibilization
(Crawford
mode of governing
capability
beings talking
off enders. In
many writers see newer crime prevention
are
capable of responsible action Our conception
we assume that the simple
restorative
utilitarian-ism
individuals
271
is closer to the end of the continuum
move designed In
which
assumes a natural
concede
Restorative
in
1997:191).
natural
stigmatization.
one
to benaturally
first conference could not only show how conferences work and how participants
with
RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
in
can
an
provide
ways that
passive responsibility A more structura
272
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
is that it passesgen-der-relatedjudiciary engaged in further
worry about responsibilization burdens
This
of
worry is that
state to slough
down
concern
arises
of a states strategy to in
developing the
law.
individuals.
welfare obligations.
with
to deal with regulatory
to regulate
to
what is going on is a move by the
off some of its social
A comparable justice
care
off enses; it
may be part
walk away from its obligations
areas such
has clear responsibilities)
The
as environment
(where
it
by delegating them to civil
theory
sounds fine,
to imagine
using restorative
bubbling
but it all seems rather roman-tic
day-to-day
up to influence
potentially,
though,
In communities justice
the
the law.
this is
in
work
of conferences
Cumulatively
and
not necessarily romantic.
which conferencing
is
dilemmas that arise in conferences
widespread, are discussed
in civil society (at dinner parties, for example, including
society. Christine
Parkers
here (see
(1999)
also
work
Braithwaite
Parker sees a need for two-way wants institutions
in
down into
is
Parker
of the
She
of the law fil-ters
attended
byjudges).17
Wecan already
1999).
communication.
which the justice
the justice
cor-rective those
a useful
and
Zealand that law. In the
cite specific
have had an impact, Clotworthy
for community
people as manifest
conferences
in
New
albeit small, on the
case, the decision of a confer-ence
service and victim
compensation
in restorative justice processes(so that, for example,
to fund cosmetic surgery needed as a result of a vicious
respect for fundamental
knife attack wasoverruled by the Court of Appeal.18
informal justice).
human rights
constrains
Obversely, Parker wants a restora-tive
justice that
gives the justice
of the people an
opportunity to percolate up to influence the justice of the law. In terms we want the
active responsibility
on the is apparent (1995)
of active and passive responsibility,
passive responsibility. in recent
and Jurgen
state can open itself issues,
writings Habermas up to the
in a civil
society
have an influ-ence
The
of
same theme
Cliff ord
(1996) input
information,
contributions,
circulating
to
on
arguments
Habermas
the theory is clear:
the
Moreover, the
back room
of the
parliamentary
complex, but as the impulse-generating
all parts of the political system
forms
of general
elections
of participation,
converted into
without
authorizes
the legislature
regulatory
agencies,
critique
and various
public opinions
a communicative
of judicial
more-intense justificatory
are
power that
and legitimates
while a publicly
mobi-lized
decisions imposes obligations
in
on a
the
conference.
principle
that
can aff ect sentences way,conferencing
Although
is
processing
what happens
might be the bulk of the law in ac-tion
(and therefore is impact
the
to the routine
courts.
in the lowest courts
the law), rarely does it have any
on the law in the
books, or formal
the
law. In rare
Magistrates bubble
up the
case.
One can imagine
how restorative
might achieve this task in a variety
justice
processes
of contexts.
for schoolgirls caught smoking
A con-ference
marijuanacould
communicate to school principals that passiverespon-sibility such asexpulsion is excessiveandinappropriate.
normative reasons, it affects
intending to conquer it. Passingthrough the channels
not dissimilar
of cases in the lowest
pe-riphery
that surrounds the political center: in cultivating
articulated
Court did recognize
strategic cases, though,
public sphere is not conceived simply
as the
as
the demands of restorative justice
Clotworthy [T]he
victim
in a position
the state
(1996:442),
of
how the
According to
1996:183184).
However,the sentence wasreduced in response to the wishes
in very serious cases. Put another
set apart from
(Habermas
Court of Appeal ordered a custodial sentence.
Shearing
of free-floating and
To the disappointment of restorative justice advocates, the
Conferences can and do also bubble
up community
disapproval of certain investigative techniques by the police,
which tend
capacity
can
how fairly
to
be suppressed
be reinforced
participants
in this formal
by
in
court. This
making an inquiry
have been treated
part of the restorative
of
by the police
justice
process.
Where there is a concern, the police, as a signatory the conference
agreement, can commit
to the participants ombudsman
about the results
investigation
to report of an internal
of their conduct
of
back or
RESPONSIBILITY AND RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
Fisse
and
documented
Braithwaite
of
Australian
communities
major insurance the
have
how a series of conferences exposed
the victimization remote
(1993:232237)
through
companies.
Aboriginal fraudulent
practices
by
decisions
of
meetings between off ending companies,
victims,
and
Aboriginal
Community
call a press conference. The and shocking
be briefed by the regulatory to regulatory While it conferences
Councils
Prime
often
agency. Significant
to percolate the justice
be
the
A strong philosophical foundation in responsibil-ity for action and responsibility
3.
A promising jurisprudential
was to
Practical
as a virtue;
future
of Fisses notion
through
devel-opment
of reactive fault; and
promise in its links
to theories
of crime
prevention.
change
At the
same
remain
unsolved
such as the risks
on single parents to do too
vehicle
of the people into the justice
there
of sexual assault and foisting
hope that
transmission
time,
about responsibilization, victims
to
the law, such cases show this is a possibility
be realized.The
2.
Minister asked to
would be overly optimistic
political rationale;
were so sys-temic
law and practice ensued.
would
Animportant
4.
regulators,
abuses exposed
that the
1.
people in
One of the
273
worries
of blaming
unreasonable
ex-pectations
who already are expected
much with too little support.
of
that
can NOTES
Aboriginal insurance cases show that
just as restorative justice can serve to responsibilize individuals in a waythat relieves the state of burdens,
1. The
so is it possiblefor powerless individuals to userestor-ative
recent
Glaude
justice to responsibilize the state whenthe stateis failing in its regulatory
ball
away
a group
from
the
feet
of a judge
of citizens. The
goes on depends
type
the
in that it takes a
and
puts it
at the
of responsibilizing
on how those
citizens
feet
care for
which
Others
responsibility the
will learn
for
state
should
decide to exercise
from
the
awesome
be giving example
need to
accept
burdens
them
more
of those
2.
Some readers aims
to
about
help.
Aboriginal
the
of the of
people
3.
of responsibilitythe that and
will
maximise
restoration
communities.
We
responsibility
will
conceptions
of criminal
balance a substantial
kind
between shift
have
be very
We have seen that
diff erent
and active the
1990;
4.
restorative
from It
will involve
responsibility
Some hand,
traditional a with
on the
responsibility
has:
restore to
to
their the
added)
(at
events.
is
the
the
Praniss
claim
might
active
punish),
active
At the
and
passive between
form)
and
passive form).
assertion
arises
that respectfulness
in
our
view
(Braithwaite,
(Braithwaite
is the a punitive victims then
argue
and Pettit,
(Braithwaite,
that
responsibility
are not
some
us-ing
1999b)
values.
critics
and
events
active
(the
beside non-domination
other,
is
But it is our
future
distinction
(the
as
responsibility
avoid
Pettit, 1997) and empowerment
and
that
or active responsibility.
of
restorative
an approach
active
between
accountable
normative
responsibility harm,
latter.
restorative
as central
off enders,
that
is
be characterised
unwanted
responsibility held force
the
can
all,
seek
theories
normative
1989) ranks
con-ception
of responsibility victims,
seen
responsibility.
passive toward
of
The
these
being
from
research
of a restorative
can
diff erence
taking
risking
agenda has been the development
of
one
whether
events
passive responsibility
forms
justice
for obviates
(emphasis
After
prevention that
heart
CONCLUSION
of the restorative
future
responsibility.
contention
kick the goals of state responsibilization.
part
process
responsibility
might question
prevent
passive
of
Community Councils from far North Queens-landand
A neglected
justice)
incarceration
responsibility
R v.
a com-parison:
72)
power. To useasoccer analogy, many will kick their own by taking
to take
decision
of such
(restorative
off enders
By comparison,
of
Court
an example
to the
actions.
that then
their political imagination in the use of that little pieceof goals
need for
Supreme
provides
Central
or welfare obligations.
Restorative justice is empowering
Canadian
(1999)
exclusive:
punitive
(by
is
what is
satisfying
outcomes
one
justice
that is, if active
of responsibility
outcome harm
on
and restorative
mutually taking
punitiveness
to
restore
required their
can involve
to
desire activ
274
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
responsibility.
However
is imposed it in
no
way involves
does seek then
it
For
active
or actively
may involve
nevertheless 5.
consent active
the
Rights
prohibits
example,
conferencing not
in
court
in
Australia,
objectives
murder
P.W. Botha a period
of the
was the
when his
murder
and
the
off ence
(Section
South
their
child.
only
National
Congress.
head of state
atrocities
to
against
New
result
by
on the
Zealand
putting
not on the but
law
when the
Indeed
opportunity
refused
to
Brent
Fisse
those
of this the
Court
opposed
District
group
confer-ences
to
deny
guilt,
would
the
be if
a report
simply
from
cursed
radical
can
be
view
conduct
to respond
a confer-ence
the
victim
that
if
known
responsibly sufficient
and
and prosecutor,
serious
cases to
court
acts of responsibility
during
or of their
their
own
life-times
children
as off enders.
Appeal)
(CA
114/98,
allowing
appeal
Court Judge Thorburn,
for
a
womans
be harm-ful
is harmful,
to
establish
Australia, sentence
to
that
assume would
assaults
is seen as
off enders
(Braithwaite, of
of burglary
experience
harm than
for
been a victim
Victoria,
received
victims
then
burglary
man took
she
part of
morally
wrong
a higher
victimisation a
other
Braithwaite
Transcending the
24
Testing the
29 June from
April
1998,
sentence
of
1998
Responsive
Regulation:
Debate. Oxford,
England:
Press. Procedural
Fairness
Intoxicated
(1992).
Deregulation
University
G. (1999).
Justice
of
Drivers.
in
Two
Diversionary
Ph.D.
who into
is the
1991,
value than
single
big-gest
(Pease) raped account
unreported,
a
Justice
Restorative
Contexts:
Conferencing
dissertation,
for
University
woman
of
was rea-sonable
victims Victorian
Justice
of
the
and L.
Harm
In of
Walgrave.
Youth
Monsey,
Press.
M.
Dooley
Offender: The
M.(1998). The
England:
(2000).
Restorative
Challenge of
Cambridge,
Sticks:
Journal
Questfor
Cambridge J.
Justice
Reintegration,
Crime,
England:
J. (1997a).
this
On
of
Powers.
Cambridge,
Press. Shame
Cambridge
Neglected
47:157
Responsibility.
University
(1989).
Separation
psychological
Repairing
G. Bazemore
Reintegration: Rehabilitation.
volume.
Braithwaite,
the
Relational
Justice:
by
G., and
andThe
Shaming,Whither
and
Juvenile
Criminal
Bazemore,
Braithwaite,
that
meant it
suff ered less
G.(1999). After
Restorative
Bovens,
have been suff ered by other
[Hakopian,
J.
Crime, edited
criminal
1999).
as a prostitute that
and
Bazemore,
criminal
to
however. The
deserts theorist
equal justice
predictor
sexual
whole answer,
the just
Having just
In
I.,
NY: not the
equal justice
13.
par-ents
protect
Maryland.
more
punishing
fault
to consider
12.
Ayres,
Oxford
criminal
liability.
it is that
and
to
restitution.
takes
reactive
is
police
conferences
Clotworthy
of
whether
are spurned.
of victims
trouble
is
care for
voluntary
will attend
Queen v.
NZ
during
of criminal
declining
off ender
discuss
and if failure
11. This
for
conference,
accomplishes
family
basis of an admission
is about
such
duty to
with the
framework
judges
18. The
Barnes,
An example
liability
of the conference legal
here rests
in a restorative
with care and
justice
have authorized
already
cases into
basis of formally
said that
10.
position
who have a duty to take sufficiently
17.
allegations. 9.
and
REFERENCES
Functionally, this
case summary
to a criminal
their
Apartheid. 8.
not be the
subject
duty
who get into
of political
African
would
meeting
16. The
Madikizela-Mandela
is alleged
this
as supporters
her pursuit
African
Cabinet
other
must
have been
Winnie
of a child in
on behalf
outcome might
for
Heyd, 1982.
as opposed
are
Act 1997 (NSW)).
against
the
Of course, protection
treat-ment
one
Cass 1992
1991;
where the legal
that
for
(see
Mellema,
and
governing the
those
Offenders
allegations
included
Civil
or degrading
legislation
See
outcomes.
7).
proceedings
52(6)(a)Young 7. The
inhuman
14.
we would
on
Court
comment)].
15.
outcome,
but
Covenant
more severe than
imposed
If an off ender
on such
County
out-come
consent
a punitive
limits
the
scheme
(be)
to
(Article
under
their
responsibility,
International
or punishment For
say if a punitive without
responsibility.
seek to impose
instance,
Political
6.
we would
on an off ender
and
University
Reintegration.
Press.
Speaking
Softly and
Dimensions
of
University
of
Carrying
Republican Toronto
Law
RESPONSIBILITY AND
Braithwaite,
(1998).
J.
Restorative to
Linking
Justice.
Wrongdoing. American
In
Crime
Conferencing:
Proceedings
Conference
of
on
Prevention A New
the
First
Conferencing,
to
August
Fisse,
68,
(1999).
(ed.)
Restorative
and Pessimistic
Crime and Justice:
Braithwaite, and
J., and
K. Daly (1994).
Business, edited
by T. Newburn, Routledge.
J., and
Harm of Youth
and
Lode
In
Boys
E. Stanko.
Doing
J., and
Crime, edited
Restorative
by
Monsey,
P. Pettit
Republican Theory Oxford Burford,
Justice is
Gordon
NY:
University
New
Family
Criminal
Not Just
Justice.
Deserts:
Oxford,
A
England:
Roles
for
Family
Old
Group
Partners
Implementation
in
Report
Family
Group
Decision Resolving
Summary.
Decision
St.
Making
Case
Law Journal Crawford,
and
Comment:
Hakopian.
Criminal
A. (1997). The
Local Governance ofCrime:
and
Partnerships.
Oxford,
Appeals England:
Limits
of the
Sovereign
Contemporary
of Criminology
State: Society.
36(4):445471.
Governmentality
and the
Criminology,
Sociology.
Habermas, J. (1996).
Between Facts and
DiscourseTheory
Problem
of
Theoretical
of
Norms: Contributions
Law and
Democracy. London:
Press. C.(1999).
Heimer,
Legislating
C., and
F.T. (1994).
Social
Support
Criminology:
Academy of
Criminal Justice
as an
Presidential
Organizing
Address to the
Sciences. Justice
Quarterly
Relationship
Between
Responsibility,
unpublished
D. (1982).
K. (2000)
Justice:
Revisiting and
the
Restorative
Philosophy
J.
to
Justice.
Practice, 3354.
Braithwaite,
edited
In
Restorative
by
H. Strang
Aldershot,
England:
Dartmouth.
Keohane,
A
Repentance: and
Buddhist
Approach
A Comparative D.E.
Carney.
to
Its
in
University
Pluto
Status in
Cambridge
D. Brown (1998).
of
Ethical Theory.
University
Rethinking
Press.
Law and
Order.
Press.
R. (1984).
After
World
Hegemony:
Politics.
Cooperation
Princeton,
NJ:
and
Princeton
Press.
D. (1986).
England:
Causation
and Postscript:
In
Philosophical
Oxford
University
T., and
Shaming
J.
Papers,
Redundant II.
Vol.
Oxford
Press.
Braithwaite
and
Maxwell,
(1994a).
Regulatory
Perspective, edited New York:
Rowman
M.(1979). The
G.M., and
Culture:
Reintegrative
Compliance.
by and
A. Morris (1993).
Youth Justice in
Criminology
of Criminology, Zealand.
Wellington,
York
Melton,
New
G. (1991). and
Beyond Offence.
New York:
the
Call of
Albany:
Family,
Zealand.
Agency and Institute
Victims and Social
Victoria
Duty:
State
Policy
University
Supererogation,
University
of
New
Press.
A.P.(1995).
Indigenous
Society. Judicature Processis the Punishment.
New
of
Obligation
Repentance.
Littlefield.
Russell Sage.
England:
University
Mellema,
M.D. (1997).
A. Etzioni
Sake of the
Responsibility
Home. Chicago: The
Supererogation:
Cambridge,
Makkai,
of
Press.
Hogg, R., and
Lewis,
For the
Organization
Hospital and the
Chicago Heyd,
Staff en (1998).
Social
32(3):361385.
11(4):527559.
Retributive
L.
Children: The
Causation.
Press.
Concept for
Feeley,
Crime
Cambridge
1:173214.
Discord in
16:200204.
Community
Clarendon
In
Corporations,
England:
Control in
Foucault,
Sydney:
Project.
Eckel,
(1993).
Cambridge,
of Crime
D. (1997).
Heimer,
Justice
Law:
Southern
56:11411246.
The
British Journal
to a
Criminal
Sanctions.
Press.
The
the
(1996).
Newfoundland:
Cass, D. (1992).
and
Braithwaite
Garland,
Polity
Bazemore
Press.
Violence.
Johns,
(1990).
of Criminal
G., and J. Pennell
Making:
Daly,
J.
and
275
manuscript.
Braithwaite,
Cullen,
Review
Criminology
Press.
to
Law
D. (1996).
Crime:
London
Restoring Juvenile Justice: Repairing
Walgrave.
University
Garland,
Corporate Fault,
Accountability.
Strategies Violence
Just
and
C. Parker (1999).
Republican Justice. In the
Assessing
Michael Tonry
Masculinities,
Control.
and
Braithwaite,
In
A Review of Research.
Communitarian
New York:
Justice;
Accounts.
Retribution,
B., and
and
J.
Optimistic
Reconstructing
Deterrence, California
North
Minneapolis. Braithwaite,
Fisse, B. (1983).
Response
RESTORATIVE JUSTICE
Mulgan, R.(1997). The
Justice
Systems and Tribal
79:126133. Processes of Public
Australian Journal of Public
Administrion
Accountability. 56(1):25.
276
CRIME
Naffine,
AND
BEHAVIOR
N. (1992).
Evocation
Windows
of
on the
Rape in
Legal
Legal
Writings.
Mind: The 18
MULR
Olweus,
D. (1993).
Facts
and
Program.
Annotation:
Eff ects
Journal
of
of
Bullying a
School
Child
at
School:
Based
Psychology
Basic
Psychiatry
P. (1992).
Risk,
Power
and
Crime
Prevention.
P. (1994).
Responsibility
and
Crime
Prevention:
A Response to
Adam Sutton. The
Zealand Journal
of Criminology
27:2124.
Just
Oxford,
England:
Victimization:
Taking
C. (1999b).
University
Pease,
and
New
Oxford
Detection
Research
Thomas,
by
Recht
and Prevention
Group, London.
Stock.
Series, Paper 90. Police
In Konzepte, und
Staat
P.(1998). The Taking Stock: G. Peters and
University
Repeat
England:
Press
and
New
the
Response
North
August 68,
C. (1995).
Governance.
zu
A
of the First
Conferencing.
In
Press.
K. (1998).
Crime
Lawyers.
Australian
Oxford,
Conferencing
Conferencing:
Befunde,
Economy and Society 21:252275. OMalley,
In
Shearing,
35:11711190.
OMalley,
K. (1998).
Proceedings
Intervention
and
Republicanism.
Clarendon
Press.
Pranis,
741.
Parker,
Pettit, P.(1997).
Community.
to
American
Wrongdoing.
Conference
on
Policing
as
Minneapolis.
Reinventing
Policing:
Privatisierung
staatlicher
Tendenzen. Interdisziplinare
Kontrolle: Studien
3:6988.
Changing
Nature ofAccountability.
Assessing Public Sector Reforms, edited D. Savoie.
Montreal:
McGill-Queens
Conclusio
CONCLUSION The
Challenges
of Integrating
Criminological
Theories*
Stuart
I
ntegrative theory in criminology & Canter, 1979; Johnson,
& Pauly 1983;
1990;
can be traced
1979)
back to 1979 (Elliott,
with continuing
Elliott et al. 1979;
Hagan 1989;
Agerton,
work in the 1980s (Colvin
Hawkins
&
Weis 1985; Jeff rey
Messner, Krohn, & Liska 1989; Pearson & Weiner 1985), extending to
more recent developments (Agnew 2006,
2009;
Bernard
2004;
2006;
Robinson
2001;
Colvin
2011;
2000;
& Beaver
2009;
Akers 1994; Barak 1998a, 1998b,
Fishbein
1998;
Shoemaker
Muftic
1996;
2009,
Tittle
Robinson
1995).
Integrative theory, asits name suggests, involves not one theory but many which are integrated
or combined
that transcends moves us toward
to produce a comprehensive
the explanatory
developing
more holistic
& Henry 2006, p. 310). Instead framework, theorists
or even through
multiple
more pre-existing
theories,
into a single reformulated explanatory
on the impact on the
juvenile
development,
disciplinary
criminological
combination
of two or
perceived commonalities,
theories
delinquency,
another
of social control
way the intersection
and
model with greater comprehensiveness
value than any one of its component
personality
a third fourth
defined as:the
selected on the basis of their
95). For example, in explaining a childs
a single
perspectives, integrative
approach
theoretical
frame-work
theories
policies to address crime (Einstadter
of seeing crime through
take an interdisciplinary
analytical
power of any of its constitutive
(Farnworth
one theory
on the interactive
and parental
may focus
learning
and school
and
1989, p. on
process,
bonding,
and a
of class, race and gender shape these diff erent
processes.Integrative theory combines each of these explanatory components into one theoretical explanation.
*
This
Reading
commentary
draws on
Criminology,
4(2):
applied
and
the
(eds.)
Henry, toward
1026,
to
R. Szostak
Oaks,
on
Agnews
and
complex
S. (2012). a unified
The
challenges
criminology
Henry, S. & Bracy, social
problem
Journal
ofTheoretical
N.L. (2012).
of school
Case studies in interdisciplinary
of integrating
violence
research
Integrative In
(pp.
criminology: and
A.
theory Repko,
259282).
A
Philosophical
in crimi-nology W.
Newell
Thousand
CA: Sage.
27
Henry
280
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
Advocates of integrative
theory
see distinct
advantages in integrating the insights from discipline-based
theories.
Barak (1998b)
(2) to
engaging
do so: (1) because of a desire to develop
central concepts that provide
fragmented
are common
coherence
theories,
to
to several theories;
a bewildering
(3) to achieve comprehensiveness and thereby
enhance their
advance scientific
progress
and (5) to synthesize social control
array
and thereby reduce their
original
and completeness,
more theories into
and theory
development;
(Paternoster
seem to
mono-disciplin-ary
Toward a
Unified Criminology:
Integrating Assumptionsabout Crime, Peopleand Society,
have been selective
and partial, reflecting
and politics of the discipline theoretical
traction
to accomplish
the
division
But this lack of
may also reflect the variety
integration,
integrative
(p. 191).
theories
and the that
Finally, some theoretical
number
of ways of diff er-ent
have emerged as a result.
perspectives
So the first
important
propositional
statements
events and factors? know
that
question
the
is what
concepts
is to
about the relations
A related
question
be
are the same?The
way diff erent theories
of abstraction of
the
or generality
(Bernard
&
Snipes,
1996;
Liska, 1989, pp. 515). than concepts
least
13
if
of potential
other
just and
social
erent
kinds
1996
1979;
Liska,
Conceptual integration combining that
theories.
have similar
Henry
2006,
It
is the simplest involves
a common
p. 316). This
finding
idea
diff erent theories language
when
concepts and
(Einstadter
has also been called
&
rather
causes
example, to
at
number
would soon ap-proach
p. 254).
that there are at least that
describe
the
rela-tionships
causality,
which takes the form of a sequential chain of events
one
as the
outcome
event which
dialectical events
1989).
the
between crime variables: (i) linear
and
& Henry 2006;
& Messner
meanings in
merging them into &
(Einstadter
Krohn,
Krohn,
amount
included
recognizes of
for
control,
are
multiple causality, which sees of several
diff erent
of
Hirschi
al.,
two theories,
theories
50! (Shoemaker
diff
et
much
theories
propositions
variables in the analysis
Causal integration four
alevel
has its own challenges, since the propo-sitions
association and
Messner
Integrating
causes; (iii) interactive causality, in
(4) cross-level integration
which im-plies
constituent
of crime, there are four different ways that theories (3) causal integration;
proposi-tions
encompasses
the
can be integrated:
integration;
et al. 1989, pp.
between
that
of
crime
propositional
through
how theoretical
related (Liska
conceptualization
resulting in crime; (ii)
(2)
A key issue in
whichrefers to identifying
Bracy 2012). In the literature
(1) conceptual integration;
or relate the
which implies a sequential causal order;
of much discussion (for a recent review see Henry & on integrative theories
consider
of relationships
vertical integration,
are integrated
and what precisely is integrated has been the subject
...
overlapping influences; and (iii) up-and-down or
we
meanings of the elements integrated
theory
(ii) side-by-side or horizontal integration,
between
is how do
types
derived from
or a theorys
link-ing
have beenidentified: (i) end-to-end or sequential
diff erential
Is it theoretical
meaningfully
understanding
is to
are logically
Three
defy integration
because they areincompatible.
integrated?
a combined
theory
integration,
points out that none of the integrated theories haveat-tracted widesupport, not least becausethe integrations
entails
and not just the concepts of two or
a comprehensive
propositions
theories that wehaveexplored in this book, Robert in
ground?
& Bachman 2001, p. 307).
generating
515).
in the
of diff erent theories into the new theory
integrating theory
when individual
do they lose their integrity
Propositional integration
propositions
and
merger distort the
A related issue is
the propositions
power; (4) to
of the traditional
& Bracy, 2012;
new emergent synthesis of common
explanatory
While the advantages of integrative
Agnew (2011)
concepts?
concepts are distilled,
of
policy.
supersede the limits
(Henry
Repko, 2008). If theoretical concepts are mergedbut
number;
ideas about crime causation
ground
they are diff erent, how far does that
summarizes
these advantages, arguing that criminologists in integration
existing
finding common
or then
1998a;
Milovanovic
influence
influences
or reciprocal
are not
and interrelated, (Barak
factor
the
causality, in
discrete
entities
&
event;
or fac-tors, and
(iv)
which causes and
of the crime event
Henry 2006;
1996). If a combination
causes is used, how is that configured combination
events
but are overlapping,
and codetermining Einstadter
which the eff ects
other crime
independent
Henry
&
of these types
of
and how does the
vary by level of analysis and type of crime
CONCLUSION
If
Cross-levelintegration involves integrated theorists explicitly
paying attention to
integrated
address a micro-,
whether theories to be
all levels,
are integrated
which is called cross-level
et al. 1989;
Muftic 2009). The integrational
considered in cross-level integration of people, their
(meso);
and (3)
kinds
(Einstadter
a further
include: (1)
kinds
of culture,
structure,
of
only theories
Astor,
between groups, organizations and
Structural-Cultural
Feminism
(Hagan,
Simpson
Alternatively,
(macro-micro)
integration
Paulys (1983) and strain
attempt
(macro-level),
in criminology
and
three levels (and even a fourth addressed simultaneously integration 305). (See also
in
&
social learn-ing,
is the goal, then
global level)
all
(Paternoster
& Bachman
2001, p.
Muschert et al 2013,
multi-level integrated application to school violence). As Henry and Bracy (2012) explicit awareness that occur, it
point out, without an
macro-micro level interactions
over
ef-fects
historical
multi-level application Benbenishty
&
can be inte-grated,
as we mentioned above,
Einstadter
16 different integrated or
more discipline-based
theories, the most popular being: sociallearning and social control and
bob from
macro)
and
theory
(micro),
conflict
one integrated
followed
(macro).
went even further
to theory in
by strain Hunter
and
identifying
theories. Thus,
one-sided interpretations
we
our failure
of reality,
21 in-tegrated
now no longer to transcend
but scamper from
theory to another in an attempt to tran-scend
the transcenders
(Einstadter
and
Henry 2006
pp. 33031).
Finally,
need to be
what has been called mul-tilevel
Henry 2009; and
and their
or
waystheories
Henry (2006) identify
theories. Intuitively,
it seems that if comprehensiveness
lifecourse,
theories, each drawing on two
or holistic
Marxist, conflict,
with subculture,
and social control (micro-level)
Colvin
as the
the 2006 edition of CriminologicalTheory,
Dantzker (2002)
integrate
is
to explain the
there are manycombination orintegrated packages. In
An example of such cross-level
to combine
ofchronosystem
theories in the field,
(meso
theories
such
the con-nection
and because if the number of diff erent disciplin-ary-based
(micro)
as in power-control
& Gillis 1987)?
should integrative
across analytical levels?
time,
which the
macro-systems,
of changes in the relationships
ra-tional
beintegrated; and finally, should different
in
2005).
that operate at one level
macro-leveltheories beintegrated such as Marxismand theory
meso-, and
Because of the diff erent
choice, with biological and psychological causes?
institutions
micro-,
periods (For an example of this
theorists
Similarly, should theories at the meso-leveladdressing the relationships
development
ecological
is used to comprehend
as well asthe concept dynamic
(1979)
to school violence see Hong et al, 2013;
rais-es
of analysis, such as micro-, for example integrating
of childhood
between
their
and context
whether integrative
Bronfenbrenners
ofexosystem
over
processes
& Henry 2006, p. 319).This
question
should combine
organizational
so-cial
as in
systems theory
levels to be
(2) kinds of organization,
agency, and their
(macro)
concept
concept
(Liska
human agency, and their interactive
processes (micro); collective
across
integration
multi-level integration is adopted, then how do
the levels relate to each other and do we need a bridg-ing
meso-, or macro-levels of
analysis, or whether these theories
281
a critical
as
Henry and
question
for
Bracy (2012)
those
favoring
point
theory is how to assess the relative contribution theoretical
explanation
to the totality
out,
integrative of each
of an integrated
explanation of crime. In explaining a particular crime or criminal
behavior, whatis the relative explanatory
strength of eachtheory, at eachlevel, to the overall inte-grated explanation, and doesthat change for diff erent
might be seductive to believe that an integra-tion
of a range of theories is adequate, without real-izing crimes, or different crime types, or different contexts? that
macro-level theories
have been omitted.
example, the 16 diff erent integrated by Lanier micro-level they
and
theories
draw on
integration has typically cross-level
Henry (2010, in
greater
of discipline-based
theories identified
pp. 38589) numbers
macro-level theories
For
(33%).
draw (66%)
on
than
Put simply,
theories in criminology
been biased toward same-level rather than analyses.
Indeed,
Agnew acknowledges most
merit, explaining crime
(Agnew
much is explained the
a portion
of the
2011, p. 191).The and to
theories variation
have some of some
key question is how
what extent
does each explain
phenomenon?
Related to this, if an eff ective policy is developed it would seem that the components be included
of the policy should
to the extent that they address the strengt
282
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
list of elements rather than oneintegrated
of causal explanations. If this varies across crimes,
Whatis problematic about this is the relativity of the
populations and contexts, that presents challenges un-less policies are adapted some integrative
and
theorists
multi-level integrational
micro-and
but then
have distal
Paradoxically, meso-levels,
this
and
or side-step
influence
definition,
and its failure
Determining
process.
politics of a legal process, albeit international. condemnation
factors, from
assessment depending is their social context, to
historical
period.
AGNEWS
UNIFIED
CRIMINOLOGY
by so
of harm, to per-ception
on whois the perceiver and what and spatial location
Finally, acts determined mediated political
hardly
addresses the
or
state,
or
many
is reflected in its changing
cultural
are part of a power
the
mediated
mass media to knowledge
criminology
of these challenges
harm is anchored to the
can be
of loss; its relativity
to the
integration?
by
political
macro-level.
the
to define crime other than
variable Public
(Hong
gives priority
abandons
some
diff erenti-ate
have proximate
So, how far does Agnews recent unified overcome
Indeed,
what appears to be a
theories that
and those that
et al. 2013).
adopt approach
between constitutive influence
multi-variegated.
definition.
omitted
because of the interests
by corporations
from
of those
by the state
process, which
harms created
those
and
criminalization
with lobbying
power
overthat process. Such an integrated
Agnew argues that recent developments in science to assessthe relative contribution that
underlying
criminologists
have not
while all underlying
empirical
support,
underlying
assumptions
only captures
of providing
resolution
...
a complete
but that ...
are diff erent and
that
to each of the
each assumption
Each theory
explanation
of crime
(Agnew
many theories these can-not
diff erences in underlying
resolved. It is toward just such a
Agnews
reducing a person from
work is directed.
socially definition
integration
erent
by the state. not
As he acknowledges,
much, further
statement
in
than
his pyramid
far as our own prism 2001),
this goes a little,
Hagans (1977; of crime,
of crime (Henry
1985)
and
original
& Lanier 1998;
with the exception that it draws on international
law to define blameworthy
harm.
with Agnews restatement
of
crime
all we have
Hagan is an end-to-end
do not diminish
stringing and
definition
together to
either,
because of
process.The
an integrated
point needs
elements
become
is
of
transcendent
next dimension tackled by Agnewis whether (or
for
that
matter
other
action)
is
determined
byforces or voluntarily chosen by active human agents. This
is
a version
of
the
classic
free
will
debates, applied to crime. recent research that fully
behaviors
free
choice but
to somewhat theorists
research
does not
but suggests ranging
agentic
say, human
have limited
or
deter-minism
Agnew argues that
along a continuum,
what Agnew calls bounded although
versus
does not settle this issue fall
determined
rational
fully However, asfar as ad-dressing
the issue of what is to be integrated,
criminologies
inclusive.
but
not quite as
system. The
one over another
definitions
who
deprivations
justice
of the political
out that
go beyond simply
of crime and in doing so he arrives at an inte-grated The Crimes are acts that: (1) cause blameworthy harm; (2)
waysthat
privilege
structure
here is to point
agencies
others, including the criminal
in
but nor do they
diff
by corporations
and state
mainstream and critical
hereby integrated,
Agnews first task is to review and integrate defini-tions and
are condemned by the public and (3) are sanctioned
over
through of
the current
crimes
by governments
power
reduces a per-son,
But such an integrated
also includes suite
exercise
to
murder that
and biologically).
and crimes
other
definition of crime that contains three elements.
what they were) or crimes of
violence (such as rape or
administered or per-spective
but falls far short
are contradictory,
unless the
are first
that
they
Moreover, since
make assumptions
assumptions
He points have some
has some support
pp. 19394).
be integrated
done this.
is some truth
part of the truth
typically
2011,
there
he notes
assumptions
even though
often oppositional,
through theft, force or deception (economically
of each
assumptions, though
out that
takes account of
both street crimes, where property is taken from an-other makeit easierfor crimi-nologists
and social science knowledge theorys
definition
(p. 195).
As
agents are not
bounded
agency.
from
rationality,
Agnew says that
prove the
existence
o
CONCLUSION
agency it shows that, humans exercise greater agency
by the exercise of control under the guise of producing
whenthey: (a) are motivatedto alter their behavior, (b)
stability.
believe they can produce change, (c) have the traits and
is how some exercising
Whatthis integration
resources to exercise agency ... and (d) are in environ-ments creatively that provide
have weak or countervailing
numerous
encourage
agency
opportunities (Agnew
harm
constraints,
for
agency
2011, p. 195).
and
Moreover,
he says the exercise of agency is subject to guidance and influence be
and that we
more unpredictable
involve
crime
agency
(Agnew
somewhat
when
conditions
favor
2011, p. 195).
tautological
is the very definition be morelikely
would expect
and somewhat
behavior to
more likely the
to
exercise
Apart from
this
of
and
does it explain control
limit
others
impact
producing.
positions. and
in
which some
we know in
produce
mono-theoretical
what pro-portions,
negative outcomes,
However, we will have raised serious
begsthe question of causality. If agency is morelikely
a criminal justice system that,
when there is
holds individuals
questions
about
with a few exceptions,
asthough they are fully accountable,
and belief that change can occur, and that this is facili-tated even whenthe conditions by resources, then what explains the
systems
we will not only be unable to prevent such outcomes.
of agency: acting freely is stated to
occur when there is less constraint, it also
make behavioral change
and
are themselves
an advance over
But until
what kinds
nor
agency and determinism
there is a continuum
of both are present is certainly
being
waysthat
of constraint
and influence
Integrating
do so
humanity;
excesses, and yet other
guidance
and recognizing
freely
and others do so in
negatively
how some conditions
of constraint, harm
doesnt help us explain
agency relatively
and positively,
others
in that the evidence for agency
motivation to
283
werecontributing factors. Yet
we do not, except is some restorative justice processes,
motivation
and belief, and are those subject to internal or external
ensurethat the producers and systems that contributed
forces, and if so, how
to
controls
or confusion
resources to
much agency is left? If lack about controls
and availability
of
causes
of action, so again, how free is the agency to act, and how
muchis a part of the overall equation?
of influence
or the
absence
thereof,
person seen to be acting agentically accountable
for his or her actions?
be held fully
accountable,
does not leave agency free from However, an even
can
of the
be held
definition
here
of conditions.
part of this agency
are
also
held
accountable.
to the issue of human previous
discussion
is
nature (though
embodied
Agnew points out that research supports humans
are not discretely
by
this)
but are consti-tuted and
(2) social concern for others, especially those
members of an in-group, protect,
classifiable
in
the view that
more or less degrees of: (1) self-interest
rationality, a
Clearly they cannot
a variety
more disturbing
how
and thus
since the
some
Moreover,
from the policy perspective, if agency is subject to this amount
behaviors
In turning
of
make change are factors, then the presence
or absence of these can be seen as contributing
the
cooperate
with whom they empathize,
and engage in reciprocal
activities
mutual support, and (3) capacity for social learning: So people
show
evidence
of social
and social learning--with varying
concern,
the strength
across individuals
and social
self-interest
of these traits circumstances
versus determinism picture is that the very conditions
(Agnew
2011, p. 196). Along with other integrative
that result in highest agency are the same ones that
criminologists
produce the highest levels of creativity, innovation
human nature suggesting that all theories of crime are
Agnew holds a more complex view of
and art; they are the hallmarks of think tanks, and the
relevant, including those that focus on the constraints
substance of positive
to
being even
deviance. Indeed, rather than
morelikely to produce crime, they are aslikely, or morelikely to be expressions
that
crime
and
on the
criminologists
for
crime
...
need to pay much attention
factors,
of the very essence of
motivations
since the underlying
[and]
to bio-psychological
traits
that
cause crime vary across individuals
for reasons that are
and determinacy, then, is that it assumes agency acting
in part biologically
2011, p. 196).This
freely is
seems to
humanity. The
dangerous
and control
with this integration
and
and influence
and reduced of the
problem
deviance.
worst atrocities
harmful,
and that
of agency
constraint
produces conformity,
stabil-ity
However, as we know, some
of humanity
have been produced
based (Agnew,
privilege some components
least because there is no explanation concepts are linked
over others, of the
not
ways that
and no analysis of causal type or di-rection,
nor a recognition
that
biology (or
psychology
284
CRIME
AND
BEHAVIOR
does not stand separately from the macro-levels within recognizes
more meso-and
which it is enmeshed.
these levels
aff ect or impact
an interactive
dialogical
rather than a dialectical
coproduction.
and psychological structure
of the culture and
of a society, and if so why do societies
very diff erent rates and kinds of crimes? biology
and
psychology
kind of group,
characterize
social
concern
social
circumstances also
refer
social that
to
how
aff ect
foster these
of the
them
patterns
societies
condemnation beyond
a
of
vary (Agnew based
on
accentuated
by conflict
neglected kinds
this
are
interrelated
a
common
violence
that
harms
and
of conflict (Agnew
crimes
conflict
are
gener-ally
and oppressed,
might reduce crime
2011, p. 197).
Whatis
here is not just the harm produced
of conflict
and
and nature of consensus and
among oppressors
how
crime,
and
and that Group
certain types
ways
aff ect
to recognize
and
theft
view
2011 p. 197) there is an assump-tion,
research,
increases crime although
consensus
personal
to the and
core
that the extent
conflict
what an integrative
Whileit is important
have
among the oppressed
crime,
elements
us to consider
When Agnew
pay attention
interest
have
leads
of society looks like. that
kind of culture
way of life?
should
and
part, a product
organizations,
a peoples
This
Canindividual
and even the discursive
says criminologists
must
be, in
place in
and social structure, that
or even
For example, are the biological
traits independent
production to be aless harmful species.
Agnew
one another,
but not that they are or can be mutually constitutive, implying
reconstitute our social, cultural, biological and psycho-logical
such as discrimination,
by some
that
Agnew
acknowledges needs more research, but research on the
ways consensus imbued
with power produce
with each other and coproduce the very human agents
harms, and the waysthat conflict can be productively
whose
healthy in reducing power differentials and balancing
behavior
becomes
manifest
as
individuals
identities and human subjects in the total social matrix. An integrative relationship,
theorist
want to
know the
Gregg Barak (2003; eff
ects
at
erent
interests
would want, in the words of
numerous
harms of repression
levels
of
the
structure
over the life course and over time.
and
For example,
Barak points
out that in spite
societal levels, to focus
across a range of
most analyses are un-reflexive,
much, if any reflection these fragmented
form
tending
of violence,
on the other forms.
and isolated
without
is this
maylink
various forms of violence together
(Barak
simplistic),
very subjects it often in
So it is not enough to say
but rather
is bad (not that to
examine
the
Agnew distribu-tion
of power in a society and to assess what harms are of power, both those
subject to it and those expressing it, which Agnew Agnew then
attempts
macro-and
to integrate
with theories
that it is important of
which is a point
makes.
consensus in society
the workings of a given form of violence without try-ing to understand the common threads or roots that
the globe.
created by diff erent distributions
He argues
analyses seek to explain
of the
to produce
as we have seen too
consensus is good and conflict
of clear evidence that
interrelated
on one particular
regimes around
of a chaos of
in its absence, is likely
claims to be protecting, in-teractive
in his analysis of pathways to violence and non-violence
violence is cumulatively
by the fear
competing
2006) to know the reciprocal diff
power hierarchy, legitimated
but to
not just of these elements to crime,
each other over time. They
culture
would
opposing interests. A consensus about the value of a
the conflict
or
of causation recog-nizing
to examine not only a range
micro-causes,
but also the
relationship
between these causes,thereby providing a better sense
2003, p. 39). Hearguesthat pathways to violence (and
of whythey vary and how they work together to cause
nonviolence) rangeacross the spheres ofinterpersonal,
crime (Agnew 2011, p. 162). Hestates that
institutional
and
the domains these
structural
of family, subculture
pathways are
and inversely criminology
cumulative,
related
(Barak
then requires
or even interactive
the interrelated constituted
relations
process;
complexity
as human
as
well
and culture
across
2003, p. 169).
requires
of the
us to
multiple
Unifying additive examine
ways weare
agents and to explore
conflict
theory tends to focus on the larger social envi-ronmental causes, it often neglects individual
and that
mutually reinforcing,
more than a simple it
as
ways to
whereas
mechanisms.
including
contrast
or micro-level
mainstream
theories,
those rooted in a consensus perspective focus
on individual-level impacted
In
causes, neglecting the waysthese are
by the wider social environmental
says since integrative
theory
causes.
draws on both
He
conflic
CONCLUSION
and consensus perspectives,it provides a good vehicle for cross-level integration Importantly,
the
but that
an integrative
applicability
that
causes
of the causes sometimes
in this
the diff
of crime
extent erence
that are
and has
some
... societies
of consensus/conflict. eff
most applicable
depends on
ect
on
(Agnew
the
dif-fer
causes
of
more or less advantaged affiliation,
and vary
across types
depending
He says integrated
What is
needs to
pay
more attention to the role of context in facilitating
or
mitigating crime causation and how this varies across
in
this
two
been in
fails
raised them.
theory needs to recognize that not all causes of crime
responsible
for
increase its likelihood, since crime is only one response and,
indeed,
the
motives
for
such
action
may be not to harm others as much as reduce their pain, frustration,
or oppression: The
shaped or conditioned theory
should
general criminology only
the
value
also
the
contribution
field.
describe those factors that condition (Agnew
2011, p.
Ironically,
what in
what
ways,
and
at
as the research
on crime,
human agents and
society is subject to the assumptions reality
about
whether so-cial
can be measured, raises questions about the
of its socially
this as a problem techniques
constructed
of designing
nature.
Agnew sees
more eff ective
to take account
overall
off enders, for
of both objective and
crime is produced and the eff ectiveness of prevention of tapping
Importantly,
significant
not only as objective disciplinary based knowledge by in organized
and less organized knowledge
produced
in communities, measures. (See
professional
by practitioners
other
Agnews
integration,
but to
the
us precisely
how
much
con-tribution
makes to
kinds
the
of crimes
combination
or
varies
may be less
symbolic
impact
advocates
unifying raises
integrationalists
he does not answer for
not
be integrated,
or peoples, the
unifying
has
that
made the
turn.
need for
how they
but also spon-taneousunique
or
ways this
than
criminol-ogy,
contribution,
what
entities
field
in
criminology
level,
single-theory
he lays
may be answered,
and accessible
criminology many of the
have raised,
them,
restates same
and
although
out a research and
ques-tions
agenda
does all this
in
a
way.
and subjective
and professionals REFERENCES
in order to reduce the bias of existing Henry 2012 on moving from interdis-ciplinary
to transdisciplinary in criminology).
academia,
the
On balance, the
what
agencies,
to
integrative
he recognizes the value
multiple knowledge producers, seeing these
criminologists
and in
diff erent
rather
recognizing
should
of
core
theorist
Toward
explanation
explanation
measure-ment one of its leading
subjective features of reality, since both affect the way and intervention.
causal
on
the but
does not tell
what
each theoretical
Insofar
extent
Agnew
he
literature
theories
theory,
has
because
work,
mainstream
propositions
This
address
major shift
and
assump-tions
mainstream
by critical
that
concepts
163).
a
of the
not
central
he
major innova-tion
previous
as a
strain
represents
response taken is
by a range of factors. . [I]ntegra-tive
the responses to the causes of crime
one of the
own
a
previous
Nonetheless,
or revised
core
However,
the
by this
is that
integration.
does
far
criminological
and represents
Agnew
How
credit
using the
review
theory
perspec-tives
201).
mainstream
thinking.
one
to interpretation.
great
theoretical
to systematically
side-steps
causes
for before
and
(p.
open
theories,
criminological
questions
is
Agnews
is
of crime,
and incorporates
relevance
endeavor
critical
done
integrative
of crimes
approaches,
and
criminology
theory
major theories
have some
as a vehicle not
integrated
a unified
new, and is to
diff erent societies. Heemphasizes too, that integrative
to these
for
of all
all
he succeeds
on the type
theory
Agnews
a broad range
because
marries
across
of crime.
examines
key arguments
theories
he says causes diff er across groups, particularly
goal of
the
crime
2011, pp. 162163).
groups,
the
that
And
Indeed,
of group
Overall,
to lay the foundation
which people being
being explained nature
of
approach suggests that
the nature of society, the groups to and the type
CONCLUSION
(Agnew 2011, p. 162).
Agnew also recognizes
do not necessarily apply to all people and all types crime,
285
producers
of knowledge
Agnew,
R. (2011).
assumptions New York
Toward
a unified
about crime, University
criminology:
people and society.
Press
Integrating
New York:
286
CRIME
Akers,
AND
BEHAVIOR
R. (1994).
evaluation Athens,
L.
H. (1992).
criminals. Barak,
&
UK:
Introduction, Roxbury.
of
University
(1998a).
G.(1998b).
theories: Angeles:
creation
Champaign:
Aldershot,
Los
The
(Ed.).
G.
Barak,
Criminological
and application.
dangerous
Farnworth,
violent
of Illinois
criminology.
criminologies.
G. (2003).
Violence and
Boston:
Applying
theory
of violence
and
Mark
nonviolence:
integrative and
theory:
A recip-rocal
336-346).
In
Stuart
essential crimi-nology
Boulder,
CO:
Westview
Barak,
G. (2009).
New
York:
gender.
In
and
Culture,
S.
and
criminals
Oxford
Bernard,
&
and
Roxbury
T. J.,
crime
and
Chicago:
In
(Eds.), Los
its
M. Tonry
University
of
Chicago
U. (1979). The
Harvard M. (2000).
and coercion: New
Cambridge,
An integrative Palgrave
M. & Pauly, J. (1983).
Toward
an integrated
A
critique
production.
American
theory
Journal
&
Henry,
An analysis
Boulder,
CO:
Rowman
D., Agerton, theoretical
Journal
of
S. (1995.
of its
S.,
2006).
underlying
of Sociology,
and
Research on
New
Littlefield.
& Canter,
perspective
R. (1979).
Crime
and
An
inte-grated
behavior.
Delinquency,
New Brunswick,
Class
theory Journal
of of
The
in
gender Sociology
social
approach
of
Primary
to
develop-ment
delinquency
Prevention,
violence
problem
in
beyond
need
American
of
6(2),
Columbine:
an interdisciplin-ary
Behavioral
Expanding and
Scientist,
S.
Journal 4(1):
52(9),
for
Case
S.
Boulder,
In
Studies
& Lanier,
T. (1979).
of Research in
Philosophical
prism
definition
of crime: of crime.
Roman
Integrative
to the complex A. Repko, in
CA:
M. (eds.). and
Crime and
problem
in of
& R. Szostak Research
(pp.
Sage.
(2001).
What is crime?
Littlefield.
D. (1996)
Separate
theory
social
W. Newell
Interdisciplinary Oaks,
Beyond postmodernism. Hirschi,
of
crimino-logical
and
The
N. L. (2012).
Henry, S. & Milovanovic.
16,
place
integrative
an integrated
Thousand
CO:
on theoriz-ing The
15: 609-27.
applied
violence
in
ofTheoretical
M. (1998).
S. & Bracy,
criminology
justice?
62-89.
& Lanier,
Quarterly
259-282).
our thinking
criminal
perspectives
Criminology Henry,
Henry,
on delinquent
McGraw-Hill.
R. Gillis. (1987).
American
S. (2012).
(eds.)
Criminological
assumptions.
&A.
criminology
school W.J.,
theory:
J.
School
evolutionary
Henry, of de-linquency
513551.
Einstadter,
York:
An integrated
S. (2009).
Justice
of criminology:
structural-Marxist
Toronto:
Press.
Journal
Arguments
Press.
Colvin,
York:
Crime, criminal
criminology.
J. D., & Weis, J. G. (1985).
analysis.
develop-ment:
York:
New
pleasures.
A power-control
theory.
criminality.
New
delinquency.
Press.
Crime
of chronic
control.
Simpson,
A complex
Henry,
design.
92109).
12461265.
Press.
and
(pp.
crimi-nology.
7397.
and
20, pp. 301348).
ecology of human
by nature
University
Crime
in
(Eds.), The
Press.
University
prevention.
integra-tion
(Ed.),
93100).
perspectives
disreputable
Structural
model:
Angeles:
(pp.
deviance
92:788816.
Hawkins,
Explaining
335346).
of research (Vol.
Experiments
89,
and
of
New York.
Modern criminology:
household:
criminology.
& Snipes, J. B. (1996). Theoretical
Bronfenbrenner,
Hagan, J.,
study
Ryerson.
Hagan, J. (1989).
Henry,
A review
theory
in
Bachman
school
Press.
theories
R.
School violence
family,
University
(pp.
criminology.
justice:
Colvin,
A. (2005).
Press.
in
MA:
R.
Integrating
R. Paternoster
approach.
model
& A. Liska
W.J. Einstadter
reader
The
Hagan, J. (1985). behavior
the
prospects
of
&
University
McGraw-Hill
in
Biological Henry
theory
New York
the
neighborhood,
New York: T. J. (2001).
An integrated
Littlefield.
R., & Astor,
context:
Bernard,
Criminology:
Rowman
Benbenishty,
327.
D. (1998).
versus
M. D. Krohn,
and
University
NJ: Rutgers
Press.
Elliott,
Problems
State
In
integration
integration
Hagan, J. (1977).
nonviolence.
M. Lanier (eds). The
reader, (pp.
Pathways to
S. F.
crime:
Albany:
Allyn
Oaks, CA: Sage.
G. (2006).
Henry
in
Messner,
criminology
understanding. Thousand Barak,
Theory
In
Theoretical
Fishbein,
Ashgate. Integrating
Bacon.
Barak,
(Eds.), and
Press.
Integrated
M. (1989).
building.
Constitutive
London:
criminol-ogy:
Sage.
and equal is better. Delinquency,
16, 3438
Journal
CONCLUSION
Hirschi,
T. (1989).
theory.
In
(Eds.),
Exploring
S. F.
Theoretical
and
crime
New
Hong, J.
3749).
In
G.
(Eds.).
Confronting
Boulder, R.
Causes and
study
in the study State
CO:
Theoretical
Muftic,
University
deviance
L.
&
for and
of
theoretical
crime.
New York
integration
In
S. F.
in
Messner,
M.
119).
Albany:
State
An
unexplored
M. B. (2004).
Prentice
and crime: of
theoretical
theoretical frontier.
integra-tion: Journal
&
school
Peguero, violence:
CO:
Lynne
Boulder,
Roxbury. Toward Journal
ed.). Tittle,
an inte-gration of Criminal
research:
Sociology:
Process and
A multi-paradigm
1517.
Why crime?
The
behavior. essential
An integrated
Upper
Saddle
integrative
In
systems River,
NJ:
systems theory
S. Henry
criminology
Westview
M. B.,
Durham,
Explaining
Hall.
CO:
Robinson,
(2001).
116150.
behavior.
M. B. (2006).
The
NC:
K. (2009).
Carolina
D. J. (1996).
of deviance.
M. M. Lanier
(pp.
319335).
Why crime?
criminal
Academic
Oxford Control Boulder,
of
delinquency:
of delinquent University
behavior
An (3rd
Press.
balance: CO:
An in-terdisciplinary
behavior.
Press.
Theories
of explanations
New York:
&
reader
Press.
& Beaver,
C. R. (1995).
theory Macro-micro
76(1),
Sociologist,
of antisocial
examination
(1989).
University
R.(Eds.).
Interdisciplinary
American
Shoemaker,
in the study ofdeviance
to
approach to explaining
Albany:
A. E. (Eds.)
L.,
Boulder,
theories.
August).
integration
Press.
R. (2009).
theory
(Eds.),
Press.
M. D. & Liska,
prospects.
science.
Pearson
S. F. (1989).
1(2),
Oaks, CA: Sage.
G. (1975,
of anti-social Messner,
of deviance and crime (pp.
and
York
Press.
eff ect.
N.,
N. A. (1985).
Criminology,
theory. Thousand
Essential crimi-nology. Robinson,
2010).
Bracy,
Los Angeles:
Weiner,
A. F. (2008).
Robinson,
and its origins.
& A. E. Liska (Eds.), Theoretical
integration
Problems
D.,
requisites
University
Repko,
ap-proach.
Westview. M.
Messner, S. F., Krohn,
New
delinquency
Criminology,
Responding
of criminological
and
NJ: Prentice-Hall.
Cambridge
Krohn,
of
D. Krohn,
(2013).
Pearson, F. S., &
Saddle
An interdisciplinary
S.,
the columbine
and crime.
Law and
Upper
Henry,
R., & Bachman,
criminals
Ritzer,
M. M., & Henry, S. (2004;
and
W.,
A. (Eds.).
139-156).
Crime
Philosophical
Rienner.
&
to school
eff ect (pp.
consequences.
Cliff s,
Strategies
G.
Paternoster,
Hall.
Juvenile
Boulder,
the
Responding
M. L. (2002).
Englewood
E.,
& Allen-Meares,
and interven-tion.
Rienner.
R. E. (1979).
A.
A.
of
N. L. Bracy,
Columbine
Criminology:
UK:
C. J.
Henry,
(2013). the
NJ: Prentice
Cambridge,
Liska,
S.
Dantzker,
C. R. (1990).
Lanier,
Muschert,
of deviance University
prevention
CO: Lynne
D., &
criminality:
Johnson,
State
D. L., Ferguson, Violence
W. Muschert,
A. A. Peguero, violence:
Jeff rey,
Albany:
study
and
3371.
Confronting
P. (2013).
River,
the
& A. E. Liska
Press.
S., Espelage,
Hunter,
in
of Theoretical
to integrated
M. D. Krohn,
integration
(pp.
York
alternatives
Messner,
287
Toward
Westview
a general
CREDITS
Derek
B. Cornish
Essential
and
Copyright
2006
Marie Skubak
Tillyer
A Reference
and John
Handbook,
Gina
W.
Clark,
Reference
H. Sutherland of
Donald Ronald
Akers
and
and
with
Donald
2009
in
Crime,
Miller,
the
21st
pp. 271278.
Criminology:
Copyright
2009
by
A Reference Handbook, by
Sage Publications.
Public
Domain.
Century
Criminology:
Copyright
A
2009
by
permission.
R. Cressey, A Theory
ed. Jean
Wesley
McGloin.
G. Jennings,
of
Diff erential
Copyright
1955
Handbook,
Association, by
Estate
of
S. Agnew,
Strain
Mitchell
Reprinted
& Francis
Gottfredson,
21st
Miller, pp. 323331.
Century
Copyright
Self-Control
pp.
Criminological
8196.
Theory,
Explaining
Theory,
Copyright
ed.
2000
Raymond by
Oxford
with permission. Theory,
Miller,
pp.
21st Century 312322.
Criminology:
Copyright
A Reference
2009
by
Sage
with permission.
Theories,
Miller,
Mitchell
Theory,
pp.
21st 332339.
Century
Criminology:
Copyright
2009
A Reference by
Sage
Handbook, Publications.
with permission.
Henry, Critical
Richard
Mitchell
Reprinted
Learning
with permission.
Contemporary
Disorganization
ed. J.
Publications.
R.
Bachman,
Reprinted
Walker, Social
Reprinted
Essays in
Ronet
Press.
Social
Handbook, ed. J.
Michael
Crime:
and
University
Stuart
21st Century
Criminology:
Copyright
of
Reprinted and
A Reference
Paternoster
J.
Man.
Mitchell
and
Hirschi
Criminals
ed.
with permission.
Activities,
Copyright
Theories
2009 by Sage Publications.
Robert
The
pp. 1829.
permission.
ed. J.
Criminology,
Criminology:
Jeff rey
Perspective,
M. Lanier,
R. Cressey.
L.
Travis
Reprinted
21st Century
Criminal
Psychological
Handbook,
Principles
Choice Mark
Miller, pp. 279287.
pp. 184201.
The
Sage Publications. Edwin
with
and
permission.
Lombroso-Ferrero,
John
Group.
Mitchell
Theory,
Miller,
with
Rational
Henry
E. Eck, Routine
Reprinted
Mitchell
Reprinted
Books
ed. J.
D. Crews, Biological
ed. J.
V. Clarke, The
Reader, ed. Stuart by Perseus
Sage Publications. Angela
Ronald
Criminology
Criminology:
Wright and J. Group
LLC.
Mitchell Reprinted
An
Overview,
Miller, pp. 347351.
Encyclopedia Copyright
of
Criminology, 2005
ed.
by Taylor
with permission.
28
290
CRIME
Stuart
AND
BEHAVIOR
Critical
Henry,
Encyclopedia J.
Mitchell
by
of
Criminology:
Criminology,
Miller,
Taylor
&
pp.
ed.
An Richard
347351.
Francis
Copyright
Group
LLC.
Jeff
Overview,
Miller,
2005
Reprinted
J.
Lynch
in
and
Contemporary
Bachman
and
Raymond 2000
Reprinted
pp.
ed.
Oxford
pp.
Essays
no. 2.
Ronet
Review.
Press.
and
Michael
Criminology,
ed.
Milovanovic,
Richard
LLC.
ed. J. 2009
Criminology,
Miller, pp. 12451249. Group
Handbook,
LLC.
by Elsevier
A.
Encyclopedia
Wright
Copyright Reprinted
and J.
with
permission.
&
Criminology
Sage
Through
Review, vol.
by
with
permission.
Western
12,
Criminology Provided
by
reserved.
John
Fuller,
Criminology,
Science and
Braithwaite
Justice, 6384.
Mitchell
2005 by Taylor
by
Criminology
and
Bo
Corrections,
Restorative Justice, pp. 2942.
and of
Mitchell
Lozoff
Peacemaking
Copyright
Technology.
,
2001
Reprinted
with
permission.
John Postmodern
Century
permission.
2011
All rights
Braswell,
Mitchell Sage
Western
Reprinted
and
by
with
21st ed. J. 2009
Critical
Copyright
Century
with permission.
D.
Constitutive
21st
Copyright
Reprinted
Reprinted
ProQuest
267286.
University
Handbook,
Copyright
Advancing
Peacemaking
A Reference
Henry
Francis
Theory,
Criminology,
245252.
Publications.
and
Crime:
219227.
Anthropology,
Radical
and
Paternoster,
by
Feminist
Criminology:
Stuart
Stretesky,
with permission.
Sharp,
Miller,
B.
Criminals
Criminological
Copyright
Sue
Paul
Explaining
Criminology,
A Reference
pp.
Avi Brisman,
Criminology,
Cultural
Publications.
with
permission.
Michael
Ferrell, Criminology:
Wright and
and
Restorative ed.
Declan Justice,
Gordon
Copyright
Technology.
Roche,
Reprinted
Restorative
Bazemore 2001
Responsibility
by
and
Elsevier
with permission
Community
Mara Schiff , pp. Science
and